Selected quad for the lemma: lord_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
lord_n aaron_n bear_v day_n 166 3 3.7371 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A03343 CLII lectures vpon Psalme LI preached at Ashby-Delazouch in Leicester-shire / by that late faithfull and worthy minister of Iesus Christ, Mr. Arthur Hildersam. Hildersam, Arthur, 1563-1632. 1635 (1635) STC 13463; ESTC S122925 1,242,509 854

There are 118 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

singular_a gift_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o be_v able_a to_o confess_v our_o sin_n aright_o james_n 1.17_o every_o good_a gift_n be_v from_o above_o therefore_o job_n beg_v this_o of_o god_n job_n 13.23_o how_o many_o be_v my_o iniquity_n and_o sin_n make_v i_o to_o know_v my_o transgression_n and_o my_o sin_n lecture_n xl._o on_o psalm_n 51.3_o novemb_n 14._o 1626._o it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o proceed_v unto_o the_o second_o use_n and_o that_o be_v for_o direction_n to_o try_v whether_o we_o have_v yet_o attain_v to_o this_o grace_n or_o no._n and_o this_o be_v sure_o a_o use_n of_o as_o great_a profit_n and_o necessity_n as_o the_o former_a for_o if_o we_o will_v call_v to_o mind_n and_o consider_v 1._o what_o promise_v god_n have_v make_v to_o they_o that_o can_v confess_v their_o sin_n aright_o 2._o that_o no_o man_n can_v have_v assurance_n and_o hope_v to_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n till_o he_o confess_v they_o 3._o how_o far_o many_o hypocrite_n have_v go_v in_o make_v confession_n of_o their_o sin_n as_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o pharaoh_n and_o saul_n of_o cain_n and_o judas_n it_o can_v be_v but_o it_o will_v work_v in_o we_o a_o desire_n both_o to_o learn_v how_o we_o may_v confess_v our_o sin_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o we_o may_v not_o loose_v our_o labour_n in_o it_o and_o how_o we_o may_v try_v and_o discern_v whether_o we_o have_v go_v any_o further_a in_o this_o duty_n and_o attain_v to_o more_o grace_n this_o way_n than_o ever_o any_o hypocrite_n be_v able_a to_o do_v now_o there_o be_v five_o property_n whereby_o a_o sincere_a confession_n of_o our_o sin_n may_v be_v difference_v and_o distinguish_v from_o that_o which_o be_v counterfeit_a first_o the_o sincere_a confession_n of_o sin_n be_v particular_a concern_v this_o first_o property_n three_o caution_n must_v be_v premise_v to_o prevent_v the_o mistake_n of_o it_o first_o that_o may_v be_v a_o good_a confession_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v make_v in_o general_a word_n so_o that_o the_o heart_n of_o he_o that_o make_v it_o do_v therein_o particularize_v with_o god_n such_o be_v that_o of_o god_n people_n in_o their_o public_a fast_n 1_o sam._n 7.6_o we_o have_v sin_v against_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o of_o the_o publican_n luke_n 18.13_o god_n be_v merciful_a to_o i_o a_o sinner_n these_o word_n be_v very_o general_a but_o the_o great_a affection_n wherewith_o they_o be_v utter_v do_v argue_v that_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o feel_v their_o confession_n be_v particular_a though_o in_o word_n they_o be_v not_o second_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o the_o best_a man_n in_o his_o confession_n to_o reckon_v up_o unto_o god_n and_o mention_v all_o his_o sin_n particular_o who_o can_v understand_v his_o error_n say_v david_n psalm_n 19.12_o and_o 40.12_o they_o be_v more_o in_o number_n then_o the_o hair_n of_o our_o h●ad_n three_o for_o hide_a and_o unknown_a sin_n a_o general_a confession_n may_v suffice_v to_o give_v a_o man_n comfort_n and_o assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o they_o as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o that_o prayer_n of_o david_n psal._n 19.12_o cleanse_v thou_o i_o from_o secret_a fault_n yet_o do_v this_o remain_v a_o certain_a truth_n that_o one_o special_a property_n to_o distinguish_v the_o sincere_a confession_n from_o the_o counterfeit_n be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v particular_a &_o so_o be_v not_o the_o other_o and_o this_o will_v appear_v to_o you_o in_o four_o point_n 1._o all_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v their_o best_a endeavour_n to_o know_v and_o find_v out_o their_o most_o secret_a sin_n that_o so_o they_o may_v lay_v they_o open_v in_o particular_a unto_o god_n this_o be_v plain_a by_o that_o speech_n of_o the_o prophet_n lam._n 3.40_o let_v we_o search_v and_o try_v our_o way_n what_o need_v that_o but_o to_o find_v out_o sin_n that_o be_v unknown_a or_o forget_v and_o in_o that_o speech_n of_o elihu_n speak_v of_o a_o sinner_n humble_v himself_o in_o confession_n of_o his_o sin_n job_n 34.31_o 32._o sure_o it_o be_v meet_v to_o be_v say_v unto_o god_n that_o which_o i_o see_v not_o teach_v thou_o i_o all_o man_n shall_v beg_v this_o of_o god_n to_o discover_v to_o they_o their_o secret_a and_o unknown_a sin_n 2._o the_o more_o particular_a a_o man_n can_v be_v in_o the_o confess_v of_o his_o sin_n the_o more_o of_o his_o sin_n he_o can_v confess_v against_o himself_o the_o more_o comfort_n he_o may_v have_v in_o his_o confession_n it_o be_v with_o we_o in_o our_o deal_n with_o god_n in_o this_o case_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o client_n or_o patient_a that_o deal_v with_o his_o lawyer_n or_o physician_n for_o counsel_n the_o more_o particular_o we_o know_v that_o a_o man_n deal_v with_o his_o lawyer_n in_o lay_v open_a his_o case_n unto_o he_o and_o with_o his_o physician_n in_o discover_v his_o disease_n unto_o he_o the_o more_o good_a he_o may_v receive_v from_o he_o yea_o the_o conceal_n of_o some_o one_o circumstance_n from_o they_o may_v oft_o time_n tend_v to_o a_o man_n undo_n even_o so_o it_o be_v in_o our_o lay_n open_v our_o sin_n unto_o god_n the_o more_o particular_a we_o can_v be_v the_o better_a it_o will_v be_v for_o we_o this_o be_v plain_a by_o that_o direction_n the_o lord_n give_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n in_o the_o confession_n he_o be_v to_o make_v of_o the_o people_n sin_n upon_o the_o day_n of_o atonement_n leu._n 16.21_o aaron_n shall_v lay_v both_o his_o hand_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o live_a goat_n the_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v to_o bear_v &_o take_v upon_o he_o all_o the_o iniquity_n of_o god_n people_n as_o it_o be_v say_v ver_n 2._o a_o most_o lively_a figure_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o suffering_n which_o he_o endure_v in_o his_o soul_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o confess_v over_o he_o all_o the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o all_o their_o transgression_n in_o all_o their_o sin_n 3._o unless_o we_o can_v in_o our_o confession_n mention_v some_o particular_a sin_n wherein_o we_o have_v offend_v god_n we_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v this_o duty_n feel_o and_o to_o the_o purpose_n see_v this_o in_o that_o commandment_n god_n give_v to_o his_o people_n for_o confession_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o jere._n 3.13_o only_o acknowledge_v that_o thou_o have_v transgress_v against_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o have_v scatter_v thy_o way_n to_o the_o stranger_n under_o every_o green_a tree_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v confess_v thy_o idolatry_n see_v this_o property_n also_o in_o the_o confession_n of_o god_n people_n commend_v to_o we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n judge_n 10.10_o we_o have_v sin_v against_o thou_o both_o because_o we_o have_v forsake_v our_o god_n and_o also_o serve_v baalim_n and_o 1._o sam._n 12.19_o we_o have_v add_v to_o all_o our_o sin_n this_o evil_a to_o ask_v we_o a_o king_n in_o this_o manner_n also_o do_v david_n confess_v his_o sin_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o great_a plague_n 1_o chron._n 21.17_o be_v it_o not_o i_o that_o have_v command_v the_o people_n to_o be_v number_v even_o i_o it_o be_v that_o have_v sin_v 4._o and_o last_o though_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o we_o as_o we_o hear_v the_o last_o day_n when_o we_o will_v humble_v our_o soul_n in_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o sin_n to_o call_v to_o mind_n and_o confess_v unto_o god_n some_o of_o our_o most_o heinous_a sin_n as_o paul_n do_v 1_o tim._n 1.13_o &_o at_o many_o other_o time_n i_o be_v a_o blasphemer_n and_o a_o persecutor_n yet_o that_o we_o may_v be_v particular_a enough_o in_o our_o confession_n it_o must_v not_o content_v we_o to_o do_v so_o but_o even_o those_o sin_n that_o seem_v small_a as_o our_o worldliness_n peevishness_n aptness_n to_o surmise_n &_o speak_v evil_a of_o other_o passionatnes_n choler_n evil_a thought_n formality_n in_o religious_a duty_n &_o such_o like_a must_v also_o be_v remember_v confess_v and_o bewail_v before_o god_n david_n heart_n smite_v he_o 1._o sam._n 24.5_o even_o for_o cut_v of_o the_o skirt_n of_o saul_n garment_n cain_n can_v confess_v when_o god_n have_v charge_v he_o with_o it_o &_o cry_v out_o upon_o his_o murder_n &_o say_v his_o iniquity_n be_v great_a than_o can_v be_v pardon_v gen._n 4.13_o but_o his_o hate_v &_o envy_v of_o his_o brother_n because_o he_o have_v more_o grace_n than_o himself_o his_o formality_n &_o want_n of_o faith_n &_o feel_v in_o the_o offering_n he_o bring_v to_o god_n that_o he_o can_v not_o confess_v or_o complain_v of_o so_o can_v judas_n confess_v &_o cry_v out_o of_o his_o gross_a &_o capital_a sin_n mat._n 27.4_o i_o have_v sin_v in_o betray_v innocent_a blood_n but_o his_o covetousness_n &_o
soon_o as_o he_o will_v have_v have_v it_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o sufficient_o humble_v but_o in_o danger_n to_o have_v be_v puss_v up_o with_o the_o revelation_n he_o have_v receive_v 2_o cor._n 12.7_o 8._o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v it_o be_v too_o soon_o for_o thou_o paul_n to_o be_v rid_v of_o that_o thorn_n 2._o to_o make_v we_o more_o fervent_a and_o importunate_a with_o he_o it_o trouble_v great_a man_n to_o have_v suitor_n importunate_a ever_o follow_v they_o with_o petition_n and_o cry_v at_o their_o gate_n luke_n 18.5_o the_o widow_n trouble_v the_o unjust_a judge_n with_o her_o importunity_n but_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o the_o lord_n be_v high_o please_v and_o delight_v with_o christ_n mean_v to_o grant_v the_o woman_n of_o canaan_n suit_n but_o he_o put_v she_o off_o and_o 〈…〉_z strange_o of_o purpose_n to_o make_v she_o more_o importunate_a and_o earnest_a 〈◊〉_d he_o mat._n 15.25_o 28._o 3._o to_o cause_v we_o to_o esteem_v better_o of_o the_o good_a thing_n we_o beg_v of_o he_o when_o we_o have_v obtain_v they_o the_o good_a thing_n that_o be_v easy_o and_o ready_o come_v by_o be_v usual_o light_o esteem_v the_o disease_n that_o be_v easy_o cure_v man_n do_v not_o great_o fear_v nor_o be_v very_o careful_a to_o preserve_v themselves_o from_o they_o as_o experience_n teach_v we_o in_o that_o filthy_a french_a disease_n and_o sure_o this_o be_v one_o cause_n why_o god_n hide_v his_o face_n so_o long_o from_o many_o of_o his_o dear_a one_o even_o that_o they_o may_v learn_v thereby_o to_o prize_v the_o sense_n of_o his_o favour_n the_o better_a when_o the_o spouse_n have_v lose_v her_o well-beloved_a long_o it_o be_v say_v canticle_n 3_o 4._o when_o she_o find_v he_o who_o her_o soul_n love_v she_o hold_v he_o and_o will_v not_o let_v he_o go_v 4._o to_o keep_v we_o from_o conceit_v that_o our_o prayer_n how_o fervent_a soever_o merit_v aught_o daniel_n 9.17_o 18_o 19_o cause_o thy_o face_n to_o shine_v upon_o thy_o sanctuary_n that_o be_v desolate_a for_o the_o lord_n sake_n we_o do_v not_o present_v our_o supplication_n before_o thou_o for_o our_o righteousness_n but_o for_o thy_o great_a mercy_n defer_v not_o for_o thy_o own_o sake_n o_o my_o god_n the_o second_o thing_n we_o must_v understand_v that_o we_o may_v judge_v right_o of_o this_o case_n be_v this_o that_o god_n do_v oft_o gracious_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o give_v answer_n to_o they_o also_o before_o they_o perceive_v it_o dan._n 10.12_o 13._o from_o the_o first_o day_n that_o thou_o do_v set_v thy_o heart_n to_o understand_v and_o to_o chasten_v thyself_o before_o thy_o god_n thy_o word_n be_v hear_v and_o i_o be_o come_v for_o thy_o word_n but_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o persia_n withstand_v i_o one_o and_o twenty_o day_n and_o though_o they_o perceive_v it_o not_o 1._o sometime_o their_o heedlessness_n and_o negligence_n be_v the_o cause_n they_o perceive_v it_o not_o they_o put_v up_o their_o petition_n and_o never_o inquire_v after_o god_n answer_n whereas_o we_o shall_v hearken_v after_o it_o as_o benhadads_n servant_n come_v to_o sue_v for_o mercy_n do_v 1._o kin._n 20.33_o they_o do_v diligent_o observe_v whither_o any_o thing_n will_v come_v from_o he_o and_o do_v hasty_o catch_v it_o psal._n 85.8_o i_o will_v hearken_v what_o the_o lord_n god_n will_v say_v for_o he_o will_v speak_v peace_n to_o his_o people_n and_o 2._o sometime_o anguish_n and_o trouble_n of_o mind_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o they_o pray_v to_o god_n and_o he_o hear_v they_o and_o they_o can_v believe_v it_o as_o job_n speak_v of_o himself_o in_o the_o extremity_n of_o his_o anguish_n job_n 9.16_o if_o i_o have_v call_v and_o he_o have_v answer_v i_o yet_o will_v i_o not_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v hearken_v to_o my_o voice_n david_n sin_n be_v pardon_v so_o soon_o as_o ever_o he_o repent_v and_o the_o prophet_n nathan_n in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n assure_v he_o of_o so_o much_o also_o 2._o sam._n 12.13_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o his_o earnest_a suit_n he_o make_v in_o these_o two_o first_o and_o diverse_a other_o verse_n of_o this_o psalm_n that_o he_o do_v not_o perceive_v nor_o feel_v it_o to_o be_v so_o god_n people_n in_o egypt_n pray_v and_o cry_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o hear_v their_o cry_n and_o send_v they_o a_o gracious_a answer_n by_o moses_n exod._n 6.5_o but_o it_o be_v say_v ver_fw-la 9_o they_o hearken_v not_o unto_o moses_n they_o can_v not_o receive_v god_n answer_n for_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n so_o it_o be_v certain_o with_o many_o of_o god_n best_a servant_n he_o hear_v they_o gracious_o and_o answer_v their_o prayer_n also_o and_o they_o through_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n can_v perceive_v it_o now_o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o this_o you_o must_v know_v there_o be_v divers_a way_n whereby_o god_n use_v to_o give_v answer_n to_o the_o prayer_n of_o his_o people_n first_o when_o he_o grant_v they_o the_o thing_n they_o have_v beg_v of_o he_o in_o prayer_n as_o he_o do_v to_o hannah_n she_o beg_v a_o child_n of_o god_n and_o he_o give_v she_o one_o 1._o samuel_n 1.27_o for_o this_o child_n i_o pray_v and_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v i_o my_o petition_n which_o i_o ask_v of_o he_o and_o as_o he_o do_v to_o abraham_n he_o pray_v for_o abimelech_n and_o god_n heal_v he_o genes_n 20.17_o manoah_n pray_v that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v come_v again_o and_o god_n hearken_v to_o the_o voice_n of_o manoah_n and_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v again_o judge_n 13.8_o 9_o solomon_n pray_v for_o a_o understand_a heart_n and_o god_n give_v it_o he_o 1._o kin._n 3.9_o 12._o he_o ask_v life_n of_o thou_o and_o thou_o give_v it_o he_o psal._n 21.4_o second_o when_o he_o do_v not_o grant_v they_o what_o they_o have_v ask_v but_o deny_v they_o that_o and_o give_v they_o a_o better_a thing_n abraham_n beg_v of_o god_n that_o ishmael_n may_v live_v before_o god_n gen._n 17_o 18._o he_o deny_v he_o that_o but_o grant_v he_o a_o better_a thing_n verse_n 19_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v a_o son_n by_o his_o own_o wife_n with_o who_o he_o wo●ld_v establish_v a_o everlasting_a covenant_n and_o with_o his_o seed_n after_o he_o david_n pray_v that_o his_o child_n beget_v in_o adultery_n may_v live_v 2._o sam._n 12.22_o god_n deny_v he_o that_o but_o grant_v he_o a_o better_a thing_n he_o lose_v not_o his_o prayer_n for_o 1_o he_o save_v the_o soul_n of_o that_o child_n as_o appear_v by_o david_n word_n of_o he_o 2_o sam._n 12.23_o i_o shal●_n go_v to_o he_o and_o 2_o he_o give_v he_o another_o son_n by_o bathsheba_n and_o such_o a_o one_o as_o of_o who_o he_o assure_v he_o by_o the_o prophet_n that_o he_o be_v belove_v of_o the_o lord_n verse_n 24_o 25._o three_o when_o though_o he_o neither_o grant_v we_o the_o thing_n we_o have_v beg_v nor_o a_o better_a thing_n in_o the_o same_o kind_n yet_o he_o support_v we_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o give_v we_o strength_n to_o bear_v the_o want_n of_o it_o of_o this_o answer_n david_n speak_v psal._n 138.3_o in_o the_o day_n when_o i_o cry_v thou_o answer_v i_o and_o strengthen_v i_o with_o strength_n in_o my_o soul_n so_o of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n it_o be_v say_v heb._n 5.7_o that_o he_o be_v hear_v in_o that_o prayer_n which_o he_o offer_v up_o with_o strong_a cry_n and_o tear_n unto_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o save_v he_o from_o death_n yet_o do_v not_o god_n save_v he_o from_o death_n but_o the_o divine_a power_n support_v he_o and_o make_v he_o able_a to_o bear_v the_o burden_n of_o that_o curse_a death_n which_o otherwise_o have_v be_v intolerable_a so_o though_o god_n do_v not_o take_v of_o the_o messenger_n of_o satan_n that_o buffet_v paul_n according_a to_o his_o request_n 2_o cor._n 12.8_o yet_o do_v he_o answer_v his_o prayer_n gracious_o for_o he_o give_v to_o he_o strength_n to_o bear_v it_o verse_n 9_o my_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a to_o thou_o so_o long_o as_o god_n support_v thou_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o make_v thou_o able_a to_o bear_v the_o want_n of_o that_o that_o thou_o have_v pray_v for_o though_o thou_o have_v think_v thou_o be_v undo_v if_o thou_o have_v it_o not_o though_o he_o set_v thou_o feel_v thy_o own_o weakness_n so_o far_o as_o thou_o be_v even_o ready_a to_o sink_v and_o faint_a say_v not_o that_o thou_o have_v lose_v thy_o labour_n in_o pray_v four_o when_o though_o thou_o can_v not_o find_v that_o thou_o have_v by_o thy_o prayer_n obtain_v that_o particular_a blessing_n thou_o do_v beg_v of_o god_n yet_o thou_o feel_v thy_o heart_n after_o thy_o prayer_n cheer_v much_o and_o thy_o
face_n and_o i_o be_v trouble_v this_o consideration_n be_v forcible_a to_o quiet_a the_o heart_n that_o have_v grace_n in_o any_o affliction_n and_o to_o keep_v we_o from_o murmur_a and_o till_o we_o can_v humble_o acknowledge_v this_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o stoop_v unto_o it_o our_o heart_n can_v never_o find_v rest_n in_o any_o special_o not_o in_o this_o inward_a affliction_n till_o we_o can_v say_v with_o ely_n 1_o sam._n 3.18_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n let_v he_o do_v what_o seem_v he_o good_a why_o do_v thou_o strive_v against_o he_o say_v elihu_n to_o job_n 33.13_o for_o he_o give_v not_o account_n of_o any_o of_o his_o matter_n god_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o give_v thou_o a_o reason_n of_o his_o proceed_n why_o he_o deal_v thus_o with_o thou_o rather_o than_o with_o such_o and_o such_o but_o thou_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v thyself_o to_o his_o will_n because_o he_o can_v do_v thou_o no_o wrong_n and_o may_v do_v with_o his_o own_o what_o please_v he_o who_o have_v enjoin_v he_o his_o way_n say_v elihu_n job_n 36.23_o or_o who_o can_v say_v thou_o have_v wrought_v iniquity_n thou_o have_v do_v wrong_a if_o therefore_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v please_v all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n to_o hide_v from_o any_o of_o we_o the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n though_o this_o be_v indeed_o a_o most_o heavy_a affliction_n nay_o if_o he_o shall_v indeed_o not_o in_o our_o feel_n only_o cast_v we_o away_o for_o ever_o yet_o do_v it_o become_v we_o to_o bear_v it_o patient_o and_o not_o to_o murmur_v against_o he_o for_o it_o but_o to_o put_v on_o david_n resolution_n and_o to_o say_v as_o he_o do_v 2_o samuel_n 15.26_o if_o he_o do_v thus_o say_v i_o have_v no_o delight_n in_o thou_o behold_v here_o be_o i_o let_v he_o do_v to_o i_o as_o seem_v good_a to_o he_o four_o thou_o must_v consider_v that_o the_o lord_n in_o hide_v his_o face_n from_o thou_o in_o withhold_a for_o a_o time_n the_o comforter_n from_o thou_o intend_v to_o do_v thou_o good_a by_o this_o mean_n he_o chastise_v we_o for_o our_o profit_n say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n 12.10_o and_o of_o thy_o infirmity_n i_o may_v say_v as_o our_o saviour_n do_v of_o lazarus_n his_o disease_n joh._n 11.4_o this_o sickness_n be_v not_o unto_o death_n but_o even_o as_o thou_o see_v the_o wise_a and_o careful_a physician_n make_v his_o patient_n by_o some_o vomit_n and_o potion_n much_o more_o sick_a in_o his_o own_o apprehension_n than_o he_o be_v before_o and_o the_o surgeon_n lance_v and_o make_v deep_a wound_n of_o purpose_n to_o cure_v he_o of_o the_o mortal_a disease_n and_o sore_o he_o see_v he_o in_o danger_n of_o so_o do_v thy_o heavenly_a physician_n and_o surgeon_n deal_v with_o thou_o he_o make_v thy_o heart_n sick_a and_o wound_v thou_o thus_o of_o purpose_n that_o he_o may_v save_v thy_o soul_n and_o work_v a_o perfect_a cure_n upon_o it_o and_o make_v it_o more_o sound_a and_o healthful_a then_o ever_o it_o be_v before_o sundry_a be_v the_o benefit_n that_o god_n procure_v to_o his_o child_n by_o this_o kind_n of_o affliction_n six_o of_o they_o i_o will_v show_v you_o which_o may_v serve_v for_o so_o many_o reason_n why_o he_o do_v deal_v thus_o with_o they_o first_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o correct_v they_o and_o make_v they_o to_o repent_v for_o their_o drowsiness_n and_o carnal_a security_n christ_n do_v not_o use_v to_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o his_o people_n but_o when_o they_o grow_v drowsy_a and_o sleepy_a and_o neglect_v their_o watch_n this_o you_o shall_v see_v cant._n 3.1_o &_o 5.2_o 3._o second_o he_o give_v they_o these_o thorn_n in_o their_o flesh_n these_o messenger_n of_o satan_n to_o buffet_v they_o that_o by_o humble_v they_o thus_o he_o may_v prevent_v and_o keep_v they_o from_o sin_n that_o he_o see_v they_o in_o danger_n to_o fall_v into_o and_o thus_o do_v he_o deal_v with_o the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 12.7_o three_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o lord_n prepare_v his_o people_n for_o comfort_n and_o make_v they_o more_o capable_a of_o it_o and_o none_o have_v ever_o attain_v to_o that_o abundance_n of_o spiritual_a comfort_n as_o those_o that_o have_v most_o deep_o taste_v of_o this_o cup_n of_o spiritual_a affliction_n as_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n abound_v in_o we_o say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 1.5_o so_o our_o consolation_n also_o abound_v in_o christ._n for_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n delight_v for_o to_o work_v by_o contrary_n as_o in_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n he_o cause_v light_a to_o shine_v out_o of_o darkness_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2_o cor._n 4.6_o and_o in_o the_o work_n of_o redemption_n by_o christ_n death_n he_o bring_v we_o to_o life_n by_o his_o extreme_a shame_n and_o ignominy_n he_o bring_v we_o to_o glory_n by_o his_o stripe_n he_o heal_v we_o as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v esa._n 53.5_o and_o in_o that_o miracle_n that_o christ_n wrought_v by_o anoint_v the_o blind_a man_n eye_n with_o clay_n he_o restore_v he_o to_o sight_n joh._n 9.6_o so_o in_o the_o work_n of_o grace_n he_o use_v to_o bring_v his_o servant_n by_o hell_n to_o heaven_n by_o doubt_v to_o faith_n by_o much_o inward_a anguish_n and_o terror_n to_o abundance_n of_o peace_n and_o consolation_n in_o christ._n by_o what_o mean_n do_v the_o lord_n bring_v mr._n bradford_n mr._n glover_n and_o sundry_a other_o of_o the_o bless_a martyr_n to_o that_o strength_n of_o faith_n &_o inward_a comfort_n as_o even_o quench_v the_o violence_n of_o the_o fire_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v heb._n 11.34_o for_o though_o the_o apostle_n word_n be_v there_o happy_o to_o be_v understand_v literal_o yet_o may_v the_o phrase_n be_v fit_o apply_v to_o this_o also_o sure_o they_o be_v man_n that_o have_v be_v much_o exercise_v with_o inward_a affliction_n of_o mind_n as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o their_o story_n and_o how_o do_v the_o lord_n make_v jacob_n so_o strong_a in_o faith_n that_o whereas_o before_o he_o be_v afraid_a of_o his_o brother_n esau_n as_o he_o complain_v in_o his_o prayer_n to_o god_n gen._n 32.11_o i_o fear_v he_o lest_o he_o will_v come_v and_o smite_v i_o and_o the_o mother_n with_o the_o child_n now_o he_o become_v bold_a as_o a_o lion_n and_o meet_v he_o without_o fear_n go_v on_o to_o meet_v he_o before_o the_o rest_n gen._n 33.3_o nay_o he_o be_v so_o full_a of_o confidence_n and_o comfort_n in_o god_n that_o he_o glory_v and_o boast_v he_o have_v see_v god_n face_n to_o face_n and_o therefore_o call_v the_o name_n of_o the_o place_n penuel_n the_o face_n of_o god_n gen._n 32.30_o sure_o before_o he_o come_v to_o this_o comfort_n god_n have_v wrestle_v with_o he_o as_o a_o enemy_n gen._n 32.24_o and_o make_v he_o out_o of_o the_o sense_n he_o have_v of_o god_n displeasure_n to_o pray_v and_o weep_v bitter_o he_o weep_v and_o make_v supplication_n to_o he_o say_v the_o prophet_n hos._n 12.4_o and_o few_o there_o be_v that_o ever_o come_v to_o see_v god_n face_n to_o face_n to_o behold_v the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n clear_o and_o manifest_o as_o jacob_n do_v with_o who_o god_n have_v not_o be_v wont_a to_o wrestle_v sometime_o as_o he_o do_v with_o jacob_n lecture_n xxviii_o on_o psal._n 51.1_o 2._o june_n 13._o 1626._o fourthly_o by_o this_o mean_v god_n wean_v his_o child_n from_o the_o love_n of_o this_o world_n and_o make_v they_o think_v of_o home_n and_o of_o their_o father_n house_n as_o you_o know_v affliction_n and_o nothing_o but_o affliction_n make_v the_o prodigal_a to_o do_v luke_n 15.16_o 17._o if_o we_o shall_v always_o possess_v that_o outward_a peace_n those_o sweet_a joy_n and_o comfort_n which_o the_o light_n of_o the_o lord_n countenance_n and_o sense_n of_o his_o favour_n work_v in_o our_o heart_n we_o shall_v have_v our_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n and_o be_v too_o ready_a to_o say_v and_o think_v as_o peter_n do_v when_o he_o be_v ravish_v with_o joy_n in_o behold_v the_o light_n of_o christ_n countenance_n shine_v as_o the_o sun_n mat._n 17.4_o lord_n it_o be_v good_a for_o we_o to_o be_v here_o and_o to_o abide_v here_o still_o these_o vicissitude_n and_o change_n these_o interruption_n of_o our_o peace_n and_o spiritual_a desertion_n we_o meet_v with_o here_o be_v a_o most_o effectual_a mean_v to_o make_v we_o think_v of_o home_n where_o we_o shall_v be_v out_o of_o the_o reach_n of_o satan_n and_o all_o his_o tentation_n where_o we_o shall_v never_o weep_v more_o nor_o be_v trouble_v with_o these_o terror_n and_o sorrow_n that_o so_o much_o disquiet_v we_o where_o all_o tear_n shall_v be_v wipe_v from_o our_o eye_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o sorrow_n nor_o cry_v nor_o pain_n as_o john_n speak_v revel_v 21.4_o these_o
hearken_v unto_o they_o and_o examine_v diligent_o by_o they_o whether_o his_o assurance_n be_v sound_a or_o no_o whether_o god_n have_v purge_v he_o with_o hyssop_n and_o sprinkle_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n upon_o his_o heart_n and_o assure_v he_o it_o be_v he_o or_o whether_o he_o have_v only_o do_v it_o himself_o or_o satan_n have_v do_v it_o for_o he_o two_o thing_n there_o be_v that_o may_v assure_v you_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o first_o that_o there_o be_v many_o who_o satan_n and_o their_o own_o foolish_a heart_n have_v extreme_o delude_v in_o this_o point_n many_o very_o wicked_a man_n be_v strong_o persuade_v christ_n be_v they_o god_n be_v their_o god_n baalam_n can_v call_v god_n his_o god_n numb_a 27.18_o i_o can_v go_v beyond_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n my_o god_n say_v he_o and_o of_o israel_n the_o lord_n say_v hos._n 8.1_o 2_o 3._o that_o even_o then_o when_o they_o have_v transgress_v his_o covenant_n and_o trespass_v against_o his_o law_n when_o they_o have_v cast_v off_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a yet_o even_o then_o israel_n will_v cry_v unto_o he_o my_o god_n we_o know_v thou_o yea_o the_o lewd_a man_n be_v usual_o more_o strong_o persuade_v of_o this_o make_v less_o doubt_n have_v less_o fear_n of_o this_o than_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n be_v wont_a to_o have_v the_o wise_a man_n say_v solomon_n pro._n 14.16_o that_o be_v the_o godly_a man_n fear_v but_o the_o fool_n the_o profane_a and_o ungracious_a man_n be_v confident_a make_v no_o doubt_n of_o his_o salvation_n at_o all_o yea_o it_o be_v certain_a many_o notorious_a sinner_n live_v and_o die_v in_o this_o strong_a persuasion_n one_o die_v say_v job_n 21.23_o in_o his_o full_a strength_n be_v whole_o at_o ease_n and_o quiet_a no_o trouble_n of_o mind_n no_o scruple_n or_o doubt_n of_o this_o matter_n ever_o enter_v into_o his_o heart_n no_o not_o upon_o his_o death_n bed_n and_o can_v any_o of_o you_o think_v that_o the_o assurance_n that_o such_o man_n have_v be_v of_o god_n these_o man_n seem_v to_o be_v purge_v with_o hyssop_n to_o have_v christ_n blood_n sprinkle_v upon_o their_o heart_n and_o apply_v unto_o they_o but_o by_o what_o hand_n by_o what_o spirit_n be_v it_o do_v certain_o not_o by_o the_o hand_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n god_n will_v speak_v peace_n to_o his_o people_n and_o to_o his_o saint_n say_v the_o prophet_n psal._n 85.8_o he_o never_o speak_v peace_n to_o such_o man_n as_o these_o be_v he_o never_o give_v they_o assurance_n of_o his_o favour_n second_o that_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o assurance_n as_o be_v false_a and_o be_v not_o of_o god_n work_v will_v do_v a_o man_n no_o good_a at_o all_o but_o much_o hurt_v many_o way_n it_o be_v far_o better_o for_o a_o man_n to_o live_v in_o continual_a doubt_n of_o his_o salvation_n though_o that_o breed_v fear_n and_o terror_n in_o his_o heart_n then_o to_o have_v the_o confidence_n and_o peace_n of_o these_o man_n i_o will_v give_v you_o three_o reason_n of_o it_o for_o first_o the_o man_n that_o be_v subject_a to_o these_o continual_a doubt_n and_o fear_n be_v thereby_o keep_v in_o awe_n and_o restrain_v from_o many_o sin_n that_o otherwise_o he_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o fall_v into_o whereas_o the_o man_n that_o be_v so_o full_a of_o this_o false_a confidence_n and_o peace_n walk_v licentious_o and_o run_v like_o the_o horse_n that_o have_v the_o bridle_n on_o his_o neck_n whither_o he_o list_v fear_v no_o sin_n the_o wise_a man_n fear_v say_v solomon_n pro._n 14.16_o and_o depart_v from_o evil_a his_o fear_n restrain_v he_o from_o sin_n but_o the_o fool_n rage_v and_o be_v confident_a the_o more_o confident_a he_o be_v the_o more_o outrageous_o he_o sin_v second_o the_o man_n that_o be_v subject_a to_o continual_a doubt_n and_o fear_n be_v thereby_o stir_v up_o to_o a_o diligent_a use_n of_o the_o mean_n whereby_o he_o may_v come_v to_o true_a assurance_n and_o peace_n the_o mean_n of_o grace_n be_v sweet_a unto_o he_o whereas_o the_o man_n that_o be_v most_o full_a of_o false_a assurance_n and_o confidence_n care_v least_o for_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n nay_o he_o loathe_v and_o despise_v they_o the_o full_a soul_n say_v solomon_n pro._n 27.7_o loathe_v a_o honey_n comb_n the_o sweet_a the_o best_a mean_n of_o grace_n but_o to_o the_o hungry_a soul_n every_o bittter_fw-ge thing_n be_v sweet_a the_o mean_a the_o course_v ministry_n be_v sweet_a to_o that_o man_n three_o and_o last_o these_o doubt_n and_o fear_n use_v to_o end_v in_o peace_n and_o sound_a assurance_n yea_o proportionable_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o doubt_n and_o fear_n man_n be_v trouble_v with_o in_o this_o kind_n the_o measure_n of_o their_o assurance_n and_o peace_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v in_o the_o end_n your_o sorrow_n say_v our_o saviour_n john_n 16.20_o shall_v be_v turn_v into_o joy_n mark_v the_o perfect_a man_n say_v david_n psalm_n 37.37_o and_o behold_v the_o upright_a for_o the_o end_n of_o that_o man_n be_v peace_n whereas_o on_o the_o other_o side_n false_a assurance_n and_o confidence_n use_v to_o end_v in_o despair_n and_o the_o less_o doubt_n the_o more_o assurance_n any_o man_n seem_v to_o have_v now_o of_o his_o salvation_n if_o it_o be_v false_a the_o more_o danger_n he_o be_v in_o to_o fall_v one_o day_n into_o desperate_a fear_n and_o terror_n his_o confidence_n shall_v be_v root_v out_o of_o his_o tabernacle_n say_v bildad_n job_n 18.14_o and_o it_o shall_v bring_v he_o to_o the_o king_n of_o terror_n it_o stand_v we_o therefore_o upon_o you_o see_v to_o examine_v well_o and_o try_v that_o assurance_n we_o seem_v to_o have_v that_o christ_n be_v we_o whether_o it_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o god_n spirit_n yea_o or_o no._n no_o assurance_n of_o our_o spiritual_a estate_n can_v be_v sound_a or_o such_o as_o will_v yield_v we_o true_a comfort_n but_o such_o as_o the_o good_a spirit_n of_o god_n work_v in_o we_o david_n pray_v here_o to_o god_n to_o purge_v he_o with_o hyssop_n to_o sprinkle_v christ_n blood_n upon_o his_o heart_n none_o but_o the_o lord_n can_v do_v it_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o bear_v witness_v because_o the_o spirit_n be_v truth_n as_o you_o hear_v the_o last_o day_n out_o of_o 1_o john_n 5.6_o no_o witness_n be_v sure_a and_o beyond_o exception_n in_o this_o case_n but_o the_o spirit_n only_o and_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v call_v the_o comforter_n john_n 14_o 26._o there_o be_v also_o a_o assurance_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o devil_n work_v he_o can_v cause_v peace_n too_o luk._n 11.21_o when_o a_o strong_a arm_a man_n keep_v his_o palace_n all_o his_o good_n be_v in_o peace_n but_o that_o peace_n can_v be_v find_v and_o true_a peace_n that_o spirit_n can_v be_v a_o true_a comforter_n he_o be_v a_o roar_a lion_n 1_o pet._n 5.8_o he_o be_v a_o fierce_a red_a dragon_n rev._n 12.3_o and_o so_o shall_v they_o all_o find_v he_o in_o the_o end_n who_o he_o seem_v to_o give_v great_a peace_n unto_o try_v thy_o assurance_n therefore_o whether_o it_o be_v of_o god_n yea_o or_o no._n and_o there_o be_v three_o sort_n of_o sign_n and_o note_n whereby_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o this_o 1._o by_o the_o qualification_n of_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o person_n in_o who_o this_o assurance_n be_v wrought_v 2._o by_o the_o ground_n upon_o which_o this_o assurance_n be_v build_v 3._o by_o the_o effect_n and_o fruit_n that_o this_o assurance_n produce_v in_o he_o that_o have_v it_o for_o the_o first_o 1._o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v not_o wont_a to_o sprinkle_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n nor_o to_o work_v this_o comfortable_a assurance_n in_o any_o heart_n that_o be_v not_o first_o humble_v and_o trouble_v with_o much_o fear_n and_o doubt_v you_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n again_o to_o fear_v say_v the_o apostle_n roman_n 8.15_o but_o you_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o adaption_n whereby_o we_o cry_v abba_n father_n intimate_v plain_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n that_o bear_v witness_n to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v god_n child_n use_v not_o to_o enter_v into_o any_o heart_n where_o the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n have_v not_o be_v before_o that_o be_v where_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v not_o first_o effectual_o discover_v to_o a_o man_n his_o bondage_n unto_o sin_n and_o to_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n and_o wrought_v fear_n and_o terror_n in_o his_o heart_n thereby_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o i_o say_v our_o saviour_n luk._n 4.18_o because_o he_o have_v anoint_v i_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n unto_o the_o poor_a to_o heal_v the_o break_a heart_a to_o preach_v deliverance_n to_o the_o captive_n and_o
the_o sabbath_n yea_o even_o to_o the_o neglect_n of_o this_o outward_a rest_n from_o our_o own_o work_n on_o that_o day_n if_o you_o compare_v 2_o chronicle_n 36.21_o with_o leviticus_n 26.34_o 35._o you_o shall_v find_v this_o note_a for_o a_o chief_a cause_n of_o that_o miserable_a captivity_n that_o god_n people_n do_v endure_v in_o babylon_n because_o the_o land_n do_v not_o rest_n in_o your_o sabbath_n say_v the_o lord_n when_o you_o dwell_v upon_o it_o and_o nehemiah_n tell_v they_o so_o much_o after_o their_o return_n from_o that_o captivity_n nehemiah_n 13.18_o that_o god_n do_v bring_v all_o the_o evil_a that_o be_v come_v upon_o they_o and_o upon_o jerusalem_n because_o their_o father_n have_v profane_v the_o sabbath_n so_o as_o they_o then_o do_v how_o be_v that_o sure_o they_o suffer_v man_n to_o tread_v winepresses_a on_o the_o sabbath_n a_o work_n that_o be_v not_o in_o use_n among_o we_o but_o our_o grind_n of_o corn_n and_o make_n of_o malt_n be_v equivalent_a unto_o it_o and_o they_o suffer_v man_n to_o go_v in_o and_o our_o with_o burden_n and_o carriage_n and_o to_o buy_v and_o sell_v ware_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n as_o you_o shall_v find_v verse_n 15_o 16_o of_o that_o chapter_n and_o these_o be_v the_o thing_n of_o which_o he_o say_v verse_n 18._o do_v not_o your_o father_n thus_o and_o do_v not_o our_o god_n bring_v all_o this_o evil_a upon_o we_o and_o upon_o this_o city_n and_o look_v what_o have_v be_v say_v of_o every_o church_n and_o kingdom_n that_o the_o flourish_a estate_n or_o ruin_n thereof_o depend_v great_o upon_o the_o observation_n or_o neglect_n even_o of_o this_o outward_a rest_n the_o same_o may_v be_v also_o say_v doubtless_o of_o every_o town_n and_o family_n and_o particular_a person_n that_o their_o welfare_n and_o undo_n depend_v much_o upon_o this_o never_o be_v any_o man_n make_v the_o poor_a by_o the_o strict_a observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n by_o refuse_v to_o buy_v or_o sell_v or_o do_v any_o of_o his_o worldly_a business_n upon_o that_o day_n but_o the_o more_o conscionable_a any_o man_n be_v in_o rest_v from_o all_o his_o own_o work_n upon_o that_o day_n the_o more_o plentiful_a a_o blessing_n he_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o receive_v from_o god_n upon_o the_o labour_n of_o his_o call_n in_o the_o six_o day_n and_o it_o be_v not_o thy_o own_o labour_n or_o toil_a but_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n that_o make_v rich_a when_o all_o be_v do_v as_o solomon_n teach_v we_o proverb_n 10.22_o i_o know_v well_o that_o the_o worldly_a man_n can_v believe_v this_o but_o think_v this_o will_v be_v the_o way_n to_o undo_v he_o how_o shall_v i_o live_v say_v he_o if_o i_o shall_v do_v no_o business_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n i_o can_v maintain_v my_o charge_n by_o go_v to_o church_n and_o do_v nothing_o for_o a_o whole_a day_n but_o mark_v i_o pray_v you_o how_o god_n answer_v these_o man_n leviticus_n 25._o the_o lord_n give_v his_o people_n then_o a_o commandment_n to_o keep_v every_o seven_o year_n a_o sabbath_n all_o the_o year_n long_o thus_o far_o forth_o the_o seven_o year_n shall_v be_v a_o sabbath_n of_o rest_n to_o the_o land_n say_v the_o lord_n there_o verse_n 4_o 5._o a_o sabbath_n for_o the_o lord_n thou_o shall_v neither_o sow_v thy_o field_n nor_o prune_v thy_o vineyard_n no_o nor_o reap_v and_o gather_v that_o that_o grow_v of_o it_o own_o accord_n to_o thy_o private_a use_n for_o so_o the_o 5_o verse_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o if_o you_o shall_v say_v and_o object_n say_v the_o lord_n verse_n 20_o 21._o what_o shall_v we_o eat_v the_o seven_o year_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v how_o shall_v we_o live_v then_o that_o year_n see_v we_o shall_v neither_o sow_v nor_o reap_v as_o indeed_o they_o have_v much_o more_o reason_n to_o object_v this_o against_o the_o keep_n of_o one_o year_n in_o seven_o than_o we_o have_v against_o the_o keep_n of_o one_o day_n in_o seven_o for_o a_o sabbath_n the_o lord_n answer_v this_o verse_n 21._o i_o will_v command_v my_o blessing_n upon_o you_o in_o the_o six_o year_n and_o it_o shall_v bring_v forth_o fruit_n for_o three_o year_n so_o may_v i_o say_v to_o thou_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n conscionable_o remember_v the_o sabbath_n day_n before_o it_o come_v and_o cast_v for_o it_o by_o dispatch_v before_o hand_n all_o that_o thou_o have_v to_o do_v as_o neither_o thou_o nor_o thy_o servant_n may_v have_v any_o thing_n leave_v to_o be_v do_v upon_o that_o day_n and_o the_o lord_n will_v command_v his_o blessing_n upon_o thy_o labour_n in_o the_o six_o day_n according_o so_o as_o thou_o shall_v not_o be_v impoverish_v ever_o a_o whit_n but_o enrich_v by_o it_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o lord_n have_v be_v wont_a to_o reveal_v his_o wrath_n from_o heaven_n upon_o town_n and_o family_n and_o upon_o particular_a person_n as_o much_o for_o this_o one_o sin_n of_o profane_v the_o sabbath_n as_o for_o any_o other_o and_o namely_o by_o that_o fearful_a judgement_n of_o consume_a fire_n by_o which_o special_o and_o by_o name_n he_o have_v in_o his_o word_n threaten_v to_o punish_v this_o sin_n if_o you_o will_v not_o hearken_v unto_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n jeremy_n 17.27_o to_o hallow_v my_o sabbath_n day_n and_o not_o to_o bear_v a_o burden_n even_o enter_v in_o at_o the_o gate_n of_o jerusalem_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n then_o will_v i_o kindle_v a_o fire_n in_o the_o gate_n thereof_o and_o it_o shall_v devour_v the_o palace_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v quenth_v and_o thus_o have_v i_o show_v you_o in_o this_o one_o particular_a how_o high_o god_n be_v please_v with_o the_o strict_a observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o if_o it_o please_v he_o so_o well_o to_o see_v man_n rest_v from_o their_o own_o work_n upon_o that_o day_n which_o yet_o as_o i_o tell_v you_o be_v but_o the_o least_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o right_a observation_n of_o it_o you_o may_v be_v sure_a he_o be_v much_o more_o please_v to_o see_v man_n spend_v that_o day_n in_o do_v of_o his_o work_n in_o exercise_v themselves_o in_o those_o duty_n of_o piety_n and_o mercy_n which_o he_o have_v appoint_v to_o be_v do_v upon_o that_o day_n especial_o in_o see_v they_o keep_v his_o sabbath_n spiritual_o and_o conscionable_o certain_o they_o that_o do_v so_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o be_v bless_v and_o reward_v of_o god_n for_o it_o to_o this_o purpose_n it_o be_v worth_a the_o observe_v that_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v mark_v 2._o ●7_n that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v at_o the_o first_o make_v for_o man_n for_o the_o great_a benefit_n and_o behoof_n of_o man_n man_n can_v not_o no_o not_o adam_n in_o his_o innocency_n have_v be_v without_o it_o but_o with_o great_a danger_n and_o loss_n unto_o he_o so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v that_o twice_o of_o the_o sabbath_n gen._n 2.3_o and_o exodus_fw-la 20.11_o that_o he_o never_o say_v of_o any_o other_o day_n that_o the_o lord_n bless_v that_o day_n that_o be_v appoint_v it_o to_o be_v a_o mean_a of_o a_o great_a blessing_n to_o man_n if_o he_o keep_v it_o as_o god_n have_v command_v he_o to_o do_v than_o any_o other_o day_n or_o any_o of_o the_o ordinary_a work_n of_o any_o other_o day_n can_v possible_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o blessing_n there_o be_v which_o the_o conscionable_a observer_n of_o the_o sabbath_n shall_v be_v sure_a to_o receive_v by_o it_o the_o first_o be_v spiritual_a and_o they_o indeed_o be_v the_o chief_a blessing_n of_o all_o because_o they_o be_v durable_a and_o everlasting_a and_o because_o they_o concern_v the_o soul_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o most_o precious_a part_n of_o man_n and_o for_o these_o be_v the_o sabbath_n chief_o ordain_v that_o god_n may_v by_o it_o in_o the_o use_n of_o his_o ordinance_n enrich_v our_o soul_n with_o spiritual_a blessing_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n so_o the_o lord_n say_v ezekiel_n 20.12_o that_o he_o give_v his_o sabbath_n to_o his_o people_n to_o that_o end_n that_o they_o may_v know_v that_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n that_o sanctify_a they_o we_o shall_v know_v and_o find_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v sanctify_v we_o both_o begin_v and_o increase_v save_v grace_n in_o our_o heart_n if_o we_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n conscionable_o yea_o the_o lord_n have_v promise_v esa._n 56.6_o 7._o to_o every_o one_o that_o keep_v his_o sabbath_n from_o pollute_v it_o that_o he_o will_v make_v they_o joyful_a in_o his_o house_n of_o prayer_n and_o esa._n 58.13_o 14._o that_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v keep_v the_o sabbath_n hearty_o and_o spiritual_o than_o he_o shall_v delight_v himself_o in_o the_o lord_n by_o these_o two_o place_n it_o appear_v that_o god_n have_v bind_v himself_o
estate_n and_o thou_o shall_v find_v thou_o be_v not_o void_a of_o grace_n now_o by_o five_o note_n p._n 150._o from_o this_o four_o conclusion_n may_v be_v gather_v for_o our_o comfort_n p._n 151._o lect._n 30._o take_v the_o help_n of_o some_o faithful_a minister_n or_o other_o friend_n for_o recover_v of_o thy_o comfort_n p._n 151._o 5_o fly_v to_o god_n by_o prayer_n and_o wait_v on_o he_o p._n 152._o five_o motive_n and_o encouragement_n to_o seek_v to_o god_n by_o prayer_n in_o this_o and_o in_o all_o other_o affliction_n p._n 153._o 6_o meditate_v of_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n 1_o towards_o all_o creature_n p._n 154._o 2_o towards_o thyself_o when_o there_o be_v no_o goodness_n in_o thou_o 3_o towards_o thyself_o even_o now_o and_o in_o that_o state_n thou_o be_v now_o in_o p._n 155._o lect._n 31._o he_o that_o true_o repent_v can_v hide_v nor_o cloak_n his_o sin_n but_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o confess_v it_o p._n 158_o this_o willingness_n to_o confess_v sin_n will_v give_v a_o man_n great_a hope_n and_o assurance_n of_o mercy_n and_o pardon_n ibid._n &_o p._n 159._o god_n servant_n have_v be_v wont_a to_o confess_v even_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o that_o they_o have_v pray_v for_o p._n 160._o why_o confession_n so_o necessary_a p._n 161_o 162._o lect._n 32._o how_o far_o forth_o confession_n of_o sin_n in_o private_a to_o a_o minister_n or_o other_o friend_n be_v not_o necessary_a p._n 163_o 164._o how_o far_o forth_o it_o be_v profitable_a and_o fit_a ibid_fw-la &_o 165._o lect._n 33._o what_o manner_n of_o man_n minister_n have_v need_v to_o be_v p._n 166_o 167._o god_n people_n bind_v to_o reverence_v our_o call_n and_o take_v heed_n nothing_o move_v they_o to_o despise_v it_o p._n 167._o resolve_v never_o to_o live_v without_o the_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n of_o a_o faithful_a ministry_n p._n 168._o they_o that_o do_v enjoy_v it_o must_v labour_v to_o make_v their_o full_a use_n of_o it_o 1_o by_z admitting_z that_o spiritual_a authority_n god_n have_v give_v we_o over_o you_o 2_o by_o make_v use_n of_o we_o in_o private_a and_o seek_v resolution_n in_o your_o case_n of_o conscience_n 3_o in_o approve_v your_o repentance_n and_o spiritual_a estate_n unto_o we_o 4_o rest_v upon_o that_o we_o shall_v teach_v by_o warrant_n of_o of_o the_o word_n p._n 169._o the_o people_n great_a neglect_n of_o the_o ministry_n ibid._n lect._n 34._o david_n make_v public_a confession_n of_o his_o sin_n &_o profession_n of_o his_o repentance_n &_o why_o p._n 170_o they_o who_o sin_n be_v public_a &_o scandalous_a must_v be_v willing_a to_o make_v public_a confession_n &_o profession_n of_o their_o repentance_n p._n 171_o etc._n etc._n three_o caution_n to_o be_v observe_v ibid._n the_o reason_n that_o move_v god_n people_n to_o publish_v their_o repentance_n for_o public_a sin_n p._n 173._o lect._n 35._o three_o great_a mischief_n of_o this_o that_o scannalous_a sin_n abound_v so_o where_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v 1_o it_o make_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n odious_a to_o worldly_a man_n p._n 175._o 2_o it_o hinder_v the_o success_n &_o fruit_n of_o all_o endeavour_n that_o the_o state_n or_o god_n people_n can_v use_v for_o the_o good_a of_o church_n &_o nation_n ibid._n 3_o it_o threaten_v great_a plague_n yea_o a_o general_a dissolution_n great_a cause_n we_o shall_v all_o take_v to_o heart_n the_o great_a increase_n of_o all_o gross_a sin_n among_o we_o for_o they_o will_v bring_v god_n plague_n on_o we_o and_o this_o stand_v well_o with_o god_n justice_n because_o we_o be_v accessary_a to_o those_o sin_n p_o 178._o we_o make_v ourselves_o guilty_a of_o other_o man_n sin_n 1_o by_o applaud_v &_o like_v they_o the_o better_a for_o they_o 2_o by_o maintain_v voluntary_a familiarity_n with_o they_o p._n 179._o 3_o if_o we_o do_v not_o profess_v our_o hatred_n of_o these_o sin_n 4_o if_o we_o be_v not_o grieve_v and_o trouble_v to_o see_v and_o hear_v of_o they_o p._n 180._o yet_o may_v we_o not_o absent_v ourselves_o from_o god_n public_a worship_n for_o any_o sin_n they_o be_v guilty_a of_o that_o join_v with_o we_o in_o it_o p._n 181._o lect._n 36._o 5._o if_o we_o neglect_v to_o do_v what_o lie_v in_o we_o to_o bring_v these_o foul_a sinner_n to_o open_a shame_n this_o be_v the_o great_a fault_n of_o officer_n that_o be_v bind_v by_o oath_n to_o detest_v &_o present_v infamous_a person_n they_o sin_n ●_o against_o the_o place_n they_o live_v in_o 2_o against_o these_o lewd_a man_n themselves_o p._n 182._o 3_o against_o god_n and_o their_o own_o soul_n in_o the_o light_a account_n they_o make_v of_o a_o oath_n when_o a_o man_n have_v bind_v himself_o by_o oath_n to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v lawful_a let_v he_o take_v heed_n how_o he_o break_v that_o oath_n p._n 183._o the_o great_a sin_n of_o christian_n in_o nor_o further_a the_o execution_n of_o good_a law_n for_o the_o detect_n and_o punish_v of_o lewd_a man_n prolep_n every_o man_n have_v a_o calling_n 1_o to_o oppose_v himself_o against_o sin_n and_o do_v what_o he_o can_v to_o suppress_v 2_o to_o reprove_v sin_n 3_o to_o bear_v witness_n be_v require_v before_o a_o magistrate_n against_o gross_a sinner_n p_o 185._o 4_o to_o inform_v and_o complain_v of_o a_o offendor_n that_o be_v incorrigible_a yet_o with_o four_o caution_n p._n 186._o four_o true_a cause_n why_o man_n will_v do_v nothing_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o lewd_a man_n ibid._n &_o p._n 187._o lect._n 37._o the_o sin_n of_o those_o that_o keep_v man_n from_o public_a penance_n p_o 187_o 188._o the_o sin_n of_o such_o as_o shun_v and_o refuse_v public_a profession_n of_o their_o repentance_n p._n 189_o 191._o lect._n 38._o confession_n of_o our_o sin_n to_o god_n be_v of_o all_o kind_n of_o confession_n most_o necessary_a and_o useful_a p._n 191_o 192._o special_o in_o secret_a for_o 1_o that_o be_v necessary_a 2_o in_o secret_a we_o may_v do_v it_o both_o more_o free_o and_o full_o and_o with_o more_o expression_n of_o grief_n then_o in_o public_a p._n 193._o 3_o this_o most_o beneficial_a to_o we_o for_o 1_o it_o will_v give_v we_o best_o assurance_n of_o our_o uprightness_n p._n 194._o 2_o it_o will_v give_v we_o best_o assurance_n to_o find_v mercy_n with_o god_n p._n 195._o lect._n 39_o the_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v enable_v to_o confess_v our_o sin_n aright_o unto_o god_n be_v five_o 1_o get_v knowledge_n in_o the_o word_n p._n 196._o 2_o observe_v well_o and_o consider_v thy_o own_o way_n p._n 197._o 3_o take_v a_o daily_a account_n of_o thyself_o and_o of_o thy_o way_n p._n 197._o 4_o call_v oft_o to_o remembrance_n thy_o old_a sin_n 5_o beg_v grace_n and_o ability_n of_o god_n to_o do_v it_o p._n 198._o lect._n 40._o five_o property_n there_o be_v of_o sincere_a confession_n of_o sin_n 1_o it_o must_v be_v particular_a p._n 198_o ●99_n 2_o it_o must_v be_v free_a and_o full_a without_o cloak_v or_o extenuation_n p._n 200._o 3_o it_o must_v be_v hearty_a with_o feeling_n and_o affection_n p._n 201._o 4_o it_o must_v be_v honest_a join_v with_o a_o unfeigned_a hatred_n of_o sin_n and_o resolution_n to_o forsake_v it_o ibid._n 5_o it_o must_v be_v filial_a not_o slavish_a out_o of_o love_n of_o god_n and_o hope_v of_o mercy_n p._n 202._o lect._n 41._o david_n sin_n be_v ever_o in_o his_o sight_n they_o that_o have_v true_o repent_v can_v forget_v but_o be_v apt_a oft_o to_o think_v of_o their_o sin_n and_o to_o be_v much_o trouble_v with_o they_o p._n 203._o for_o ●_o their_o conscience_n set_v in_o they_o by_o god_n to_o be_v both_o a_o register_n a_o witness_n and_o a_o censurer_n of_o their_o action_n p._n 204._o 2_o they_o more_o subject_a to_o affliction_n then_o other_o 3_o this_o be_v the_o lord_n do_v for_o their_o good_a p._n 205._o six_o benefit_n god_n procure_v to_o his_o people_n this_o way_n p._n 205-207_a lect._n 42._o therefore_o be_v afraid_a to_o sin_n in_o any_o kind_n or_o degree_n for_o 1_o thy_o conscience_n will_v say_v thy_o secret_a sin_n in_o thy_o dish_n one_o day_n p._n 207._o 2_o it_o will_v smite_v and_o wound_v thou_o for_o it_o 3_o how_o soon_o it_o will_v begin_v to_o do_v this_o how_o long_o it_o will_v do_v it_o and_o in_o what_o measure_n god_n only_o know_v p._n 208._o 4_o the_o bitterness_n of_o this_o will_v far_o exceed_v the_o pleasure_n of_o any_o sin_n p._n 209._o the_o most_o never_o trouble_v for_o any_o sin_n but_o strange_o harden_v but_o such_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o bless_v themselves_o in_o their_o estate_n ibid_fw-la 214._o lect._n 43._o david_n sin_n be_v not_o against_o the_o lord_n only_o but_o against_o himself_o and_o other_o man_n sundry_a way_n p._n 215._o the_o wrong_n that_o david_n
scripture_n be_v wont_n so_o to_o be_v preserve_v and_o keep_v by_o the_o levite_n in_o the_o sanctuary_n deut._n 17.18_o the_o king_n be_v command_v to_o write_v he_o a_o copy_n of_o the_o law_n in_o a_o book_n out_o of_o that_o book_n which_o be_v before_o the_o priest_n the_o levite_n and_o 31.9_o moses_n be_v say_v when_o he_o have_v write_v the_o law_n to_o have_v deliver_v unto_o the_o priest_n the_o son_n of_o levi._n and_o verse_n 26._o of_o that_o chapter_n he_o command_v the_o levite_n to_o take_v the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n and_o put_v it_o in_o the_o side_n of_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o lord_n their_o god_n that_o it_o may_v be_v there_o for_o a_o witness_n against_o they_o and_o there_o by_o the_o special_a providence_n of_o god_n it_o be_v preserve_v and_o keep_v safe_a even_o to_o the_o day_n of_o josiah_n 2_o chron._n 34.14_o 15._o though_o there_o have_v be_v most_o wicked_a king_n such_o as_o ahaz_n manasses_n amon_n and_o many_o other_o that_o be_v great_a enemy_n unto_o it_o second_o this_o psalm_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o chief_a musician_n that_o by_o his_o mean_n it_o may_v be_v publish_v &_o sing_v in_o the_o temple_n for_o this_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o levite_n and_o all_o the_o musician_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v levites_n to_o sing_v david_n psalm_n in_o the_o temple_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v 2_o chr._n 29._o ●0_n &_o am._n 8.3_o we_o read_v of_o the_o song_n of_o the_o temple_n three_o this_o psalm_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o chief_a musician_n that_o it_o may_v be_v sing_v in_o the_o temple_n in_o the_o best_a manner_n with_o that_o music_n as_o might_n best_o affect_v the_o people_n of_o god_n with_o the_o matter_n of_o this_o psalm_n and_o so_o serve_v best_a to_o their_o edification_n for_o though_o there_o be_v none_o of_o the_o musician_n in_o the_o temple_n but_o they_o be_v well_o instruct_v in_o the_o song_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v cunning_a therein_o 1_o chron._n 25.7_o yet_o among_o they_o some_o be_v more_o skilful_a than_o other_o some_o 1_o chron._n 15.22_o chenaniah_n chief_a of_o the_o levite_n be_v for_o song_n he_o instruct_v about_o the_o song_n because_o he_o be_v skilful_a now_o this_o be_v premise_v for_o the_o open_n of_o the_o word_n we_o be_v to_o observe_v here_o that_o david_n commit_v this_o psalm_n to_o a_o musician_n to_o be_v sing_v in_o the_o temple_n yea_o to_o the_o chief_a musician_n that_o may_v sing_v it_o in_o the_o best_a manner_n from_o whence_o we_o be_v to_o learn_v 2._o that_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a and_o excellent_a ordinance_n of_o god_n that_o in_o his_o worship_n and_o service_n we_o shall_v sing_v psalm_n even_o david_n psalm_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v sing_v they_o in_o that_o manner_n as_o may_v be_v most_o unto_o edification_n observe_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o doctrine_n as_o i_o shall_v propound_v it_o unto_o you_o distinct_o in_o three_o point_n first_o it_o have_v ever_o be_v esteem_v a_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n wherewith_o he_o have_v be_v high_o please_v it_o be_v use_v in_o moses_n time_n exod._n 15.1_o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o judge_n ●udg_n 5.1_o and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o samuel_n 1_o sam._n 18.6_o 7._o in_o david_n and_o solomon_n time_n 1_o chron._n 6.32_o in_o the_o day_n of_o jehosaphat_n 2_o chron._n 20.21.22_o and_o of_o hezekiah_n 2_o chron._n 29.28.30_o and_o after_o the_o captivity_n in_o nehemiahs_n time_n neh._n 12.42_o yea_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n our_o saviour_n himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n use_v it_o matth_n 26_o 30._o and_o prescribe_v it_o to_o god_n people_n col._n 3.16_o yea_o it_o be_v the_o exercise_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n themselves_o luk._n 2.13_o 14._o second_o this_o exercise_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v use_v by_o god_n people_n and_o that_o by_o god_n ordinance_n at_o all_o time_n when_o they_o meet_v to_o perform_v public_a worship_n to_o god_n 1_o chron._n 23.30_o it_o be_v say_v the_o office_n of_o the_o levite_n that_o be_v musician_n for_o the_o temple_n be_v to_o stand_v every_o morning_n and_o thank_v and_o praise_v the_o lord_n and_o likewise_o at_o even_o that_o be_v at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o morning_n and_o evening_n sacrifice_n yea_o they_o be_v wont_n at_o their_o private_a prayer_n also_o to_o sing_v psalm_n for_o so_o do_v paul_n and_o silas_n act._n 16.25_o three_o the_o psalm_n that_o god_n people_n do_v use_v to_o sing_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v most_o usual_o david_n psalm_n and_o those_o that_o be_v account_v among_o he_o and_o that_o even_o at_o such_o time_n when_o there_o be_v prophet_n in_o the_o church_n that_o have_v extraordinary_a gift_n and_o be_v inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o the_o church_n do_v not_o usual_o sing_v any_o other_o than_o david_n psalm_n this_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o day_n of_o hez●kiah_n 2_o chron._n 29.30_o hezekiah_n the_o king_n and_o the_o prince_n command_v the_o levite_n to_o sing_v praise_n to_o the_o lord_n with_o the_o word_n of_o david_n and_o of_o asaph_n the_o seer_n the_o like_a we_o may_v see_v in_o ezraes_n time_n ezra_n 3.10_o they_o set_v the_o priest_n in_o their_o apparel_n with_o trumpet_n and_o the_o levite_n the_o son_n of_o asaph_n with_o cymbal_n to_o praise_v the_o lord_n with_o those_o song_n as_o tremelius_fw-la render_v it_o that_o david_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n do_v deliver_v and_o the_o psalm_n they_o sing_v be_v psal._n 136._o as_o appear_v by_o the_o 11._o verse_n and_o this_o may_v also_o further_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o we_o read_v neh._n 12.46_o to_o which_o purpose_n it_o be_v worthy_a the_o observe_v that_o though_o there_o be_v many_o of_o god_n holy_a servant_n that_o make_v song_n and_o psalm_n beside_o david_n as_o deborah_n judg._n 5.1_o and_o anna_n the_o mother_n of_o samuel_n 1_o sam._n 2.1_o and_o solomon_n cant._n 1.1_o and_o mary_n the_o bless_a virgin_n luk._n 1.46_o such_o as_o may_v be_v use_v yet_o be_v none_o of_o they_o commit_v to_o the_o musician_n to_o be_v public_o sing_v in_o the_o temple_n but_o these_o of_o david_n only_o in_o which_o respect_n he_o by_o a_o excellency_n be_v call_v the_o sweet_a psalmist_n of_o israel_n 2_o sam._n ●3_n 1_o the_o reason_n and_o ground_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v these_o reason_n first_o god_n have_v oft_o show_v himself_o to_o take_v great_a delight_n in_o this_o part_n of_o his_o worship_n two_o notable_a example_n there_o be_v of_o it_o the_o one_o at_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o the_o ark_n into_o the_o temple_n in_o the_o day_n of_o solomon_n 2_o chron._n 5.13_o just_o at_o that_o instant_n when_o they_o lift_v up_o their_o voice_n in_o sing_v the_o 136._o psalm_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n fill_v the_o house_n the_o other_o in_o that_o miraculous_a deliverance_n god_n give_v to_o his_o people_n against_o the_o ammonite_n in_o the_o day_n of_o jehosaphat_n 2_o chron._n 20_o 22._o when_o they_o begin_v to_o sing_v and_o to_o praise_n god_n the_o lord_n set_v a_o ambushment_n against_o the_o child_n of_o ammon_n and_o moab_n and_o mount_v seir._n second_o it_o be_v a_o singular_a help_n and_o mean_n to_o stir_v up_o in_o we_o holy_a affection_n in_o god_n service_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o apostle_n oppose_v and_o prefer_v it_o before_o wine_n eph._n 5.18_o 19_o be_v not_o drink_v with_o wine_n wherein_o be_v excess_n but_o be_v you_o fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n speak_v to_o your_o self_n in_o psalm_n and_o hymn_n and_o spiritual_a song_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v whereas_o the_o chief_a pretence_n man_n have_v for_o their_o excessive_a love_n of_o wine_n be_v that_o it_o revive_v and_o cheer_v their_o spirit_n ps._n 104.15_o i_o will_v prescribe_v a_o better_a thing_n for_o that_o purpose_n to_o revive_v your_o heart_n and_o make_v you_o cheerful_a even_o to_o stir_v up_o spiritual_a affection_n and_o that_o be_v this_o use_v to_o sing_v psalm_n the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v use_v first_o to_o reprove_v the_o general_a neglect_n and_o fall_v of_o from_o this_o exercise_n of_o sing_v of_o psalm_n first_o it_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v the_o custom_n aswell_o to_o end_v our_o church_n meeting_n as_o to_o begin_v they_o with_o a_o psalm_n and_o so_o the_o best_a reform_a congregation_n use_v to_o do_v still_o and_o sure_o it_o make_v much_o for_o the_o decency_n and_o solemnity_n of_o god_n worship_n to_o do_v so_o psal._n 147.1_o praise_v yet_o the_o lord_n for_o it_o be_v good_a to_o sing_v praise_n unto_o our_o god_n for_o it_o be_v pleasant_a and_o praise_n be_v comely_a this_o be_v now_o a_o day_n much_o leave_v in_o many_o congregation_n second_o it_o be_v wont_a to_o
or_o be_o i_o a_o devil_n incarnate_a that_o i_o shall_v prove_v so_o vile_a a_o wretch_n but_o though_o i_o be_v no_o prophet_n to_o say_v so_o yet_o can_v i_o say_v with_o as_o great_a authority_n and_o warrant_v as_o though_o i_o be_v a_o prophet_n that_o there_o be_v never_o a_o one_o of_o we_o here_o but_o may_v prove_v such_o a_o one_o before_o we_o die_v and_o therefore_o we_o have_v need_v to_o fear_v and_o suspect_v ourselves_o object_n if_o any_o man_n shall_v object_v this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o all_o your_o preach_n to_o disquiet_v man_n mind_n with_o fear_n and_o doubt_n what_o cause_n have_v we_o thus_o to_o fear_v as_o long_o as_o we_o be_v sure_o we_o can_v never_o fall_v total_o we_o can_v fall_v final_o job._n 5.24_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o condemnation_n but_o have_v pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n answ._n i_o answer_v happy_a be_v that_o soul_n that_o upon_o good_a ground_n can_v say_v he_o be_v sure_a of_o this_o but_o admit_v thou_o be_v sure_a of_o that_o be_v it_o no_o cause_n of_o fear_n that_o thou_o moist_a for_o all_o this_o fall_n into_o so_o foul_a sin_n as_o thou_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o tell_v thou_o that_o by_o fall_v into_o such_o sin_n first_o thou_o shall_v great_o dishonour_v that_o god_n who_o servant_n thou_o profess_v thyself_o to_o be_v and_o open_v the_o mouth_n of_o his_o enemy_n to_o blaspheme_v his_o name_n as_o nathan_n charge_v david_n to_o have_v do_v 2_o sam._n 12.14_o second_o thou_o shall_v great_o grieve_v thy_o heavenly_a father_n forty_o year_n long_o be_v i_o grieve_v with_o this_o generation_n say_v the_o lord_n psal._n 95.10_o three_o thou_o shall_v make_v he_o thy_o enemy_n and_o provoke_v he_o to_o smite_v and_o plague_v thou_o thou_o know_v not_o how_o deep_o they_o rebel_v and_o vex_v his_o holy_a spirit_n therefore_o be_v he_o turn_v to_o be_v their_o enemy_n and_o he_o seek_v against_o they_o say_v the_o prophet_n esa_n 63.10_o take_v david_n for_o a_o instance_n and_o example_n of_o this_o the_o sword_n shall_v never_o depart_v from_o thy_o house_n because_o thou_o have_v despise_v i_o say_v the_o lord_n by_o nathan_n unto_o he_o 2_o sam._n 12.10_o though_o thou_o break_v not_o thy_o neck_n with_o these_o fall_n to_o the_o loss_n of_o thy_o everlasting_a life_n thou_o may_v break_v a_o arm_n or_o a_o leg_n to_o thy_o extreme_a anguish_n four_o though_o the_o seed_n of_o god_n will_v remain_v in_o thou_o notwithstanding_o these_o sin_n yet_o will_v thou_o loose_v all_o the_o use_n and_o comfort_n of_o that_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o psal._n 51.12_o restore_v to_o i_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o salvation_n that_o be_v go_v 1_o thess._n 5.19_o thus_o far_o forth_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v quench_v five_o thou_o may_v bring_v on_o thyself_o by_o such_o fail_v the_o intolerable_a torment_n of_o a_o wound_a spirit_n and_o who_o can_v bear_v that_o say_v solomon_n pro._n 18.14_o six_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v thou_o how_o long_o thou_o may_v continue_v in_o this_o uncomfortable_a and_o wretched_a estate_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o great_o aggravate_v thy_o misery_n that_o thou_o may_v say_v in_o this_o case_n as_o psal._n 74.9_o there_o be_v not_o any_o that_o know_v how_o long_o o_o than_o we_o have_v all_o great_a cause_n to_o fear_v these_o fall_n and_o not_o to_o be_v secure_a but_o to_o use_v all_o mean_n we_o can_v to_o prevent_v such_o fall_n and_o the_o principal_a mean_n be_v these_o first_o nourish_v in_o thy_o heart_n this_o fear_n of_o fall_v from_o god_n fear_v of_o sin_v against_o he_o see_v how_o this_o be_v oft_o commend_v to_o we_o as_o a_o chief_a mean_a to_o keep_v we_o from_o fall_v i_o will_v put_v my_o fear_n in_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n jer._n 32_o 40._o &_o pro._n 28.14_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n that_o fear_v always_o &_o phil._n 2.12_o work_v out_o your_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_v the_o want_n of_o this_o even_o his_o presumptuous_a confidence_n be_v a_o chief_a cause_n of_o peter_n fall_n matth._n 26.33.35.58_o second_o learn_v to_o make_v conscience_n even_o of_o the_o least_o sin_n psal._n 19.12_o 13._o by_o the_o care_n he_o have_v to_o be_v cleanse_v of_o his_o secret_a sin_n and_o from_o every_o presumptuous_a sin_n he_o be_v sure_a he_o shall_v be_v free_a from_o the_o great_a transgression_n three_o neglect_v no_o mean_n of_o grace_n either_o public_a or_o private_a but_o use_v they_o conscionable_o and_o daily_o if_o vision_n fail_v either_o through_o the_o minister_n fault_n or_o the_o people_n the_o people_n will_v decay_v pro._n 29.18_o he_o that_o will_v not_o quench_v the_o spirit_n must_v not_o d●●ise_a prophecying_n that_o be_v the_o oft_o hear_v of_o the_o word_n preach_v say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o thess._n 5.19_o 20._o if_o we_o exhort_v not_o one_o another_o or_o ourselves_o daily_o we_o shall_v be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v harden_v with_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o sin_n as_o he_o reach_v 〈◊〉_d heb._n 3.13_o four_o pray_v daily_o to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v uphold_v thou_o so_o our_o saviour_n teach_v we_o to_o pray_v daily_o mat._n 6.13_o lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n but_o pull_v we_o by_o thy_o mighty_a arm_n from_o the_o evil_a one_o this_o be_v david_n prayer_n ps._n 119.116_o 11●_n ●phold_v i_o according_a to_o thy_o word_n that_o i_o may_v live_v hold_v thou_o i_o up_o and_o i_o shall_v be_v safe_a the_o second_o use_n be_v to_o exhort_v we_o to_o be_v willing_a to_o die_v whensoever_o god_n shall_v be_v please_v to_o call_v we_o sundry_a other_o motive_n there_o be_v to_o persuade_v we_o to_o this_o as_o full_a 2_o cor._n 5.6_o while_o we_o be_v at_o home_n in_o the_o body_n we_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o lord_n we_o shall_v never_o enjoy_v christ_n full_o till_o then_o second_o while_o we_o live_v here_o we_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o many_o sorrow_n and_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n every_o day_n will_v bring_v upon_o we_o one_o evil_a and_o occasion_n of_o sorrow_n or_o another_o mat._n 6.34_o all_o tear_n shall_v never_o be_v wipe_v from_o our_o eye_n while_o we_o live_v here_o rev._n 21.4_o but_o this_o three_o be_v a_o principal_a that_o while_o we_o live_v here_o we_o be_v in_o a_o continual_a possibility_n and_o danger_n of_o fall_v from_o god_n till_o we_o die_v we_o can_v never_o be_v perfect_o free_v from_o our_o corruption_n nor_o cease_v from_o our_o own_o work_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v heb._n 4.10_o as_o the_o earthen_a vessel_n that_o be_v legal_o pollute_v can_v not_o be_v purge_v but_o by_o break_v levit._fw-la 11.33_o &_o 15.12_o till_o we_o die_v we_o can_v never_o be_v free_v from_o satan_n assault_n and_o tentation_n the_o life_n to_o come_v be_v the_o only_a time_n of_o our_o full_a redemption_n luk._n 21.28_o and_o consequent_o we_o know_v not_o how_o far_o we_o may_v fall_v so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v death_n will_v free_v we_o perfect_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o corruption_n rom._n 6.7_o for_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a be_v free_v from_o sin_n the_o three_o use_n be_v to_o exhort_v we_o to_o a_o care_n of_o perseverance_n to_o the_o end_n and_o not_o to_o content_v ourselves_o in_o the_o good_a beginning_n and_o proceed_n we_o have_v hitherto_o make_v but_o to_o labour_v to_o finish_v our_o course_n with_o joy_n act._n 20.24_o for_o 1_o according_a to_o that_o we_o be_v at_o our_o end_n will_v god_n judge_v we_o when_o the_o righteous_a turn_v away_o from_o his_o righteousness_n say_v the_o lord_n ezek._n 18.24_o and_o commit_v iniquity_n and_o do_v according_a to_o all_o the_o abomination_n that_o the_o wicked_a man_n do_v shall_v he_o live_v all_o his_o righteousness_n that_o he_o have_v do_v shall_v not_o be_v mention_v in_o his_o trespass_n that_o he_o have_v trespass_v and_o in_o his_o sin_n that_o he_o have_v sin_v in_o they_o shall_v he_o die_v 2._o if_o we_o fall_v away_o we_o shall_v be_v in_o far_o worse_a case_n than_o if_o we_o have_v never_o begin_v well_o 2_o pet._n 2_o 21._o it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o they_o not_o to_o have_v know_v the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n then_o after_o they_o have_v know_v it_o to_o turn_v from_o the_o holy_a commandment_n deliver_v unto_o they_o and_o to_o that_o end_n let_v we_o strive_v to_o make_v sure_a to_o ourselves_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o regeneration_n as_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v we_o 2_o pet._n 1.10_o for_o they_o who_o heart_n be_v not_o upright_o may_v fall_v irrecoverable_o how_o good_a show_v soever_o they_o make_v as_o be_v evident_a in_o those_o that_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o stony_a ground_n mar._n
remedy_n and_o preservative_n against_o this_o presumption_n beside_o that_o which_o you_o have_v hear_v in_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o these_o four_o thing_n first_o beside_o thy_o own_o daily_a experience_n how_o few_o there_o be_v that_o rise_v again_o when_o they_o be_v fall_v that_o true_o repent_v though_o god_n use_v never_o so_o many_o and_o so_o mighty_a mean_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o it_o david_n thou_o see_v here_o that_o be_v a_o far_o strong_a man_n than_o thou_o can_v not_o do_v it_o he_o that_o have_v mortify_v his_o corruption_n much_o more_o and_o have_v more_o grace_n than_o thou_o can_v not_o repent_v after_o he_o have_v sin_v and_o will_v thou_o feed_v thyself_o with_o such_o vain_a hope_n thus_o nehemiah_n press_v the_o example_n of_o solomon_n weakness_n neh._n 13.26_o do_v not_o solomon_n king_n of_o israel_n sin_n by_o these_o thing_n yet_o among_o many_o nation_n be_v there_o no_o king_n like_o he_o who_o be_v belove_v of_o his_o god_n and_o god_n make_v he_o king_n over_o all_o israel_n nevertheless_o even_o he_o do_v outlandish_a woman_n cause_n to_o sin_n second_o repentance_n be_v the_o mighty_a work_n of_o god_n alone_o who_o thou_o by_o thy_o sin_n provoke_v yea_o a_o rare_a gift_n of_o he_o it_o be_v and_o therefore_o presume_v not_o but_o be_v afraid_a to_o sin_n phil._n 2.12_o 13._o work_v out_o your_o own_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a for_o it_o be_v god_n which_o work_v in_o you_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v of_o his_o good_a pleasure_n three_o the_o long_o thou_o continue_v in_o any_o sin_n the_o hard_a will_v thy_o heart_n be_v and_o the_o more_o unable_a will_v thou_o be_v to_o repent_v jer._n 13._o ●3_n they_o that_o be_v accustom_v to_o do_v evil_a can_v as_o hardly_o be_v change_v as_o the_o skin_n of_o a_o blackmore_a or_o of_o a_o leopard_n and_o the_o apostle_n say_v of_o they_o that_o be_v exercise_v in_o covetous_a practice_n they_o can_v not_o cease_v from_o sin_n 2_o pet._n 2.14_o four_o the_o foul_a the_o sin_n be_v that_o thou_o commit_v and_o the_o more_o against_o the_o light_n of_o thy_o heart_n the_o hard_a will_v it_o be_v for_o thou_o to_o repent_v of_o it_o for_o small_a sin_n david_n heart_n be_v wont_a to_o smite_v he_o quick_o ●_o sam._n 24.5_o 2_o sam._n 24.10_o but_o now_o he_o have_v fall_v into_o these_o foul_a sin_n we_o see_v how_o senseless_a and_o impenitent_a he_o grow_v so_o speak_v the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o whoredom_n pro._n 2.19_o none_o that_o go_v unto_o her_o return_n again_o neither_o take_v they_o hold_v of_o the_o path_n of_o life_n and_o of_o drunkenness_n pro._n 23.35_o they_o have_v beat_v i_o and_o i_o feel_v it_o not_o when_o shall_v i_o awake_v i_o will_v seek_v it_o again_o 2._o the_o second_o use_n of_o the_o doctrine_n be_v to_o teach_v we_o that_o see_v hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o impenitency_n do_v usual_o follow_v the_o commit_n of_o sin_n special_o presumptuous_a sin_n sin_n against_o knowledge_n even_o in_o god_n own_o child_n to_o esteem_v this_o a_o judgement_n of_o god_n great_o to_o be_v fear_v and_o tremble_v at_o there_o be_v many_o man_n that_o have_v heart_n like_v to_o leviathan_n as_o the_o lord_n speak_v job._n 41.24_o his_o heart_n be_v as_o firm_a as_o a_o stone_n yea_o as_o hard_a as_o a_o piece_n of_o the_o neither_o millstone_n that_o can_v commit_v gross_a sin_n and_o live_v daily_o in_o they_o without_o all_o trouble_n of_o conscience_n feel_v no_o burden_n in_o they_o but_o esteem_v they_o as_o light_v as_o a_o feather_n and_o can_v go_v away_o merry_o with_o they_o and_o this_o they_o count_v their_o great_a happiness_n that_o they_o be_v not_o like_o your_o professor_n always_o trouble_v in_o their_o mind_n they_o thank_v god_n they_o have_v quiet_a conscience_n zach._n 11.5_o their_o possessor_n slay_v they_o and_o hold_v themselves_o not_o guilty_a and_o they_o that_o sell_v they_o say_v bless_a be_v the_o lord_n for_o i_o be_o rich_a o_o the_o state_n of_o these_o man_n be_v fearful_a i_o advise_v thou_o that_o fear_v god_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o this_o judgement_n to_o tremble_v at_o it_o and_o strive_v against_o it_o and_o to_o move_v thou_o unto_o it_o consider_v first_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a judgement_n and_o mark_v of_o god_n wrath_n in_o this_o life_n of_o all_o other_o pharaoh_n of_o who_o the_o lord_n say_v exod._n 9.16_o for_o this_o cause_n i_o have_v raise_v thou_o up_o to_o show_v on_o thou_o my_o power_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v what_o i_o can_v do_v against_o my_o enemy_n be_v thus_o plague_v exod_v 9.12_o better_o it_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n to_o be_v deliver_v up_o to_o satan_n then_o to_o a_o man_n own_o lust_n for_o of_o that_o judgement_n the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o cor._n 5_o 5._o it_o serve_v for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o this_o judgement_n tend_v to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n joh._n 12.40_o he_o have_v blind_v their_o eye_n and_o harden_v their_o heart_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v convert_v and_o he_o shall_v heal_v they_o second_o this_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o will_v bar_v thou_o from_o god_n mercy_n and_o make_v thou_o uncapable_a of_o it_o not_o so_o much_o the_o commit_n of_o any_o sin_n as_o this_o that_o thy_o heart_n be_v harden_v in_o it_o and_o thou_o can_v not_o repent_v this_o be_v that_o that_o treasure_v up_o wrath_n against_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n rom._n 2.5_o the_o foul_a sin_n may_v be_v pardon_v to_o he_o that_o can_v repent_v matth._n 12.31_o all_o manner_n of_o sin_n and_o blasphemy_n shall_v be_v forgive_v unto_o man_n but_o the_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o why_o can_v that_o be_v pardon_v because_o it_o can_v be_v repent_v of_o heb._n 6.6_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o renew_v they_o again_o unto_o repentance_n three_o it_o use_v to_o end_v in_o great_a terror_n the_o man_n that_o have_v be_v most_o secure_a and_o senseless_a in_o sin_n use_v in_o the_o end_n to_o be_v most_o overwhelm_v with_o horror_n hardness_n of_o heart_n use_v to_o end_v in_o desperation_n think_v not_o thy_o heart_n shall_v be_v thus_o quiet_a always_o pro._n 1.27_o when_o your_o fear_n come_v as_o a_o desolation_n and_o destruction_n as_o a_o whirlwind_n when_o distress_n and_o anguish_n come_v upon_o you_o and_o who_o be_v they_o that_o be_v thus_o threaten_v verse_n 22._o you_o scorner_n that_o delight_v in_o scorn_v labour_v therefore_o for_o a_o soft_a and_o tender_a heart_n that_o can_v easy_o feel_v and_o be_v humble_v for_o sin_n as_o with_o a_o more_o in_o thy_o eye_n the_o mean_n to_o attain_v to_o this_o and_o to_o deliver_v and_o preserve_v thyself_o from_o hardness_n of_o heart_n be_v these_o first_o take_v heed_n thou_o harden_v not_o thy_o own_o heart_n against_o the_o word_n and_o correction_n of_o god_n heb._n 3.7_o 8._o to_o day_n if_o you_o will_v hear_v his_o voice_n harden_v not_o your_o heart_n say_v not_o nor_o resolve_v with_o thyself_o as_o those_o wretched_a jew_n do_v jer._n 44.16_o 17._o as_o for_o the_o word_n that_o thou_o have_v speak_v to_o we_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o will_v not_o hearken_v unto_o thou_o but_o we_o will_v certain_o do_v whatsoever_o thing_n go_v forth_o out_o of_o our_o own_o mouth_n say_v not_o in_o thy_o heart_n i_o can_v give_v they_o the_o hear_n but_o let_v they_o say_v what_o they_o will_v i_o will_v be_v as_o i_o have_v be_v o_o take_v heed_n the_o lord_n take_v thou_o not_o at_o thy_o word_n as_o he_o do_v the_o jew_n matth._n 7.25_o why_o do_v god_n harden_v pharaoh_n exod._n 9.12_o pharaoh_n have_v first_o harden_v his_o own_o heart_n exod._n 8.32_o second_o take_v heed_n of_o the_o least_o sin_n of_o the_o beginning_n and_o occasion_n of_o sin_n labour_v to_o be_v in_o this_o respect_n as_o precise_a as_o job_n be_v who_o bind_v himself_o even_o from_o wanton_a look_n and_o thought_n job_n 31.1_o and_o as_o david_n who_o be_v afraid_a not_o only_o of_o every_o presumptuous_a sin_n but_o even_o of_o his_o most_o secret_a fault_n psal._n 19.12_o 13._o remember_v what_o our_o saviour_n say_v of_o he_o that_o give_v liberty_n to_o himself_o in_o the_o least_o thing_n that_o he_o know_v to_o be_v evil_a and_o hold_v it_o lawful_a to_o do_v so_o mat._n 5.19_o he_o shall_v be_v least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o luk._n 16_o 10._o he_o that_o be_v unjust_a in_o the_o least_o be_v unjust_a also_o in_o much_o it_o be_v in_o this_o case_n as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o breach_n in_o the_o sea_n bank_n neither_o david_n nor_o
reverence_v all_o man_n that_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o minister_n for_o i_o know_v there_o be_v too_o many_o such_o who_o 1._o for_o their_o gift_n as_o the_o lord_n speak_v jer._n 23.21_o i_o have_v not_o send_v they_o yet_o they_o run_v i_o have_v not_o speak_v to_o they_o yet_o they_o prophesy_v 2._o for_o their_o life_n the_o lord_n have_v most_o just_o make_v contemptible_a and_o base_a before_o all_o the_o people_n as_o he_o do_v the_o prophet_n in_o malachies_n day_n mal._n 2.9_o four_o neither_o do_v i_o persuade_v you_o to_o that_o slavish_a subjection_n to_o the_o ministry_n which_o the_o synagogue_n of_o antichrist_n have_v bring_v the_o people_n unto_o they_o appropriate_a to_o themselves_o only_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n the_o people_n they_o say_v have_v no_o further_o to_o deal_v with_o matter_n of_o religion_n than_o this_o to_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v to_o receive_v whatsoever_o the_o priest_n teach_v or_o enjoin_v &_o never_o make_v any_o question_n of_o it_o for_o to_o such_o god_n people_n may_v just_o say_v that_o which_o korah_n dathan_n and_o abiram_n do_v speak_v most_o wicked_o and_o rebellious_o numb_a 16.2_o you_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o you_o see_v all_o the_o congregation_n be_v holy_a every_o one_o of_o they_o and_o the_o lord_n be_v among_o they_o wherefore_o then_o lift_v you_o up_o yourselves_o above_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o lord_n you_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v teach_v you_o and_o not_o to_o reverence_v the_o best_a minister_n in_o the_o world_n so_o much_o as_o to_o receive_v any_o doctrine_n upon_o his_o credit_n till_o you_o have_v examine_v and_o find_v it_o to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n paul_n himself_o bid_v the_o corinthian_n judge_v of_o that_o he_o say_v 1._o cor._n 10.15_o and_o the_o berean_o be_v commend_v for_o this_o that_o they_o examine_v by_o the_o scripture_n those_o thing_n that_o paul_n and_o sylas_n teach_v act_v 17.11_o five_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o you_o may_v in_o your_o esteem_n put_v a_o difference_n even_o between_o god_n faithful_a minister_n for_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o gift_n 1._o cor._n 12.4_o and_o it_o be_v no_o fault_n but_o a_o good_a grace_n of_o god_n to_o esteem_v best_a of_o the_o best_a gift_n of_o god_n that_o may_v by_o good_a consequence_n be_v conclude_v from_o that_o speech_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 12.31_o covet_v earnest_o the_o best_a gift_n and_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o what_o ministry_n you_o shall_v most_o prize_n and_o esteem_v of_o first_o you_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o esteem_v of_o that_o ministry_n best_o not_o which_o tickle_v the_o ear_n best_o nor_o of_o that_o which_o have_v most_o learning_n but_o that_o which_o be_v most_o fit_a to_o edify_v and_o to_o work_v upon_o the_o conscience_n which_o make_v paul_n say_v 1._o cor._n 14.5_o great_a be_v he_o that_o propehsy_v than_o he_o that_o speak_v with_o tongue_n and_o 4.20_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n stand_v not_o in_o word_n but_o in_o power_n second_o you_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o esteem_v of_o that_o ministry_n best_o that_o do_v most_o good_a that_o god_n bless_v most_o and_o so_o give_v great_a testimony_n unto_o this_o be_v mention_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o reverence_n the_o convert_v speak_v of_o 1._o cor._n 14.25_o do_v show_n to_o that_o ministry_n because_o he_o find_v that_o of_o a_o truth_n god_n be_v in_o that_o ministry_n and_o thus_o paul_n challenge_v esteem_v and_o reverence_n to_o his_o ministry_n 1._o corinthian_n 9.2_o because_o god_n have_v set_v his_o seal_n unto_o it_o three_o you_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o esteem_v most_o of_o that_o ministry_n that_o yourselves_o have_v receive_v most_o good_a by_o so_o paul_n prove_v the_o corinthian_n ought_v to_o esteem_v more_o of_o he_o then_o of_o other_o because_o he_o have_v beget_v they_o to_o christ._n 1._o cor._n 4._o ●5_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n certain_o your_o own_o pastor_n shall_v be_v more_o esteem_v then_o stranger_n 1._o thess._n 5_o 12._o we_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n to_o know_v they_o which_o labour_n among_o you_o and_o be_v over_o you_o in_o the_o lord_n and_o admonish_v you_o all_o this_o notwithstanding_o you_o must_v hold_v yourselves_o bind_v to_o esteem_v reverent_o of_o the_o mean_a of_o god_n faithful_a minister_n and_o may_v not_o admire_v and_o praise_v one_o with_o disparage_v and_o make_v light_a account_n of_o another_o this_o be_v tax_v by_o the_o apostle_n as_o a_o foul_a sin_n 1._o cor._n 3.4_o when_o one_o say_v i_o be_o of_o paul_n another_o i_o be_o of_o apollo_n be_v you_o not_o carnal_a now_o for_o to_o help_v and_o strengthen_v thou_o against_o this_o corruption_n consider_v these_o six_o point_n first_o the_o ministry_n of_o one_o man_n be_v god_n ordinance_n aswell_o as_o another_o 1._o cor._n 16.10_o 11._o timothy_n work_v the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o i_o also_o do_v let_v no_o man_n therefore_o despise_v he_o and_o the_o word_n be_v the_o same_o the_o treasure_n as_o precious_a in_o one_o vessel_n as_o in_o another_o 2._o cor._n 4.7_o second_o the_o difference_n of_o gift_n be_v the_o lord_n do_v and_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o always_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o minister_n that_o his_o gift_n be_v mean_a than_o another_o man_n many_o time_n indeed_o it_o be_v his_o own_o fault_n because_o he_o will_v not_o study_v nor_o stir_v up_o god_n gift_n in_o himself_o but_o always_o it_o be_v not_o so_o but_o this_o be_v the_o lord_n do_v who_o divide_v to_o every_o one_o several_o as_o he_o will_v 1._o cor._n 12.11_o yea_o in_o this_o difference_n and_o variety_n of_o his_o gift_n in_o his_o minister_n the_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o his_o church_n be_v great_o to_o be_v admire_v all_o this_o be_v do_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n 1._o cor._n ●_o 22_o one_o kind_n of_o gift_n be_v fit_a for_o some_o to_o profit_v by_o and_o another_o for_o other_o some_o mat._n 11.17_o 19_o three_o he_o that_o receive_v a_o mean_a gift_n than_o he_o who_o thou_o most_o admire_v in_o one_o kind_a may_v yet_o excel_v he_o in_o some_o other_o gift_n that_o be_v also_o useful_a and_o beneficial_a to_o the_o church_n as_o the_o apostle_n set_v it_o forth_o by_o a_o fit_a comparison_n the_o hand_n have_v as_o excellent_a a_o gift_n in_o his_o kind_n as_o the_o eye_n and_o the_o foot_n as_o the_o head_n 1._o cor._n 12.21_o paul_n have_v a_o better_a gift_n in_o speech_n than_o barnabas_n act_n 14.12_o yet_o be_v barnabas_n also_o a_o good_a man_n and_o full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o have_v excellent_a gift_n in_o his_o kind_n act_n 11.24_o four_o thy_o profit_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n depend_v not_o so_o much_o upon_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o man_n that_o preach_v as_o upon_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o his_o own_o ordinance_n 1._o cor._n 3.5_o the_o preacher_n be_v but_o the_o minister_n by_o who_o we_o believe_v even_o as_o the_o lord_n give_v to_o every_o man_n five_o god_n sometime_o work_v most_o mighty_o and_o give_v the_o great_a blessing_n to_o the_o weak_a mean_n no_o man_n doubt_n but_o peter_n gift_n be_v far_o inferior_a to_o christ_n yet_o win_v he_o more_o to_o god_n by_o one_o sermon_n act_v 2.41_o then_o christ_n do_v by_o all_o his_o as_o may_v appear_v act_v 1.15_o six_o if_o thou_o refuse_v to_o receive_v and_o esteem_v due_o of_o the_o mean_a of_o god_n faithful_a servant_n that_o be_v send_v by_o christ_n thou_o receive_v not_o christ_n but_o in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n respect_v more_o the_o gift_n of_o man_n than_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n john_n 13.20_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o that_o receive_v whosoever_o i_o send_v receive_v i_o lecture_n four_o on_o the_o title_n of_o psal._n 51._o octob._n 26._o 1625._o second_o this_o doctrine_n shall_v persuade_v we_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o ordinance_n yea_o how_o necessary_a it_o be_v for_o every_o one_o of_o we_o to_o live_v under_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o provoke_v we_o to_o resolve_v with_o ourselves_o that_o we_o will_v never_o live_v without_o it_o this_o be_v david_n resolution_n psal._n 23.6_o i_o will_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o ever_o yea_o he_o pray_v that_o he_o may_v be_v so_o happy_a psal._n ●7_n 4_o one_o thing_n have_v i_o desire_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o will_v i_o seek_v after_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n we_o shall_v be_v content_a to_o be_v at_o cost_n and_o to_o strain_v ourselves_o to_o get_v it_o home_o to_o we_o rather_o than_o we_o will_v
he_o to_o hear_v he_o and_o our_o saviour_n be_v so_o far_o from_o blame_v they_o as_o if_o they_o neglect_v their_o worldly_a business_n this_o way_n that_o he_o defend_v and_o praise_v mary_n for_o do_v this_o luk._n 10_o 4●_n though_o happy_o she_o have_v some_o whatelse_n to_o do_v at_o that_o time_n three_o few_o or_o none_o be_v thankful_a to_o god_n for_o this_o ordinance_n of_o he_o nor_o do_v in_o their_o heart_n esteem_v it_o any_o such_o blessing_n to_o the_o land_n or_o town_n that_o enjoy_v it_o as_o for_o which_o they_o shall_v think_v themselves_o much_o bind_v to_o praise_v god_n they_o can_v be_v thankful_a for_o peace_n and_o for_o health_n and_o for_o seasonable_a time_n but_o for_o a_o go●d_a ministry_n few_o or_o none_o can_v be_v thankful_a to_o god_n whereas_o we_o shall_v account_v it_o our_o chief_a blessing_n from_o god_n for_o so_o the_o lord_n speak_v of_o this_o as_o his_o chief_a blessing_n bestow_v upon_o a_o people_n jere_v 3_o 15._o i_o will_v give_v you_o pastor_n according_a to_o my_o own_o heart_n that_o shall_v feed_v you_o with_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n and_o amos_n 2.11_o i_o raise_v up_o of_o your_o son_n for_o prophet_n and_o of_o your_o young_a man_n for_o nazarite_n and_o mic._n 6.4_o i_o send_v before_o thou_o and_o moses_n aaron_n miriam_n yea_o such_o a_o blessing_n it_o be_v as_o shall_v abundant_o content_v we_o and_o assure_v we_o of_o god_n favour_n even_o in_o the_o want_n of_o all_o other_o blessing_n for_o so_o speak_v the_o lord_n of_o it_o isaiah_n 30.20_o though_o the_o lord_n give_v you_o the_o bread_n of_o adversity_n and_o the_o water_n of_o affliction_n yet_o shall_v not_o thy_o teacher_n be_v remove_v into_o a_o corner_n any_o more_o but_o thy_o eye_n shall_v see_v thy_o teacher_n 2._o we_o shall_v account_v a_o faithful_a ministry_n the_o very_a glory_n and_o strength_n of_o our_o land_n when_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n be_v go_v the_o glory_n be_v depart_v from_o israel_n 1._o sam._n 4.31_o and_o the_o true_a ministry_n of_o the_o lord_n levit_n be_v say_v to_o be_v that_o that_o strengthen_v the_o kingdom_n of_o judah_n 2._o chron._n 11.17_o and_o abijah_n make_v this_o a_o main_a ground_n of_o his_o confidence_n and_o hope_v of_o success_n in_o his_o battle_n against_o jeroboam_fw-la that_o he_o in_o his_o kingdom_n have_v a_o true_a and_o faithful_a ministry_n which_o the_o other_o have_v not_o 2_o chron._n 13.9_o 10._o have_v not_o you_o cast_v out_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o son_n of_o aaron_n and_o the_o levite_n and_o have_v make_v you_o priest_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o nation_n but_o as_o for_o we_o the_o lord_n be_v our_o god_n and_o we_o have_v not_o forsake_v he_o and_o the_o priest_n which_o minister_v unto_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o son_n of_o aaron_n and_o the_o levite_n wait_v upon_o their_o business_n now_o to_o this_o first_o sort_n of_o person_n that_o this_o doctrine_n reprove_v i_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v but_o this_o that_o i_o will_v have_v they_o to_o think_v serious_o of_o two_o thing_n first_o that_o they_o have_v cause_n to_o suspect_v whatsoever_o grace_n or_o goodness_n seem_v to_o be_v in_o they_o while_o their_o heart_n tell_v they_o they_o make_v no_o more_o reckon_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n but_o despise_v it_o rather_o two_o good_a thing_n such_o man_n use_v to_o put_v most_o confidence_n in_o 1._o they_o find_v some_o devotion_n in_o themselves_o they_o love_v prayer_n well_o and_o can_v say_v their_o own_o prayer_n sometime_o 2._o they_o believe_v in_o christ._n foolish_a man_n let_v not_o satan_n deceive_v thou_o certain_o while_o thou_o make_v no_o reckon_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n they_o faith_n be_v nothing_o worth_a thy_o prayer_n will_v do_v thou_o no_o good_a for_o thy_o prayer_n know_v all_o the_o service_n thou_o seem_v to_o do_v unto_o god_n be_v no_o better_a than_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o fool_n till_o thou_o be_v more_o ready_a to_o hear_v eccles._n 5.1_o to_o hearken_v be_v better_a than_o the_o fat_a of_o ram_n 1._o sam._n 15.22_o and_o for_o both_o thy_o pray_n and_o thy_o believe_a in_o christ_n mark_v well_o that_o know_a place_n well_o know_v indeed_o o_o that_o it_o be_v aswell_o believe_v rom._n 10.14_o how_o shall_v they_o call_v on_o he_o in_o who_o they_o have_v not_o believe_v and_o how_o shall_v they_o believe_v in_o he_o of_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v and_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n how_o can_v thou_o pray_v that_o have_v no_o faith_n how_o can_v thou_o have_v faith_n that_o come_v not_o to_o it_o by_o hear_v the_o word_n preach_v that_o be_v no_o hearer_n but_o i_o think_v i_o hear_v many_o of_o you_o say_v this_o touch_v not_o i_o for_o i_o be_o a_o hearer_n i_o have_v hear_v many_o a_o sermon_n o_o but_o mark_v what_o follow_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n verse_n 15._o and_o thou_o shall_v find_v thou_o be_v no_o such_o hearer_n as_o paul_n speak_v of_o the_o hearer_n that_o paul_n speak_v of_o be_v such_o as_o can_v cry_v o_o how_o beautiful_a be_v the_o foot_n of_o they_o that_o do_v preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n but_o thou_o see_v no_o beauty_n in_o their_o foot_n thou_o hear_v they_o but_o thou_o joy_v not_o in_o they_o thou_o count_v they_o no_o blessing_n nor_o be_v thankful_a to_o god_n for_o they_o thou_o see_v no_o great_a need_n of_o hear_v of_o they_o thou_o be_v weary_a of_o they_o and_o how_o shall_v thou_o have_v any_o true_a faith_n how_o shall_v thou_o be_v able_a to_o pray_v aright_o the_o second_o thing_n i_o will_v have_v these_o man_n to_o consider_v be_v this_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v of_o this_o as_o of_o a_o fearful_a sin_n and_o sign_n of_o a_o most_o graceless_a heart_n to_o be_v unwilling_a to_o hear_v the_o word_n to_o have_v no_o mind_n unto_o it_o 1._o such_o a_o one_o have_v no_o care_n of_o his_o soul_n what_o become_v of_o it_o whether_o it_o sink_v or_o swim_v as_o we_o say_v whether_o it_o be_v save_v or_o damn_v pro_n 15.32_o he_o that_o refuse_v instruction_n despise_v his_o own_o soul_n nay_o 2._o more_o than_o that_o such_o a_o one_o care_v not_o for_o god_n or_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n regard_v he_o not_o fear_v he_o not_o be_v in_o his_o heart_n a_o very_a atheist_n they_o that_o desire_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o way_n say_v in_o their_o heart_n unto_o god_n depart_v from_o we_o job_n 21.14_o my_o people_n will_v not_o hearken_v to_o my_o voice_n israel_n will_v none_o of_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n psal._n 81.11_o nay_o 3._o to_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n preach_v when_o we_o may_v and_o god_n offer_v it_o unto_o we_o to_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o it_o no_o love_n to_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n if_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v then_o the_o sin_n of_o sodom_n and_o gomorrah_n mat._n 10.14_o 15._o when_o all_o be_v do_v and_o the_o time_n of_o reckon_n shall_v come_v this_o will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v thy_o chief_a sin_n the_o second_o sort_n that_o be_v to_o be_v reprove_v by_o this_o doctrine_n be_v they_o which_o hear_v often_o &_o seem_v also_o to_o delight_n in_o the_o best_a ministry_n &_o yet_o profit_v not_o at_o all_o by_o it_o but_o remain_v as_o ignorant_a unreformed_a profane_a as_o they_o that_o never_o hear_v sermon_n if_o trial_n be_v take_v of_o the_o most_o hearer_n they_o will_v be_v find_v such_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o 2_o tim._n 3.7_o ever_o learning_n and_o never_o able_a to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n such_o hearer_n i_o desire_v to_o consider_v and_o weigh_v well_o with_o themselves_o these_o six_o point_n first_o that_o it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n of_o comfort_n to_o a_o man_n nor_o thing_n wherein_o any_o shall_v bless_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v a_o hearer_n a_o constant_a hearer_n a_o hearer_n of_o the_o best_a teacher_n and_o that_o with_o delight_n also_o this_o testimony_n the_o lord_n give_v of_o notorious_a hypocrite_n esa._n 58.2_o they_o seek_v i_o daily_o and_o delight_n to_o know_v my_o way_n and_o ezech_v 33_o 3●_n 32._o they_o come_v to_o thou_o a_o faithful_a prophet_n as_o the_o people_n come_v and_o they_o sit_v before_o thou_o as_o my_o people_n and_o they_o hear_v thy_o word_n with_o their_o mouth_n they_o show_v much_o love_n praise_v the_o faithful_a minister_n great_o and_o lo_o thou_o be_v unto_o they_o as_o a_o very_a lovely_a song_n of_o one_o that_o have_v a_o pleasant_a voice_n and_o can_v play_v well_o on_o a_o instrument_n no_o music_n do_v ever_o delight_v they_o more_o than_o a_o good_a sermon_n yea_o of_o herod_n himself_o it_o be_v say_v
outward_a mean_n that_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o his_o word_n and_o appoint_v we_o to_o use_v to_o make_v this_o his_o ordinance_n effectual_a in_o our_o heart_n no_o way_n limit_v god_n power_n but_o leave_v his_o secret_a work_n to_o himself_o according_a to_o that_o deut._n 29.29_o the_o secret_a thing_n belong_v to_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n but_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v reveal_v belong_v to_o we_o and_o to_o our_o child_n for_o ever_o 3._o though_o many_o have_v feel_v this_o ordinance_n effectual_a in_o themselves_o that_o never_o thus_o prepare_v their_o heart_n unto_o it_o yet_o can_v none_o such_o have_v any_o assurance_n or_o hope_n that_o they_o shall_v profit_v by_o it_o that_o be_v not_o careful_a to_o prepare_v their_o heart_n before_o hand_n because_o they_o have_v no_o promise_n of_o god_n for_o it_o now_o this_o preparation_n consist_v in_o eight_o thing_n which_o i_o will_v distinct_o deliver_v unto_o you_o and_o run_v over_o they_o with_o all_o the_o speed_n i_o can_v first_o you_o must_v come_v in_o repentance_n that_o be_v before_o you_o come_v to_o hear_v you_o must_v by_o unfeigned_a repentance_n cast_v of_o every_o know_a sin_n mar_v 1.15_o repent_v and_o believe_v the_o gospel_n say_v our_o saviour_n man_n must_v repent_v with_o legal_a repentance_n before_o they_o can_v believe_v and_o the_o word_n can_v profit_v no_o man_n unless_o it_o be_v mix_v with_o faith_n heb_n 4.2_o this_o preparative_n the_o apostle_n prescribe_v 1_o pet._n 2.1_o 2._o lay_v aside_o all_o malice_n and_o all_o guile_n and_o hypocrisye_n and_o envy_n and_o evil_a speaking_n as_o new_o bear_v babe_n desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n that_o you_o may_v grow_v thereby_o applic._n be_v it_o therefore_o any_o wonder_n though_o they_o that_o be_v usual_o drink_v on_o the_o saturday_n night_n or_o spend_v it_o in_o game_n and_o then_o come_v hither_o on_o the_o lord_n day_n to_o hear_v or_o that_o immediate_o before_o they_o come_v to_o the_o sermon_n have_v be_v scold_v or_o act_v some_o other_o foul_a sin_n shall_v go_v away_o from_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n never_o a_o whit_n better_o than_o they_o come_v do_v you_o ever_o know_v any_o salve_n so_o sovereign_a that_o can_v cure_v a_o wound_n that_o have_v a_o splint_n or_o a_o arrow_n head_n remain_v in_o it_o sure_o so_o will_v every_o know_a sin_n unrepented_a of_o hinder_v the_o save_a operation_n of_o the_o word_n in_o any_o man_n heart_n yea_o it_o will_v make_v the_o word_n a_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o a_o man_n see_v how_o god_n threaten_v such_o ezek._n 14.7_o 8._o for_o every_o one_o of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n or_o of_o the_o stranger_n that_o sojourn_v in_o israel_n which_o separate_v himself_o from_o i_o and_o set_v up_o his_o idol_n in_o his_o heart_n and_o put_v the_o stumble_a block_n of_o his_o iniquity_n before_o his_o face_n and_o come_v to_o a_o prophet_n to_o inquire_v of_o he_o concern_v i_o i_o the_o lord_n will_v answer_v he_o by_o myself_o and_o i_o will_v set_v my_o face_n against_o that_o man_n and_o will_v make_v he_o a_o sign_n and_o a_o proverb_n and_o i_o will_v cut_v he_o off_o from_o the_o midst_n of_o my_o people_n and_o you_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n second_o you_o must_v come_v with_o a_o empty_a and_o free_a heart_n lay_v aside_o and_o cast_v of_o all_o worldly_a care_n and_o thought_n which_o will_v distract_v and_o draw_v away_o thy_o heart_n that_o be_v one_o chief_a reason_n of_o that_o rest_n that_o be_v enjoin_v upon_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o of_o the_o commandment_n the_o lord_n give_v to_o remember_v and_o think_v of_o it_o before_o hand_n and_o to_o do_v all_o our_o business_n in_o the_o six_o day_n that_o we_o may_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v on_o that_o day_n exod._n 28.8_o 10._o this_o be_v that_o that_o god_n intend_v to_o teach_v by_o that_o ceremony_n he_o command_v moses_n to_o use_v exod._n 3.5_o put_v of_o thy_o shoe_n from_o of_o thy_o foot_n for_o the_o place_n whereon_o thou_o stand_v be_v holy_a ground_n to_o lay_v aside_o all_o their_o worldly_a thought_n and_o affection_n they_o that_o in_o this_o ordinance_n of_o god_n seek_v for_o wisdom_n that_o be_v to_o be_v make_v wise_a unto_o salvation_n must_v first_o separate_v themselves_o from_o all_o other_o matter_n to_o this_o business_n as_o solomon_n speak_v pro._n 18.1_o 1_o tim._n 4.15_o give_v thyself_o whole_o to_o they_o that_o thy_o profit_v may_v appear_v to_o all_o and_o how_o shall_v they_o then_o profit_v by_o the_o word_n applic._n that_o jump_v out_o of_o their_o worldly_a business_n from_o busy_v their_o head_n and_o tongue_n about_o such_o matter_n into_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o will_v never_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o put_v of_o their_o shoe_n and_o to_o sequester_v their_o thought_n from_o such_o thing_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o though_o they_o draw_v near_o to_o god_n with_o their_o ear_n and_o lip_n yet_o their_o heart_n be_v far_o remove_v from_o he_o esa._n 29.13_o their_o heart_n go_v after_o their_o covetousness_n ezek._n 33.31_o three_o you_o must_v come_v with_o a_o appetite_n and_o earnest_a desire_n to_o learn_v and_o profit_n by_o the_o word_n without_o which_o as_o meat_n take_v into_o a_o full_a stomach_n the_o word_n will_v profit_v we_o little_a with_o this_o heart_n come_v david_n to_o the_o word_n psal._n 119.131_o i_o open_v my_o mouth_n and_o pant_v for_o i_o long_v for_o thy_o commandment_n this_o preparative_n also_o the_o apostle_n prescribe_v 1_o pet._n 2.2_o as_o new_o bear_v babe_n desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n that_o you_o may_v grow_v thereby_o to_o such_o god_n have_v ever_o be_v wont_a to_o bless_v his_o word_n he_o fill_v the_o hungry_a with_o good_a thing_n luk._n 1.53_o this_o make_v the_o word_n sweet_a and_o wholesome_a to_o we_o pro._n 27.7_o to_o the_o hungry_a soul_n every_o bitter_a thing_n be_v sweet_a but_o the_o most_o of_o our_o hearer_n come_v to_o the_o word_n without_o all_o appetite_n or_o desire_n after_o it_o applic._n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o heaviness_n of_o their_o countenance_n while_o they_o be_v hear_v of_o who_o it_o may_v be_v say_v as_o esa._n 3.9_o the_o show_n of_o their_o countenance_n do_v witness_n against_o they_o four_o you_o must_v come_v with_o a_o humble_a heart_n affect_v with_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o need_v you_o have_v of_o this_o ordinance_n of_o god_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o ignorance_n hardness_n of_o heart_n infidelity_n and_o other_o corruption_n you_o find_v in_o yourselves_o psal._n 25.9_o god_n will_v teach_v the_o humble_a his_o way_n he_o give_v grace_n to_o the_o humble_a 1_o pet._n 5.5_o all_o conceit_n of_o our_o own_o knowledge_n must_v be_v cast_v of_o if_o we_o will_v profit_v by_o the_o word_n we_o must_v first_o become_v fool_n in_o sense_n of_o our_o own_o ignorance_n before_o ever_o we_o can_v be_v make_v wise_a unto_o salvation_n by_o the_o lord_n in_o this_o his_o ordinance_n 1_o cor._n 3.18_o no_o man_n can_v hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o righteousness_n and_o grace_n till_o he_o be_v first_o poor_a in_o spirit_n matth._n 5._o ●_o ●_o and_o what_o marvel_n be_v it_o then_o that_o our_o hearer_n profit_v so_o little_a applic._n 1._o many_o come_v only_a to_o hear_v for_o novelty_n sake_n that_o they_o may_v try_v and_o pass_v their_o sentence_n and_o censure_n on_o the_o preacher_n gift_n luke_n 23.8_o 9_o herod_n have_v hear_v a_o great_a fame_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o be_v exceed_v glad_a both_o to_o see_v he_o and_o to_o hear_v he_o too_o that_o he_o may_v try_v whether_o he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o he_o have_v hear_v he_o to_o be_v 2._o the_o most_o be_v laodicean_n hearer_n too_o well_o conceit_v of_o themselves_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o they_o revel_v 3.17_o void_a of_o all_o sense_n of_o ignorance_n or_o any_o other_o corruption_n in_o themselves_o five_o come_v with_o a_o open_a heart_n ready_a to_o receive_v every_o truth_n that_o god_n shall_v teach_v thou_o in_o this_o his_o ordinance_n what_o god_n shall_v teach_v you_o i_o say_v not_o what_o any_o man_n shall_v teach_v thou_o be_v he_o never_o so_o good_a for_o as_o for_o the_o best_a teacher_n in_o the_o world_n you_o have_v a_o rule_n to_o try_v before_o you_o trust_v as_o 1_o thess._n 5.21_o prove_v all_o thing_n hold_v fast_o that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o nothing_o else_o as_o the_o noble_a berean_n do_v act._n 17.11_o even_o in_o these_o day_n god_n people_n have_v need_n of_o that_o caveat_n mar._n 4.24_o take_v heed_n what_o you_o hear_v but_o this_o i_o say_v you_o shall_v never_o profit_v by_o the_o word_n unless_o you_o come_v to_o it_o with_o open_a heart_n ready_a to_o
be_v it_o in_o this_o case_n they_o that_o desire_v to_o receive_v good_a by_o the_o divine_a power_n of_o god_n in_o this_o his_o ordinance_n must_v bring_v faith_n to_o it_o and_o according_a to_o their_o faith_n so_o shall_v they_o speed_v and_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o christ_n matth._n 13.58_o he_o do_v 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈◊〉_d work_n in_o nazareth_n because_o of_o their_o unbelief_n so_o may_v it_o be_v say_v of_o our_o church_n assembly_n now_o adays_o god_n show_v not_o his_o save_a power_n much_o in_o they_o because_o of_o the_o unbelief_n of_o our_o hearer_n eight_o and_o last_o if_o thou_o will_v profit_v by_o thy_o hear_n pray_v before_o thou_o hear_v no_o good_a thing_n you_o know_v can_v be_v expect_v from_o god_n with_o a_o blessing_n if_o it_o be_v not_o seek_v by_o prayer_n deut._n 4.7_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v nigh_o unto_o we_o in_o all_o that_o we_o call_v upon_o he_o for_o and_o in_o this_o particular_a it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o god_n people_n to_o pray_v for_o their_o teacher_n that_o they_o may_v so_o speak_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o speak_v col._n 4.4_o and_o special_o that_o in_o their_o ministry_n they_o may_v so_o apply_v the_o word_n as_o it_o may_v effectual_o meet_v with_o their_o corruption_n let_v the_o righteous_a smite_v i_o say_v david_n psal._n 141.5_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o kindness_n and_o let_v he_o reprove_v i_o it_o shall_v be_v as_o a_o excellent_a oil_n for_o themselves_o also_o they_o shall_v pray_v that_o through_o god_n assistance_n they_o may_v hear_v profitable_o and_o be_v bless_v in_o their_o hear_n thus_o do_v david_n go_v to_o the_o word_n psal._n 19.18_o open_v thou_o my_o eye_n that_o i_o may_v behold_v wondrous_a thing_n out_o of_o thy_o law_n for_o the_o lord_n only_o be_v he_o that_o can_v teach_v we_o to_o profit_n esa._n 48.17_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n which_o teach_v thou_o to_o profit_v to_o this_o be_v the_o promise_n make_v pro._n 2.3_o 5._o if_o thou_o cry_v after_o knowledge_n and_o lift_a up_o thy_o voice_n for_o understanding_n then_o shall_v thou_o understand_v the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o find_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o sure_o this_o be_v one_o chief_a cause_n why_o there_o be_v so_o little_a profit_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n applic_n for_o before_o they_o come_v to_o church_n pray_v either_o for_o the_o preacher_n or_o themselves_o nay_o few_o when_o they_o be_v at_o church_n have_v any_o heart_n to_o join_v with_o the_o preacher_n in_o the_o prayer_n that_o he_o make_v before_o the_o sermon_n but_o that_o complaint_n may_v be_v make_v in_o this_o case_n which_o the_o prophet_n make_v isaiah_n 64.7_o there_o be_v none_o that_o call_v on_o thy_o name_n that_o stir_v up_o himself_o to_o take_v hold_n of_o thou_o lecture_n vi_o on_o the_o title_n of_o psalm_n 51._o novemb_n 23_o 1625._o it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o proceed_v to_o the_o other_o two_o part_n of_o the_o use_n of_o direction_n and_o for_o the_o better_a stir_v up_o of_o your_o affection_n to_o that_o which_o i_o be_o to_o deliver_v you_o must_v know_v this_o that_o to_o hear_v the_o word_n profitable_o be_v a_o laborious_a and_o painful_a thing_n the_o bring_n of_o your_o body_n hither_o and_o lend_v of_o your_o ear_n be_v not_o all_o though_o that_o be_v painful_a to_o you_o that_o come_v far_o but_o there_o be_v more_o belong_v to_o it_o then_o so_o there_o be_v a_o labour_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o heart_n require_v in_o this_o work_n strive_v say_v our_o saviour_n luk_n 13.24_o to_o enter_v in_o at_o the_o strait_a gate_n every_o gate_n every_o part_n of_o that_o way_n whereby_o we_o must_v come_v to_o life_n eternal_a be_v straight_o and_o narrow_a and_o without_o much_o strive_n &_o labour_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o pass_v through_o it_o to_o pray_v aright_o you_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o conscionable_a performance_n of_o this_o duty_n find_v it_o to_o be_v a_o painful_a and_o laborious_a thing_n rom._n 15.30_o strive_v together_o with_o i_o say_v the_o apostle_n in_o your_o prayer_n to_o god_n for_o i_o and_o sure_o it_o be_v no_o less_o painful_a a_o thing_n to_o hear_v spiritual_o and_o profitable_o labour_n say_v our_o saviour_n john_n 6.27_o not_o for_o the_o meat_n which_o perish_v but_o for_o that_o meat_n which_o endure_v unto_o everlasting_a life_n and_o no_o marvel_n for_o 1._o there_o be_v a_o utter_a indisposition_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n by_o nature_n to_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a be_v alienate_v in_o our_o mind_n from_o god_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v colos._n 1.21_o and_o estrange_v as_o david_n say_v psal._n 58.3_o from_o the_o very_a womb_n 2._o satan_n also_o be_v very_o busy_a with_o we_o when_o we_o go_v about_o this_o work_n of_o hear_v god_n word_n to_o hinder_v we_o by_o all_o the_o cunning_a he_o have_v from_o hear_v it_o fruitful_o luke_n 8.12_o those_o by_o the_o highway_n side_n be_v they_o that_o hear_v then_o come_v the_o devil_n and_o take_v away_o the_o word_n out_o of_o their_o heart_n lest_o they_o shall_v believe_v and_o be_v save_v 3._o the_o lord_n though_o he_o first_o convert_v we_o without_o any_o help_n of_o our_o own_o will_n and_o endeavour_v for_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n dead_a in_o trespass_n ephes._n 2.1_o yea_o he_o convert_v we_o against_o our_o will_n rom._n 10.21_o all_o the_o day_n long_o have_v i_o stretch_v out_o my_o hand_n unto_o a_o disobedient_a and_o gainsaying_n people_n yet_o will_v he_o not_o save_v we_o nor_o build_v we_o up_o in_o grace_n nor_o bless_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n unto_o we_o without_o the_o help_n of_o our_o will_n and_o endeavour_v but_o when_o he_o have_v once_o regenerate_v and_o renew_v our_o will_n he_o will_v have_v us●_n employ_v it_o in_o his_o work_n phil._n 2.12_o work_v out_o your_o own_o salvation_n we_o have_v need_v therefore_o to_o take_v pain_n with_o our_o own_o heart_n and_o strive_v to_o hear_v profitable_o for_o certain_o as_o a_o great_a cause_n why_o we_o profit_v so_o little_a by_o the_o word_n be_v this_o that_o we_o will_v not_o do_v that_o that_o lie_v in_o we_o to_o make_v our_o hear_n profitable_a we_o will_v take_v no_o pain_n in_o this_o work_n so_o if_o we_o will_v take_v a_o little_a pain_n for_o it_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o fruit_n and_o comfort_n we_o shall_v receive_v by_o it_o will_v abundant_o recompense_v all_o the_o pain_n we_o have_v take_v in_o it_o that_o which_o solomon_n say_v of_o labour_n in_o our_o lawful_a calling_n pro._n 14.23_o in_o all_o labour_n there_o be_v profit_n and_o 13.11_o he_o that_o gather_v by_o labour_n shall_v increase_v there_o be_v a_o secret_a blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o man_n that_o labour_v in_o the_o mean_a calling_n that_o be_v that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o live_v and_o thrive_v by_o it_o may_v fit_o be_v apply_v to_o this_o purpose_n they_o that_o labour_v and_o will_v take_v pain_n in_o the_o work_n of_o their_o own_o salvation_n to_o make_v all_o mean_n of_o grace_n profitable_a unto_o themselves_o shall_v certain_o thrive_v and_o increase_v in_o grace_n whereas_o the_o lazy_a soul_n under_o the_o best_a mean_n of_o grace_n that_o be_v shall_v still_o be_v like_o pharaoh_n kin●_n liane_v and_o ill-favoured_a gen._n 45.21_o we_o find_v by_o experience_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o greatness_n of_o a_o man_n live_v that_o make_v he_o rich_a but_o the_o good_a employ_v and_o careful_a husband_n of_o it_o a_o little_a ground_n if_o a_o good_a husband_n a_o careful_a and_o painful_a man_n have_v the_o occupy_v of_o it_o prove_v oftentimes_o more_o fruitful_a than_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o land_n will_v do_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o lazy_a and_o careless_a husband_n though_o it_o be_v of_o itself_o a_o better_a soil_n and_o have_v more_o help_n from_o god_n and_o nature_n than_o the_o other_o have_v pro._n 24.30_o 3●_n i_o go_v by_o the_o field_n of_o the_o slothful_a and_o by_o the_o vineyard_n of_o the_o man_n void_a of_o understanding_n and_o lo_o it_o be_v all_o grow_v over_o with_o thorn_n and_o nettle_n have_v cover_v the_o face_n thereof_o and_o the_o stone_n wall_n thereof_o be_v break_v down_o so_o it_o be_v not_o the_o greatness_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o ministry_n that_o a_o man_n live_v under_o and_o daily_o frequent_v that_o will_v make_v one_o rich_a in_o grace_n but_o the_o care_n and_o endeavour_v himself_o use_v to_o make_v it_o profitable_a to_o he_o a_o weak_a ministry_n with_o this_o care_n will_v be_v more_o available_a to_o enrich_v the_o heart_n than_o the_o strong_a can_v be_v without_o it_o as_o i_o therefore_o show_v you_o the_o last_o day_n what_o you_o must_v do_v before_o you_o come_v
of_o it_o in_o our_o heart_n deut._n 4.39_o know_v therefore_o this_o day_n say_v moses_n and_o consider_v it_o in_o thy_o heart_n david_n be_v much_o give_v to_o this_o psal._n 119.15_o i_o will_v meditate_v in_o thy_o precept_n the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v commend_v for_o this_o luk._n 2.19_o all_o the_o thing_n she_o hear_v concern_v christ_n she_o keep_v they_o and_o ponder_v they_o in_o her_o ●eart_n this_o be_v enjoin_v as_o a_o duty_n most_o necessary_a to_o this_o purpose_n esa_fw-la 46.8_o bring_v it_o again_o to_o mind_n o_o you_o transgressor_n for_o 1._o this_o will_v argue_v a_o love_n to_o that_o we_o hear_v and_o a_o delight_n in_o it_o psal._n 1.2_o his_o delight_n be_v in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o that_o law_n do_v he_o meditate_v day_n and_o night_n and_o 119.97_o o_o how_o love_v i_o thy_o law_n it_o be_v my_o meditation_n all_o the_o day_n 2._o this_o will_v great_o increase_v our_o comfort_n in_o the_o word_n and_o cause_v we_o to_o feel_v more_o sweetness_n in_o it_o as_o the_o chaw_v of_o our_o meat_n make_v we_o taste_v more_o sweetness_n in_o it_o psal._n 119.15_o 16._o i_o will_v meditate_v in_o thy_o precept_n and_o have_v respect_n unto_o thy_o way_n i_o will_v delight_v myself_o in_o thy_o statute_n 3._o this_o will_v great_o increase_v and_o confirm_v our_o knowledge_n psal._n 119.99_o i_o have_v more_o understanding_n than_o all_o my_o teacher_n for_o thy_o testimony_n be_v my_o meditation_n 4._o this_o will_v cause_v the_o word_n to_o have_v more_o power_n in_o our_o heart_n to_o draw_v we_o to_o practice_v and_o to_o nourish_v and_o increase_v the_o life_n of_o godliness_n in_o we_o as_o meat_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o good_a never_o so_o well_o dress_v nourish_v we_o not_o but_o be_v rather_o a_o burden_n then_o benefit_n unto_o we_o if_o our_o stomach_n can_v concoct_v and_o digest_v it_o so_o it_o be_v with_o the_o food_n of_o our_o soul_n josh._n 1.8_o thou_o shall_v meditate_v in_o the_o law_n day_n and_o night_n that_o thou_o may_v observe_v to_o do_v according_a to_o all_o that_o be_v write_v therein_o applic._n how_o then_o shall_v the_o word_n you_o hear_v do_v you_o good_a when_o you_o never_o think_v of_o it_o after_o you_o have_v once_o hear_v it_o it_o be_v note_v of_o the_o disciple_n that_o though_o they_o have_v see_v christ_n mighty_a power_n in_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o loaf_n yet_o their_o faith_n be_v never_o the_o strong_a but_o upon_o every_o new_a tentation_n and_o occasion_n of_o fear_n they_o be_v extreme_o trouble_v and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o mar._n 6.52_o for_o they_o consider_v not_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o loaf_n for_o their_o heart_n be_v harden_v they_o have_v see_v that_o miracle_n and_o it_o may_v be_v also_o remember_v it_o but_o they_o have_v not_o consider_v and_o meditate_a of_o it_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v never_o the_o better_a for_o it_o three_o you_o must_v confer_v of_o that_o which_o you_o have_v hear_v and_o repeat_v it_o among_o yourselves_o 1._o it_o be_v often_o speak_v of_o in_o scripture_n as_o a_o duty_n we_o owe_v to_o god_n and_o his_o word_n to_o speak_v of_o it_o unto_o other_o psal._n 119.172_o my_o tongue_n shall_v speak_v of_o thy_o word_n for_o all_o thy_o commandment_n be_v righteousness_n yea_o this_o be_v note_v as_o a_o special_a use_n we_o shall_v make_v of_o our_o read_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o word_n to_o speak_v of_o it_o unto_o other_o it_o must_v not_o be_v in_o our_o heart_n only_o but_o in_o our_o mouth_n too_o josh._n 1.8_o this_o book_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n and_o that_o which_o be_v say_v of_o the_o priest_n mal._n 2.7_o that_o his_o lip_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n be_v say_v likewise_o of_o every_o one_o that_o true_o fear_v god_n pro._n 5.2_o my_o son_n attend_v unto_o my_o wisdom_n and_o bow_v thy_o ear_n unto_o my_o understanding_n that_o thy_o lip_n may_v keep_v knowledge_n 2._o you_o that_o go_v home_o together_o from_o the_o sermon_n shall_v make_v this_o use_n of_o your_o company_n to_o confer_v together_o of_o that_o which_o you_o have_v hear_v as_o they_o do_v luk._n 24.14_o 3._o yea_o you_o shall_v all_o count_v it_o a_o benefit_n to_o have_v a_o companion_n you_o may_v confer_v with_o about_o that_o which_o you_o have_v hear_v christ_n disciple_n use_v it_o much_o when_o christ_n have_v teach_v how_o hard_o it_o be_v for_o rich_a man_n to_o be_v save_v it_o be_v say_v mar._n 10.26_o they_o be_v astonish_v out_o of_o measure_n and_o say_v among_o themselves_o who_o then_o can_v be_v save_v the_o like_v you_o shall_v find_v speak_v of_o their_o confer_v among_o themselves_o of_o another_o sermon_n of_o our_o saviour_n joh._n 16.17_o 18._o yea_o it_o be_v report_v of_o other_o of_o his_o hearer_n too_o beside_o his_o disciple_n that_o they_o do_v use_v to_o confer_v among_o themselves_o of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v teach_v joh._n 7_o 35_o 36._o 4._o but_o chief_o this_o be_v require_v of_o you_o that_o have_v family_n that_o you_o repeat_v unto_o they_o examine_v they_o confer_v with_o they_o about_o that_o which_o they_o have_v hear_v for_o this_o we_o have_v a_o plain_a commandment_n deut._n 11.18_o 19_o you_o shall_v lay_v up_o these_o my_o word_n in_o your_o heart-and_a you_o shall_v teach_v they_o your_o child_n speak_v of_o they_o when_o thou_o sit_v in_o thy_o house_n etc._n etc._n yea_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o chief_a thing_n that_o the_o lord_n have_v respect_n unto_o in_o give_v we_o his_o word_n and_o vouchsafe_v to_o we_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o that_o we_o may_v instruct_v our_o family_n in_o it_o deut._n 4.10_o gather_v i_o the_o people_n together_o and_o i_o will_v make_v they_o to_o ●eare_z my_o word_n that_o they_o may_v learn_v to_o fear_v i_o and_o that_o they_o may_v teach_v their_o child_n according_a to_o that_o proverb_n mat._n 5.15_o man_n do_v not_o light_v a_o candle_n to_o put_v it_o under_o a_o bushel_n but_o on_o a_o candlestick_a and_o it_o give_v light_a to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o house_n for_o this_o we_o have_v a_o example_n which_o above_o all_o other_o we_o shall_v desire_v to_o follow_v even_o the_o practice_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n himself_o who_o though_o he_o spend_v himself_o so_o much_o in_o his_o public_a labour_n yet_o do_v use_v to_o confer_v with_o his_o family_n of_o the_o sermon_n he_o have_v make_v to_o examine_v they_o and_o make_v all_o thing_n plain_a to_o they_o mat._n 13.51_o have_v you_o understand_v all_o these_o thing_n and_o mar._n 4.34_o when_o they_o be_v alone_o he_o expound_v all_o thing_n to_o his_o disciple_n this_o repeat_v and_o confer_v of_o that_o we_o have_v hear_v will_v certain_o great_o further_a our_o profit_v by_o the_o word_n in_o this_o that_o proverb_n will_v be_v find_v true_a as_o much_o as_o in_o any_o other_o thing_n eccl._n 4.9_o two_o be_v better_o than_o one_o we_o may_v all_o in_o this_o kind_n receive_v help_v one_o from_o another_o even_o he_o that_o be_v strong_a in_o knowledge_n and_o grace_n from_o another_o that_o be_v weak_a than_o himself_o be_v yea_o god_n be_v so_o please_v with_o it_o that_o a_o blessing_n may_v be_v expect_v from_o god_n in_o the_o use_n of_o it_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o two_o disciple_n that_o go_v towards_o emmaus_n luke_n 24._o ●5_n that_o wh●le_n they_o commune_v together_o and_o reason_v jesus_n himself_o draw_v near_o and_o go_v with_o they_o and_o again_o that_o when_o they_o go_v to_o relate_v to_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o have_v see_v he_o and_o what_o he_o have_v say_v to_o they_o and_o the_o apostle_n and_o they_o be_v confer_v of_o this_o matter_n it_o be_v say_v luk._n 24.36_o that_o as_o they_o speak_v jesus_n himself_o stand_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o four_o special_a benefit_n certain_o you_o may_v reap_v by_o it_o first_o it_o will_v make_v your_o child_n and_o servant_n to_o mark_v better_a than_o they_o do_v what_o they_o hear_v if_o they_o know_v they_o shall_v be_v examine_v when_o they_o come_v home_o the_o disciple_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v so_o diligent_a and_o watchful_a in_o hear_v that_o he_o commend_v they_o for_o it_o mat._n ●3_n 16_o bless_a be_v your_o ear_n for_o they_o hear_v and_o what_o make_v they_o so_o attentive_a sure_o this_o be_v one_o cause_n that_o they_o know_v their_o master_n be_v wont_a to_o examine_v they_o as_o you_o hear_v mat._n 13._o ●1_n second_o it_o will_v much_o help_v and_o confirm_v both_o your_o family_n and_o yourselves_o also_o in_o the_o understanding_n and_o believe_v of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v teach_v you_o if_o you_o will_v thus_o repeat_v
it_o and_o confer_v of_o it_o and_o examine_v the_o proof_n that_o have_v be_v deliver_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o it_o see_v a_o notable_a example_n of_o this_o in_o those_o noble_a and_o worthy_a christian_n of_o berea_n act_v 17_o 11_o 12._o they_o receive_v the_o word_n with_o all_o readiness_n of_o mind_n and_o search_v the_o scripture_n daily_o whether_o those_o thing_n be_v so_o therefore_o many_o of_o they_o believe_v you_o will_v believe_v and_o be_v better_o establish_v and_o settle_v in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o persuasion_n of_o that_o which_o we_o teach_v you_o you_o will_v receive_v and_o embrace_v it_o with_o more_o readiness_n of_o mind_n than_o you_o do_v if_o you_o will_v take_v pain_n to_o examine_v how_o it_o be_v prove_v and_o confirm_v and_o ground_v upon_o the_o scripture_n three_o it_o will_v much_o help_v your_o memory_n and_o make_v you_o better_a able_a to_o retain_v that_o which_o you_o hear_v if_o you_o will_v thus_o repeat_v it_o in_o your_o family_n deut._n 4.9_o take_v heed_n to_o thyself_o and_o keep_v thy_o soul_n diligent_o lest_o thou_o forget_v but_o teach_v they_o thy_o son_n and_o thy_o son_n son_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o be_v a_o excellent_a mean_a to_o keep_v thou_o from_o forget_v they_o four_o it_o will_v also_o much_o help_v you_o in_o your_o affection_n and_o work_v in_o you_o a_o feel_n of_o that_o which_o you_o have_v hear_v if_o you_o will_v thus_o confer_v of_o it_o afterward_o it_o will_v cause_v the_o word_n to_o be_v sweet_a to_o to_o you_o and_o to_o have_v more_o life_n and_o power_n in_o your_o soul_n this_o you_o shall_v find_v in_o that_o charge_n god_n give_v to_o his_o people_n deut._n 6.6_o 7._o these_o word_n that_o i_o command_v thou_o this_o day_n shall_v be_v in_o thy_o heart_n and_o thou_o shall_v teach_v they_o diligent_o to_o thy_o child_n and_o shall_v talk_v of_o they_o when_o thou_o sit_v in_o thy_o house_n but_o that_o which_o you_o read_v in_o your_o book_n thou_o shall_v teach_v they_o diligent_o unto_o thy_o child_n the_o margin_n of_o your_o bibles_n say_v be_v read_v thus_o in_o the_o hebrew_n thou_o shall_v whet_v or_o sharpen_v they_o upon_o thy_o child_n note_v that_o this_o repeat_n and_o confer_v with_o our_o family_n of_o the_o word_n will_v whet_v and_o sharpen_v it_o and_o make_v it_o fit_a to_o work_v upon_o our_o heart_n i_o think_v it_o meet_v say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o pet._n 1.13_o to_o stir_v you_o up_o by_o put_v you_o in_o remembrance_n this_o bring_v the_o word_n to_o remembrance_n again_o be_v a_o mean_a to_o stir_v up_o our_o affection_n unto_o it_o applic._n i_o pray_v you_o therefore_o take_v notice_n of_o your_o great_a sin_n in_o this_o as_o another_o chief_a cause_n why_o you_o profit_v no_o more_o by_o your_o hear_n 1._o few_o can_v be_v find_v that_o have_v any_o heart_n to_o speak_v of_o that_o which_o they_o have_v hear_v let_v we_o hear_v any_o news_n let_v a_o tale_n be_v tell_v we_o though_o it_o be_v of_o matter_n that_o be_v of_o no_o moment_n that_o nothing_o concern_v we_o we_o can_v hold_v but_o the_o next_o we_o meet_v with_o we_o must_v needs_o utter_v it_o unto_o only_o that_o that_o we_o hear_v at_o a_o sermon_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o profitable_a though_o at_o the_o hear_n of_o it_o we_o seem_v to_o be_v much_o affect_v with_o it_o yet_o have_v we_o no_o mind_n to_o speak_v of_o it_o again_o sure_o we_o have_v all_o great_a cause_n to_o be_v humble_v for_o this_o corruption_n and_o to_o strive_v against_o it_o for_o 1_o this_o argue_v god_n word_n be_v not_o in_o our_o heart_n psal._n 37.30_o 31._o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o righteous_a speak_v wisdom_n and_o his_o tongue_n talk_v of_o judgement_n for_o the_o law_n of_o his_o god_n be_v in_o his_o heart_n 2._o this_o silence_n of_o we_o proceed_v from_o this_o that_o we_o be_v ashamed_a to_o speak_v of_o god_n word_n jer._n 6.10_o behold_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v unto_o they_o a_o reproach_n and_o o_o how_o great_a a_o sin_n be_v that_o david_n be_v of_o another_o mind_n ps._n 119.46_o i_o will_v speak_v of_o thy_o testimony_n before_o king_n and_o will_v not_o be_v ashamed_a 2._o for_o repeat_v of_o sermon_n in_o your_o family_n it_o be_v general_o neglect_v you_o be_v all_o in_o your_o family_n like_o martha_n to_o who_o our_o saviour_n say_v luk._n 10.41_o 42._o martha_n martha_n thou_o be_v careful_a and_o be_v trouble_v about_o many_o thing_n but_o one_o thing_n be_v needful_a you_o can_v spare_v no_o time_n for_o that_o one_o thing_n no_o not_o one_o hour_n of_o a_o week_n in_o these_o long_a winter_n night_n no_o not_o on_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o what_o hope_n be_v there_o that_o our_o labour_n here_o in_o the_o church_n shall_v do_v you_o any_o good_a when_o you_o will_v do_v nothing_o at_o home_n which_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v you_o have_v as_o express_v a_o commandment_n for_o as_o we_o have_v for_o the_o pain_n we_o take_v here_o at_o church_n or_o what_o comfort_n can_v you_o have_v in_o your_o profession_n of_o religion_n that_o have_v so_o little_a care_n of_o your_o family_n whereas_o the_o christian_n that_o god_n spirit_n give_v testimony_n unto_o in_o his_o word_n be_v ever_o describe_v thus_o joh._n 4.53_o himself_o believe_v and_o his_o whole_a house_n act_n 10.2_o one_o that_o fear_v god_n and_o all_o his_o house_n a_o four_o thing_n you_o ought_v to_o do_v after_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n be_v this_o that_o if_o you_o doubt_v of_o any_o thing_n you_o have_v hear_v and_o can_v by_o your_o private_a meditation_n and_o conference_n resolve_v yourselves_o in_o it_o you_o shall_v resort_v to_o the_o minister_n and_o seek_v resolution_n from_o he_o we_o shall_v use_v more_o to_o move_v question_n about_o that_o we_o read_v the_o noble_a eunuch_n when_o he_o can_v not_o understand_v what_o he_o read_v and_o god_n have_v give_v he_o the_o opportunity_n of_o a_o minister_n he_o make_v this_o use_n of_o he_o act_v 8.34_o i_o pray_v thou_o say_v he_o of_o who_o speak_v the_o prophet_n this_o of_o himself_o or_o of_o some_o other_o man_n but_o special_o we_o shall_v do_v so_o when_o we_o doubt_v of_o and_o can_v tell_v how_o to_o understand_v what_o we_o have_v hear_v in_o a_o sermon_n so_o do_v our_o saviour_n best_a hearer_n use_v to_o do_v mat._n 13.36_o his_o disciple_n come_v to_o he_o say_v declare_v to_o we_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o field_n so_o do_v they_o again_o mar._n 7.17_o so_o do_v they_o also_o at_o sundry_a other_o time_n come_v unto_o he_o to_o be_v resolve_v in_o their_o doubt_n that_o rise_v in_o their_o mind_n at_o the_o hear_n of_o he_o mat._n 17.10_o and_o 19.10_o for_o mal._n ●_o 7_o as_o the_o priest_n lip_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n so_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o their_o doubt_n shall_v seek_v the_o law_n at_o his_o mouth_n for_o he_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n this_o duty_n also_o the_o hearer_n of_o the_o word_n do_v much_o neglect_v applic._n 1._o sometime_o indeed_o through_o the_o fault_n of_o some_o minister_n who_o count_v it_o a_o great_a indignity_n and_o take_v it_o in_o foul_a scorn_n that_o their_o hearer_n shall_v make_v a_o question_n of_o any_o thing_n they_o teach_v and_o not_o count_v every_o thing_n a_o oracle_n that_o come_v out_o of_o their_o mouth_n but_o such_o minister_n shall_v hearken_v to_o that_o which_o christ_n say_v matth._n 11.29_o learn_v of_o i_o for_o i_o be_o meek_a and_o lowly_a in_o heart_n he_o always_o show_v himself_o most_o ready_a to_o declare_v the_o meaning_n of_o any_o thing_n he_o teach_v to_o they_o that_o do_v demand_v it_o and_o to_o resolve_v they_o in_o any_o doubt_n that_o do_v rise_v in_o their_o mind_n from_o his_o doctrine_n yea_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o offer_v himself_o unto_o they_o this_o way_n and_o to_o prevent_v they_o when_o he_o see_v they_o purpose_v to_o ask_v he_o such_o question_n as_o joh._n 16.19_o jesus_n know_v that_o they_o be_v desirous_a to_o ask_v he_o and_o say_v unto_o they_o do_v you_o inquire_v among_o yourselves_o of_o that_o i_o say_v and_o thereupon_o he_o take_v occasion_n to_o satisfy_v they_o full_o in_o that_o they_o doubt_v of_o but_o 2._o the_o neglect_n of_o this_o duty_n proceed_v principal_o from_o the_o people_n themselves_o who_o as_o they_o be_v apt_a oft_o time_n to_o mistake_v and_o misunderstand_v the_o preacher_n so_o be_v they_o as_o ready_a to_o go_v away_o with_o it_o and_o slanderous_o to_o report_v most_o absurd_a and_o improbable_a thing_n which_o they_o conceive_v he_o do_v teach_v and_o all_o because_o they_o will_v not_o vouchsafe_v to_o come_v to_o the_o minister_n himself_o
that_o knock_v it_o shall_v be_v open_v but_o he_o be_v never_o so_o ready_a to_o be_v find_v of_o they_o in_o prayer_n as_o then_o when_o they_o be_v in_o great_a distress_n psal._n 46.1_o god_n be_v our_o refuge_n and_o strength_n a_o very_a present_a help_n in_o trouble_n yet_o he_o have_v promise_v psal._n 50.15_o call_v upon_o i_o in_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_n any_o trouble_n whatsoever_o and_o i_o will_v deliver_v thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v glorify_v i_o and_o no_o marvel_n for_o 1._o the_o lord_n bear_v to_o his_o people_n the_o affection_n of_o a_o father_n psal._n 103.13_o like_a as_o a_o father_n pity_v his_o child_n so_o the_o lord_n pity_v they_o that_o fear_v he_o and_o what_o father_n be_v there_o that_o show_v not_o most_o love_n to_o his_o child_n and_o readiness_n to_o help_v he_o when_o he_o be_v in_o great_a misery_n 2._o god_n people_n be_v then_o most_o humble_v and_o think_v most_o base_o of_o themselves_o and_o that_o be_v a_o great_a furtherance_n to_o the_o success_n of_o their_o prayer_n 1._o p●t_fw-la 5.5_o god_n resist_v the_o proud_a and_o give_v grace_n to_o the_o humble_a 2._o chron._n 7.14_o if_o my_o people_n shall_v humble_v themselves_o and_o pray_v then_o will_v i_o hear_v from_o heaven_n 3._o then_o god_n people_n use_v to_o pray_v hearty_o and_o fervent_o 2._o sam._n 22.7_o in_o my_o distress_n i_o call_v upon_o the_o lord_n and_o cry_v unto_o my_o god_n and_o he_o do_v hear_v my_o voice_n so_o say_v anna_n of_o her_o prayer_n 1_o sam._n 1.15_o i_o be_o a_o woman_n of_o a_o sorrowful_a spirit_n and_o have_v pour_v out_o my_o soul_n before_o the_o lord_n and_o this_o god_n great_o delight_v in_o jam._n 5.16_o the_o effectual_a fervent_a prayer_n of_o a_o righteous_a man_n avail_v much_o and_o this_o readiness_n they_o know_v to_o be_v in_o the_o lord_n to_o hear_v their_o prayer_n at_o such_o a_o time_n special_o have_v be_v the_o chief_a thing_n that_o have_v encourage_v they_o to_o seek_v to_o he_o in_o their_o distress_n psal._n 65.2_o o_o thou_o that_o hear_v prayer_n unto_o thou_o shall_v all_o flesh_n come_v and_o 86.7_o in_o the_o day_n of_o my_o trouble_n will_v i_o call_v upon_o thou_o for_o thou_o will_v answer_v i_o this_o doctrine_n concern_v every_o one_o of_o we_o use_v for_o there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o you_o that_o hear_v i_o this_o day_n but_o you_o be_v in_o some_o distress_n or_o other_o or_o have_v be_v or_o at_o least_o may_v be_v and_o it_o serve_v first_o for_o reproof_n for_o the_o wickedness_n and_o atheism_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v in_o no_o nothing_o more_o discover_v then_o in_o this_o that_o in_o our_o distress_n we_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o seek_v to_o god_n hos._n 7.14_o they_o have_v not_o cry_v to_o i_o with_o their_o heart_n when_o they_o bowl_v upon_o their_o bed_n three_o sort_n chief_o be_v to_o be_v reprove_v by_o this_o doctrine_n first_o such_o as_o so_o long_o as_o they_o can_v think_v of_o any_o mean_n to_o help_v themselves_o by_o in_o their_o distress_n they_o will_v never_o seek_v to_o god_n like_a to_o the_o prodigal_n who_o while_o he_o have_v any_o mean_n though_o it_o be_v but_o by_o tend_v of_o swine_n and_o feed_v with_o they_o he_o never_o think_v of_o seek_v to_o his_o father_n luk_n 15.16_o 17_o this_o be_v asaes_n foul_a sin_n 2._o chron._n 16.12_o when_o his_o disease_n be_v exceed_v grievous_a yet_o he_o seek_v not_o to_o the_o lord_n but_o to_o the_o physician_n whereas_o alas_o no_o sound_a comfort_n can_v be_v find_v in_o any_o mean_n till_o we_o have_v first_o seek_v to_o god_n and_o appease_v his_o anger_n if_o god_n will_v not_o withdraw_v his_o anger_n say_v job._n 9.13_o the_o proud_a helper_n do_v stoop_v under_o he_o all_o mean_n man_n seek_v to_o may_v say_v as_o that_o counterfeit_a samuel_n indeed_o the_o devil_n who_o the_o witch_n that_o saul_n seek_v to_o for_o comfort_n in_o his_o distress_n as_o too_o many_o wretch_n do_v in_o these_o day_n raise_v up_o do_v say_v unto_o he_o 1._o sam._n 28.16_o wherefore_o do_v thou_o ask_v of_o i_o or_o seek_v help_v of_o i_o see_v the_o lord_n be_v become_v thin●_n enemy_n second_o such_o as_o be_v most_o destitute_a of_o all_o mean_n to_o help_v themselves_o in_o their_o distress_n yet_o never_o seek_v to_o god_n poverty_n and_o want_v of_o all_o humane_a help_n shall_v drive_v man_n to_o god_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o seek_v help_n and_o comfort_n from_o he_o and_o to_o give_v themselves_o much_o to_o prayer_n thus_o it_o wrought_v with_o david_n psal._n 142.4_o 5._o i_o look_v on_o my_o right_a hand_n and_o behold_v but_o there_o be_v none_o that_o will_v know_v i_o refuge_n fail_v i_o no_o man_n care_v for_o my_o soul_n i_o cry_v unto_o thou_o o_o lord_n and_o say_v thou_o be_v my_o refuge_n and_o my_o portion_n so_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n 5.5_o she_o that_o be_v a_o widow_n indeed_o and_o desolate_a trust_v in_o god_n and_o continue_v in_o supplication_n and_o prayer_n night_n and_o day_n but_o alas_o we_o find_v that_o no_o people_n under_o the_o heaven_n pray_v less_o seek_v less_o to_o god_n care_v less_o for_o god_n than_o the_o poor_a and_o miserable_a people_n do_v miserable_a indeed_o in_o this_o respect_n more_o than_o for_o any_o outward_a want_n that_o they_o do_v endure_v they_o cry_v out_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o mighty_a say_v elihu_n job_n 35.9.10_o but_o none_o say_v where_o be_v god_n my_o maker_n that_o give_v song_n in_o the_o night_n three_o such_o as_o when_o god_n have_v begin_v to_o soften_v their_o heart_n and_o trouble_v their_o conscience_n for_o sin_n as_o he_o do_v david_n at_o this_o time_n do_v not_o as_o david_n do_v here_o seek_v to_o god_n for_o help_n and_o comfort_n but_o 1._o either_o seek_v to_o hide_v themselves_o and_o fly_v from_o god_n by_o keep_v themselves_o careful_o from_o all_o such_o mean_n as_o may_v touch_v upon_o that_o sore_a as_o adam_n do_v gen._n 3.8_o or_o 2._o betake_v themselves_o to_o mirth_n and_o all_o such_o mean_n as_o may_v lull_v they_o asleep_a and_o cause_v they_o to_o forget_v their_o sin_n and_o god_n anger_n and_o make_v they_o senseless_a of_o those_o inward_a gripe_n and_o sting_n as_o saul_n do_v and_o find_v ease_n by_o it_o for_o a_o short_a time_n 1._o sam._n ●6_n 23_o but_o alas_o his_o fit_n and_o terror_n return_v and_o become_v the_o more_o extreme_a &_o violent_a afterward_o as_o you_o may_v see_v 1._o sam._n 18.10_o 11._o or_o else_o 3._o fall_n into_o utter_a desperation_n of_o god_n mercy_n as_o judas_n do_v who_o when_o his_o conscience_n be_v deep_o wound_v with_o sense_n of_o sin_n can_v go_v to_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n and_o confess_v his_o sin_n to_o they_o but_o can_v not_o go_v to_o christ_n himself_o to_o seek_v mercy_n of_o he_o matth._n 27.3_o lecture_n xi_o on_o psalm_n 51.1_o 2._o janu._n 3._o 1625._o 2._o the_o second_o use_n now_o follow_v which_o be_v for_o exhortation_n to_o stir_v we_o up_o in_o all_o our_o distress_n to_o seek_v for_o help_n and_o comfort_n from_o god_n by_o prayer_n it_o be_v the_o apostle_n exhortation_n james_n 5.13_o be_v any_o man_n afflict_v let_v he_o pray_v we_o all_o have_v need_n of_o this_o exhortation_n for_o as_o we_o hear_v the_o last_o day_n there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o we_o here_o but_o either_o we_o be_v or_o have_v be_v or_o may_v be_v in_o that_o distress_n either_o through_o outward_a or_o inward_a affliction_n and_o anguish_n that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o cry_v with_o jehoshaphat_n 2._o chron._n 20.12_o we_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v o_o that_o we_o can_v be_v persuade_v when_o we_o be_v in_o that_o case_n though_o not_o then_o only_o to_o fly_v unto_o god_n one_o will_v think_v there_o need_v no_o motive_n to_o be_v use_v to_o persuade_v we_o to_o this_o what_o need_v any_o man_n persuade_v a_o poor_a wretch_n that_o have_v not_o bread_n at_o home_n to_o seek_v abroad_o for_o relief_n be_v he_o never_o so_o bashful_a his_o necessity_n will_v persuade_v he_o to_o it_o sufficient_o the_o poor_a speak_v supplication_n say_v solomon_n prov._n 18.23_o you_o shall_v hear_v nothing_o from_o he_o but_o bewail_v his_o want_n and_o humble_a entreaty_n and_o supplication_n for_o help_n and_o relief_n to_o such_o as_o be_v able_a to_o do_v he_o good_a but_o alas_o our_o heart_n be_v so_o estrange_v from_o god_n even_o from_o the_o very_a womb_n as_o david_n speak_v psal._n 58.3_o that_o no_o necessity_n no_o extremity_n will_v drive_v we_o to_o go_v a_o beg_n to_o he_o we_o have_v need_n of_o strong_a motive_n to_o drive_v we_o to_o it_o think_v therefore_o serious_o of_o the_o four_o reason_n
unto_o the_o lord_n and_o thy_o thought_n shall_v be_v establish_v 3._o they_o that_o pray_v not_o though_o they_o may_v be_v never_o so_o sure_a of_o these_o temporal_a blessing_n yet_o have_v they_o no_o just_a cause_n of_o comfort_n in_o they_o for_o they_o have_v they_o not_o with_o the_o blessing_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n 1._o they_o come_v not_o right_o by_o they_o but_o like_o robber_n break_v into_o god_n storehouse_n and_o steal_v away_o his_o good_n the_o rich_a man_n that_o be_v be_v bind_v to_o seek_v even_o his_o bread_n of_o god_n every_o day_n matth._n 6.11_o give_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n he_o have_v no_o comfortable_a title_n to_o his_o food_n to_o his_o wealth_n that_o do_v it_o not_o but_o be_v in_o god_n account_n a_o spiritual_a usurper_n and_o thief_n 2._o beside_o he_o can_v have_v no_o comfort_n in_o that_o he_o have_v because_o it_o be_v not_o sanctify_v unto_o he_o it_o shall_v do_v he_o no_o good_a it_o shall_v do_v he_o much_o hurt_v rather_o a_o man_n may_v have_v these_o outward_a thing_n without_o god_n blessing_n hos._n 13.11_o i_o give_v thou_o a_o king_n in_o my_o anger_n and_o then_o they_o will_v be_v his_o bane_n it_o have_v be_v much_o better_a for_o he_o to_o have_v be_v without_o they_o be_v not_o goliahs_n strength_n 1_o sam._n 17.9_o ahitophels_n wisdom_n 2_o sam._n 17.23_o and_o herod_n eloquence_n act._n 12.23_o so_o and_o yet_o all_o excellent_a gift_n of_o god_n but_o they_o have_v they_o not_o with_o his_o blessing_n they_o be_v not_o sanctify_v unto_o they_o o_o that_o we_o have_v not_o too_o much_o experience_n of_o this_o daily_a in_o many_o that_o man_n may_v have_v abundance_n of_o these_o earthly_a blessing_n from_o god_n and_o have_v they_o with_o his_o curse_n as_o if_o god_n shall_v have_v say_v as_o pro._n 1.32_o the_o prosperity_n of_o fool_n shall_v destroy_v they_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o that_o pray_v have_v just_a cause_n of_o comfort_n in_o these_o outward_a thing_n be_v it_o little_a or_o much_o that_o they_o enjoy_v for_o 1._o they_o have_v a_o bless_a title_n to_o that_o they_o have_v they_o come_v honest_o by_o it_o it_o be_v their_o own_o they_o break_v not_o into_o god_n treasury_n but_o by_o the_o key_n that_o god_n give_v they_o they_o open_v the_o door_n and_o hold_v they_o by_o his_o gift_n 1_o cor._n 3.22_o all_o thing_n be_v you_o 2._o that_o that_o they_o have_v be_v bless_v and_o sanctify_v unto_o they_o 1_o tim._n 4.4_o 5._o every_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v good_a to_o they_o that_o believe_v and_o know_v the_o truth_n for_o it_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o prayer_n and_o thus_o have_v i_o answer_v the_o first_o reason_n now_o to_o the_o second_o reason_n 2_o that_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o pray_v because_o the_o good_a success_n of_o all_o thing_n depend_v upon_o and_o be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v not_o to_o prayer_n but_o to_o second_o cause_n and_o mean_v god_n use_v to_o work_v by_o and_o unto_o the_o reason_n will_n and_o endeavour_v of_o man_n the_o lord_n say_v they_o have_v set_v a_o constant_a course_n in_o nature_n and_o give_v a_o natural_a force_n to_o sundry_a mean_n and_o second_o cause_n to_o do_v we_o good_a there_o be_v a_o covenant_n of_o god_n for_o the_o day_n and_o night_n mention_v jer._n 33.20_o that_o they_o shall_v continue_v their_o course_n which_o can_v fail_v so_o be_v therefore_o other_o ordinary_a mean_n god_n have_v give_v a_o natural_a force_n to_o our_o meat_n to_o nourish_v we_o and_o to_o our_o clothes_n to_o keep_v we_o warm_v a_o good_a diet_n a_o good_a air_n and_o exercise_n we_o see_v will_v keep_v man_n in_o health_n though_o they_o never_o pray_v and_o as_o for_o wealth_n if_o man_n take_v pain_n in_o their_o call_n and_o have_v also_o wisdom_n to_o order_v their_o affair_n there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o a_o hundred_o but_o they_o prosper_v well_o enough_o in_o all_o labour_n say_v solomon_n pro._n 14.23_o there_o be_v profit_n and_o pro._n 16.20_o he_o that_o handle_v a_o matter_n wise_o shall_v find_v good_a shall_v we_o think_v say_v some_o that_o the_o fast_n that_o be_v keep_v so_o long_o and_o the_o prayer_n that_o be_v make_v be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o plague_n cease_v no_o no_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a cause_n say_v they_o to_o be_v give_v of_o it_o till_o the_o air_n be_v purge_v by_o the_o coldness_n of_o the_o season_n all_o your_o fast_n and_o pray_v can_v do_v no_o good_a this_o reason_n and_o persuasion_n of_o the_o sufficiency_n that_o be_v in_o the_o mean_n and_o in_o our_o own_o endeavour_n have_v in_o all_o age_n marvellous_o prevail_v to_o draw_v man_n from_o depend_v upon_o god_n and_o seek_v unto_o he_o for_o help_v and_o comfort_n by_o prayer_n and_o do_v certain_o at_o this_o day_n and_o that_o not_o only_o with_o such_o as_o have_v be_v infidel_n and_o open_o wicked_a by_o the_o strength_n of_o my_o hand_n have_v i_o do_v it_o say_v the_o king_n of_o assyria_n esa._n 10.13_o and_o by_o my_o wisdom_n for_o i_o be_o prudent_a and_o habac._n 1.16_o they_o sacrifice_n to_o their_o net_n and_o burn_v incense_n to_o their_o drag_v because_o by_o they_o their_o portion_n be_v fat_a and_o their_o meat_n plenteous_a but_o even_o such_o as_o have_v live_v in_o god_n church_n as_o we_o may_v see_v at_o large_a isaiah_n 22.8_o 11_o yea_o god_n own_o dear_a child_n have_v receive_v much_o hurt_v by_o it_o as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o asa._n 2._o chron._n 16.12_o in_o his_o disease_n he_o seek_v not_o to_o the_o lord_n but_o to_o the_o physician_n answ._n for_o answer_v therefore_o unto_o it_o some_o thing_n be_v first_o of_o all_o to_o be_v grant_v that_o be_v 1._o that_o god_n use_v not_o to_o help_v man_n without_o mean_n as_o josh._n 5.12_o he_o feed_v they_o no_o long_o with_o manna_n from_o heaven_n when_o they_o come_v to_o canaan_n where_o they_o may_v get_v corn_n so_o when_o god_n will_v deliver_v peter_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o herod_n he_o cause_v the_o iron_n gate_n that_o lead_v unto_o the_o city_n to_o open_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n and_o so_o he_o go_v out_o act_v 12.10_o 2._o that_o god_n do_v usual_o work_v with_o and_o bless_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n act_n 9.19_o when_o paul_n have_v receive_v meat_n he_o be_v strengthen_v and_o so_o be_v the_o place_n to_o be_v understand_v prov._n 14.23_o in_o all_o labour_n there_o be_v profit_n and_o 16_o 20._o he_o that_o handle_v a_o matter_n wise_o shall_v find_v good_a 3._o that_o it_o be_v folly_n and_o sin_n for_o we_o to_o expect_v that_o god_n shall_v help_v we_o when_o we_o neglect_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n matth._n 4.7_o thou_o shall_v not_o tempt_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n exod._n 14_o 15._o the_o lord_n say_v to_o moses_n why_o cry_v thou_o to_o i_o speak_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n that_o they_o go_v forward_o he_o blame_v he_o for_o rest_v upon_o prayer_n with_o the_o neglect_n of_o the_o mean_n god_n blessing_n may_v be_v confident_o expect_v upon_o our_o endeavour_n in_o the_o use_n of_o lawful_a mean_n 1._o chr._n 22.16_o arise_v and_o be_v do_v say_v david_n to_o his_o son_n and_o the_o lord_n will_v be_v with_o thou_o but_o all_o this_o be_v no_o sufficient_a cause_n to_o keep_v we_o from_o prayer_n for_o 1._o god_n be_v the_o author_n and_o giver_n of_o all_o mean_n when_o he_o intend_v to_o help_v we_o and_o do_v we_o good_a he_o will_v give_v we_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n to_o receive_v good_a by_o when_o he_o intend_v the_o contrary_a he_o will_v withhold_v the_o mean_n job_n 38.28_o 29._o have_v the_o rain_n a_o father_n or_o who_o have_v beget_v the_o drop_n of_o the_o dew_n out_o of_o who_o womb_n come_v the_o ice_n and_o the_o hoary_a frost_n who_o have_v gender_v it_o and_o psal._n 104.3_o he_o walk_v upon_o the_o wing_n of_o the_o wind_n it_o be_v he_o only_o that_o send_v that_o goodly_a season_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o winter_n which_o these_o man_n say_v be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o plague_n cease_v 2._o the_o virtue_n that_o be_v in_o any_o mean_n to_o do_v we_o good_a come_v whole_o from_o god_n he_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o nature_n though_o he_o have_v give_v to_o man_n the_o faculty_n of_o reason_n and_o freedom_n of_o will_n in_o civil_a and_o moral_a action_n and_o to_o our_o food_n and_o other_o creature_n a_o natural_a virtue_n to_o do_v we_o good_a yet_o that_o we_o be_v able_a to_o use_v this_o faculty_n that_o we_o have_v or_o the_o creature_n to_o put_v forth_o that_o virtue_n that_o be_v in_o it_o to_o the_o good_a of_o man_n come_v whole_o of_o god_n he_o keep_v the_o reins_n
by_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n to_o do_v it_o for_o they_o yea_o this_o be_v make_v a_o certain_a sign_n god_n have_v determine_v to_o do_v we_o some_o great_a good_a when_o he_o stir_v up_o our_o heart_n to_o be_v earnest_a with_o he_o in_o prayer_n jer._n 31.9_o they_o shall_v come_v with_o weep_v and_o with_o supplication_n will_v i_o lead_v they_o and_o 29.12_o 13._o then_o shall_v you_o call_v upon_o i_o and_o you_o shall_v go_v and_o pray_v unto_o i_o and_o i_o will_v hearken_v unto_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v seek_v i_o and_o find_v i_o when_o you_o shall_v search_v for_o i_o with_o all_o your_o heart_n how_o earnest_n be_v daniel_n with_o god_n in_o prayer_n for_o this_o immediate_o before_o the_o return_n from_o the_o captivity_n dan._n 9_o three_o this_o do_v nothing_o derogate_v from_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n goodness_n and_o graciousnesse_n that_o he_o will_v not_o do_v we_o good_a till_o we_o seek_v to_o he_o for_o it_o by_o prayer_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o these_o three_o thing_n 1._o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a demonstration_n of_o his_o goodness_n that_o he_o will_v give_v we_o all_o good_a thing_n upon_o our_o ask_n when_o he_o say_v to_o we_o matth._n 7.7_o ask_v and_o have_v deut_n 4_o 7._o what_o nation_n be_v so_o great_a who_o have_v god_n so_o nigh_o unto_o they_o as_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v in_o all_o thing_n that_o we_o call_v upon_o he_o for_o esa._n 30.19_o he_o will_v be_v very_o gracious_a unto_o thou_o at_o the_o voice_n of_o thy_o cry_n when_o he_o shall_v hear_v it_o he_o will_v answer_v thou_o 2._o it_o be_v he_o alone_o that_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o pray_v to_o that_o end_n that_o he_o may_v do_v we_o good_a psal._n 1●_n 17_o thou_o will_v prepare_v their_o heart_n thou_o will_v cause_v thy_o ear_n to_o hear_v 3._o the_o reason_n why_o he_o will_v have_v we_o pray_v first_o before_o he_o give_v argue_v his_o exceed_a love_n to_o we_o for_o it_o be_v 1._o out_o of_o the_o delight_n he_o have_v to_o hear_v this_o work_n of_o his_o own_o spirit_n in_o we_o which_o make_v we_o thus_o to_o speak_v and_o cry_v unto_o he_o cant._n 2.14_o let_v i_o hear_v thy_o voice_n for_o it_o be_v sweet_a even_o you_o that_o be_v parent_n delight_n much_o to_o hear_v your_o little_a one_o speak_v but_o nothing_o so_o much_o as_o god_n do_v to_o hear_v his_o child_n 2._o because_o he_o know_v his_o blessing_n will_v be_v sweet_a to_o we_o when_o we_o have_v get_v they_o by_o prayer_n so_o we_o see_v how_o david_n joy_v in_o the_o deliverance_n and_o favour_n he_o have_v receive_v because_o he_o have_v obtain_v they_o by_o prayer_n psal._n 30.1_o 2._o i_o will_v extell_v thou_o o_o lord_n for_o thou_o have_v lift_v i_o up_o etc._n etc._n o_o lord_n my_o god_n i_o cry_v unto_o thou_o and_o thou_o have_v heal_v i_o and_o 116.1_o 2._o i_o love_v the_o lord_n because_o he_o have_v hear_v my_o voice_n and_o my_o supplication_n because_o he_o have_v incline_v his_o ear_n unto_o i_o therefore_o will_v i_o call_v upon_o he_o as_o long_o as_o i_o live_v 4_o the_o four_o &_o last_o reason_n whereby_o satan_n labour_v to_o persuade_v man_n that_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o pray_v be_v from_o the_o experience_n themselves_o have_v have_v of_o the_o fruitlessness_n of_o their_o own_o prayer_n that_o themselves_o have_v long_o use_v to_o pray_v and_o have_v find_v no_o comfort_n no_o benefit_n by_o it_o this_o reason_n have_v great_o prevail_v with_o wicked_a man_n they_o can_v abide_v to_o attend_v long_o upon_o god_n but_o though_o their_o prayer_n be_v indeed_o nothing_o worth_a yet_o be_v they_o apt_a to_o quarrel_v with_o god_n if_o they_o have_v not_o a_o present_a answer_n as_o esa._n 58.3_o wherefore_o have_v we_o fast_v say_v they_o and_o thou_o see_v it_o not_o wherefore_o have_v we_o afflict_v our_o soul_n and_o thou_o take_v no_o knowledge_n of_o it_o and_o thereupon_o they_o resolve_v to_o leave_v pray_v malac._n 3.14_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o serve_v god_n and_o what_o profit_n be_v it_o unto_o we_o and_o 2._o king_n 6_o 3●_n what_o shall_v i_o wait_v on_o the_o lord_n any_o long_o yea_o this_o have_v also_o great_o trouble_v many_o of_o god_n dear_a one_o they_o have_v oft_o complain_v that_o they_o get_v no_o good_a by_o their_o pray_n job_n 30_o 20._o i_o cry_v unto_o thou_o but_o thou_o do_v not_o hear_v i_o i_o stand_v up_o and_o thou_o regard_v i_o not_o habac._n 1.1_o o_o lord_n how_o long_o shall_v i_o cry_v and_o thou_o will_v not_o hear_v yea_o they_o have_v think_v that_o they_o be_v the_o worse_a for_o pray_v ps._n 80.4_o o_o lord_n how_o long_o will_v thou_o be_v angry_a against_o the_o prayer_n of_o thy_o people_n and_o thereupon_o they_o have_v even_o grow_v weary_a of_o pray_v and_o ready_a to_o resolve_v to_o give_v it_o over_o as_o you_o may_v perceive_v psal._n 69.3_o i_o be_o weary_a of_o my_o cry_v now_o for_o my_o answer_n to_o this_o reason_n answ._n it_o shall_v consist_v of_o two_o part_n 1._o i_o will_v show_v you_o how_o we_o be_v to_o judge_v of_o this_o case_n when_o we_o pray_v and_o pray_v often_o and_o ●●nd_v ourselves_o never_o the_o better_a for_o it_o 2._o what_o a_o christian_a be_v to_o do_v in_o this_o case_n and_o for_o judge_v aright_o of_o this_o case_n two_o thing_n you_o must_v understand_v first_o that_o it_o be_v no_o argument_n that_o god_n neglect_v we_o regard_v not_o we_o nor_o our_o prayer_n because_o we_o obtain_v not_o present_o nor_o of_o a_o long_a time_n that_o that_o we_o have_v beg_v of_o he_o it_o may_v be_v the_o lord_n may_v do_v this_o out_o of_o his_o love_n first_o it_o may_v be_v he_o see_v it_o be_v better_a for_o thou_o to_o want_v it_o then_o to_o have_v it_o we_o be_v apt_a like_o child_n and_o sick-man_n to_o desire_v that_o that_o be_v hurtful_a for_o we_o and_o the_o promise_n run_v thus_o psal._n 34.10_o they_o that_o seek_v the_o lord_n shall_v not_o want_v any_o good_a thing_n and_o matth._n 7.11_o how_o much_o more_o shall_v your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n give_v good_a thing_n to_o they_o that_o ask_v he_o second_o it_o may_v be_v he_o see_v it_o be_v not_o good_a for_o we_o to_o have_v it_o yet_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v every_o thing_n beautiful_a in_o his_o time_n eccl._n 3.11_o he_o best_o know_v which_o be_v the_o fit_a time_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n for_o we_o when_o he_o may_v have_v most_o honour_n by_o that_o which_o he_o do_v for_o we_o zachary_n have_v pray_v for_o a_o child_n while_o he_o and_o his_o wife_n be_v young_a but_o god_n grant_v not_o his_o request_n till_o they_o be_v both_o old_a luke_n 1.7.13_o because_o he_o may_v have_v more_o glory_n by_o it_o then_o christ_n will_v not_o comfort_v martha_n and_o mary_n by_o help_v their_o brother_n lazarus_n while_o he_o be_v sick_a though_o he_o love_v they_o dear_o but_o delay_v to_o help_v they_o of_o purpose_n john_n 11.5_o 6._o why_o that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o more_o glory_n by_o that_o work_n verse_n 15._o i_o be_o glad_a for_o your_o sake_n that_o i_o be_v not_o there_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o you_o may_v believe_v and_o verse_n 4●_n say_v i_o not_o unto_o thou_o that_o if_o thou_o will_v believe_v thou_o shall_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n he_o best_o know_v also_o when_o that_o he_o do_v for_o we_o will_v do_v we_o most_o good_a he_o watch_v the_o time_n and_o will_v not_o delay_v we_o one_o moment_n long_o esa._n 30.18_o the_o lord_n will_v wait_v that_o he_o may_v be_v gracious_a unto_o you_o he_o see_v it_o good_a for_o we_o to_o be_v delay_v a_o while_n and_o how_o long_o he_o only_o best_o do_v know_v act_v 1.7_o it_o be_v not_o for_o we_o to_o know_v the_o time_n or_o season_n the_o father_n have_v put_v they_o in_o his_o own_o power_n 1._o to_o humble_v we_o further_o let_v patience_n have_v her_o perfect_a work_n say_v the_o apostle_n james_n 1.4_o he_o mean_v to_o heal_v miriam_n at_o moses_n request_n but_o not_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o will_v have_v have_v it_o she_o must_v be_v better_a humble_v first_o under_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n numb_a 12.14_o and_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o moses_n if_o her_o father_n have_v but_o spit_v in_o her_o face_n shall_v she_o not_o be_v ashamed_a seven_o day_n let_v she_o be_v shut_v out_o from_o the_o camp_n seven_o day_n and_o after_o that_o let_v she_o be_v receive_v in_o again_o as_o if_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v it_o be_v too_o soon_o for_o she_o to_o be_v heal_v yet_o so_o he_o mean_v to_o take_v from_o paul_n that_o messenger_n of_o satan_n that_o buffet_v he_o but_o not_o so_o
6.33_o what_o shall_v i_o wait_v for_o the_o lord_n any_o long_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o atheist_n and_o not_o of_o a_o christian._n the_o faithful_a have_v be_v wont_a to_o speak_v after_o another_o fashion_n psal._n 40.1_o i_o wait_v patient_o for_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o incline_v unto_o i_o and_o hear_v my_o cry_n nothing_o be_v lose_v by_o wait_v upon_o god_n his_o promise_n shall_v certain_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o sit_v season_n though_o it_o tarry_v say_v the_o prophet_n hab._n 2._o ●_o wait_v for_o it_o because_o it_o will_v sure_o come_v it_o will_v not_o tarry_v not_o a_o moment_n after_o the_o fit_a season_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a that_o be_v disappoint_v of_o their_o hope_n say_v the_o lord_n esa._n 49.23_o that_o wa●●e_n for_o i_o and_o thus_o have_v i_o declare_v to_o you_o the_o second_o duty_n that_o belong_v to_o we_o when_o we_o pray_v long_o and_o can_v receive_v no_o such_o answer_n as_o our_o soul_n desire_v the_o three_o and_o last_o thing_n we_o must_v do_v in_o this_o case_n be_v to_o examine_v well_o what_o the_o cause_n shall_v be_v that_o we_o speed_v no_o better_o in_o our_o prayer_n that_o we_o receive_v so_o little_a comfort_n and_o benefit_n by_o they_o when_o saul_n have_v seek_v unto_o god_n and_o he_o answer_v he_o not_o that_o day_n he_o call_v all_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o people_n together_o to_o know_v and_o see_v who_o sin_n have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o 1_o sam._n 14.37_o 38._o he_o be_v none_o of_o the_o best_a man_n but_o certain_o in_o this_o case_n his_o example_n be_v worth_a the_o follow_v for_o though_o the_o lord_n may_v have_v other_o reason_n secret_a to_o himself_o for_o which_o he_o do_v deny_v or_o delay_v our_o suit_n yet_o if_o we_o receive_v not_o answer_v from_o he_o in_o any_o of_o these_o five_o kind_n that_o i_o tell_v you_o of_o the_o last_o day_n it_o be_v our_o part_n to_o lay_v the_o fault_n upon_o ourselves_o and_o to_o impu●e_v it_o to_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o say_v with_o the_o prophet_n esa._n 59.1_o 2._o the_o lord_n hand_n be_v not_o shorten_v that_o it_o can_v save_v neither_o be_v his_o ear_n heavy_a that_o it_o can_v hear_v but_o our_o iniquity_n have_v separate_v between_o we_o and_o our_o god_n and_o our_o sin_n have_v have_v his_o face_n from_o we_o that_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v and_o jer._n 5.25_o our_o iniquity_n have_v turn_v away_o these_o thing_n and_o our_o sin_n have_v withhold_v good_a thing_n from_o we_o sure_o shall_v every_o one_o of_o we_o say_v somewhat_o have_v be_v 〈…〉_z or_o in_o my_o prayer_n or_o else_o the_o lord_n who_o be_v so_o ready_a to_o hear_v and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o prayer_n of_o his_o people_n will_v have_v return_v i_o some_o answer_n to_o my_o prayer_n before_o now_o i_o ask_v and_o receive_v not_o because_o i_o ask_v amiss_o jam._n 4.2_o now_o the_o lord_n 〈◊〉_d to_o our_o prayer_n shall_v cause_v we_o to_o examine_v well_o what_o have_v be_v the_o faith_n of_o our_o prayer_n that_o we_o amend_v that_o fault_n may_v hereafter_o find_v more_o comfort_n in_o prayer_n and_o for_o your_o help_n that_o way_n i_o will_v show_v you_o some_o of_o the_o principal_a fault_n that_o use_v to_o blemish_v and_o weaken_v our_o prayer_n so_o as_o they_o become_v not_o acceptable_a and_o effectual_a with_o god_n first_o it_o may_v be_v when_o thou_o pray_v thou_o have_v not_o first_o repent_v thou_o of_o and_o forsake_v every_o know_a sin_n and_o that_o man_n who_o conscience_n tell_v he_o somewhat_o he_o do_v daily_a and_o purpose_v still_o to_o do_v that_o he_o ought_v not_o somewhat_o he_o daily_o omit_v to_o do_v and_o do_v not_o yet_o resolve_v to_o do_v which_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v can_v have_v no_o hope_n that_o god_n will_v hear_v his_o prayer_n he_o that_o will_v pray_v must_v be_v careful_a first_o to_o purge_v both_o himself_o and_o his_o family_n also_o from_o all_o know_a sin_n job_n 11.13_o 14._o if_o thou_o prepare_v thy_o heart_n and_o stretch_v out_o thy_o hand_n towards_o he_o if_o iniquity_n be_v in_o thy_o hand_n put_v it_o far_o away_o and_o let_v not_o wickedness_n dwell_v in_o thy_o tabernacle_n if_o i_o regard_v iniquity_n in_o my_o heart_n say_v david_n psal._n 66.18_o any_o iniquity_n any_o know_a sin_n the_o lord_n will_v not_o hear_v i_o the_o promise_n of_o audience_n with_o god_n be_v make_v only_o to_o such_o as_o fear_v he_o psal._n 145.19_o he_o will_v fulfil_v the_o desire_n of_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o he_o also_o will_v hear_v their_o cry_n and_o will_v save_v they_o second_o it_o may_v be_v that_o the_o prayer_n that_o thou_o have_v use_v to_o make_v have_v not_o be_v make_v according_a to_o god_n will_n the_o prayer_n that_o god_n spirit_n indit_v in_o we_o be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n rom._n 8.27_o and_o upon_o this_o do_v the_o success_n of_o our_o prayer_n great_o depend_v 1_o joh._n 5.14_o this_o be_v the_o confidence_n we_o have_v in_o he_o that_o if_o we_o ask_v any_o thing_n according_a to_o his_o will_n ●e_n hear_v we_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v we_o can_v have_v no_o confidence_n he_o will_v hear_v we_o but_o when_o we_o pray_v according_a to_o his_o will_n but_o you_o will_v say_v how_o may_v we_o pray_v according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n i_o answer_v 1._o when_o we_o pray_v more_o for_o spiritual_a then_o for_o earthly_a thing_n mat._n 6.33_o first_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o his_o righteousness_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v add_v unto_o you_o 2._o when_o we_o can_v crave_v spiritual_a blessing_n more_o importunate_o this_o be_v a_o prayer_n according_a to_o god_n will_v luk._n 12.32_o it_o be_v your_o father_n good_a pleasure_n to_o give_v you_o the_o kingdom_n and_o 1_o thess._n 4.2_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n even_o your_o sanctification_n but_o in_o crave_v of_o temporal_a blessing_n yea_o and_o of_o the_o measure_n also_o of_o spiritual_a grace_n we_o can_v submit_v ourselves_o to_o the_o will_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n mat._n 26.39_o o_o my_o father_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a let_v this_o cup_n pass_v from_o i_o nevertheless_o not_o as_o i_o will_v but_o as_o thou_o will_v 3._o when_o we_o in_o our_o prayer_n do_v more_o importune_a god_n for_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n then_o for_o the_o remove_n of_o any_o punishment_n of_o sin_n thus_o peter_n teach_v simon_n magus_n to_o pray_v act_v 8.22_o pray_o that_o the_o thought_n of_o thy_o heart_n may_v be_v forgive_v thou_o but_o he_o pray_v otherwise_o ver_fw-la 24._o pray_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o i_o that_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n that_o you_o have_v speak_v come_v upon_o i_o 4._o when_o in_o our_o prayer_n we_o can_v desire_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n more_o than_o any_o of_o his_o blessing_n either_o corporal_a or_o spiritual_a thus_o pray_v david_n psal._n 4.6_o many_o say_v who_o will_v show_v we_o any_o good_a blessing_n and_o good_a thing_n many_o can_v desire_v and_o pray_v for_o but_o lord_n lift_v thou_o up_o the_o light_n of_o thy_o countenance_n upon_o we_o till_o we_o have_v learn_v out_o of_o god_n word_n to_o pray_v thus_o according_a to_o his_o will_n our_o prayer_n be_v but_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o fool_n eccles._n 5.1_o and_o as_o elihu_n speak_v job_n 35.13_o sure_o god_n will_v not_o hear_v vanity_n neither_o will_v the_o almighty_a regard_n it_o three_o it_o may_v be_v thy_o prayer_n thou_o have_v use_v to_o make_v be_v careless_a unreverent_a and_o distract_a prayer_n if_o we_o will_v speed_v in_o our_o prayer_n we_o must_v pray_v in_o reverence_n and_o fear_v of_o the_o lord_n greatness_n and_o majesty_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o own_o vileness_n ps._n 2.11_o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n &_o 5.7_o in_o thy_o fear_n will_v i_o worship_v towards_o thy_o holy_a temple_n our_o heart_n must_v be_v fix_v and_o settle_v upon_o he_o &_o upon_o the_o word_n we_o utter_v unto_o he_o and_o not_o rove_v and_o wander_v up_o and_o down_o such_o a_o disposition_n of_o heart_n as_o david_n find_v in_o himself_o when_o he_o will_v praise_v god_n we_o must_v strive_v to_o have_v when_o we_o pray_v my_o heart_n be_v fix_v o_o god_n say_v he_o ps._n 57.7_o my_o heart_n be_v fix_v i_o will_v sing_v and_o give_v praise_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o lord_n greatness_n must_v keep_v we_o from_o speak_v any_o thing_n rash_o without_o understanding_n and_o attention_n of_o heart_n from_o speak_v we_o wot_v not_o what_o as_o if_o we_o be_v in_o a_o dream_n this_o charge_n be_v give_v we_o eccl._n 5.2.3_o be_v not_o rash_a with_o thy_o mouth_n &_o let_v not_o thy_o heart_n be_v hasty_o to_o utter_v any_o thing_n before_o god_n
throne_n &_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lamb_n of_o the_o lamb_n why_o what_o cause_n have_v any_o to_o fear_v the_o lamb_n he_o be_v so_o call_v in_o reference_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o soul_n that_o he_o offer_v to_o his_o father_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n job_n 1.29_o behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n what_o need_v man_n be_v afraid_a of_o the_o lamb_n of_o god_n o_o the_o more_o that_o christ_n have_v do_v for_o sinner_n the_o more_o indignation_n and_o wrath_n tribulation_n and_o anguish_n will_v be_v upon_o every_o soul_n that_o have_v despise_v so_o great_a mercy_n and_o take_v encouragement_n thereby_o to_o sin_n and_o have_v not_o be_v bring_v unto_o repentance_n by_o it_o say_v thou_o not_o then_o any_o more_o my_o sin_n shall_v never_o trouble_v i_o because_o god_n be_v so_o merciful_a and_o christ_n have_v die_v for_o sinner_n but_o rather_o let_v the_o look_v upon_o he_o who_o thou_o have_v pierce_v cause_v thou_o to_o mourn_v as_o one_o mourn_v for_o his_o only_a son_n and_o to_o be_v in_o bitterness_n as_o one_o that_o be_v in_o bitterness_n for_o his_o firstborn_a as_o the_o prophet_n say_v it_o shall_v be_v with_o all_o such_o as_o have_v the_o spirit_n and_o any_o true_a knowledge_n and_o assurance_n of_o god_n mercy_n zach._n 12.10_o 3_o there_o be_v yet_o a_o three_o cause_n why_o man_n be_v not_o trouble_v for_o their_o sin_n no●_n will_v be_v disquiet_v in_o their_o mind_n with_o the_o remembrance_n of_o they_o and_o that_o be_v example_n they_o have_v observe_v and_o experience_n that_o they_o have_v have_v of_o god_n mercy_n in_o other_o i_o have_v myself_o will_n many_o a_o sinner_n say_v know_v many_o that_o be_v worse_a man_n than_o ever_o i_o be_v that_o never_o have_v any_o trouble_n of_o mind_n for_o their_o sin_n in_o life_n nor_o in_o death_n in_o their_o health_n nor_o in_o their_o sickness_n and_o yet_o god_n be_v merciful_a unto_o they_o they_o live_v in_o god_n favour_n for_o they_o live_v in_o credit_n and_o be_v well_o think_v of_o and_o well_o belove_v of_o their_o neighbour_n and_o they_o die_v in_o god_n favour_n for_o they_o die_v most_o quiet_o they_o show_v no_o fear_n or_o unwillingness_n at_o all_o to_o die_v and_o to_o go_v to_o god_n but_o have_v marvellous_a peace_n in_o their_o conscience_n and_o show_v great_a comfort_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o their_o salvation_n answ._n now_o for_o answer_v to_o this_o plea_n i_o say_v in_o general_a as_o our_o saviour_n do_v mat._n 18.7_o woe_n be_v to_o the_o world_n because_o of_o offence_n yea_o woe_n be_v unto_o the_o world_n even_o because_o of_o this_o offence_n for_o thousand_o have_v stumble_v at_o it_o even_o this_o that_o man_n notorious_o wicked_a have_v die_v so_o peaceable_o have_v harden_v infinite_a number_n in_o their_o sin_n and_o make_v they_o to_o think_v there_o be_v no_o great_a danger_n in_o they_o but_o to_o answer_v this_o plea_n in_o particular_a first_o this_o be_v no_o good_a argument_n such_o sinner_n live_v in_o god_n swear_v because_o they_o live_v in_o credit_n and_o in_o the_o love_n of_o their_o neighbour_n for_o 1_o the_o lord_n see_v not_o as_o man_n see_v as_o he_o tell_v samuel_n 1_o sam._n 16.7_o man_n be_v apt_a to_o applaud_v they_o that_o live_v wealthy_o and_o merry_o whatsoever_o their_o life_n be_v psal._n 49.18_o man_n will_v praise_v thou_o when_o thou_o do_v well_o to_o thyself_o but_o so_o do_v not_o god_n for_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v luke_n 16.15_o that_o which_o be_v high_o esteem_v among_o man_n be_v abomination_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n 2._o man_n be_v bind_v in_o charity_n to_o judge_v the_o best_a 1_o cor._n 13.5_o charity_n think_v no_o evil_a and_o to_o be_v afraid_a of_o judge_v and_o censure_v other_o be_v not_o many_o master_n controuler_n or_o censurer_n say_v the_o apostle_n jam._n 2.3_o know_v that_o we_o shall_v receive_v the_o great_a condemnation_n and_o to_o think_v of_o other_o according_a to_o the_o profession_n that_o they_o make_v and_o that_o they_o know_v by_o they_o and_o not_o to_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o judge_v their_o heart_n it_o be_v no_o fault_n in_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o think_v so_o well_o of_o judas_n and_o suspect_v themselves_o as_o much_o as_o he_o when_o christ_n say_v one_o of_o they_o shall_v betray_v he_o matth._n 26_o 2d_o 3._o the_o man_n who_o we_o have_v know_v to_o have_v be_v a_o notorious_a sinner_n it_o may_v be_v have_v be_v fond_o humble_v for_o his_o sin_n and_o shed_v many_o a_o tear_n for_o it_o though_o we_o know_v it_o not_o for_o this_o may_v be_v do_v in_o secret_a zach._n 12.14_o every_o family_n apart_o and_o their_o wife_n apart_o second_o this_o be_v no_o good_a argument_n such_o sinner_n die_v in_o god_n favour_n because_o they_o die_v quiet_o and_o without_o all_o fear_n and_o seem_v very_o comfortable_a and_o to_o have_v great_a assurance_n of_o their_o salvation_n for_o 1._o it_o be_v possible_a for_o most_o wicked_a man_n to_o die_v very_o quiet_o and_o without_o all_o fear_n for_o of_o most_o wicked_a man_n it_o be_v say_v psal._n 73.4_o 5._o there_o be_v no_o band_n in_o their_o death_n they_o be_v not_o in_o trouble_n as_o other_o man_n 2._o it_o be_v possible_a even_o for_o most_o wicked_a man_n to_o be_v pass_v well_o persuade_v of_o their_o own_o estate_n and_o that_o god_n be_v their_o god_n mic._n 3.11_o yet_o will_v they_o lean_v upon_o the_o lord_n and_o say_v be_v not_o the_o lord_n among_o we_o 3._o god_n do_v oft_o let_v wicked_a man_n escape_v scot_n free_a here_o that_o he_o may_v reserve_v they_o to_o great_a torment_n in_o hell_n 2_o pet._n 2.9_o the_o lord_n know_v how_o to_o reserve_v the_o unjust_a unto_o th●_n day_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v punish_v at_o that_o day_n he_o will_v manifest_v his_o wrath_n upon_o they_o 4._o though_o we_o may_v not_o presume_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o final_a estate_n of_o any_o such_o man_n because_o the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n be_v oft_o time_n secret_a and_o wonderful_a joh._n 3.8_o the_o wind_n blow_v where_o it_o list_v and_o thou_o hear_v the_o sound_n thereof_o but_o can_v not_o tell_v whence_o it_o come_v and_o whither_o it_o go_v so_o be_v every_o one_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n and_o god_n be_v able_a to_o work_v save_v repentance_n in_o they_o even_o after_o they_o be_v speechless_a and_o can_v express_v their_o repentance_n unto_o man_n yet_o be_v the_o example_n fearful_a when_o such_o as_o have_v have_v many_o witness_n of_o their_o sin_n have_v have_v no_o witness_n of_o their_o repentance_n the_o example_n of_o such_o be_v worthy_a to_o have_v a_o mark_v set_v upon_o it_o for_o other_o to_o take_v heed_n by_o as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o absolom_n death_n they_o lay_v a_o very_a great_a heap_n of_o stone_n upon_o he_o 2_o sam._n 18.17_o for_o 1_o god_n do_v never_o pardon_v any_o man_n sin_n in_o who_o he_o do_v not_o work_v repentance_n act_v 5.31_o christ_n give_v repentance_n unto_o israel_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n 2_o he_o first_o gives_z man_n the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n before_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n rom._n 8.15_o you_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n again_o to_o fear_v but_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n 3_o god_n use_v to_o work_v in_o those_o who_o he_o give_v repentance_n unto_o humiliation_n proportionable_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o sin_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o case_n of_o manasses_n 2_o chron._n 33.12_o he_o humble_v himself_o great_o and_o mary_n magdalen_n weep_v so_o that_o she_o wash_v christ_n foot_n with_o tear_n luk_n 7.38_o 4_o where_o sin_n have_v be_v notorious_a there_o repentance_n also_o shall_v be_v notorious_a yea_o the_o true_a penitent_n will_v be_v glad_a and_o desirous_a to_o have_v as_o many_o witness_n of_o his_o repentance_n as_o of_o his_o sin_n as_o we_o see_v in_o david_n here_o and_o in_o paul_n 1_o tim._n 1.13_o i_o be_v a_o blasphemer_n and_o a_o persecutor_n and_o injurious_a but_o i_o obtain_v mercy_n 5_o no_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v so_o dreadful_a as_o when_o he_o punish_v sinner_n with_o hardness_n of_o heart_n this_o be_v the_o judgement_n whereby_o god_n plague_v pharaoh_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n raise_v he_o up_o of_o purpose_n that_o he_o may_v show_v his_o power_n on_o he_o rom._n 9.17_o lecture_n xviii_o on_o psal._n 51.1_o 2._o march_n 7._o 1625._o follow_v the_o second_o use_n of_o the_o former_a doctrine_n 2._o and_o that_o be_v for_o exhortation_n to_o persuade_v and_o stir_v we_o all_o up_o to_o do_v as_o david_n do_v here_o even_o to_o
seek_v for_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o seek_v for_o it_o as_o he_o do_v here_o that_o be_v 1._o to_o seek_v it_o above_o all_o other_o thing_n and_o to_o make_v it_o our_o only_a suit_n as_o david_n do_v here_o and_o as_o the_o publican_n when_o he_o go_v to_o pray_v beg_v nothing_o else_o but_o this_o luk._n 18.13_o lord_n be_v merciful_a to_o i_o a_o sinner_n 2._o seek_v without_o delay_n to_o have_v this_o debt_n discharge_v as_o solomon_n advise_v the_o man_n who_o be_v in_o danger_n for_o debt_n discharge_v as_o solomon_n advise_v the_o man_n who_o be_v in_o danger_n for_o debt_n even_o to_o mortal_a man_n pro._n 6.4_o 5._o give_v no_o sleep_n to_o thy_o eye_n nor_o slumber_n to_o thy_o eyelid_n deliver_v thyself_o as_o a_o roe_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o hunter_n 3._o seek_v it_o not_o cold_o and_o faint_o but_o earnest_o and_o with_o all_o thy_o might_n as_o david_n here_o and_o psal._n 27.4_o one_o thing_n have_v i_o desire_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o will_v i_o seek_v after_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n to_o behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v his_o mercy_n his_o cheerful_a and_o favourable_a countenance_n towards_o i_o as_o psal._n 90_o 17._o let_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v upon_o we_o now_o for_o the_o better_a enforce_v of_o this_o exhortation_n i_o will_v first_o give_v you_o certain_a motive_n to_o persuade_v you_o to_o seek_v for_o your_o pardon_n 2._o i_o will_v show_v you_o the_o mean_n how_o you_o may_v obtain_v it_o 3._o i_o will_v give_v you_o certain_a sign_n and_o note_n whereby_o you_o may_v know_v whether_o you_o have_v obtain_v it_o or_o no._n and_o for_o the_o motive_n to_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o seek_v and_o sue_v out_o our_o pardon_n 1_o some_o of_o they_o have_v reference_n to_o the_o pardon_n itself_o motive_n and_o 2_o some_o to_o we_o that_o be_v to_o seek_v and_o sue_v for_o it_o first_o this_o pardon_n may_v be_v get_v if_o sin_n can_v have_v no_o hope_n to_o get_v the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n they_o can_v have_v no_o encouragement_n to_o seek_v it_o but_o as_o shec●niah_n say_v to_o ezra_n ezra_n 10.2_o there_o be_v hope_n in_o israel_n concern_v this_o thing_n there_o be_v not_o any_o sinner_n among_o we_o all_o how_o many_o or_o heinous_a soe●e●_n his_o sin_n have_v be_v but_o he_o may_v have_v hope_n to_o obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n if_o he_o seek_v it_o aright_o for_o this_o we_o have_v his_o word_n that_o can_v deceive_v we_o mat._n 12.31_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o all_o manner_n of_o sin_n and_o blasphemy_n shall_v be_v forgive_v unto_o man_n matth._n 18.27_o the_o lord_n of_o that_o servant_n that_o ought_v ten_o thousand_o talent_n be_v move_v with_o compassion_n and_o loose_v he_o and_o forgive_v he_o the_o debt_n and_o though_o it_o be_v say_v of_o he_o that_o sin_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n matth._n 12.32_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v he_o neither_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v yet_o the_o reason_n thereof_o be_v not_o because_o god_n can_v or_o will_v not_o forgive_v so_o heinous_a as_o a_o sin_n but_o because_o he_o that_o be_v go_v so_o far_o can_v return_v to_o god_n and_o seek_v his_o pardon_n heb._n 6.6_o it_o be_v impossible_a he_o shall_v be_v renown_v again_o unto_o repentance_n and_o this_o motive_n to_o seek_v for_o our_o pardon_n we_o have_v give_v we_o esa._n 55.7_o let_v the_o wicked_a return_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n upon_o he_o and_o to_o our_o god_n for_o he_o will_v abundant_o pardon_v second_o this_o pardon_n be_v worth_a the_o get_n and_o seek_v for_o for_o 1._o it_o be_v full_a and_o general_a and_o give_v we_o a_o discharge_n not_o only_o from_o our_o sin_n but_o from_o the_o whole_a punishment_n due_a to_o we_o for_o they_o not_o from_o such_o sin_n only_o a●_n be_v know_v to_o we_o and_o we_o have_v be_v able_a particular_o to_o repent_v of_o but_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n know_v and_o unknown_a so_o that_o when_o once_o we_o have_v get_v our_o pardon_n for_o one_o sin_n we_o have_v get_v the_o pardon_n of_o all_o original_a and_o a_o small_a small_a and_o great_a know_v and_o unknown_a esa._n 55.7_o he_o do_v abundant_o pardon_v so_o that_o as_o christ_n never_o care_v any_o but_o he_o make_v they_o perfect_o and_o every_o whit_n whole_a joh._n 7.23_o so_o be_v it_o say_v of_o he_o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o save_v they_o to_o the_o uttermost_a that_o come_v unto_o god_n by_o he_o heb._n 7.25_o who_o he_o once_o wash_v and_o cleanse_v he_o make_v they_o so_o clean_o that_o he_o leave_v no_o filth_n no_o stain_n nor_o spot_n upon_o they_o esa._n 1.18_o though_o your_o sin_n be_v as_o scarlet_a they_o shall_v be_v as_o white_a as_o snow_n though_o they_o be_v red_a like_o crimson_a they_o shall_v be_v as_o wool_n that_o never_o receive_v any_o dye_n thus_o do_v god_n account_v of_o they_o that_o be_v once_o pardon_v cant._n 4.7_o thou_o be_v all_o fair_a my_o love_n there_o be_v no_o spot_n in_o thou_o all_o god_n acquittance_n be_v general_a not_o as_o man_n only_a from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o that_o day_n that_o the_o acquittance_n be_v make_v but_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o end_n of_o it_o when_o he_o pardon_v he_o pardon_v not_o sin_n past_o only_a but_o even_o those_o that_o be_v future_a have_v a_o ground_n of_o pardon_n in_o it_o psal._n 103.17_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v from_o everlasting_a to_o everlasting_a upon_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o and_o joh._n 13.10_o he_o that_o be_v wash_v need_v not_o save_v to_o wash_v his_o foot_n but_o be_v clean_o every_o whit_n 2._o this_o pardon_n where_o it_o be_v once_o give_v can_v never_o be_v revoke_v or_o cancel_a again_o he_o forgive_v not_o as_o man_n do_v but_o when_o he_o forgive_v our_o sin_n he_o forget_v they_o also_o jer._n 31.34_o i_o will_v forgive_v their_o iniquity_n and_o i_o will_v remember_v their_o sin_n no_o more_o to_o this_o mercy_n that_o belong_v which_o the_o lord_n speak_v hos._n 13.14_o repentance_n shall_v be_v hide_v from_o my_o eye_n who_o god_n have_v once_o pardon_v he_o never_o so_o forsake_v that_o they_o shall_v quite_o loose_v his_o favour_n again_o psal._n 37.28_o the_o lord_n forsake_v not_o his_o saint_n they_o be_v preserve_v for_o ever_o therefore_o we_o be_v but_o once_o baptize_v and_o bring_v to_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n tit._n 3.5_o 3._o this_o pardon_n set_v we_o in_o as_o good_a state_n before_o god_n as_o if_o we_o have_v never_o sin_v so_o as_o he_o think_v never_o the_o worse_o of_o we_o for_o any_o sin_n we_o have_v commit_v when_o once_o we_o have_v our_o pardon_n nay_o we_o become_v much_o more_o dear_a unto_o he_o than_o if_o we_o have_v never_o sin_v as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o prodigal_n who_o father_n show_v much_o more_o kindness_n unto_o and_o delight_v in_o he_o then_o in_o his_o elder_a brother_n luk._n 15.32_o and_o in_o the_o kind_a respect_n our_o saviour_n show_v to_o mary_n magdalen_n mar._n 16.9_o he_o appear_v first_o to_o she_o out_o of_o who_o he_o have_v cast_v seven_o devil_n and_o to_o peter_n mar._n 16.7_o more_o than_o to_o any_o disciple_n that_o ever_o he_o have_v and_o this_o second_o motive_n which_o have_v reference_n to_o the_o fullness_n of_o this_o pardon_n encourage_v and_o move_v david_n here_o to_o seek_v it_o so_o earnest_o as_o we_o may_v see_v verse_n 7._o wash_v i_o and_o i_o shall_v be_v white_a than_o snow_n now_o for_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o motive_n which_o have_v reference_n to_o ourselves_o if_o we_o respect_v our_o own_o self_n motive_n there_o be_v great_a cause_n that_o we_o shall_v above_o all_o thing_n speedy_o seek_v for_o the_o pardon_n our_o sin_n first_o in_o respect_n have_v to_o our_o death_n for_o if_o death_n shall_v seize_v upon_o we_o before_o we_o have_v get_v our_o pardon_n our_o case_n be_v desperate_a and_o irrecoverable_a if_o pardon_n be_v not_o get_v before_o it_o will_v never_o be_v get_v to_o he_o that_o be_v live_v there_o be_v hope_n say_v solomon_n eccl._n 9.4_o for_o a_o live_a dog_n be_v better_a than_o a_o dead_a lion_n and_o eccl._n 11.3_o in_o the_o place_n where_o the_o tree_n fall_v there_o it_o shall_v be_v there_o it_o lie_v and_o will_v continue_v for_o ever_o if_o a_o man_n obtain_v not_o his_o acquittance_n and_o discharge_v of_o his_o debt_n before_o he_o die_v there_o be_v no_o way_n but_o one_o with_o he_o to_o prison_n must_v he_o
many_o good_a work_n suffer_v great_a wrong_n from_o saul_n with_o wonderful_a patience_n and_o freedom_n from_o desire_n of_o revenge_n 1_o sam._n 24.5_o 6._o show_v marvellous_a zeal_n for_o god_n in_o fight_v his_o battle_n 1_o sam._n 25.28_o show_v marvellous_a love_n to_o the_o word_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n psal._n 27.4_o one_o thing_n have_v i_o desire_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o will_v i_o seek_v after_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n and_o 84.1_o how_o amiable_a be_v thy_o tabernacle_n o_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o even_o at_o this_o instant_n when_o he_o make_v this_o prayer_n to_o god_n there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o goodness_n and_o grace_n in_o he_o 1._o he_o confess_v free_o his_o sin_n unto_o god_n verse_n 3_o 4._o 2._o he_o be_v wonderful_o humble_v for_o it_o and_o grieve_v and_o break_a heart_a verse_n 8.17_o 3._o his_o heart_n be_v quite_o change_v and_o turn_v from_o his_o sin_n unto_o god_n he_o love_v he_o unfeigned_o and_o desire_v his_o glory_n verse_n 13_o 14._o 4_o and_o all_o this_o he_o do_v in_o uprightness_n of_o heart_n verse_n 6._o yet_o now_o come_v to_o beg_v pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n he_o ground_v his_o hope_n to_o obtain_v it_o upon_o none_o of_o his_o former_a good_a work_n upon_o none_o of_o the_o goodness_n that_o he_o find_v now_o in_o himself_o but_o only_o upon_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n now_o from_o these_o three_o point_n thus_o observe_v in_o the_o text_n this_o doctrine_n arise_v for_o our_o instruction_n 11_o that_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n have_v no_o other_o ground_n of_o hope_n to_o find_v favour_n with_o god_n for_o the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n but_o only_o in_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n upon_o this_o god_n choice_a saint_n have_v build_v always_o and_o in_o seek_v pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n have_v plead_v nothing_o but_o this_o so_o do_v david_n here_o and_o so_o do_v he_o in_o many_o other_o psalm_n psal._n 6_o 2_o 4._o have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o o_o lord_n for_o i_o be_o weak_a return_v o_o lord_n deliver_v my_o soul_n o_o save_v i_o for_o thy_o mercy_n sake_n and_o 25.6_o 7._o remember_v o_o lord_n thy_o tender_a mercy_n and_o thy_o love_a kindness_n for_o they_o have_v be_v ever_o of_o old_a according_a to_o thy_o mercy_n remember_v thou_o i_o for_o thy_o goodness_n sake_n o_o lord_n so_o do_v daniel_n in_o his_o prayer_n dan._n 9.9_o to_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n belong_v mercy_n and_o forgiveness_n all_o pardon_n be_v mercy_n and_o be_v obtain_v by_o mercy_n only_o yea_o in_o all_o their_o prayer_n wherein_o they_o have_v sue_v to_o he_o for_o any_o blessing_n this_o have_v ever_o be_v in_o their_o eye_n and_o that_o which_o they_o have_v build_v all_o their_o confidence_n upon_o psal._n 5.7_o as_o for_o i_o i_o will_v come_v into_o thy_o house_n in_o the_o multitude_n of_o thy_o mercy_n this_o shall_v ever_o draw_v i_o and_o encourage_v i_o to_o come_v unto_o thou_o and_o 69.13_o o_o god_n in_o the_o multitude_n of_o thy_o mercy_n hear_v i_o and_o 115.1_o not_o unto_o we_o lord_n not_o unto_o we_o but_o unto_o thy_o name_n give_v glory_n for_o thy_o mercy_n and_o for_o thy_o truth_n sake_n but_o what_o shall_v i_o heap_v up_o testimony_n in_o so_o plain_a a_o case_n and_o yet_o because_o it_o be_v so_o useful_a and_o comfortable_a a_o point_n i_o will_v not_o pass_v over_o it_o too_o slight_o but_o insist_v a_o while_n upon_o it_o so_o far_o as_o i_o shall_v judge_v necessary_a for_o your_o edification_n and_o before_o i_o come_v to_o the_o reason_n and_o ground_n of_o the_o doctrine_n i_o will_v answer_v two_o main_a objection_n that_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n will_v be_v apt_a to_o make_v against_o this_o doctrine_n 1._o first_o how_o can_v our_o hope_n to_o find_v favour_n with_o god_n be_v ground_v only_o upon_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n how_o can_v the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o mere_a mercy_n of_o god_n and_o to_o his_o free_a grace_n when_o we_o obtain_v not_o this_o favour_n of_o god_n till_o it_o be_v dear_o buy_v and_o purchase_v 1_o cor._n 6.20_o you_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o price_n yea_o sucha_fw-mi price_n as_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d full_o answerable_a in_o worth_a to_o the_o soul_n of_o all_o god_n elect_v and_o to_o that_o which_o god_n have_v give_v we_o 1_o tim._n 2.6_o he_o give_v himself_o a_o ransom_n for_o all_o the_o lord_n forgive_v not_o one_o farthing_n of_o that_o sum_n wherein_o we_o stand_v indebt_v to_o he_o till_o he_o be_v full_o satisfy_v for_o it_o first_o he_o exact_v and_o receive_v by_o christ_n passive_a obedience_n the_o whole_a forfeiture_n of_o our_o obligation_n he_o have_v against_o we_o and_o so_o come_v we_o to_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n in_o which_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v say_v as_o esa._n 40.2_o we_o have_v in_o our_o surety_n receive_v at_o the_o lord_n hand_n double_a for_o all_o our_o sin_n second_o he_o exact_v and_o receive_v also_o in_o christ_n active_a obedience_n the_o whole_a debt_n of_o obedience_n to_o his_o law_n that_o we_o do_v owe_v unto_o he_o for_o christ_n our_o surety_n not_o for_o himself_o but_o for_o we_o fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n matth._n 3.15_o and_o so_o come_v we_o to_o the_o title_n and_o right_a we_o have_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n so_o that_o it_o may_v seem_v not_o the_o mere_a mercy_n and_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n but_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a ground_n of_o our_o hope_n as_o he_o be_v call_v 1._o tim._n 1.1_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v our_o hope_n and_o 1._o john_n 2.2_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n answ._n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o our_o hope_n and_o comfort_n we_o have_v in_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o mercy_n and_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n only_o for_o although_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n in_o respect_n of_o christ_n our_o surety_n be_v no_o free_a gift_n but_o a_o dear_a purchase_n and_o the_o lord_n show_v no_o mercy_n at_o all_o to_o he_o but_o justice_n only_o yea_o rigour_n of_o justice_n rom._n 8.32_o he_o spare_v not_o his_o own_o son_n but_o deliver_v he_o up_o for_o we_o all_o gal._n 3.13_o christ_n have_v redeem_v we_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n be_v make_v a_o curse_n for_o we_o look_v upon_o he_o when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o agony_n and_o passion_n pay_v our_o forfeiture_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v see_v from_o top_n to_o toe_n soul_n and_o body_n but_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n he_o be_v all_o curse_n make_v a_o curse_n yet_o do_v we_o obtain_v this_o pardon_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n not_o by_o purchase_n but_o by_o the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n esa_n 9_o ●_o unto_o we_o a_o son_n be_v give_v joh._n 4.10_o if_o thou_o know_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o the_o mercy_n and_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n never_o appear_v so_o much_o to_o us-ward_n in_o all_o the_o work_n that_o ever_o he_o do_v as_o in_o this_o work_n of_o redeem_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n for_o thus_o speak_v the_o apostle_n ephes._n 1_o 7._o in_o who_o we_o have_v redemption_n through_o his_o blood_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n the_o riches_n of_o god_n grace_n appear_v in_o this_o observe_v this_o i_o pray_v you_o in_o five_o point_n first_o it_o be_v the_o wonderful_a mercy_n of_o god_n to_o we_o and_o nothing_o else_o that_o move_v he_o to_o find_v out_o and_o appoint_v the_o mean_n to_o satisfy_v his_o own_o justice_n by_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n himself_o that_o do_v foreordain_a his_o own_o son_n to_o be_v our_o propitiation_n rom._n 3_o 27._o he_o purpose_v this_o in_o himself_o ephes._n 1.9_o and_o so_o the_o lord_n indeed_o make_v satisfaction_n unto_o himself_o 2._o cor._n 5.19_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_a the_o world_n to_o himself_o his_o love_n and_o mercy_n appear_v more_o unto_o we_o in_o this_o then_o if_o by_o his_o absolute_a prerogative_n he_o have_v forgive_v we_o without_o exact_v any_o satisfaction_n at_o all_o john_n 3.16_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n and_o john_n 4.10_o herein_o be_v love_n not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n but_o that_o he_o love_v we_o and_o send_v his_o son_n to_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n second_o it_o be_v the_o wonderful_a mercy_n of_o god_n to_o we_o and_o nothing_o else_o that_o move_v he_o to_o give_v any_o of_o we_o to_o christ_n and_o to_o appoint_v
there_o be_v which_o be_v make_v unto_o it_o 1._o that_o it_o shall_v never_o hinder_v nor_o beggar_n a_o man_n that_o that_o be_v thus_o give_v shall_v not_o be_v lose_v see_v this_o promise_n pro._n 19.17_o he_o that_o have_v pity_n on_o the_o poor_a dare_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o which_o he_o have_v give_v the_o lord_n will_v pay_v he_o again_o it_o will_v return_v again_o yea_o it_o will_v return_v again_o with_o advantage_n and_o increase_v in_o which_o respect_n it_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o cast_v away_o of_o your_o seed_n into_o the_o ground_n 2_o cor._n 9.6_o he_o which_o sow_v spare_o shall_v reap_v spare_o and_o he_o which_o sow_v bountiful_o shall_v reap_v bountiful_o admit_v thou_o do_v not_o find_v it_o again_o present_o certain_o if_o thou_o give_v thy_o alm_n with_o a_o good_a heart_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v lose_v thou_o shall_v find_v it_o again_o one_o day_n eccl._n 11.1_o cast_v thy_o bread_n upon_o the_o water_n for_o thou_o shall_v find_v it_o after_o many_o day_n and_o psal._n 37.26_o he_o be_v ever_o merciful_a and_o dare_v and_o his_o seed_n enjoy_v the_o blessing_n yea_o that_o that_o be_v thus_o give_v will_v bring_v god_n blessing_n upon_o all_o that_o we_o have_v beside_o deut._n 15.10_o thou_o shall_v sure_o give_v he_o and_o thy_o heart_n shall_v not_o be_v grieve_v when_o thou_o give_v unto_o he_o because_o that_o for_o this_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n shall_v bless_v thou_o in_o all_o thy_o work●_n and_o in_o all_o thou_o put_v thy_o hand_n unto_o luke_n 11.41_o give_v alm_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o you_o have_v and_o behold_v all_o thing_n be_v clean_o unto_o you_o this_o answer_v two_o objection_n that_o usual_o man_n make_v to_o excuse_v their_o uncharitableness_n to_o the_o poor_a first_o believe_v i_o i_o know_v not_o how_o soon_o i_o may_v want_v myself_o i_o answer_v thou_o be_v a_o infidel_n if_o thou_o say_v so_o for_o god_n have_v say_v this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o keep_v thou_o from_o want_n pro._n 28.27_o he_o th●●_n give_v unto_o the_o poor_a shall_v not_o lack_v second_o i_o have_v child_n to_o provide_v for_o i_o answer_v thy_o child_n shall_v not_o be_v the_o poor_a for_o this_o if_o god_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v but_o on_o the_o contrary_a thy_o miserableness_n to_o the_o poor_a be_v the_o way_n to_o bring_v god_n curse_n upon_o thyself_o and_o thy_o child_n too_o pro_fw-la 11.24_o there_o be_v that_o scatter_v and_o yet_o increase_v and_o there_o be_v that_o withhold_v more_o than_o be_v meet_v but_o it_o tend_v to_o poverty_n the_o second_o sort_n of_o promise_n that_o be_v make_v to_o this_o duty_n be_v these_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o we_o can_v do_v that_o will_v give_v we_o that_o security_n of_o heart_n that_o joy_n and_o comfort_n against_o the_o day_n of_o common_a calamity_n or_o against_o any_o particular_a judgement_n that_o may_v befall_v ourselves_o as_o this_o will_v do_v that_o we_o have_v be_v give_v to_o the_o work_n of_o mercy_n this_o will_v free_v our_o heart_n from_o the_o fear_n of_o they_o psal._n 112.7_o 8._o he_o shall_v not_o be_v afraid_a of_o evil_a tiding_n his_o heart_n be_v fix_v trust_v in_o the_o lord_n his_o heart_n be_v establish_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v afraid_a jam._n 2.13_o mercy_n glori_v against_o judgement_n for_o 1_o we_o have_v a_o promise_n there_o it_o will_v give_v we_o hope_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o they_o psal._n 41.1_o bless_a be_v he_o that_o consider_v the_o poor_a the_o lord_n will_v deliver_v he_o in_o time_n of_o trouble_n or_o 2_o that_o god_n will_v give_v we_o strength_n and_o comfort_n in_o they_o isa._n 58.10_o if_o thou_o draw_v out_o thy_o soul_n to_o the_o hungry_a and_o satisfy_v the_o afflict_a soul_n then_o shall_v thy_o light_n arise_v in_o obscurity_n and_o thy_o darkness_n be_v as_o the_o noon_n day_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v the_o most_o uncomfortable_a estate_n thou_o can_v fall_v into_o shall_v be_v comfortable_a to_o thou_o in_o which_o respect_n solomon_n make_v this_o a_o strong_a motive_n to_o the_o work_n of_o charity_n eccl._n 11.2_o give_v a_o portion_n to_o seven_o and_o also_o to_o eight_o be_v liberal_a in_o thy_o alm_n for_o thou_o know_v not_o what_o evil_n shall_v be_v upon_o the_o earth_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v how_o soon_o thou_o may_v loose_v all_o that_o thou_o have_v and_o sure_o as_o there_o be_v now_o much_o evil_n threaten_v to_o our_o state_n by_o the_o power_n and_o design_n of_o our_o bloody_a enemy_n so_o if_o the_o wise_a of_o god_n prophet_n be_v now_o alive_a to_o direct_v we_o what_o to_o do_v to_o prevent_v these_o evil_n they_o will_v advise_v we_o next_o to_o our_o repentance_n our_o tear_n and_o prayer_n unto_o god_n unto_o this_o course_n as_o daniel_n do_v that_o great_a king_n dan._n 4.27_o o_o king_n let_v my_o counsel_n be_v acceptable_a unto_o thou_o break_v off_o thy_o sin_n by_o righteousness_n make_v restitution_n and_o thy_o iniquity_n by_o show_v mercy_n to_o the_o poor_a if_o it_o may_v be_v a_o lengthen_v of_o thy_o tranquillity_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v if_o any_o thing_n will_v turn_v away_o the_o judgement_n this_o will_n the_o three_o and_o last_o sort_n of_o promise_n that_o be_v make_v unto_o this_o duty_n be_v such_o as_o concern_v the_o life_n to_o come_v for_o this_o will_v strong_o confirm_v a_o man_n in_o the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n if_o he_o have_v be_v give_v to_o the_o work_n of_o mercy_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o apostle_n call_v it_o 1_o tim._n 6.19_o the_o lay_v up_o for_o ourselves_o a_o good_a foundation_n against_o the_o time_n to_o come_v that_o we_o may_v lay_v hold_n on_o eternal_a life_n and_o our_o saviour_n luke_n 16.9_o make_v you_o friend_n of_o the_o mammon_n of_o unrighteousness_n that_o when_o you_o fail_v they_o may_v receive_v you_o as_o faithful_a witness_n of_o your_o faith_n into_o everlasting_a habitation_n in_o which_o respect_n also_o in_o that_o great_a day_n of_o reckon_n when_o every_o man_n shall_v receive_v according_a to_o his_o work_n there_o shall_v be_v principal_a regard_n have_v to_o the_o work_n of_o mercy_n mat._n 25.34_o 36._o come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n etc._n etc._n for_o i_o be_v a_o hunger_a and_o you_o give_v i_o meat_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o much_o for_o the_o second_o point_n i_o tell_v you_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o this_o example_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n the_o three_o be_v this_o that_o we_o must_v not_o only_o pity_v they_o that_o be_v in_o misery_n and_o relieve_v they_o too_o but_o we_o must_v do_v it_o free_o also_o though_o the_o party_n we_o relieve_v be_v most_o unworthy_a of_o it_o some_o caution_n i_o will_v premise_v before_o i_o prove_v this_o first_o true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o poor_a in_o all_o place_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o most_o void_a of_o grace_n and_o not_o so_o miserable_a in_o their_o corporal_a as_o in_o their_o spiritual_a estate_n as_o jeremy_n speak_v of_o they_o in_o his_o time_n jer._n 5.4_o they_o be_v foolish_a or_o profane_a they_o know_v not_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n not_o the_o judgement_n of_o their_o god_n pro_fw-la 30.9_o lest_o i_o be_v poor_a and_o steal_v and_o take_v the_o name_n of_o my_o god_n in_o vain_a as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v so_o do_v usual_o poor_a man_n second_o they_o that_o can_v do_v it_o aught_o to_o use_v their_o utmost_a endeavour_n for_o the_o reform_n of_o they_o and_o it_o be_v the_o sin_n and_o shame_n of_o this_o and_o all_o other_o place_n that_o they_o be_v bear_v with_o as_o they_o be_v that_o which_o solomon_n speak_v of_o all_o child_n may_v special_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o their_o child_n pro._n 22.15_o foolishness_n be_v bind_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o child_n but_o the_o rod_n of_o correction_n the_o house_n of_o correction_n shall_v drive_v it_o far_o from_o he_o three_o you_o that_o be_v by_o office_n to_o take_v care_n for_o the_o poor_a aught_o to_o inquire_v into_o their_o condition_n as_o well_o as_o into_o their_o want_n and_o to_o put_v a_o difference_n in_o your_o alm_n let_v such_o as_o be_v unclean_a or_o idle_a or_o such_o as_o so_o soon_o as_o you_o give_v they_o a_o penny_n will_v to_o the_o alehouse_n with_o it_o present_o let_v such_o i_o say_v smart_n for_o it_o let_v they_o feel_v the_o misery_n of_o want_n a_o little_a better_o it_o be_v the_o apostle_n charge_v 2_o thess._n 3.10_o if_o any_o will_v not_o work_v let_v he_o not_o eat_v four_o and_o last_o we_o be_v all_o bind_v in_o our_o alm_n to_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o poor_a gal_n 6.10_o let_v we_o do_v good_a to_o all_o man_n especial_o to_o they_o that_o be_v
of_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n our_o heavenly_a father_n who_o we_o must_v follow_v do_v so_o 1_o tim._n 4.10_o he_o be_v the_o saviour_n the_o preserver_n of_o all_o man_n special_o of_o they_o that_o believe_v such_o of_o the_o poor_a as_o fear_n god_n though_o they_o seek_v not_o to_o we_o we_o shall_v seek_v out_o they_o as_o onesiphorus_n do_v paul_n when_o he_o be_v prisoner_n at_o rome_n 2_o tim._n 1.17_o he_o seek_v i_o out_o diligent_o and_o find_v i_o for_o that_o that_o be_v do_v to_o the_o least_o of_o these_o be_v do_v to_o christ._n matth_n 25.40_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o have_v do_v it_o to_o one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o these_o my_o brethren_n you_o have_v do_v it_o to_o i_o and_o what_o a_o comfort_n may_v that_o be_v to_o thou_o to_o have_v relieve_v christ_n and_o we_o may_v have_v more_o assurance_n of_o reward_n in_o the_o least_o kindness_n do_v to_o such_o a_o one_o then_o in_o all_o that_o we_o do_v for_o other_o poor_a mat._n 10.42_o the_o least_o thing_n a_o man_n give_v to_o a_o poor_a man_n in_o the_o name_n of_o a_o disciple_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o say_v our_o saviour_n he_o shall_v in_o no_o wise_n lose_v his_o reward_n and_o the_o apostle_n say_v heb._n 6.9_o 10._o of_o they_o that_o have_v minister_v to_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o name_n of_o saint_n he_o mean_v and_o yet_o do_v minister_v that_o they_o have_v better_a thing_n in_o they_o then_o can_v be_v in_o a_o hypocrite_n and_o such_o as_o do_v accompany_v salvation_n yet_o though_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o the_o point_n i_o propound_v remain_v true_a that_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o poor_a shall_v not_o cause_v we_o to_o shut_v up_o our_o bowel_n and_o be_v hard-hearted_a towards_o they_o mark_v how_o the_o apostle_n have_v speak_v of_o sundry_a fault_n of_o the_o poor_a 2._o thess._n 3._o infer_v this_o exhortation_n vers_fw-la 13._o but_o you_o brethren_n be_v not_o weary_a in_o well_o do_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v their_o lewdness_n will_v weary_v and_o dishearten_v you_o if_o you_o take_v not_o heed_n let_v we_o therefore_o look_v to_o our_o pattern_n luke_n 6.36_o be_v you_o merciful_a as_o your_o heavenly_a father_n be_v merciful_a how_o be_v that_o verse_n 35._o he_o be_v merciful_a to_o the_o unthankful_a and_o to_o the_o evil_a 1._o tim._n 4.10_o he_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o all_o man_n their_o very_a misery_n be_v a_o sufficient_a motive_n to_o he_o though_o there_o be_v no_o goodness_n in_o they_o at_o all_o and_o so_o shall_v it_o be_v unto_o thou_o exod._n 23.5_o if_o thou_o see_v the_o ass_n of_o he_o that_o hate_v thou_o lie_v under_o his_o burden_n will_v thou_o cease_v to_o help_v he_o mark_v 1._o a_o beast_n in_o misery_n must_v be_v relieve_v much_o more_o a_o man_n 2._o a_o beast_n of_o such_o a_o one_o as_o hate_v god_n people_n and_o that_o must_v needs_o be_v sure_a a_o very_a bad_a man_n must_v be_v relieve_v much_o more_o the_o man_n himself_o four_o thing_n there_o be_v that_o may_v persuade_v thou_o to_o it_o 1._o these_o wretched_a man_n be_v thy_o own_o flesh_n esa._n 58.7_o and_o it_o be_v a_o foul_a sin_n to_o hide_v thyself_o from_o thy_o own_o flesh_n 2._o they_o may_v belong_v to_o god_n election_n for_o aught_o thou_o know_v destroy_v not_o he_o by_o withhold_a thy_o mercy_n say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 14.15_o for_o who_o christ_n die_v 3._o thou_o respect_v not_o he_o in_o thy_o alm_n if_o thou_o give_v with_o a_o good_a heart_n but_o the_o lord_n prov._n 19.17_o he_o that_o have_v pity_n on_o the_o poor_a dare_v unto_o the_o lord_n 4._o even_o that_o thou_o give_v unto_o these_o that_o be_v most_o unworthy_a if_o thou_o give_v it_o with_o a_o good_a heart_n shall_v not_o loose_v a_o reward_n eccles._n 11.1_o cast_v thy_o bread_n upon_o the_o water_n be_v liberal_a towards_o all_o that_o stand_v in_o need_n for_o thou_o shall_v find_v it_o after_o many_o day_n now_o for_o this_o duty_n i_o will_v i_o can_v say_v to_o all_o you_o applic._n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v to_o the_o corinthian_n 2._o cor._n 9.12_o as_o touch_v the_o minister_a to_o the_o saint_n it_o be_v superfluous_a for_o i_o to_o write_v unto_o you_o for_o i_o know_v the_o forwardness_n of_o your_o mind_n certain_o it_o be_v not_o superfluous_a for_o i_o but_o most_o needful_a to_o speak_v unto_o you_o of_o this_o duty_n for_o i_o know_v no_o forwardness_n in_o any_o almost_o unto_o this_o duty_n first_o it_o be_v the_o sin_n and_o shame_n of_o our_o time_n that_o many_o die_a in_o good_a estate_n some_o in_o very_o great_a estate_n bequeath_v nothing_o to_o the_o poor_a though_o they_o can_v then_o enjoy_v they_o no_o long_o these_o man_n 1._o as_o they_o have_v live_v so_o they_o die_v in_o open_a profession_n of_o their_o profane_a infidelity_n that_o they_o believe_v not_o that_o that_o the_o scripture_n have_v speak_v of_o this_o duty_n 2._o they_o be_v spot_n in_o our_o holy_a profession_n and_o cause_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v evil_a speak_v of_o as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o barren_a and_o fruitless_a religion_n rom._n 2.24_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v blaspheme_v among_o the_o papist_n through_o such_o man_n i_o know_v they_o do_v better_o that_o give_v in_o their_o life_n time_n and_o seldom_o do_v they_o give_v well_o that_o never_o give_v till_o they_o die_v yet_o 1._o it_o be_v a_o great_a increase_n of_o sin_n to_o give_v neither_o live_v nor_o die_a 2._o it_o become_v they_o well_o that_o have_v give_v most_o in_o their_o life_n to_o leave_v at_o their_o death_n also_o a_o testimony_n behind_o they_o of_o their_o charity_n as_o good_a dorcas_n do_v act_v 9.39_o the_o widow_n that_o be_v weep_v for_o she_o show_v the_o coat_n and_o garment_n which_o she_o make_v while_o she_o live_v and_o leave_v behind_o she_o for_o the_o poor_a second_o it_o be_v the_o sin_n and_o shame_n of_o many_o that_o live_v among_o we_o that_o they_o give_v nothing_o to_o the_o poor_a they_o count_v it_o a_o great_a privilege_n and_o will_v plead_v for_o it_o as_o for_o their_o life_n to_o be_v free_v and_o exempt_v from_o this_o charge_n and_o why_o so_o forsooth_o they_o have_v it_o not_o look_v on_o their_o apparel_n look_v on_o their_o expense_n in_o ale_n in_o tobacco_n in_o game_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v no_o want_n at_o all_o they_o spend_v more_o than_o two_o or_o three_o of_o their_o honest_a neighbour_n look_v on_o their_o proud_a and_o stately_a carriage_n towards_o their_o better_n and_o you_o will_v take_v they_o to_o be_v gallant_n and_o rich_a man_n only_o when_o they_o shall_v give_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o poor_a than_o they_o be_v bankrupt_n than_o they_o have_v nothing_o what_o shall_v such_o as_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n and_o the_o child_n of_o god_n count_v it_o a_o privilege_n to_o be_v exempt_v from_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a certain_o a_o christian_a will_v count_v it_o a_o matter_n of_o humble_v unto_o he_o to_o have_v nothing_o to_o give_v and_o he_o will_v labour_v hard_a that_o he_o may_v have_v something_o to_o give_v according_a to_o that_o ephe_n 4.28_o let_v he_o labour_n work_v with_o his_o hand_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a that_o he_o may_v have_v to_o give_v to_o he_o that_o need_v thou_o work_v that_o thou_o may_v have_v to_o live_v and_o to_o maintain_v thy_o family_n o_o that_o many_o of_o you_o do_v so_o well_o nay_o thou_o work_v that_o thou_o may_v have_v to_o haunt_v the_o alehouse_n to_o game_n to_o maintain_v thy_o pride_n and_o where_o be_v the_o poor_a man_n to_o be_v find_v that_o work_v to_o that_o end_n that_o he_o may_v have_v to_o give_v unto_o they_o that_o need_n three_o it_o be_v the_o sin_n and_o shame_n of_o the_o most_o that_o though_o they_o give_v they_o give_v not_o willing_o and_o cheerful_o and_o so_o lose_v the_o comfort_n and_o fruit_n of_o all_o that_o they_o give_v paul_n bid_v timothy_n charge_n rich_a man_n that_o they_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o distribute_v willing_a to_o communicate_v 1._o tim._n 6.18_o and_o rom._n 12.8_o let_v he_o that_o show_v mercy_n do_v it_o with_o cheerfulness_n 2._o cor._n 9_o 7._o god_n love_v a_o cheerful_a giver_n for_o this_o paul_n commend_v the_o macedonian_n 2._o cor._n 8_o 4._o they_o pray_v paul_n with_o much_o entreaty_n that_o he_o will_v receive_v their_o gift_n for_o the_o poor_a saint_n at_o jerusalem_n two_o thing_n there_o be_v that_o do_v discover_v most_o man_n give_v not_o willing_o 1._o it_o come_v so_o hardly_o from_o they_o they_o must_v be_v sess_v to_o so_o much_o they_o be_v so_o late_o and_o backward_o in_o their_o payment_n it_o
as_o in_o comparison_n of_o these_o he_o make_v no_o reckon_n of_o like_o a_o little_a over-measure_n that_o be_v give_v you_o when_o you_o have_v buy_v any_o thing_n like_v to_o the_o brown_a paper_n and_o pack-thrid_n that_o the_o mercer_n give_v you_o for_o nothing_o mat._n 6.33_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v add_v to_o you_o but_o the●e_n mercy_n he_o make_v precious_a account_n of_o these_o be_v his_o jewel_n wherein_o he_o set_v forth_o the_o riches_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o mercy_n and_o bounty_n as_o ahashuerus_n the_o king_n of_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n show_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o glorious_a kingdom_n and_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o excellent_a majesty_n in_o that_o feast_n he_o make_v to_o his_o prince_n and_o servant_n est._n 1.4_o so_o do_v god_n much_o more_o set_v forth_o the_o riches_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o mercy_n in_o bestow_v these_o precious_a mercy_n upon_o any_o for_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v rom._n 14.17_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o meat_n and_o drink_v but_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n these_o mercy_n therefore_o be_v call_v ephes._n 1.7_o 8._o the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n wherein_o he_o have_v abound_v towards_o we_o therefore_o when_o paul_n speak_v of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n towards_o he_o in_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n he_o say_v 1_o tim._n 1.14_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v exceed_v abundant_a towards_o he_o this_o be_v a_o marvellous_a mercy_n of_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v pardon_v any_o of_o we_o our_o sin_n and_o give_v we_o eternal_a life_n such_o a_o mercy_n as_o we_o can_v never_o sufficient_o admire_v and_o wonder_v at_o show_v thy_o marvellous_a love_a kindness_n o_o thou_o that_o save_v by_o thy_o right_a hand_n they_o that_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o th●e_n say_v david_n psal._n 17.7_o and_o paul_n 2_o thess._n 1.10_o god_n shall_v be_v admire_v in_o all_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o that_o day_n three_o those_o mercy_n be_v but_o of_o a_o short_a continuance_n they_o last_v no_o long_o than_o this_o short_a and_o momentany_a life_n they_o be_v call_v therefore_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thing_n of_o this_o life_n 1_o cor._n 6.4_o but_o these_o be_v everlasting_a mercy_n and_o will_v outlast_v this_o life_n and_o endure_v unto_o eternity_n psal._n 103.17_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v from_o everlasting_a to_o everlasting_a upon_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o four_o those_o mercy_n be_v uncertain_a even_o in_o this_o life_n 1_o tim._n 6_o 17._o trust_v not_o in_o uncertain_a riches_n but_o these_o be_v sure_a mercy_n not_o flit_a or_o uncertain_a if_o they_o be_v once_o get_v they_o can_v never_o be_v lose_v and_o be_v therefore_o call_v esa._n 55.3_o the_o sure_a mercy_n of_o david_n david_n mercy_n the_o mercy_n he_o beg_v here_o the_o mercy_n he_o make_v such_o reckon_n of_o the_o mercy_n peculiar_a to_o he_o and_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n be_v sure_a mercy_n and_o can_v never_o be_v lose_v five_o and_o last_o those_o mercy_n a_o man_n may_v have_v and_o have_v they_o in_o abundance_n and_o be_v make_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o better_a man_n never_o a_o whit_n more_o acceptable_a to_o god_n never_o a_o whit_n the_o near_a unto_o eternal_a happiness_n nay_o for_o the_o most_o part_n they_o make_v man_n that_o enjoy_v they_o most_o abundant_o the_o worse_a man_n a_o great_a deal_n they_o estrange_v their_o heart_n from_o god_n and_o deprive_v they_o of_o his_o kingdom_n there_o be_v a_o sore_a evil_n which_o i_o have_v see_v under_o the_o sun_n say_v solomon_n eccl._n 5.13_o namely_o riches_n keep_v for_o the_o owner_n thereof_o to_o their_o hurt_n luke_n 18.24_o how_o hardly_o shall_v they_o that_o have_v riches_n enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n vers_fw-la 25._o it_o be_v easy_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o go_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n then_o for_o a_o rich_a man_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o these_o mercy_n of_o david_n never_o do_v any_o man_n receive_v but_o they_o make_v he_o a_o better_a man_n than_o he_o be_v before_o no_o man_n ever_o obtain_v this_o mercy_n to_o have_v his_o sin_n pardon_v but_o his_o heart_n be_v change_v and_o he_o become_v a_o new_a man_n present_o act_n 5_o 3●_n christ_n give_v repentance_n unto_o israel_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n so_o ezek._n 36.25_o 26._o i_o will_v sprinkle_v clean_a water_n upon_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v clean_o a_o new_a heart_n also_o will_v i_o give_v you_o and_o a_o new_a spirit_n will_v i_o put_v within_o you_o labour_v therefore_o to_o make_v this_o thy_o own_o to_o get_v assurance_n that_o these_o mercy_n of_o david_n do_v belong_v to_o thou_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o thy_o need_n thou_o may_v have_v the_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n of_o these_o mercy_n else_o will_v this_o one_o daily_a heavy_a upon_o thy_o heart_n that_o there_o be_v so_o much_o mercy_n in_o the_o lord_n such_o a_o fountain_n yea_o such_o a_o sea_n of_o mercy_n yea_o thou_o know_v so_o much_o and_o have_v see_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o fountain_n open_v unto_o thou_o as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v zach._n 13.1_o yet_o thou_o be_v not_o wash_v in_o it_o thou_o be_v not_o cleanse_v from_o thy_o sin_n thou_o be_v never_o the_o better_a for_o it_o that_o there_o be_v mercy_n enough_o in_o the_o lord_n to_o pardon_v david_n sin_n and_o manasses_n sin_n and_o peter_n sin_n and_o mary_n magdalen_n sin_n yea_o all_o manner_n of_o sin_n and_o blasphemy_n as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v mat._n 12.31_o yet_o thy_o sin_n remain_v still_o unpardoned_a and_o all_o because_o thou_o have_v despise_v these_o riches_n of_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v rom._n 2.4_o thou_o have_v esteem_v much_o more_o of_o those_o common_a mercy_n of_o god_n then_o of_o these_o like_o the_o prodigal_n who_o so_o long_o as_o he_o can_v get_v enough_o to_o fill_v his_o belly_n though_o it_o be_v but_o hogs-meate_n never_o think_v of_o return_v to_o his_o father_n and_o seek_v for_o his_o favour_n luk._n 15.16_o 17._o o_o this_o be_v it_o this_o despise_n of_o the_o lord_n special_a mercy_n be_v that_o that_o will_v treasure_n and_o heap_v up_o wrath_n to_o a_o man_n against_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v rom._n 2.5_o object_n now_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v say_v i_o will_v fain_o know_v that_o this_o mercy_n of_o god_n belong_v to_o i_o but_o how_o may_v i_o come_v to_o be_v assure_v of_o it_o answ._n to_o that_o man_n i_o answer_v there_o be_v five_o thing_n which_o may_v be_v both_o as_o sign_n and_o note_n whereby_o thou_o may_v know_v it_o belong_v to_o thou_o and_o as_o mean_n also_o to_o bring_v thou_o unto_o this_o assurance_n that_o thou_o desire_v first_o if_o thou_o can_v seek_v and_o sue_v to_o he_o for_o this_o mercy_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n that_o be_v more_o than_o for_o any_o other_o thing_n prize_v this_o mercy_n above_o all_o other_o mercy_n thou_o need_v not_o doubt_v but_o it_o belong_v to_o thou_o thou_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o have_v thy_o part_n in_o it_o mark_v the_o promise_n make_v to_o such_o as_o be_v in_o this_o case_n jeremy_n 29.13_o you_o shall_v seek_v i_o and_o find_v i_o when_o you_o shall_v search_v for_o i_o with_o all_o your_o heart_n psalm_n 69.32_o your_o heart_n shall_v live_v that_o seek_v god_n other_o mercy_n thou_o may_v long_v for_o and_o sue_v earnest_o for_o and_o never_o obtain_v they_o but_o these_o spiritual_a mercy_n without_o which_o thou_o can_v not_o be_v save_v thou_o may_v be_v sure_a to_o obtain_v if_o thou_o can_v thus_o desire_v and_o seek_v for_o they_o luke_n 11.13_o how_o much_o more_o shall_v your_o heavenly_a father_n give_v the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o they_o that_o ask_v he_o psal._n 105.3_o let_v the_o heart_n of_o they_o rejoice_v that_o seek_v the_o lord_n so_o that_o if_o thou_o want_v these_o the_o fault_n be_v in_o thyself_o you_o have_v not_o say_v the_o apostle_n jam_fw-la 4.2_o because_o you_o ask_v not_o second_o if_o thou_o can_v be_v miserable_a and_o deject_v enough_o in_o thy_o own_o eye_n thou_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o doubt_v but_o this_o mercy_n belong_v unto_o thou_o misery_n we_o know_v be_v the_o object_n of_o mercy_n and_o chief_a motive_n to_o compassion_n if_o thou_o can_v therefore_o unfeigned_o lay_v open_a unto_o god_n thy_o misery_n thy_o spiritual_a misery_n i_o mean_v the_o wound_n &_o sore_n of_o thy_o soul_n as_o poor_a cripple_n do_v their_o sore_n to_o man_n who_o they_o will_v move_v to_o pity_v they_o thou_o need_v not_o doubt_v to_o find_v mercy_n with_o the_o lord_n thus_o do_v david_n seek_v for_o mercy_n here_o as_o you_o
may_v see_v verse_n 3_o 4_o 5._o i_o acknowledge_v my_o transgression_n and_o my_o sin_n be_v ever_o before_o i_o against_o thou_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v and_o do_v this_o evil_a in_o thy_o sight_n behold_v i_o be_v shape_v in_o iniquity_n and_o in_o sin_n do_v my_o mother_n conceive_v i_o so_o do_v he_o likewise_o psal._n 25.16_o turn_v thou_o unto_o i_o and_o have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o for_o i_o be_o desolate_a and_o afflict_a they_o that_o seek_v to_o god_n for_o mercy_n must_v judge_v themselves_o unworthy_a to_o find_v mercy_n as_o benhadads_n servant_n do_v when_o they_o sue_v to_o ahab_n for_o mercy_n they_o go_v with_o rope_n on_o their_o head_n and_o sackcloth_n about_o their_o loin_n 1_o king_n 20.32_o the_o lord_n be_v plentiful_a in_o promise_v his_o mercy_n to_o such_o miserable_a humble_a and_o deject_a soul_n psal._n 9.12_o he_o forget_v not_o the_o cry_n of_o the_o humble_a and_o 10.17_o lord_n thou_o have_v hear_v the_o desire_n of_o the_o humble_a therefore_o be_v this_o title_n give_v to_o the_o lord_n he_o be_v call_v a_o god_n that_o comfort_v the_o abject_a 2_o cor._n 7.6_o three_o if_o thou_o be_v one_o that_o fear_v to_o offend_v god_n in_o any_o thing_n thou_o need_v not_o doubt_v of_o his_o mercy_n for_o thou_o have_v his_o promise_n luke_n 1.50_o his_o mercy_n be_v on_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o from_o generation_n to_o generation_n four_o if_o thou_o can_v trust_v in_o his_o mercy_n and_o rely_v and_o rest_n upon_o it_o certain_o it_o belong_v to_o thou_o that_o make_v david_n pray_v thus_o psal._n 33.22_o let_v thy_o mercy_n o_o lord_n be_v upon_o we_o according_a as_o we_o do_v hope_n in_o thou_o and_o 147.11_o the_o lord_n take_v pleasure_n in_o they_o that_o hope_v in_o his_o mercy_n five_o if_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a ground_n of_o thy_o hope_n and_o confidence_n to_o find_v mercy_n with_o god_n if_o thou_o trust_v to_o obtain_v it_o only_o through_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n there_o be_v no_o come_n before_o the_o mercy-seat_n of_o god_n but_o through_o he_o this_o be_v notable_o figure_v unto_o god_n people_n in_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n 1._o none_o may_v go_v into_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n where_o the_o mercy-seat_n stand_v to_o obtain_v mercy_n for_o god_n people_n but_o the_o highpriest_n only_o who_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n heb._n 9.7_o 2._o he_o may_v not_o upon_o pain_n of_o death_n presume_v to_o come_v before_o the_o mercy-seat_n to_o obtain_v mercy_n for_o god_n people_n without_o incense_n which_o signify_v the_o intercession_n of_o christ._n levit._n 16.13_o the_o cloud_n of_o the_o incense_n must_v cover_v the_o mercy-seat_n that_o he_o die_v not_o 3._o he_o must_v not_o come_v before_o the_o mercy-seat_n without_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o signify_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n heb._n 9.7_o into_o the_o second_o tabernacle_n go_v the_o highpriest_n alone_o not_o without_o blood_n which_o he_o offer_v for_o himself_o and_o for_o the_o error_n of_o the_o people_n levit._fw-la 16.14_o he_o shall_v take_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o bullock_n and_o sprinkle_v it_o with_o his_o finger_n upon_o the_o mercy-seat_n no_o hope_n of_o comfort_n at_o god_n mercy-seat_n but_o only_o through_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n blood_n who_o be_v therefore_o call_v our_o hope_n 1_o tim._n 1.1_o but_o have_v he_o for_o our_o highpriest_n we_o may_v go_v bold_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n and_o may_v obtain_v mercy_n and_o find_v grace_n to_o help_v in_o time_n of_o need_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v heb._n 4.16_o and_o so_o much_o shall_v serve_v to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o first_o duty_n which_o concern_v the_o lord_n himself_o see_v the_o lord_n be_v so_o infinite_a in_o mercy_n labour_n thou_o to_o know_v that_o he_o be_v so_o unto_o thou_o lecture_n xxv_o on_o psal._n 51.1_o 2._o may_v 16._o 1626._o now_o for_o the_o second_o duty_n 2._o which_o concern_v the_o lord_n himself_o it_o be_v that_o which_o the_o prophet_n exhort_v we_o unto_o psal._n 29.2_o give_v unto_o the_o lord_n the_o glory_n due_a unto_o his_o name_n that_o be_v carry_v yourselves_o towards_o he_o according_o give_v he_o his_o due_n if_o we_o know_v and_o believe_v indeed_o that_o god_n be_v so_o gracious_a and_o merciful_a special_o if_o we_o know_v and_o believe_v he_o be_v so_o unto_o we_o how_o can_v we_o choose_v but_o love_v he_o and_o fear_v to_o offend_v he_o and_o cry_v shame_n upon_o ourselves_o that_o we_o be_v no_o more_o willing_a and_o desirous_a to_o serve_v and_o please_v he_o therefore_o do_v the_o apostle_n pray_v for_o the_o ephesian_n ephes._n 3.18_o 19_o that_o god_n will_v make_v they_o able_a to_o comprehend_v with_o all_o saint_n what_o be_v the_o length_n and_o breadth_n and_o depth_n and_o height_n and_o to_o know_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n which_o pass_v knowledge_n that_o they_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o all_o the_o fullness_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o once_o you_o full_o know_v this_o love_n that_o god_n have_v bear_v to_o you_o in_o christ_n it_o will_v even_o fill_v you_o with_o all_o the_o fullness_n of_o god_n that_o be_v with_o all_o the_o sanctify_a and_o save_a grace_n of_o god_n many_o deceive_v themselves_o miserable_o in_o this_o point_n and_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o a_o interest_n in_o god_n special_a mercy_n without_o any_o ground_n at_o all_o i_o will_v therefore_o show_v you_o five_o notable_a effect_n that_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o this_o marvellous_a mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o the_o lord_n must_v needs_o work_v upon_o they_o that_o have_v it_o whereby_o as_o by_o certain_a note_n you_o may_v try_v yourselves_o whether_o you_o do_v indeed_o believe_v and_o know_v that_o this_o special_a mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v belong_v unto_o you_o first_o it_o will_v make_v man_n afraid_a to_o offend_v he_o nothing_o have_v that_o force_n to_o work_v in_o a_o man_n the_o true_a fear_n of_o god_n as_o this_o have_v psal._n 130.4_o there_o be_v mercy_n with_o thou_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v fear_v and_o hos._n 3.5_o they_o shall_v fear_v the_o lord_n and_o his_o goodness_n in_o those_o day_n and_o that_o be_v the_o right_a fear_n of_o god_n which_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n mercy_n do_v breed_v in_o we_o second_o he_o must_v needs_o grieve_v and_o be_v trouble_v when_o he_o have_v offend_v he_o nothing_o have_v that_o force_n to_o melt_v and_o break_v the_o heart_n with_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o sin_n as_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n marvellous_a mercy_n and_o love_a kindness_n towards_o we_o zach._n 12.10_o i_o will_v pour_v upon_o they_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n that_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n which_o shall_v persuade_v they_o of_o my_o fatherly_a love_n towards_o they_o as_o it_o be_v call_v rom._n 8.15_o and_o they_o shall_v look_v on_o he_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v and_o then_o they_o shall_v mourn_v for_o he_o as_o one_o mourn_v for_o his_o only_a son_n and_o what_o be_v it_o that_o make_v mary_n magdalen_n weep_v so_o abundant_o for_o her_o sin_n luk_n 7.38_o our_o saviour_n tell_v we_o verse_n 47._o it_o be_v her_o love_n that_o grow_v from_o the_o consideration_n of_o god_n marvellous_a mercy_n in_o pardon_v she_o so_o many_o foul_a sin_n three_o he_o must_v needs_o take_v delight_n in_o the_o service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n nothing_o have_v that_o force_n to_o make_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n sweet_a unto_o we_o as_o the_o true_a knowledge_n and_o consideration_n of_o the_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n as_o for_o i_o say_v david_n psal._n 5.7_o i_o will_v come_v into_o thy_o house_n in_o the_o multitude_n of_o thy_o mercy_n that_o be_v that_o that_o shall_v draw_v i_o to_o thy_o house_n and_o make_v i_o love_v it_o and_o jer._n 31.12_o they_o shall_v come_v and_o sing_v in_o the_o height_n of_o zion_n and_o shall_v flow_v together_o to_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o david_n give_v this_o for_o the_o cause_n why_o he_o beg_v so_o earnest_o of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n psal._n 27.4_o to_o behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v how_o amiable_a and_o gracious_a the_o lord_n be_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o can_v no_o where_o behold_v and_o see_v that_o so_o well_o as_o in_o his_o house_n and_o that_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o make_v i_o so_o far_o in_o love_n with_o the_o house_n of_o god_n o_o if_o man_n know_v the_o sweetness_n and_o infiniteness_n of_o god_n mercy_n they_o will_v love_v his_o house_n and_o delight_v more_o in_o it_o then_o they_o do_v four_o he_o must_v needs_o desire_v earnest_o to_o know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n
of_o the_o body_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v it_o possible_a he_o shall_v delight_v in_o the_o destruction_n and_o damnation_n of_o their_o soul_n no_o no_o harken_v how_o deep_o he_o protest_v against_o this_o ezekiel_n 33.11_o say_v unto_o they_o as_o i_o live_v say_v the_o lord_n i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o the_o death_n of_o the_o wicked_a yea_o he_o protest_v this_o so_o deep_o even_o for_o this_o very_a purpose_n that_o he_o may_v encourage_v every_o poor_a sinner_n to_o turn_v unto_o he_o i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o the_o death_n of_o he_o that_o die_v say_v the_o lord_n god_n ezekiel_n 18.32_o wherefore_o turn_v yourselves_o and_o live_v you_o second_o god_n have_v reveil_v in_o his_o word_n that_o he_o do_v earnest_o desire_v the_o repentance_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o most_o wicked_a man_n and_o take_v great_a pleasure_n in_o it_o and_o therefore_o earnest_o seek_v to_o reclaim_v they_o ezek._n 33.11_o as_o i_o live_v say_v the_o lord_n i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o his_o death_n but_o that_o he_o turn_v from_o his_o way_n and_o live_v turn_v you_o turn_v you_o from_o your_o evil_a way_n for_o why_o will_v you_o die_v o_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o this_o thou_o have_v heretofore_o and_o have_v this_o day_n experience_n of_o in_o thyself_o how_o earnest_o and_o how_o mighty_o have_v god_n labour_v with_o thou_o this_o way_n yea_o he_o beseech_v thou_o and_o pray_v thou_o to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o he_o 2._o cor._n 5.20_o yea_o there_o be_v nothing_o will_v so_o much_o delight_v he_o as_o to_o see_v thou_o repent_v as_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o father_n of_o the_o prodigal_a o_o what_o mirth_n and_o joy_n make_v he_o when_o he_o return_v to_o he_o luke_n 15.23_o 24._o three_o god_n have_v reveil_v in_o his_o word_n that_o christ_n with_o all_o his_o merit_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n offer_v unto_o all_o that_o feel_v themselves_o to_o be_v sinner_n as_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v list_v up_o for_o all_o to_o look_v upon_o that_o be_v sting_v num._n 21.9_o unto_o thou_o as_o well_o as_o unto_o any_o other_o be_v he_o offer_v and_o thou_o be_v command_v to_o believe_v he_o die_v for_o thou_o mar._n 16.15_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n and_o what_o be_v it_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o he_o sure_o to_o say_v to_o he_o as_o lu._n 2.11_o unto_o you_o be_v bear_v this_o day_n in_o the_o city_n of_o david_n a_o saviour_n which_o be_v christ_n the_o lord_n so_o christ_n invit_v all_o joh._n 7.37_o jesus_n cry_v say_v if_o any_o man_n thirst_n let_v he_o come_v unto_o i_o and_o drink_v and_o of_o his_o invitation_n of_o sinner_n in_o this_o sort_n the_o lord_n say_v esa._n 45.19_o i_o say_v not_o in_o vain_a seek_v you_o i_o i_o the_o lord_n speak_v righteousness_n if_o a_o poor_a sinner_n be_v thus_o invite_v shall_v come_v to_o christ_n for_o grace_n will_v he_o reject_v he_o no_o in_o no_o wise_a joh._n 6.37_o all_o that_o the_o father_n give_v i_o shall_v come_v unto_o i_o and_o he_o that_o come_v unto_o i_o i_o will_v in_o no_o wise_a cast_v out_o four_o god_n have_v not_o in_o word_n only_o but_o real_o give_v thou_o cause_n to_o feel_v by_o manifold_a experiment_n that_o he_o love_v thou_o and_o wish_v thou_o well_o even_o this_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o his_o love_n that_o he_o have_v preserve_v thou_o from_o so_o many_o danger_n ps._n 41.11_o by_o this_o i_o know_v that_o thou_o favour_v i_o because_o my_o enemy_n do_v not_o triumph_n over_o i_o that_o he_o feed_v and_o clothe_v thou_o deut._n 10.18_o he_o love_v the_o stranger_n in_o give_v he_o food_n and_o raiment_n that_o thou_o sleep_v so_o safe_o and_o quiet_o on_o night_n object_n psal._n 127.2_o he_o give_v his_o belove_a sleep_n thou_o will_v say_v these_o be_v but_o common_a mercy_n answ._n i_o answer_v true_o yet_o concern_v they_o observe_v four_o thing_n 1._o that_o to_o the_o faithful_a these_o be_v pledge_n of_o his_o special_a love_n as_o these_o place_n have_v prove_v 2._o that_o they_o be_v argument_n of_o his_o goodness_n even_o towards_o all_o man_n that_o enjoy_v they_o for_o so_o say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 2.4_o and_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v have_v do_v this_o for_o thou_o save_v thy_o life_n but_o once_o when_o thou_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o have_v lose_v it_o deliver_v thou_o out_o of_o debt_n and_o danger_n maintain_v thou_o with_o food_n and_o raiment_n all_o thy_o life_n thou_o will_v not_o doubt_v but_o he_o love_v thou_o unfeigned_o thou_o will_v count_v it_o a_o foul_a sin_n to_o suspect_v or_o doubt_v of_o his_o love_n or_o to_o entertain_v such_o a_o thought_n o_o but_o for_o all_o that_o he_o have_v do_v this_o for_o i_o i_o doubt_v i_o have_v not_o his_o heart_n i_o doubt_v he_o have_v purpose_v in_o himself_o to_o be_v my_o destroyer_n in_o the_o end_n and_o be_v it_o nothing_o for_o thou_o to_o suspect_v this_o of_o god_n 3._o though_o these_o be_v but_o common_a mercy_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n to_o despise_v or_o set_v light_n by_o they_o rom._n 2.4_o despise_v thou_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o forbearance_n and_o long_o suffer_v 4._o thou_o depise_v they_o if_o thou_o be_v not_o by_o they_o lead_v and_o encourage_v to_o repent_v and_o turn_v unto_o god_n rom._n ●_o 4_o lecture_n xxvi_o on_o psalm_n 51.1_o ●_o may_v 23._o 1626._o now_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o proceed_v to_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o those_o to_o who_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o love_a kindness_n tender_a mercy_n and_o the_o multitude_n of_o tender_a mercy_n that_o be_v in_o the_o lord_n do_v minister_v cause_n of_o comfort_n and_o encouragement_n and_o those_o be_v such_o as_o be_v regenerate_v and_o in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o have_v true_o repent_v yet_o be_v subject_a oft_o to_o inward_a fear_n and_o trouble_v by_o doubt_v of_o the_o mercy_n and_o love_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o word_n and_o by_o daily_a experience_n also_o that_o many_o of_o god_n dear_a and_o choice_a servant_n such_o as_o above_o all_o other_o have_v most_o title_n to_o these_o special_a mercy_n of_o god_n that_o we_o have_v hear_v of_o be_v yet_o much_o subject_n to_o trouble_v of_o mind_n much_o give_v to_o inward_a heaviness_n and_o fear_n yea_o many_o of_o they_o be_v in_o that_o case_n that_o david_n complain_v he_o be_v in_o psalm_n 88.15_o while_o i_o suffer_v thy_o terror_n i_o be_o distract_v yea_o 2._o many_o of_o they_o continue_v a_o long_a time_n in_o this_o case_n as_o david_n complain_v psal_n 38.6_o i_o be_o trouble_v i_o be_o bow_v down_o great_o i_o go_v mourn_v all_o the_o day_n long_o and_o heman_n psal._n 88.15_o i_o be_o afflict_v and_o ready_a to_o die_v from_o my_o youth_n up_o while_o i_o suffer_v thy_o terror_n and_o upon_o this_o ground_n grow_v all_o this_o trouble_n of_o mind_n and_o terror_n that_o they_o be_v subject_a unto_o that_o they_o can_v be_v persuade_v that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o that_o his_o special_a mercy_n and_o love_a kindness_n belong_v unto_o they_o this_o heman_n express_v to_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o his_o trouble_n psalm_n 88.14_o lord_n why_o cast_v thou_o off_o my_o soul_n why_o hide_v thou_o thy_o face_n from_o i_o now_o before_o i_o speak_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o comfort_n of_o these_o poor_a soul_n i_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o give_v you_o some_o reason_n why_o i_o insist_v upon_o this_o use_n for_o i_o know_v well_o that_o many_o of_o you_o will_v think_v this_o a_o needless_a labour_n and_o be_v little_a or_o not_o at_o all_o affect_a with_o this_o sermon_n pro._n 27.7_o the_o full_a soul_n loathe_v the_o honey_n comb_n 1._o i_o know_v well_o the_o most_o of_o you_o stand_v in_o no_o need_n of_o comfort_n you_o have_v much_o more_o need_n of_o humble_v then_o of_o comfort_n a_o great_a deal_n the_o secure_a sinner_n that_o never_o feel_v yet_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v trouble_v in_o mind_n for_o sin_n have_v more_o need_n to_o hear_v of_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o law_n then_o of_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o law_n be_v make_v say_v the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n 1.9_o that_o be_v appoint_v and_o ordain_v of_o god_n for_o the_o lawless_a and_o disobedient_a for_o the_o ungodly_a and_o for_o sinner_n these_o comfort_n that_o i_o be_o to_o speak_v of_o be_v the_o child_n bread_n and_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v to_o take_v the_o child_n bread_n and_o to_o cast_v it_o to_o dog_n as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v matthew_n 15.26_o i_o know_v well_o that_o such_o kind_n of_o man_n will_v be_v likely_a to_o take_v hurt_v by_o
this_o that_o i_o shall_v teach_v by_o turn_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o lasciviousness_n as_o many_o do_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n jude_n 4._o to_o such_o christ_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n mercy_n be_v a_o stone_n of_o stumble_v and_o a_o rock_n of_o offence_n as_o peter_n speak_v 1._o peter_n 2.8_o 2._o i_o know_v well_o that_o not_o only_o such_o man_n but_o the_o most_o of_o you_o that_o profess_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n have_v no_o need_n of_o comfort_n but_o of_o humble_v rather_o as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v matthew_n 9.12_o the_o whole_a have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o physician_n but_o they_o that_o be_v sick_a and_o you_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o desire_v rather_o that_o doctrine_n that_o may_v search_v and_o pierce_v and_o wound_v your_o heart_n then_o that_o that_o shall_v comfort_v they_o and_o to_o pray_v with_o david_n psalm_n 141.5_o let_v the_o righteous_a smite_v i_o that_o be_v let_v he_o reproove_v i_o that_o shall_v be_v a_o benefit_n and_o a_o kindness_n unto_o i_o the_o fat_a and_o the_o strong_a among_o god_n sheep_n and_o such_o be_v the_o most_o of_o you_o shall_v be_v feed_v with_o judgement_n as_o the_o lord_n speak_v ezek._n 34.16_o 3._o i_o know_v well_o that_o many_o of_o you_o that_o true_o fear_v god_n do_v not_o stand_v in_o present_a need_n of_o comfort_n you_o be_v for_o the_o present_a in_o no_o trouble_n of_o mind_n your_o heart_n be_v cheerful_a and_o comfortable_a through_o the_o assurance_n and_o feel_v you_o have_v of_o god_n love_n his_o candle_n shine_v upon_o your_o head_n as_o job_n speak_v 29.3_o you_o know_v the_o joyful_a scund_a and_o can_v take_v comfort_n in_o his_o word_n and_o promise_n you_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n and_o of_o you_o i_o may_v say_v as_o ethan_n do_v psalm_n 89.15_o bless_a be_v the_o people_n that_o know_v the_o joyful_a sound_n they_o shall_v walk_v o_o lord_n in_o the_o light_n of_o thy_o countenance_n but_o though_o i_o know_v all_o this_o concern_v three_o sort_n of_o you_o that_o hear_v i_o now_o yet_o dare_v i_o not_o pass_v over_o this_o use_n of_o comfort_n first_o because_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o some_o of_o you_o that_o hear_v i_o now_o have_v present_a need_n of_o it_o nay_o it_o can_v be_v presume_v but_o that_o in_o so_o great_a a_o congregation_n special_o of_o voluntary_n who_o no_o law_n of_o man_n as_o on_o the_o sabbath_n but_o their_o own_o inclination_n and_o love_n to_o the_o word_n draw_v together_o there_o be_v many_o tender_a heart_n that_o have_v have_v experience_n of_o this_o trouble_n of_o mind_n this_o we_o may_v learn_v from_o the_o tender_a care_n the_o apostle_n have_v in_o write_v to_o particular_a church_n to_o prevent_v the_o grieve_n &_o trouble_v of_o the_o heart_n of_o such_o people_n which_o argue_v he_o doubt_v not_o but_o there_o be_v such_o among_o they_o rom._n 8._o when_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o dangerous_a state_n of_o the_o natural_a man_n ver_fw-la 8_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n can_v please_v god_n he_o add_v verse_n 9_o but_o you_o be_v not_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n which_o be_v a_o congregation_n very_o loose_a and_o disorder_v very_o sharp_o and_o namely_o 1_o cor._n 6.9_o 10._o know_v you_o not_o that_o the_o unrighteous_a shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o deceive_v neither_o fornicator_n nor_o idolater_n nor_o wantoness_n nor_o thief_n nor_o drunkard_n nor_o reviler_n shall_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n he_o add_v by_o way_n of_o prevention_n because_o he_o know_v that_o even_o in_o that_o congregation_n there_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o be_v some_o humble_a sinner_n verse_n 11._o and_o such_o be_v some_o of_o you_o but_o you_o be_v wash_v but_o you_o be_v sanctify_v but_o you_o be_v justify_v etc._n etc._n sundry_a other_o such_o place_n i_o can_v allege_v for_o this_o purpose_n second_o there_o be_v none_o of_o you_o that_o hear_v i_o this_o day_n but_o though_o you_o be_v for_o the_o present_a whole_a &_o sound_a in_o your_o spirit_n cheerful_a and_o comfortable_a and_o that_o upon_o good_a ground_n too_o &_o the_o lord_n in_o mercy_n continue_v you_o in_o that_o estate_n yet_o you_o must_v look_v for_o a_o change_n you_o must_v not_o think_v this_o cheerfulnes_n &_o comfort_n will_v last_v always_o you_o must_v look_v to_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o inward_a trouble_n and_o affliction_n of_o mind_n which_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o brethren_n and_o sister_n have_v begin_v to_o you_o in_o soon_o or_o late_a in_o one_o measure_n or_o other_o it_o may_v be_v you_o shall_v not_o pledge_v they_o in_o the_o same_o glass_n that_o job_n or_o david_n begin_v to_o you_o in_o the_o lord_n it_o may_v be_v out_o of_o respect_n to_o your_o weakness_n will_v call_v for_o a_o lesser_a glass_n for_o you_o but_o pledge_v they_o you_o must_v and_o pledge_v they_o in_o the_o same_o wine_n in_o one_o measure_n or_o other_o you_o know_v not_o what_o your_o measure_n will_v be_v and_o you_o must_v not_o choose_v your_o glass_n yourselves_o the_o cup_n be_v in_o the_o lord_n hand_n and_o he_o mix_v it_o and_o he_o pour_v it_o out_o as_o asaph_z speak_v for_o i_o have_v not_o take_v this_o comparison_n and_o allegory_n from_o the_o wretched_a fashion_n of_o your_o drunkard_n in_o drink_v of_o health_n but_o from_o the_o sacred_a word_n of_o god_n psal._n 75.8_o certain_o we_o must_v look_v for_o a_o evil_a day_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v ephes._n 6.13_o and_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o think_v or_o hope_v we_o may_v avoid_v it_o if_o we_o consider_v 1._o that_o this_o have_v be_v the_o case_n not_o of_o some_o or_o of_o a_o few_o good_a man_n but_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o mother_n of_o we_o all_o who_o be_v in_o that_o short_a book_n of_o the_o canticle_n report_v twice_o to_o have_v be_v in_o that_o case_n cant._n 3.1_o and_o 5.6_o her_o well-beloved_a have_v withdraw_v himself_o and_o be_v go_v 2._o that_o our_o bless_a saviour_n have_v experience_n of_o this_o tentation_n and_o affliction_n that_o in_o his_o own_o sense_n for_o the_o present_a his_o father_n have_v forsake_v he_o mat._n 27_o 40._o and_o we_o be_v all_o predestinate_v to_o be_v conform_v unto_o his_o image_n in_o affliction_n rom._n 8.29_o 3._o we_o all_o have_v the_o same_o adversary_n that_o other_o of_o god_n people_n have_v have_v that_o will_v buckle_v and_o wrestle_v with_o we_o one_o day_n this_o reason_n the_o apostle_n give_v the_o ephesian_n why_o they_o must_v look_v for_o a_o evil_a day_n ephes._n 6.12_o for_o we_o wrestle_v not_o against_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o against_o principality_n against_o power_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o ever_o he_o assault_v we_o these_o be_v the_o tentation_n he_o be_v most_o likely_a to_o assault_v we_o by_o and_o if_o thou_o be_v free_a from_o they_o thou_o be_v not_o of_o god_n thou_o be_v a_o hypocrite_n thou_o have_v no_o part_n in_o christ_n god_n mercy_n belong_v not_o unto_o thou_o for_o these_o be_v his_o chief_a his_o fiery_a dart_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v they_o ephes._n 6.16_o 4._o that_o we_o all_o give_v the_o lord_n as_o just_a cause_n daily_o by_o our_o carnal_a security_n and_o neglect_v of_o our_o watch_n to_o humble_a and_o afflict_v we_o as_o ever_o any_o other_o of_o his_o people_n have_v do_v insomuch_o as_o i_o may_v say_v to_o every_o one_o of_o you_o as_o the_o prophet_n od_v do_v to_o the_o israelite_n 2_o chron._n 28.10_o be_v there_o not_o with_o you_o even_o with_o you_o sinner_n against_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n and_o this_o be_v a_o chief_a scourge_n that_o the_o lord_n use_v to_o afflict_v his_o people_n for_o their_o security_n by_o even_o by_o withdraw_v and_o hide_v himself_o from_o they_o as_o christ_n serve_v his_o church_n when_o she_o grow_v lazy_a and_o be_v loath_a to_o rise_v and_o put_v on_o her_o clothes_n and_o defile_v her_o foot_n to_o open_v unto_o he_o he_o withdraw_v himself_o and_o go_v away_o cant._n 5.3_o 6._o so_o that_o you_o that_o have_v the_o most_o cheerful_a and_o comfortable_a heart_n have_v cause_n to_o hearken_v to_o this_o that_o i_o shall_v say_v for_o the_o comfort_n of_o god_n afflict_a servant_n because_o yourselves_o may_v have_v use_n of_o it_o hereafter_o we_o have_v the_o wit_n now_o in_o summer_n to_o provide_v for_o winter_n and_o oft_o to_o train_v our_o soldier_n and_o to_o try_v their_o armour_n aforehand_o let_v we_o learn_v to_o be_v wise_a for_o our_o soul_n and_o to_o get_v our_o armour_n in_o a_o readiness_n against_o the_o day_n of_o conflict_n we_o be_v like_a to_o have_v with_o satan_n in_o which_o respect_n
i_o may_v use_v to_o you_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n esa._n 42.23_o who_o among_o you_o will_v give_v ear_n to_o this_o who_o will_v hearken_v and_o hear_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v three_o and_o last_o admit_v there_o be_v but_o one_o or_o two_o among_o you_o that_o have_v present_a need_n of_o comfort_n and_o none_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o you_o either_o need_v it_o now_o or_o be_v like_a to_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o it_o hereafter_o yet_o stand_v i_o more_o bind_v to_o respect_v the_o two_o poor_a afflict_a soul_n then_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o you_o though_o you_o be_v as_o many_o more_o as_o you_o be_v and_o rather_o let_v you_o all_o go_v without_o that_o portion_n that_o belong_v to_o you_o than_o those_o two_o and_o i_o have_v three_o reason_n to_o move_v i_o to_o it_o first_o the_o example_n of_o the_o prophet_n elisha_n 2_o king_n 4.27_o who_o have_v tender_a respect_n to_o the_o shunamite_n when_o her_o soul_n be_v vex_v within_o she_o yea_o of_o christ_n who_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o chief_a shepherd_n and_o pastor_n who_o profess_v this_o to_o be_v his_o chief_a care_n ezek._n 34.16_o i_o will_v bind_v up_o that_o which_o be_v break_v and_o will_v strengthen_v that_o that_o be_v sick_a and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a work_n god_n appoint_v he_o to_o when_o he_o send_v he_o to_o preach_v esa._n 61.1_o 2._o he_o have_v send_v i_o to_o bind_v up_o the_o brokenhearted_a and_o to_o comfort_v all_o that_o mourn_n in_o zion_n and_o give_v a_o experiment_n of_o this_o in_o peter_n and_o mary_n who_o because_o they_o be_v afflict_v in_o conscience_n he_o show_v more_o care_n of_o after_o his_o resurrection_n then_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n mar_v 16_o 9_o 1_o cor._n 15.5_o joh._n 21.15_o second_o the_o charge_n and_o commandment_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o have_v give_v all_o his_o minister_n concern_v these_o as_o appear_z esa._n 40.1_o 2._o comfort_v you_o comfort_v you_o my_o people_n say_v your_o god_n speak_v you_o comfortable_o to_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o that_o charge_n to_o peter_n joh._n 21.15_o feed_v my_o lamb_n three_o as_o these_o poor_a soul_n have_v need_v to_o be_v comfort_v and_o have_v this_o evil_a usual_o accompany_v their_o other_o misery_n that_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a thing_n to_o fasten_v any_o comfort_n upon_o they_o their_o soul●_n usual_o refuse_v comfort_n when_o they_o be_v in_o this_o case_n as_o david_n speak_v psal_n 77.2_o so_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v ordain_v to_o this_o very_a end_n 1_o cor._n 4.3_o have_v more_o force_n and_o god_n show_v his_o power_n more_o in_o it_o this_o way_n then_o in_o any_o private_a mean_n according_a to_o that_o esa_fw-mi 57.19_o i_o create_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o lip_n peace_n peace_n to_o he_o that_o be_v far_o off_o and_o to_o he_o that_o be_v near_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o i_o will_v heal_v he_o now_o therefore_o hearken_v unto_o i_o so_o many_o of_o you_o as_o fear_v the_o lord_n and_o yet_o be_v much_o subject_n to_o trouble_v of_o mind_n and_o heaviness_n of_o heart_n and_o to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelicall_n prophet_n esa._n 51.1_o harken_v unto_o i_o you_o that_o follow_v a●●●r_a righteousness_n you_o that_o seek_v the_o lord_n stir_v up_o your_o heart_n to_o admit_v of_o the_o word_n of_o consolation_n four_o thing_n i_o have_v to_o say_v to_o you_o for_o your_o comfort_n first_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o such_o as_o you_o be_v shall_v be_v cheerful_a and_o comfortable_a in_o your_o spirit_n he_o have_v oft_o charge_v you_o in_o his_o word_n to_o be_v so_o yea_o as_o oft_o and_o as_o earnest_o as_o ever_o he_o charge_v you_o to_o fear_v he_o and_o to_o lead_v a_o godly_a life_n psal._n 32.11_o be_v glad_a in_o the_o lord_n and_o rejoice_v you_o righteous_a so_o i_o will_v what_o thou_o say_v if_o i_o be_v so_o but_o mark_v what_o follow_v and_o shout_v for_o joy_v all_o you_o that_o be_v upright_o in_o heart_n yea_o psalm_n 105.3_o let_v the_o heart_n of_o they_o rejoice_v that_o seek_v the_o lord_n yea_o phil._n 4.4_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n always_o and_o again_o i_o say_v rejoice_v to_o omit_v many_o other_o place_n as_o psalm_n 2.11.33.1.48.11.68.4.97.12.149.2.5_o matth._n 5.12_o luke_n 10.20_o rom._n 12.13_o phil._n 3.1_o 1_o thess._n 5.26_o by_o all_o which_o you_o may_v perceive_v this_o that_o god_n great_o delight_v to_o see_v you_o cheerful_a and_o comfortable_a second_o i_o must_v entreat_v you_o to_o consider_v the_o mischief_n that_o come_v by_o your_o give_v so_o much_o way_n to_o your_o heaviness_n and_o fear_n 1._o you_o give_v occasion_n to_o wicked_a man_n to_o blaspheme_v and_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o good_a way_n of_o god_n as_o if_o this_o preach_n and_o profession_n make_v man_n mad_a or_o mopish_a that_o follow_v it_o and_o so_o you_o alienate_v their_o heart_n from_o religion_n and_o make_v they_o hate_v preach_v as_o the_o spy_n that_o bring_v a_o evil_a report_n of_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n and_o say_v numb_a 1●_n 32_o it_o be_v a_o land_n that_o devour_v the_o inhabitant_n of_o it_o alienate_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n from_o it_o and_o make_v they_o murmur_v against_o moses_n and_o aaron_n numb_a 14.2_o it_o be_v say_v act_n 9.31_o that_o while_o the_o faithful_a walk_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o multiply_v that_o be_v the_o way_n to_o add_v to_o the_o church_n and_o gain_v other_o to_o it_o when_o christian_n walk_v cheerful_o and_o comfortable_o and_o so_o the_o contrary_n be_v a_o stumble_a block_n to_o keep_v man_n from_o it_o 2._o by_o yield_v to_o this_o heaviness_n you_o give_v advantage_n to_o satan_n and_o make_v yourselves_o less_o able_a to_o resist_v his_o tentation_n neh._n 8.10_o be_v not_o so_o sorrowful_a for_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v your_o strength_n 3._o by_o yield_v to_o this_o heaviness_n and_o fear_v you_o make_v the_o duty_n and_o service_n you_o do_v to_o god_n less_o acceptable_a unto_o he_o for_o as_o god_n love_v a_o cheerful_a giver_n 2_o cor._n 9.7_o so_o do_v he_o a_o cheerful_a worshipper_n psalm_n 100.2_o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o gladness_n the_o lord_n will_v have_v we_o call_v the_o sabbath_n a_o delight_n esa._n 58.13_o and_o threaten_v captivity_n even_o for_o this_o deut._n 28.47_o because_o they_o serve_v he_o not_o with_o joyfullnesse_n and_o with_o gladness_n of_o heart_n three_o i_o must_v desire_v you_o to_o consider_v how_o just_a cause_n such_o as_o you_o be_v have_v to_o be_v comfortable_a and_o cheerful_a in_o the_o lord_n what_o cause_n soever_o you_o have_v of_o humble_v in_o yourselves_o for_o certain_o year_n in_o a_o bless_a state_n psal._n 128.1_o bless_a be_v every_o one_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n 1._o you_o be_v the_o people_n to_o who_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n do_v belong_v mat._n 5.3_o bless_a be_v the_o poor_a in_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o all_o thing_n that_o befall_v you_o shall_v certain_o tend_v to_o the_o fit_v of_o you_o for_o it_o and_o therefore_o you_o have_v just_a cause_n of_o joy_n fear_v not_o little_a flock_n say_v our_o saviour_n luk._n 12_o 3●_n it_o be_v your_o father_n good_a pleasure_n to_o give_v you_o the_o kingdom_n rom._n 8.28_o all_o thing_n work_v together_o for_o good_a to_o they_o that_o fear_v god_n rom._n 5.2_o we_o rejoice_v in_o hope_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n yea_o we_o glory_n in_o tribulation_n also_o verse_n 3..2_o you_o be_v the_o people_n who_o sin_n be_v forgive_v and_o for_o who_o christ_n have_v full_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o his_o father_n so_o as_o though_o you_o may_v be_v chastise_v sharp_o for_o they_o punish_v you_o shall_v never_o be_v in_o that_o day_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o fountain_n open_v to_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o sin_n and_o for_o uncleanness_n zach._n 13.1_o in_o what_o day_n see_v that_o zach._n 12.10_o when_o god_n shall_v pour_v upon_o they_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o supplication_n so_o as_o they_o shall_v look_v upon_o he_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v and_o mourn_v for_o he_o and_o therefore_o thou_o have_v just_a cause_n of_o joy_n esa._n 40.2_o speak_v you_o comfortable_o to_o jerusalem_n and_o cry_v unto_o she_o that_o her_o warfare_n be_v accomplish_v the_o battle_n be_v fight_v and_o victory_n obtain_v against_o all_o her_o enemy_n that_o her_o iniquity_n be_v pardon_v for_o she_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o lord_n hand_n double_a for_o all_o her_o sin_n 3._o you_o be_v the_o people_n that_o how_o ever_o man_n esteem_v you_o or_o you_o think_v of_o
he_o know_v thou_o better_o than_o thou_o know_v thyself_o when_o my_o spirit_n be_v overwhelm_v within_o i_o say_v david_n ps._n 14●_n 3_o than_o thou_o know_v my_o path_n 3._o oh_o but_o thou_o will_v say_v be_v it_o possible_a i_o shall_v be_v in_o god_n favour_n and_o in_o the_o estate_n of_o grace_n and_o not_o perceive_v it_o myself_o feel_v no_o comfort_n in_o it_o i_o answer_v yes_o this_o be_v possible_a enough_o david_n sin_n be_v forgive_v &_o conseqvent_o he_o be_v in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n so_o soon_o as_o ever_o he_o repent_v and_o nathan_n in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n assure_v he_o of_o so_o much_o 2._o sam._n 12.13_o the_o lord_n have_v put_v away_o thy_o sin_n and_o yet_o he_o perceive_v it_o not_o nor_o feel_v the_o comfort_n of_o it_o of_o a_o good_a while_n after_o as_o appear_z by_o this_o psalm_n special_o ver_n 8._o make_v i_o to_o hear_v joy_n and_o gladness_n and_o ver_fw-la 12._o restore_v to_o i_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o salvation_n as_o our_o saviour_n after_o his_o resurrection_n appear_v to_o mary_n magdalen_n be_v with_o she_o and_o speak_v to_o she_o and_o yet_o she_o seek_v for_o he_o and_o weep_v because_o she_o can_v not_o find_v he_o inso_v much_o as_o christ_n say_v to_o she_o woman_n why_o weep_v th●●_n he_o be_v with_o she_o and_o speak_v to_o she_o and_o she_o know_v it_o not_o john_n 20.14_o 15._o so_o to_o the_o two_o disciple_n that_o go_v to_o emaus_n christ_n appear_v be_v with_o they_o and_o talk_v with_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o be_v sad_a and_o full_a of_o heaviness_n luke_n 24.15_o 16._o why_o he_o draw_v near_o to_o they_o in_o a_o most_o gracious_a manner_n and_o go_v with_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o know_v it_o not_o for_o so_o say_v the_o text_n their_o eye_n be_v hold_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o know_v he_o and_o even_o so_o it_o may_v be_v with_o thou_o it_o be_v one_o mercy_n to_o have_v our_o sin_n pardon_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o god_n favour_n and_o to_o have_v save_v grace_n bestow_v upon_o we_o and_o another_o mercy_n to_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o this_o to_o perceive_v and_o feel_v we_o be_v in_o this_o case_n the_o former_a sundry_a of_o god_n servant_n have_v receive_v and_o yet_o have_v spend_v sundry_a year_n in_o god_n service_n before_o they_o can_v attain_v unto_o the_o latter_a at_o that_o day_n say_v our_o saviour_n mean_v after_o his_o ascension_n joh._n ●4_n 10_o you_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o in_o my_o father_n and_o you_o in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o christ_n be_v already_o in_o they_o and_o they_o in_o he_o but_o they_o know_v it_o not_o yet_o they_o have_v no_o feeling_n nor_o comfort_n of_o it_o to_o speak_v of_o a_o man_n may_v be_v you_o see_v in_o god_n favour_n though_o he_o perceive_v it_o not_o himself_o we_o may_v not_o judge_v our_o own_o estate_n by_o our_o feel_n nay_o this_o be_v the_o praise_n and_o commendation_n of_o faith_n in_o god_n account_n when_o we_o can_v believe_v and_o rest_n upon_o his_o word_n and_o promise_n even_o when_o we_o have_v no_o sense_n nor_o feeling_n of_o his_o favour_n when_o he_o seem_v to_o frown_v upon_o we_o to_o hide_v and_o turn_v away_o his_o face_n from_o we_o and_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n say_v of_o sight_n may_v be_v say_v of_o all_o sense_n and_o feel_n also_o joh._n 20.29_o thomas_n because_o thou_o have_v see_v thou_o have_v believe_v bless_v be_v they_o that_o have_v not_o see_v and_o yet_o have_v believe_v and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o consideration_n that_o may_v stay_v and_o comfort_v a_o poor_a soul_n that_o be_v in_o this_o estate_n second_o thou_o must_v consider_v that_o this_o have_v be_v the_o case_n of_o many_o god_n dear_a servant_n the_o lord_n have_v for_o a_o time_n hide_v his_o face_n from_o they_o they_o have_v be_v deprive_v of_o all_o feel_n of_o his_o favour_n job_n be_v in_o this_o case_n job_n 13.24_o wherefore_o hide_v thou_o thy_o face_n and_o hold_v i_o for_o thy_o enemy_n and_o heman_n be_v psalm_n 88.14_o lord_n why_o cast_v thou_o off_o my_o soul_n and_o hide_v thy_o face_n from_o i_o and_o asaph_n be_v psalm_n 77.3_o i_o remember_v god_n and_o be_v trouble_v i_o meditate_a and_o my_o spirit_n be_v overwhelm_v and_o david_n complain_v psal._n 109.22_o his_o heart_n be_v wound_v within_o he_o he_o have_v a_o wound_a spirit_n and_o paul_n 2_o cor._n 7.5_o that_o he_o have_v not_o only_a fight_n without_o but_o terror_n within_o and_o the_o bless_a virgin_n soul_n be_v pierce_v through_o as_o with_o a_o sword_n luke_n 2.35_o but_o what_o speak_v i_o of_o particular_a member_n of_o god_n church_n that_o be_v in_o this_o case_n the_o whole_a church_n the_o whole_a mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o solomon_n in_o his_o song_n of_o song_n complain_v that_o she_o be_v in_o this_o case_n canticle_n 5.6_o her_o belove_a have_v withdraw_v himself_o and_o be_v go_v from_o she_o she_o seek_v he_o but_o can_v not_o find_v he_o she_o call_v upon_o he_o but_o he_o give_v she_o no_o answer_n isaiah_n 49.14_o zion_n say_v the_o lord_n have_v forsake_v i_o my_o god_n have_v forget_v i_o and_o lament_v 3.18_o the_o whole_a church_n complain_v my_o hope_n be_v perish_v from_o the_o lord_n yea_o what_o speak_v i_o either_o of_o particular_a member_n or_o of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n our_o bless_a saviour_n himself_o who_o never_o commit_v sin_n neither_o be_v guile_n find_v in_o his_o mouth_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o pet._n 2.22_o even_o he_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n have_v experience_n of_o this_o tentation_n and_o be_v deprive_v for_o a_o time_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n favour_n when_o he_o cry_v out_o in_o bitterness_n of_o his_o soul_n matth._n 27.46_o my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o this_o second_o consideration_n have_v great_a force_n to_o sustain_v the_o heart_n of_o any_o poor_a servant_n of_o god_n that_o be_v thus_o trouble_v and_o so_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o 1_o pet._n 5.8_o 9_o your_o adversary_n the_o devil_n as_o a_o roar_a lion_n walk_v about_o seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v who_o resist_v steadfast_a in_o the_o faith_n know_v that_o the_o same_o affliction_n be_v accomplish_v in_o your_o brethren_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v let_v he_o roar_v and_o show_v his_o malice_n and_o rage_n against_o any_o of_o you_o never_o so_o much_o your_o case_n be_v no_o worse_o for_o this_o than_o other_o of_o god_n servant_n have_v be_v and_o therefore_o faint_v not_o yield_v not_o to_o he_o but_o resist_v he_o manful_o for_o from_o hence_o thou_o may_v thus_o infer_v and_o reason_n with_o thy_o own_o heart_n 1._o that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v dear_a unto_o god_n and_o high_o in_o his_o favour_n and_o yet_o be_v for_o a_o time_n deprive_v of_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o for_o so_o be_v job_n certain_o and_o david_n and_o paul_n and_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o say_v therefore_o to_o thy_o own_o soul_n as_o psalm_n 73.15_o if_o i_o shall_v judge_v otherwise_o behold_v i_o shall_v offend_v against_o the_o generation_n of_o thy_o child_n 2._o that_o no_o child_n of_o god_n shall_v think_v it_o strange_a if_o they_o fall_v into_o this_o affliction_n nor_o hope_v to_o be_v exempt_v quite_o from_o it_o but_o look_v and_o prepare_v for_o it_o belove_a say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o peter_n 4_o 12._o think_v it_o not_o strange_a concern_v the_o fiery_a trial_n as_o though_o some_o strange_a thing_n have_v happen_v unto_o you_o nay_o a_o man_n shall_v reason_v thus_o with_o his_o own_o soul_n rather_o if_o i_o shall_v always_o remain_v like_o these_o confident_a fool_n that_o never_o have_v any_o doubt_n nor_o fear_n which_o i_o see_v all_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n yea_o the_o whole_a mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n yea_o christ_n my_o saviour_n himself_o be_v so_o much_o subject_n unto_o what_o shall_v i_o think_v of_o myself_o if_o i_o shall_v be_v without_o this_o chastisement_n always_o whereof_o all_o be_v partaker_n than_o be_v i_o a_o bastard_n and_o no_o son_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v hebr._n 12.8_o the_o three_o consideration_n that_o may_v stay_v we_o and_o keep_v we_o from_o sink_v and_o be_v overcome_v of_o this_o tentation_n be_v this_o that_o as_o in_o all_o other_o affliction_n esa._n 45.7_o so_o in_o this_o especial_o the_o lord_n have_v a_o special_a hand_n it_o be_v the_o lord_n do_v it_o be_v he_o that_o hide_v his_o face_n from_o thou_o that_o withholdeth_a from_o thou_o the_o feel_n of_o his_o favour_n and_o thy_o spiritual_a comfort_n ps._n 30.7_o thou_o do_v hide_v thy_o
unworthy_a to_o stoop_v down_o and_o unloose_v paul_n think_v so_o of_o himself_o 1_o cor._n 15.9_o i_o be_o not_o worthy_a to_o be_v call_v a_o apostle_n second_o it_o be_v worthy_a of_o all_o reverence_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o there_o be_v a_o say_n honour_v the_o physician_n because_o of_o necessity_n or_o because_o of_o the_o use_n you_o may_v have_v of_o he_o and_o sure_o there_o be_v no_o call_n under_o heaven_n so_o useful_a so_o necessary_a as_o the_o ministry_n be_v all_o the_o good_a you_o receive_v by_o any_o other_o call_v in_o the_o world_n be_v but_o in_o humane_a and_o carnal_a thing_n for_o the_o welfare_n of_o your_o body_n but_o the_o good_a you_o receive_v by_o this_o call_n be_v in_o spiritual_a and_o divine_a thing_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o your_o soul_n heb._n 5.1_o we_o be_v ordain_v for_o man_n in_o the_o thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n 1._o from_o we_o you_o receive_v the_o mean_n whereby_o god_n have_v ordain_v to_o bring_v you_o to_o salvation_n to_o we_o be_v commit_v the_o word_n of_o reconciliation_n and_o we_o be_v his_o ambassador_n send_v with_o commission_n and_o authority_n about_o the_o weighty_a business_n that_o ever_o be_v take_v in_o hand_n even_o the_o conclude_v of_o a_o peace_n between_o god_n and_o your_o soul_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2_o cor._n 5.19_o 20._o to_o we_o be_v commit_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o we_o be_v the_o keeper_n of_o god_n seal_n so_o as_o you_o can_v have_v they_o but_o from_o our_o hand_n 1_o cor._n 4.1_o let_v a_o man_n so_o account_v of_o we_o as_o of_o the_o steward_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n yea_o to_o we_o be_v commit_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n mat._n 16.19_o we_o have_v that_o authority_n from_o god_n to_o assure_v you_o in_o his_o name_n upon_o your_o faith_n and_o repentance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o those_o sin_n that_o do_v trouble_v your_o conscience_n as_o no_o man_n in_o the_o world_n have_v beside_o yea_o 2._o this_o be_v not_o all_o the_o good_a you_o receive_v by_o we_o though_o these_o be_v great_a thing_n for_o you_o do_v not_o only_o receive_v the_o outward_a mean_n of_o your_o salvation_n from_o we_o but_o that_o which_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o by_o we_o god_n give_v you_o his_o spirit_n and_o save_a grace_n also_o and_o convey_v it_o into_o your_o heart_n god_n have_v make_v we_o able_a minister_n say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 3.6_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n not_o of_o the_o letter_n but_o of_o the_o spirit_n insomuch_o as_o i_o may_v confident_o say_v unto_o every_o one_o of_o you_o that_o if_o you_o be_v regenerate_v if_o you_o be_v convert_v if_o there_o be_v any_o truth_n of_o grace_n any_o faith_n any_o repentance_n in_o you_o some_o minister_n or_o other_o be_v the_o spiritual_a father_n to_o beget_v it_o in_o you_o observe_v what_o ground_n i_o have_v to_o be_v so_o confident_a one_o be_v in_o that_o speech_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o galatian_n 3.2_o this_o only_a will_v i_o learn_v of_o you_o say_v he_o how_o come_v you_o by_o the_o spirit_n be_v it_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n then_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o faith_n the_o other_o be_v in_o that_o strange_a speech_n of_o the_o same_o apostle_n rom._n 10.14_o how_o shall_v they_o believe_v in_o he_o of_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v and_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o of_o those_o thing_n i_o tell_v you_o i_o will_v exhort_v you_o unto_o in_o any_o case_n esteem_v reverent_o of_o our_o call_n take_v heed_n you_o despise_v it_o not_o the_o other_o two_o i_o will_v be_v brief_a in_o because_o i_o will_v hasten_v unto_o the_o reproof_n the_o second_o thing_n then_o that_o you_o be_v to_o be_v exhort_v unto_o be_v this_o that_o you_o will_v every_o one_o of_o you_o resolve_v with_o yourselves_o that_o you_o will_v never_o live_v without_o the_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n of_o a_o faithful_a ministry_n which_o be_v so_o useful_a so_o necessary_a it_o be_v david_n resolution_n psal._n 23.6_o that_o he_o will_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o ever_o and_o 27.4_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v his_o only_a suit_n to_o god_n in_o which_o he_o will_v have_v no_o nay_o that_o he_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n and_o what_o be_v it_o that_o make_v the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o amiable_a unto_o he_o and_o other_o of_o god_n servant_n sure_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o that_o speech_n of_o abiam_fw-la against_o jeroboam_fw-la 2_o chron._n 13.10_o 12._o it_o be_v the_o sound_n and_o faithful_a ministry_n that_o be_v to_o be_v enjoy_v there_o resolve_v with_o thyself_o therefore_o that_o what_o other_o comfort_n soever_o thou_o want_v thou_o will_v not_o live_v without_o a_o faithful_a minister_n who_o thou_o may_v depend_v upon_o who_o as_o thy_o spiritual_a father_n thou_o may_v reverence_v and_o obey_v who_o thou_o may_v bold_o acquaint_v with_o the_o secret_n of_o thy_o soul_n if_o thou_o have_v such_o a_o one_o count_v it_o a_o singular_a blessing_n and_o be_v thankful_a for_o it_o for_o certain_o he_o live_v without_o god_n in_o this_o world_n that_o have_v not_o such_o a_o minister_n to_o depend_v upon_o as_o azariah_n the_o prophet_n say_v unto_o asa_n 2_o chro._n 15.3_o now_o for_o a_o long_a season_n have_v israel_n be_v without_o the_o true_a god_n and_o without_o a_o teach_a priest_n and_o without_o the_o law_n three_o and_o last_o you_o be_v to_o be_v exhort_v that_o so_o many_o of_o you_o as_o do_v enjoy_v this_o benefit_n of_o a_o sound_a ministry_n will_v make_v your_o full_a use_n of_o it_o not_o only_o by_o resort_v to_o we_o in_o public_a by_o hear_v we_o for_o so_o do_v many_o a_o one_o that_o have_v no_o such_o relation_n to_o we_o as_o to_o count_v we_o their_o father_n in_o christ_n but_o 1._o in_o receive_v and_o admit_v that_o spiritual_a authority_n that_o god_n have_v give_v he_o over_o thou_o without_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a thou_o shall_v receive_v all_o that_o benefit_n by_o he_o that_o thou_o ought_v receive_v we_o say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o corinthian_n 7.2_o he_o have_v authority_n to_o deal_v particular_o with_o thou_o either_o by_o admonition_n or_o reproof_n receive_v he_o in_o this_o hebrew_n 13_o 2d_o i_o beseech_v you_o suffer_v the_o word_n of_o exhortation_n he_o have_v authority_n to_o examine_v and_o inquire_v into_o your_o spiritual_a estate_n receive_v he_o in_o this_o see_v how_o willing_a hezekiah_n the_o king_n be_v to_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n 39.3_o 4._o 2._o make_v use_n of_o thy_o faithful_a minister_n gift_n in_o private_a aswell_o as_o in_o public_a by_o move_v the_o doubt_n of_o thy_o conscience_n unto_o he_o as_o convenient_o thou_o may_v it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o queen_n of_o sheba_n and_o our_o saviour_n commend_v she_o for_o it_o matt._n 12.42_o that_o hear_n of_o the_o knowledge_n and_o wisdom_n that_o be_v in_o solomon_n she_o come_v a_o great_a way_n to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o and_o when_o she_o be_v come_v say_v the_o text_n 1_o king_n 10.2_o she_o commune_v with_o he_o of_o all_o that_o be_v in_o her_o heart_n 3._o in_o approve_v thy_o repentance_n and_o thy_o spiritual_a estate_n unto_o he_o god_n people_n be_v bind_v to_o live_v as_o their_o minister_n may_v discern_v their_o obedience_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o their_o labour_n in_o they_o and_o be_v encourage_v thereby_o hebr._n 13.17_o obey_v they_o that_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o you_o and_o submit_v yourselves_o for_o they_o watch_v for_o your_o soul_n that_o they_o may_v do_v it_o with_o joy_n and_o it_o be_v note_v for_o a_o sin_n in_o zedekiah_n the_o king_n 2_o chronicle_n 6.12_o that_o he_o do_v not_o humble_v himself_o before_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n who_o as_o he_o be_v a_o witness_n of_o his_o sin_n so_o shall_v he_o have_v approve_v his_o repentance_n to_o he_o especial_o 4._o and_o last_o in_o rest_v upon_o and_o receive_v satisfaction_n from_o that_o which_o he_o shall_v in_o god_n name_n and_o by_o warrant_n of_o his_o word_n deliver_v unto_o thou_o as_o anna_n do_v in_o the_o testimony_n of_o ely_n 1_o sam._n 1.18_o whosoever_o say_v the_o lord_n deut._n 18.19_o will_v not_o hearken_v to_o my_o word_n which_o the_o prophet_n shall_v speak_v in_o my_o name_n i_o will_v require_v it_o of_o he_o how_o little_a the_o testimony_n that_o god_n faithful_a minister_n do_v give_v of_o our_o way_n be_v regard_v appli_v may_v appear_v in_o many_o particular_n which_o by_o evidence_n of_o god_n word_n they_o declare_v to_o be_v sin_n and_o seem_v it_o nothing_o to_o you_o
and_o notorious_a our_o sin_n be_v the_o more_o we_o dishonour_v he_o ezek._n 24.7_o 8._o she_o have_v set_v her_o blood_n her_o bloody_a sin_n upon_o the_o top_n of_o a_o rock_n she_o pour_v it_o not_o on_o the_o ground_n to_o cover_v it_o with_o dust_n that_o it_o may_v cause_v fury_n to_o come_v up_o to_o take_v vengeance_n so_o by_o our_o repentance_n we_o do_v honour_n and_o glorify_v god_n phil._n 1.11_o all_o the_o fruit_n of_o righteousness_n be_v by_o jesus_n christ_n to_o the_o glory_n and_o praise_n of_o god_n and_o the_o more_o open_a and_o notorious_a our_o repentance_n be_v the_o more_o be_v god_n honour_v by_o it_o matthew_n 5.16_o let_v your_o light_n so_o shine_v before_o man_n that_o they_o may_v see_v your_o good_a work_n and_o glorify_v your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n this_o consideration_n have_v be_v of_o great_a force_n to_o make_v god_n people_n forward_o unto_o this_o duty_n and_o have_v arm_v they_o against_o the_o chief_a impediment_n that_o use_v to_o hinder_v and_o keep_v man_n from_o it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o carnal_a respect_n to_o their_o credit_n and_o reputation_n among_o man_n when_o michal_n have_v tell_v david_n how_o he_o have_v disgrace_v himself_o by_o leap_v and_o dance_v before_o the_o ark_n he_o answer_v she_o 2_o samuel_n 6.21_o 22._o it_o be_v before_o the_o lord_n and_o i_o will_v be_v more_o vile_a than_o thus_o and_o will_v be_v base_a in_o my_o own_o sight_n and_o of_o the_o maidservant_n which_o thou_o have_v speak_v of_o of_o they_o shall_v i_o be_v have_v in_o honour_n two_o part_n there_o be_v of_o his_o answer_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v 1._o what_o tell_v thou_o i_o of_o disgrace_v myself_o i_o do_v it_o in_o honour_n to_o god_n and_o to_o gain_v honour_n to_o he_o i_o will_v be_v willing_a to_o endure_v any_o disgrace_n among_o man_n 2._o i_o know_v well_o that_o by_o disgrace_v myself_o in_o this_o kind_n i_o shall_v loose_v no_o manner_n of_o credit_n or_o reputation_n at_o all_o nay_o this_o be_v the_o only_a sure_a way_n unto_o true_a honour_n and_o reputation_n even_o with_o man_n for_o thus_o god_n have_v bind_v himself_o by_o promise_n 1_o samuel_n 2.30_o those_o that_o honour_n i_o i_o will_v honour_v and_o luke_n 14.11_o he_o that_o humble_v himself_o shall_v be_v exalt_v and_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n say_v of_o our_o life_n may_v be_v say_v also_o of_o our_o credit_n and_o good_a name_n matthew_n 16.25_o whosoever_o will_v save_v his_o credit_n shall_v loose_v it_o and_o whosoever_o will_v loose_v this_o credit_n for_o my_o sake_n shall_v find_v it_o second_o god_n people_n have_v be_v thus_o forward_o to_o publish_v their_o repentance_n out_o of_o a_o respect_n they_o have_v have_v to_o themselves_o and_o to_o their_o own_o comfort_n that_o so_o they_o may_v both_o have_v the_o better_a evidence_n to_o themselves_o of_o the_o unfeinednesse_n of_o their_o repentance_n and_o set_v it_o forward_o also_o and_o further_o it_o by_o their_o willingness_n to_o take_v shame_n upon_o themselves_o in_o this_o sort_n so_o that_o the_o thing_n that_o keep_v other_o man_n from_o it_o i_o will_v not_o confess_v my_o sin_n to_o the_o congregation_n say_v he_o because_o i_o will_v not_o shame_v and_o disgrace_v myself_o be_v a_o chief_a thing_n that_o draw_v the_o true_a penitent_a to_o it_o i_o will_v therefore_o confess_v my_o sin_n to_o the_o congregation_n say_v he_o because_o i_o will_v take_v shame_n upon_o myself_o for_o 1._o no_o man_n have_v true_o repent_v that_o do_v not_o judge_v himself_o worthy_a of_o shame_n and_o disgrace_n for_o his_o sin_n this_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o true_a penitent_a daniel_n 9.7_o o_o lord_n to_o we_o belong_v confusion_n of_o face_n open_a shame_n and_o again_o verse_n 8._o o_o lord_n to_o we_o belong_v confusion_n of_o face_n to_o our_o king_n to_o our_o prince_n and_o to_o our_o father_n because_o we_o have_v sin_v against_o thou_o and_o the_o apostle_n make_v this_o a_o note_n of_o true_a repentance_n 2_o cor._n 7.11_o when_o a_o man_n be_v willing_a to_o take_v revenge_n upon_o himself_o which_o be_v no_o way_n better_o do_v then_o by_o take_v shame_n upon_o ourselves_o in_o this_o sort_n 2._o this_o shame_n be_v not_o only_o a_o sign_n of_o true_a repentance_n but_o a_o a_o great_a help_n and_o furtherance_n to_o the_o increase_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o end_n he_o aim_v at_o in_o enjoin_v that_o public_a penance_n to_o the_o incestuous_a person_n say_v 1._o cor._n 5.5_o it_o be_v for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n mortify_v of_o his_o corruption_n that_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o sure_o this_o respect_n to_o themselves_o even_o to_o the_o peace_n and_o comfort_n of_o their_o own_o conscience_n by_o testify_v the_o truth_n of_o their_o repentance_n and_o further_a it_o this_o way_n have_v mighty_o prevail_v with_o many_o of_o god_n people_n to_o draw_v they_o even_o to_o a_o voluntary_a confession_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o profession_n of_o their_o repentance_n in_o public_a this_o be_v it_o that_o draw_v john_n baptist_n hearer_n to_o it_o matthew_n 3.6_o and_o paul_n at_o ephesus_n act_n 19.18_o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o ten_o persecution_n so_o many_o to_o public_a confession_n that_o the_o church_n be_v fain_o to_o make_v a_o law_n to_o restrain_v they_o from_o it_o they_o can_v not_o satisfy_v their_o conscience_n unless_o they_o have_v do_v it_o they_o find_v much_o peace_n in_o do_v of_o it_o and_o this_o peace_n of_o god_n pass_v all_o understanding_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v phil._n 4.7_o and_o be_v such_o a_o jewel_n as_o they_o that_o want_v it_o will_v not_o stand_v upon_o term_n of_o reputation_n but_o will_v be_v content_a to_o redeem_v it_o with_o the_o loss_n of_o their_o reputation_n among_o man_n or_o with_o endure_v any_o disgrace_n can_v be_v put_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o world_n three_o and_o last_o god_n people_n have_v be_v willing_a to_o publish_v their_o repentance_n thus_o out_o of_o a_o respect_n they_o have_v have_v unto_o other_o and_o their_o respect_n to_o the_o church_n they_o declare_v by_o it_o three_o way_n first_o in_o show_v their_o obedience_n to_o the_o church_n that_o have_v enjoin_v they_o this_o duty_n every_o member_n of_o the_o church_n though_o he_o be_v never_o so_o great_a a_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o submit_v himself_o unto_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o show_v himself_o obedient_a unto_o it_o in_o all_o lawful_a thing_n you_o know_v the_o commandment_n hebr._n 13.17_o obey_v they_o that_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o you_o and_o submit_v yourselves_o for_o they_o watch_v for_o your_o soul_n and_o matt._n 18.17_o if_o he_o neglect_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a man_n and_o a_o publican_n esteem_v he_o no_o christian_a no_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n that_o will_v not_o obey_v the_o church_n in_o all_o lawful_a thing_n second_o in_o show_v their_o care_n to_o edify_v other_o by_o this_o their_o good_a example_n and_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o sin_n for_o this_o open_a shame_n that_o be_v do_v unto_o sin_n have_v great_a force_n to_o stay_v and_o terrify_v other_o from_o sin_v in_o the_o like_a kind_n they_o that_o sin_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o tim._n 5.20_o he_o mean_v that_o sin_n scandalous_o and_o to_o the_o offence_n of_o other_o rebuke_v before_o all_o that_o other_o also_o may_v fear_v three_o and_o last_o in_o give_v this_o way_n satisfaction_n to_o the_o church_n for_o the_o wrong_n and_o offence_n they_o have_v do_v unto_o it_o no_o man_n may_v say_v in_o this_o case_n when_o his_o gross_a sin_n be_v come_v to_o light_n and_o become_v notorious_a i_o have_v offend_v god_n by_o my_o sin_n and_o to_o he_o i_o will_v confess_v it_o and_o humble_v myself_o and_o abuse_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n here_o verse_n 4._o against_o thou_o thou_o alone_o have_v i_o sin_v but_o as_o for_o the_o congregation_n i_o have_v do_v they_o no_o wrong_n nor_o no_o satisfaction_n will_v i_o give_v they_o for_o by_o sin_n of_o this_o nature_n not_o the_o lord_n only_o but_o the_o church_n and_o congregation_n wherein_o they_o be_v commit_v be_v wrong_v for_o 1._o they_o give_v all_o god_n people_n just_a cause_n of_o grief_n and_o fear_n lot_n righteous_a soul_n be_v vex_v from_o day_n to_o day_n by_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o place_n he_o live_v in_o 2_o pet._n 2.8_o and_o the_o apostle_n tell_v the_o corinthian_n 1_o cor._n 5.2_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v mourn_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o incestuous_a person_n and_o david_n complain_v psal._n 119.53_o horror_n have_v take_v
great_a pleasure_n or_o great_a advantage_n if_o we_o will_v yield_v unto_o it_o sin_n deceive_v i_o say_v paul_n rom._n 7.11_o and_o so_o slay_v i_o but_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v bring_v again_o by_o our_o conscience_n into_o our_o mind_n and_o set_v before_o we_o it_o will_v appear_v unto_o we_o as_o a_o enemy_n and_o a_o tormentor_n and_o the_o sight_n of_o it_o will_v be_v grievous_a and_o terrible_a unto_o we_o it_o be_v therefore_o fit_o resemble_v by_o the_o harlot_n solomon_n speak_v of_o proverb_n 5.3_o 4._o the_o lip_n of_o a_o strange_a woman_n drop_v as_o a_o honey_n comb_n there_o be_v the_o first_o come_v of_o sin_n when_o it_o come_v to_o tempt_v and_o allure_v we_o but_o what_o follow_v her_o end_n be_v bitter_a as_o wormwood_n sharp_a as_o a_o two_o edge_a sword_n there_o be_v the_o second_o come_v of_o sin_n into_o our_o mind_n when_o it_o come_v to_o accuse_v and_o torment_v we_o it_o be_v like_a unto_o those_o locust_n john_n see_v in_o his_o vision_n and_o whereby_o he_o do_v testify_v and_o represent_v the_o popish_a friar_n and_o jesuit_n reve._n 9.7.8.10_o their_o face_n be_v as_o the_o face_n of_o man_n and_o their_o hair_n as_o the_o hair_n of_o woman_n there_o be_v the_o shape_n that_o sin_n appear_v in_o when_o it_o first_o represent_v and_o offer_v itself_o unto_o we_o but_o their_o tooth_n be_v as_o the_o tooth_n of_o lion_n and_o they_o have_v tail_n like_o unto_o scorpion_n and_o there_o be_v sting_n in_o their_o tail_n there_o be_v the_o latter_a come_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o bitterness_n and_o anguish_n it_o will_v put_v we_o unto_o when_o our_o conscience_n shall_v set_v it_o before_o we_o and_o accuse_v we_o of_o it_o and_o certain_o no_o pain_n or_o anguish_n in_o the_o world_n in_o comparable_a to_o that_o which_o the_o stroke_n and_o wound_n of_o the_o conscience_n will_v put_v a_o man_n unto_o a_o wound_a spirit_n who_o can_v bear_v pro._n 18.14_o to_o have_v unquietnes_n at_o home_n to_o have_v her_o unquiet_a with_o thou_o that_o be_v continual_o with_o thou_o at_o board_n and_o in_o bed_n be_v just_o esteem_v one_o of_o the_o great_a misery_n in_o this_o life_n solomon_n compare_v it_o pro._n 19.13_o to_o a_o continual_a drop_n that_o will_v waste_v the_o hard_a stone_n in_o the_o world_n but_o to_o have_v our_o own_o conscience_n brawl_n and_o exclaim_v and_o be_v unquiet_a with_o we_o be_v a_o misery_n unspeakable_o great_a than_o the_o former_a can_v be_v o_o then_o let_v we_o be_v afraid_a to_o sin_n even_o in_o this_o respect_n because_o our_o conscience_n will_v be_v so_o apt_a to_o fall_v out_o and_o be_v unquiet_a with_o we_o if_o we_o do_v so_o apt_a to_o cast_v it_o in_o our_o tooth_n to_o accuse_v yea_o to_o smite_v and_o wound_v we_o for_o it_o three_o the_o time_n when_o our_o conscience_n will_v begin_v thus_o to_o set_v our_o sin_n before_o we_o thus_o to_o rebuke_v to_o check_v and_o wound_v we_o for_o they_o or_o when_o it_o have_v once_o begin_v when_o it_o will_v make_v a_o end_n or_o in_o what_o degree_n or_o measure_v it_o will_v do_v it_o no_o man_n but_o god_n alone_o that_o set_v it_o a_o work_n do_v know_v this_o kind_n of_o affliction_n as_o all_o other_o be_v be_v compare_v to_o a_o cup_n or_o potion_n mark_n 10.39_o you_o shall_v indeed_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n that_o i_o drink_v of_o now_o this_o cup_n the_o lord_n keep_v in_o his_o own_o hana_n as_o it_o be_v say_v ps._n 75.8_o &_o he_o pour_v out_o of_o the_o same_o every_o man_n shall_v drink_v of_o this_o cup_n when_o the_o lord_n see_v good_a to_o minister_v it_o and_o he_o shall_v drink_v of_o it_o in_o that_o measure_n as_o the_o lord_n shall_v see_v good_a to_o appoint_v but_o no_o man_n have_v cause_n to_o look_v for_o any_o long_a truce_n with_o his_o conscience_n or_o that_o i_o will_v give_v he_o any_o long_a day_n if_o thou_o do_v not_o well_o say_v the_o lord_n to_o cain_n gen._n 4_o ●_o sin_o that_o be_v the_o punishment_n and_o sting_v of_o sin_n lie_v at_o the_o door_n that_o be_v be_v near_o even_o at_o the_o door_n as_o the_o same_o phrase_n be_v render_v mat._n 24.33_o four_o and_o last_o there_o be_v no_o comparison_n between_o the_o pleasure_n or_o profit_n that_o any_o sin_n can_v yield_v we_o and_o the_o anguish_n and_o pain_n which_o our_o conscience_n will_v put_v we_o unto_o when_o it_o shall_v accuse_v and_o smite_v we_o for_o it_o 1._o the_o pleasure_n and_o joy_v that_o sin_n yield_v we_o be_v but_o overly_o in_o the_o fa●e_n rather_o than_o in_o the_o heart_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2_o cor._n 5_o 1●_n there_o be_v no_o soundness_n in_o it_o it_o be_v mix_v for_o the_o most_o part_n with_o inward_a gripe_n pro._n 14.13_o even_o in_o laughter_n the_o heart_n be_v sorrowful_a but_o the_o sorrow_n and_o anguish_n that_o our_o conscience_n will_v put_v we_o unto_o when_o it_o accuse_v and_o smite_v we_o for_o si●_n o_o that_o be_v a_o soak_v and_o deep_a sorrow_n it_o be_v bitter_a and_o reach_v unto_o the_o heart_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v jeremy_n 4.18_o 2._o the_o pleasure_n or_o profit_n that_o any_o sin_n can_v yield_v we_o be_v but_o momentany_a and_o of_o very_o short_a continuance_n that_o make_v moses_n make_v so_o light_a account_n of_o all_o the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n because_o he_o know_v they_o endure_v but_o for_o a_o season_n heb._n 11.25_o they_o be_v therefore_o compare_v eccl._n 7.6_o to_o the_o crackle_n and_o blaze_v that_o thorn_n make_v under_o a_o pot_n but_o the_o sorrow_n that_o sin_n will_v bring_v we_o unto_o when_o our_o conscience_n shall_v charge_v we_o with_o it_o be_v durable_a and_o no_o man_n know_v how_o long_o it_o will_v last_v that_o sin_n that_o may_v be_v commit_v in_o a_o hour_n or_o in_o far_o less_o space_n may_v cost_v a_o man_n deep_a sorrow_n and_o grief_n of_o mind_n all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n after_o for_o a_o conclusion_n therefore_o of_o this_o first_o duty_n that_o from_o this_o doctrine_n we_o be_v exhort_v unto_o certain_o if_o we_o can_v right_o consider_v of_o this_o work_n of_o our_o conscience_n how_o apt_a it_o will_v be_v when_o god_n shall_v awaken_v it_o to_o bring_v our_o sin_n to_o our_o remembrance_n in_o this_o manner_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v of_o it_o will_v make_v we_o afraid_a to_o sin_n see_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o in_o three_o notable_a example_n the_o first_o be_v of_o job._n my_o righteousness_n say_v he_o job_n 27.6_o i_o hold_v fast_o and_o will_v not_o let_v it_o go_v yea_o he_o profess_v ver_fw-la 3_o 4._o all_o the_o while_o my_o breath_n be_v in_o i_o and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d in_o my_o nostril_n my_o lip_n shall_v not_o speak_v wickedness_n nor_o my_o tongue_n utter_a deceit_n and_o why_o so_o my_o heart_n shall_v not_o reproach_v i_o so_o long_o as_o i_o live_v as_o if_o he_o have_v fail_v i_o will_v not_o give_v my_o conscience_n occasion_n to_o brawl_v with_o i_o whatsoever_o i_o do_v i_o will_v have_v care_n to_o keep_v peace_n there_o the_o second_o be_v of_o abigal_n that_o wise_a and_o gracious_a woman_n who_o persuade_v david_n not_o to_o revenge_v himself_o of_o her_o husband_n nab●l_n by_o this_o argument_n 1_o sam._n 25.30_o 31._o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v when_o the_o lord_n shall_v have_v appoint_v thou_o ruler_n over_o all_o israel_n that_o this_o shall_v be_v no_o grief_n to_o thou_o nor_o offence_n of_o heart_n unto_o my_o lord_n either_o that_o thou_o have_v shed_v blood_n causeless_a or_o that_o my_o lord_n have_v avenge_v himself_o as_o if_o she_o have_v say_v if_o thou_o shall_v do_v it_o thy_o conscience_n will_v be_v apt_a one_o day_n to_o check_v and_o smite_v thou_o for_o it_o even_o when_o thou_o shall_v be_v king_n and_o in_o thy_o great_a pomp_n do_v it_o not_o therefore_o that_o thou_o may_v prevent_v the_o accusation_n of_o thy_o conscience_n the_o three_o be_v of_o paul_n who_o give_v this_o reason_n why_o he_o be_v so_o afraid_a of_o every_o sin_n whether_o it_o be_v against_o the_o first_o or_o second_o table_n even_o the_o care_n he_o have_v to_o keep_v his_o conscience_n clear_a and_o quiet_a act._n 24.16_o herein_o do_v i_o exercise_v myself_o to_o have_v always_o a_o conscience_n void_a of_o offence_n towards_o god_n and_o towards_o man_n and_o so_o much_o of_o the_o first_o use_n that_o this_o doctrine_n serve_v unto_o second_o 2._o it_o serve_v for_o reproof_n of_o such_o as_o never_o think_v of_o never_o be_v trouble_v with_o any_o of_o their_o sin_n they_o can_v never_o say_v as_o david_n do_v here_o my_o sin_n be_v ever_o before_o i_o of_o this_o sort_n the_o world_n be_v full_a in_o all_o place_n observe_v
jeremy_n 2.19_o and_o thy_o backslide_n shall_v reprove_v thou_o know_v therefore_o and_o see_v that_o it_o be_v a_o evil_a thing_n and_o bitter_a that_o thou_o have_v forsake_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o that_o my_o fear_n be_v not_o in_o thou_o say_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n be_v thou_o sure_a conscience_n will_v find_v thou_o out_o and_o reprove_v thou_o sharp_o for_o thy_o sin_n soon_o or_o late_a at_o one_o time_n or_o other_o shall_v god_n people_n think_v we_o and_o his_o dear_a servant_n be_v the_o only_a man_n who_o sin_n shall_v be_v set_v before_o their_o eye_n who_o shall_v be_v vex_v and_o disquiet_v with_o the_o sense_n of_o their_o sin_n who_o conscience_n shall_v accuse_v and_o smite_v &_o wound_v they_o for_o sin_n no_o no_o if_o david_n and_o job_n and_o peter_n have_v be_v so_o trouble_v and_o put_v to_o such_o anguish_n of_o mind_n for_o their_o sin_n be_v you_o sure_o the_o reprobate_n and_o sinner_n shall_v feel_v much_o more_o if_o this_o be_v do_v to_o the_o green_a tree_n that_o have_v much_o sap_n of_o grace_n and_o goodness_n in_o they_o what_o shall_v be_v do_v to_o the_o dry_a as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v lu._n 23.31_o the_o sorrow_n that_o god_n people_n endure_v for_o their_o sin_n it_o be_v nothing_o if_o it_o be_v compare_v with_o that_o that_o the_o reprobate_n shall_v feel_v the_o dregs_n of_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n wrath_n all_o the_o wicked_a of_o the_o earth_n shall_v wring_v they_o out_o and_o drink_v they_o as_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v psalm_n 7.5_o 8._o as_o senseless_a and_o benumb_v as_o judas_n his_o conscience_n be_v before_o he_o have_v betray_v christ_n so_o as_o christ_n powerful_a ministry_n as_o you_o hear_v can_v not_o awaken_v it_o yet_o do_v it_o not_o always_o continue_v so_o but_o present_o after_o he_o have_v commit_v his_o sin_n it_o be_v awaken_v with_o a_o witness_n and_o do_v his_o office_n upon_o he_o as_o you_o may_v see_v matth._n 27.3_o 5._o this_o the_o lord_n threaten_v to_o such_o sinner_n as_o have_v be_v lest_o trouble_v with_o their_o sin_n and_o most_o confident_a of_o his_o love_n psalm_n 50.21_o these_o thing_n have_v thou_o do_v and_o i_o keep_v silence_n thou_o think_v that_o i_o be_v altogether_o such_o a_o one_o as_o thyself_o but_o i_o will_v reprove_v thou_o and_o set_v they_o in_o order_n before_o thy_o eye_n and_o when_o god_n shall_v set_v thy_o sin_n before_o thou_o thou_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o avoid_v the_o look_n and_o think_v of_o they_o no_o more_o than_o belshazzar_n be_v the_o hand_n write_v upon_o the_o wall_n dan._n 5.5_o and_o when_o will_v god_n do_v this_o may_v you_o say_v when_o shall_v the_o conscience_n of_o all_o wicked_a man_n be_v awaken_v quest._n i_o answer_v answ._n 1._o god_n can_v do_v it_o even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o best_a health_n and_o great_a jolitie_n as_o he_o do_v with_o belshazzar_n 2._o he_o do_v it_o usual_o in_o the_o time_n of_o sickness_n or_o some_o sharp_a affliction_n as_o he_o do_v with_o josephs_n brethren_n genes_n 42.21_o and_o 3_o if_o thy_o conscience_n do_v not_o awaken_v before_o certain_o so_o soon_o as_o thou_o come_v to_o judgement_n either_o general_a or_o particular_a thy_o conscience_n will_v then_o awaken_v and_o do_v his_o office_n upon_o thou_o even_o the_o office_n of_o a_o accuser_n of_o a_o witness_n and_o of_o a_o tormentor_n at_o the_o day_n of_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n the_o conscience_n of_o every_o man_n will_v do_v his_o office_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v rom._n 2.15_o 16._o then_o the_o book_n shall_v be_v open_v revelat._n 20.12_o every_o man_n conscience_n wherein_o as_o in_o a_o book_n all_o the_o action_n of_o his_o life_n and_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n and_o thought_n that_o have_v be_v in_o his_o heart_n be_v faithful_o record_v and_o which_o be_v in_o many_o man_n all_o the_o day_n of_o their_o life_n like_o such_o a_o clasp_a or_o seal_v book_n as_o be_v speak_v of_o esa._n 29.11_o that_o they_o can_v never_o read_v nor_o see_v what_o be_v write_v in_o it_o shall_v then_o be_v lay_v open_a before_o he_o that_o he_o may_v read_v yea_o he_o shall_v then_o be_v compel_v to_o read_v what_o be_v write_v in_o it_o then_o will_v the_o lord_n bring_v the_o hide_a thing_n of_o darkness_n to_o light_v as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o corinth_n 4.5_o and_o will_v make_v manifest_a the_o counsel_n of_o man_n heart_n unto_o they_o then_o shall_v all_o man_n clear_o see_v not_o only_o what_o they_o have_v do_v but_o also_o whether_o it_o have_v be_v good_a or_o evil_n lawful_a or_o unlawful_a that_o they_o have_v do_v the_o eye_n of_o their_o conscience_n be_v now_o so_o blind_a that_o they_o can_v see_v nor_o perceive_v by_o the_o clear_a light_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o plain_a ministry_n that_o be_v that_o to_o neglect_v prayer_n in_o secret_a and_o in_o their_o family_n to_o spend_v the_o great_a part_n of_o every_o sabbath_n irreligious_o to_o neglect_v the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n upon_o the_o lecture_n day_n upon_o every_o trifle_a occasion_n to_o live_v in_o malice_n to_o use_v fraud_n in_o their_o deal_n with_o man_n to_o spend_v their_o time_n unprofitable_o etc._n etc._n be_v any_o sin_n but_o when_o that_o day_n come_v the_o scale_n will_v fall_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o their_o conscience_n and_o they_o shall_v clear_o see_v that_o they_o be_v sin_n and_o grievous_a sin_n too_o then_o their_o conscience_n will_v bear_v witness_n according_a to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n that_o be_v write_v in_o their_o heart_n roman_n 2.15_o 16._o and_o that_o which_o he_o say_v of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o elect_a in_o that_o day_n be_v true_a also_o of_o the_o knowledge_n that_o the_o reprobate_n shall_v have_v then_o 1_o corinth_n 13.12_o now_o they_o see_v but_o as_o through_o a_o glass_n dark_o but_o then_o face_n to_o face_n now_o they_o know_v but_o in_o part_n but_o then_o they_o shall_v know_v even_o as_o they_o be_v know_v and_o as_o the_o lord_n speak_v in_o another_o case_n jer._n 23.20_o it_o may_v be_v say_v unto_o all_o man_n in_o this_o case_n in_o the_o latter_a day_n you_o shall_v understand_v it_o plain_o which_o now_o you_o can_v be_v persuade_v of_o that_o these_o be_v sin_n lectures_fw-fr on_o psal._n li._n 4_o lecture_n xliii_o on_o psalm_n li._n 4_o decemb._n xii_o mdcxxvi_o against_o thou_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v and_o do_v this_o evil_a in_o thy_o sight_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v justify_v when_o thou_o speak_v and_o be_v clear_a when_o thou_o judge_v we_o have_v hear_v that_o in_o the_o former_a verse_n david_n make_v confession_n of_o his_o sin_n in_o general_a it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o proceed_v to_o show_v how_o he_o do_v it_o in_o this_o and_o the_o next_o verse_n more_o full_o and_o particular_o for_o 1._o he_o make_v confession_n of_o the_o special_a actual_a sin_n that_o he_o have_v offend_v god_n by_o at_o this_o time_n and_o which_o nathan_n have_v charge_v he_o with_o in_o this_o verse_n i_o have_v do_v this_o evil_a 2._o he_o amplifi_v and_o aggravate_v this_o his_o sin_n by_o three_o argument_n 1._o by_o the_o person_n against_o who_o this_o sin_n be_v commit_v in_o this_o verse_n against_o thou_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v and_o do_v this_o evil_a in_o thy_o sight_n 2._o by_o the_o fountain_n and_o root_n from_o whence_o this_o sin_n do_v spring_v that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o natural_a corruption_n verse_n 5.3_o by_o the_o knowledge_n and_o truth_n of_o grace_n that_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n before_o he_o fall_v into_o this_o sin_n in_o the_o six_o verse_n now_o in_o this_o verse_n that_o i_o have_v now_o read_v there_o be_v two_o thing_n principal_o to_o be_v observe_v 1._o how_o david_n accuse_v himself_o before_o god_n here_o and_o amplifi_v his_o sin_n against_o himself_o in_o these_o word_n against_o thou_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v and_o do_v this_o evil_a in_o thy_o sight_n 2._o the_o reason_n why_o he_o do_v so_o in_o the_o last_o word_n of_o the_o verse_n nota._n that_o thou_o may_v be_v justify_v when_o thou_o speak_v and_o be_v clear_a when_o thou_o judge_v now_o then_o to_o begin_v with_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o verse_n for_o the_o open_n of_o the_o word_n that_o the_o doctrine_n may_v the_o more_o clear_o arise_v from_o they_o for_o our_o instruction_n 1_o and_o lest_o he_o shall_v seem_v by_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n to_o extenuate_v rather_o than_o to_o aggravate_v his_o sin_n four_o question_n must_v be_v brief_o resolve_v first_o be_v this_o foul_a act_n that_o he_o commit_v a_o offence_n against_o god_n only_o be_v it_o not_o
any_o offence_n i_o have_v commit_v against_o man_n or_o wrong_v i_o have_v do_v to_o they_o i_o regard_v it_o not_o that_o never_o trouble_v i_o i_o answer_v answ._n no_o no_o it_o be_v far_o from_o he_o to_o think_v so_o the_o wrong_n he_o have_v do_v to_o man_n by_o these_o his_o sin_n do_v trouble_v his_o conscience_n at_o this_o time_n exceed_o as_o appear_v in_o the_o 14._o verse_n deliver_v i_o from_o blood-guiltinesse_n o_o god_n thou_o god_n of_o my_o salvation_n from_o blood_n it_o be_v in_o the_o original_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n the_o blood_n of_o vriah_n and_o of_o all_o that_o be_v slay_v with_o he_o lay_v heavy_a upon_o his_o conscience_n nay_o he_o know_v full_a well_o he_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n to_o find_v mercy_n with_o god_n at_o this_o time_n by_o his_o prayer_n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v trouble_v in_o conscience_n for_o the_o wrong_n he_o have_v do_v unto_o man_n by_o his_o sin_n nay_o if_o he_o have_v not_o unfeigned_o desire_v to_o the_o utmost_a of_o his_o power_n to_o give_v they_o satisfaction_n and_o make_v they_o amends_o for_o the_o wrong_n he_o have_v do_v unto_o they_o we_o know_v the_o rule_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v doubtless_o a_o moral_a law_n and_o be_v well_o know_v to_o david_n and_o write_v in_o his_o heart_n mat._n 5.23_o 24._o if_o thou_o bring_v thy_o gift_n to_o the_o altar_n and_o there_o remember_v that_o thy_o brother_n have_v aught_o against_o thou_o leave_v there_o thy_o gift_n before_o the_o altar_n and_o go_v thy_o way_n first_o be_v reconcile_v to_o thy_o brother_n and_o then_o come_v and_o offer_v thy_o gift_n he_o know_v full_a well_o that_o the_o wrong_n that_o be_v do_v to_o the_o base_a subject_n or_o tenant_n or_o servant_n that_o any_o man_n keep_v will_v cry_v to_o god_n for_o vengeance_n against_o he_o and_o that_o god_n will_v not_o be_v appease_v till_o satisfaction_n be_v make_v or_o at_o the_o least_o endeavour_v to_o be_v make_v to_o the_o party_n that_o be_v wrong_v by_o he_o when_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o poor_a gibeonite_n be_v unjust_o shed_v by_o saul_n god_n will_v not_o be_v appease_v with_o the_o land_n till_o the_o gibeonite_n though_o they_o be_v but_o poor_a snake_n and_o slave_n have_v satisfaction_n give_v unto_o they_o as_o you_o may_v read_v 2_o sam._n 21.1_o 3._o 4_o now_o follow_v the_o four_o and_o last_o question_n why_o then_o do_v he_o say_v here_o that_o he_o have_v sin_v only_o against_o the_o lord_n why_o double_v he_o his_o speech_n thus_o pathetical_o against_o thou_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v answ._n i_o answer_v his_o word_n be_v to_o be_v take_v as_o speak_v not_o simple_o but_o comparative_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v though_o by_o my_o sin_n i_o have_v many_o way_n offend_v against_o man_n and_o wrong_v he_o yet_o the_o wrong_n i_o have_v do_v in_o this_o to_o any_o man_n be_v nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o wrong_n the_o dishonour_n the_o contempt_n i_o have_v do_v to_o thy_o majesty_n though_o i_o be_v deep_o wound_v for_o the_o wrong_n i_o have_v do_v to_o man_n by_o my_o sin_n yet_o the_o grief_n and_o trouble_n of_o mind_n i_o conceive_v for_o that_o be_v nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o that_o anguish_n i_o find_v in_o my_o soul_n for_o my_o despise_n of_o thou_o and_o that_o light_a account_n of_o thou_o and_o of_o thy_o eye_n that_o have_v be_v upon_o i_o by_o the_o like_a phrase_n the_o captivity_n be_v call_v ezek._n 7.5_o a_o evil_a a_o only_a evil_n that_o be_v the_o great_a evil_n that_o ever_o befall_v that_o nation_n so_o then_o the_o doctrine_n that_o arise_v from_o these_o word_n thus_o open_v be_v this_o 14_o that_o the_o offence_n we_o have_v do_v to_o god_n by_o our_o sin_n though_o it_o be_v not_o the_o only_a yet_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a thing_n above_o all_o other_o that_o shall_v make_v we_o to_o hate_v sin_n and_o to_o mourn_v for_o it_o two_o branch_n you_o see_v there_o be_v of_o this_o doctrine_n and_o both_o of_o they_o ground_v upon_o that_o which_o you_o have_v now_o hear_v observe_v unto_o you_o in_o this_o example_n of_o david_n 1._o it_o be_v not_o the_o only_a cause_n why_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v hate_v and_o mourn_v for_o 2._o it_o be_v yet_o the_o chief_a cause_n of_o all_o other_o 1_o the_o former_a branch_n shall_v be_v confirm_v unto_o you_o in_o two_o point_n first_o the_o very_a consideration_n and_o respect_n we_o have_v to_o the_o evil_a consequent_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o punishment_n that_o god_n have_v threaten_v in_o his_o word_n and_o do_v daily_o exercute_v upon_o we_o for_o sin_n may_v be_v a_o just_a cause_n even_o to_o a_o faithful_a and_o good_a soul_n to_o move_v he_o to_o be_v afraid_a of_o sin_n and_o to_o hate_v it_o and_o mourn_v for_o it_o if_o the_o token_n we_o discern_v of_o judgement_n imminent_a over_o the_o nation_n bring_v our_o sin_n into_o our_o remembrance_n and_o breed_v fear_n and_o sorrow_n in_o we_o for_o they_o as_o they_o be_v apt_a oft_o to_o do_v with_o sundry_a of_o god_n best_a servant_n that_o be_v no_o sign_n of_o a_o heart_n void_a of_o faith_n david_n profess_v it_o be_v so_o with_o he_o psal._n ●19_n 120_o my_o flesh_n tremble_v for_o fear_n of_o thou_o and_o i_o be_o afraid_a of_o thy_o judgement_n josiah_n be_v commend_v of_o god_n even_o for_o this_o 2_o king_n 22_o 19_o nay_o it_o be_v no_o evil_a sign_n to_o be_v afraid_a of_o sin_n and_o trouble_v with_o fear_n and_o grief_n for_o it_o by_o the_o thought_n we_o have_v of_o our_o death_n and_o of_o the_o judgement_n to_o come_v and_o even_o of_o hell_n itself_o know_v the_o terror_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v paul_n have_v speak_v of_o the_o judgement_n to_o come_v 2_o cor._n 5.11_o we_o persuade_v man_n and_o be_v make_v manifest_a unto_o god_n and_o our_o saviour_n charge_v we_o to_o fear_n god_n even_o out_o of_o this_o consideration_n that_o he_o have_v power_n to_o cast_v both_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n into_o hell_n luke_n 12_o 5._o neither_o be_v it_o unlawful_a to_o mourn_v for_o sin_n even_o because_o of_o those_o scourge_n and_o correction_n we_o receive_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n for_o it_o in_o this_o life_n all_o our_o affliction_n shall_v bring_v our_o sin_n into_o our_o remembrance_n and_o humble_v we_o for_o they_o our_o sin_n be_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o keep_v good_a thing_n from_o we_o as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v jer._n 5.25_o our_o sin_n be_v the_o only_a cause_n of_o all_o misery_n we_o be_v subject_a unto_o how_o bitter_a and_o extreme_a soever_o they_o be_v because_o thy_o sin_n be_v increase_v say_v the_o lord_n jer._n 30.15_o i_o have_v do_v these_o thing_n unto_o thou_o all_o the_o evil_n therefore_o that_o we_o endure_v shall_v work_v upon_o we_o as_o they_o do_v upon_o god_n people_n lam._n 5.15_o 16._o the_o joy_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v cease_v our_o dance_n be_v turn_v into_o mourning_n the_o crown_n be_v fall_v from_o our_o head_n woe_n unto_o we_o that_o we_o have_v sin_v and_o it_o be_v certain_o a_o grievous_a sin_n and_o a_o argument_n of_o a_o strange_a stupidity_n and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n in_o we_o that_o the_o lord_n scourge_v we_o so_o oft_o one_o way_n or_o other_o by_o his_o judgement_n we_o mourn_v no_o more_o for_o our_o sin_n that_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o by_o every_o judgement_n and_o affliction_n god_n call_v we_o to_o sorrow_n for_o our_o sin_n in_o that_o day_n say_v the_o prophet_n isaiah_n 22.12_o do_v the_o lord_n call_v to_o weep_v and_o to_o mourning_n and_o mic._n 6.9_o the_o lord_n voice_n cry_v to_o the_o city_n &_o so_o unto_o the_o town_n to_o the_o family_n to_o the_o person_n who_o he_o smite_v with_o any_o of_o his_o correction_n and_o what_o do_v it_o cry_v sure_o the_o effect_n and_o sum_n of_o that_o cry_n be_v set_v down_o lam._n 3.39..40_o man_n suffer_v for_o his_o sin_n &_o therefore_o search_v and_o try_v your_o way_n and_o turn_v again_o to_o the_o lord_n he_o be_v therefore_o a_o wise_a and_o happy_a man_n that_o stop_v not_o his_o ear_n at_o this_o cry_n but_o hear_v the_o rod_n and_o who_o have_v appoint_v it_o second_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o hurt_n we_o have_v do_v unto_o other_o by_o our_o sin_n do_v also_o give_v great_a weight_n to_o our_o sin_n &_o may_v be_v a_o just_a cause_n of_o sorrow_n &_o trouble_v to_o our_o mind_n for_o they_o even_o the_o hurt_n we_o have_v do_v they_o in_o temporal_a thing_n o_o how_o it_o wound_v david_n heart_n when_o he_o see_v what_o a_o pestilence_n he_o have_v bring_v among_o his_o subject_n 1_o chron._n 21.17_o let_v thy_o hand_n i_o pray_v thou_o o_o lord_n my_o god_n be_v
less_o than_o rebellion_n and_o stubborness_n than_o witchcraft_n and_o idolatry_n object_n you_o will_v say_v then_o that_o by_o this_o doctrine_n all_o sin_n be_v alike_o he_o that_o to_o relieve_v his_o extreme_a necessity_n steal_v a_o sheep_n break_v god_n commandment_n aswell_o as_o he_o that_o kill_v his_o own_o father_n and_o be_v there_o no_o difference_n between_o these_o sin_n answ._n i_o answer_v yes_o very_o some_o sin_n be_v far_o great_a than_o other_o be_v 2_o king_n 3.2_o jehoram_n the_o son_n of_o ahab_n wrought_v evil_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o not_o like_o his_o father_n and_o like_o his_o mother_n his_o sin_n be_v great_a but_o not_o so_o great_a as_o they_o our_o saviour_n tell_v the_o pharisee_n that_o some_o sin_n in_o comparison_n of_o other_o be_v like_o gnat_n and_o some_o like_a camel_n mat._n 23.24_o and_o though_o the_o least_o in_o it_o own_o nature_n do_v deserve_v eternal_a torment_n and_o foolish_a man_n can_v comprehend_v how_o there_o can_v be_v any_o degree_n any_o magis_fw-la or_o minus_n more_o or_o less_o in_o those_o torment_n that_o be_v eternal_a and_o infinite_a yet_o the_o eternal_a god_n know_v how_o to_o make_v degree_n and_o difference_n even_o in_o those_o eternal_a torment_n and_o though_o the_o torment_n that_o the_o least_o sinner_n shall_v endure_v in_o hell_n be_v infinite_a and_o such_o as_o no_o tongue_n can_v express_v no_o heart_n can_v conceive_v how_o great_a and_o intolerable_a they_o will_v be_v there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o but_o weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n luke_n 13_o 28._o there_o the_o worm_n never_o die_v nor_o the_o fire_n never_o go_v out_o mar._n 9.44_o yet_o will_v the_o lord_n inflict_v great_a torment_n on_o such_o who_o sin_n have_v be_v like_o camel_n and_o lesser_a upon_o those_o who_o sin_n have_v be_v like_o gnat_n he_o know_v how_o to_o beat_v the_o servant_n that_o know_v his_o master_n will_v and_o do_v it_o not_o with_o many_o stripe_n and_o he_o with_o few_o that_o do_v it_o not_o because_o he_o know_v it_o not_o luke_o 12.47_o 48._o to_o make_v the_o torment_n of_o chorazin_n more_o intolerable_a than_o those_o of_o tire_n and_o sidon_n mat._n 11.22_o some_o sin_n you_o see_v then_o be_v great_a than_o other_o some_o but_o what_o be_v it_o that_o put_v the_o difference_n between_o sin_n what_o be_v the_o weight_n and_o balance_n wherein_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v weigh_v if_o we_o will_v know_v which_o be_v the_o heavy_a and_o which_o be_v the_o light_a sin_n not_o the_o opinion_n of_o man_n of_o the_o world_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o time_n nor_o the_o censure_n and_o punishment_n that_o man_n do_v pass_v and_o inflict_v upon_o sin_n for_o so_o in_o time_n past_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v a_o great_a sin_n to_o eat_v flesh_n upon_o a_o friday_n then_o to_o break_v many_o of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o in_o any_o man_n not_o to_o keep_v the_o day_n of_o christ_n birth_n holy_a in_o a_o solemn_a manner_n shall_v be_v a_o great_a sin_n then_o to_o break_v any_o one_o of_o god_n commandment_n as_o than_o to_o steal_v to_o commit_v adultery_n or_o idolatry_n or_o blasphemy_n either_o these_o be_v therefore_o false_a weight_n and_o balance_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o greatness_n or_o smallnesse_n of_o sin_n by_o but_o by_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o this_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v of_o and_o this_o be_v the_o rule_n that_o god_n word_n give_v we_o to_o judge_v which_o be_v the_o great_a sin_n the_o more_o direct_o any_o sin_n be_v commit_v against_o god_n the_o more_o contempt_n be_v do_v to_o god_n by_o it_o the_o great_a the_o sin_n be_v as_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o great_a sin_n of_o all_o sin_n because_o it_o be_v most_o direct_o commit_v against_o god_n he_o that_o commit_v it_o sin_v of_o mere_a malice_n and_o despite_n against_o god_n he_o do_v despite_n unto_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v heb._n 10.29_o so_o every_o other_o sin_n the_o near_a it_o come_v to_o it_o the_o more_o direct_o it_o be_v commit_v against_o god_n the_o great_a the_o sin_n be_v and_o from_o this_o general_a rule_n these_o three_o particular_n will_v follow_v first_o that_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o high_a degree_n against_o the_o first_o table_n be_v great_a than_o those_o of_o the_o high_a degree_n against_o the_o second_o so_o samuel_n speak_v of_o witchcraft_n and_o idolatry_n as_o of_o the_o great_a sin_n 1_o sam._n 15.23_o rebellion_n be_v as_o the_o sin_n of_o witchcraft_n and_o stubborness_n be_v as_o iniquity_n and_o idolatry_n so_o our_o saviour_n call_v the_o first_o table_n the_o first_o and_o the_o great_a commandment_n mat._n 22.38_o second_o that_o sin_n commit_v against_o knowledge_n be_v great_a sin_n than_o those_o that_o be_v commit_v out_o of_o simple_a ignorance_n because_o there_o be_v great_a contempt_n do_v to_o god_n by_o they_o then_o by_o the_o other_o see_v this_o in_o a_o sin_n of_o omission_n james_n 4.17_o to_o he_o that_o know_v to_o do_v well_o and_o do_v it_o not_o to_o he_o it_o be_v sin_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v to_o he_o it_o be_v sin_n with_o a_o witness_n see_v it_o also_o in_o sin_n of_o commission_n paul_n blasphemy_n and_o persecution_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o deed_n itself_o a_o far_o great_a sin_n than_o the_o sin_n of_o that_o man_n be_v that_o gather_v stick_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o yet_o paul_n find_v mercy_n with_o god_n because_o he_o do_v it_o ignorant_o as_o himself_o say_v 1_o tim._n 1.13_o whereas_o the_o other_o find_v no_o mercy_n with_o god_n as_o we_o see_v numb_a 15.35_o because_o he_o do_v it_o against_o his_o knowledge_n presumptuous_o how_o may_v that_o appear_v will_v you_o say_v sure_o he_o and_o all_o the_o congregation_n know_v well_o how_o strict_o a_o little_a before_o god_n have_v enjoin_v a_o precise_a rest_n even_o from_o gather_v of_o mannah_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n day_n exo._n 16.23_o yea_o from_o do_v any_o work_n even_o about_o the_o make_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n yea_o or_o kindle_v a_o fire_n in_o any_o of_o their_o tabernacle_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n day_n exod._n 15._o ●_o 3._o and_o yet_o will_v he_o do_v this_o he_o sin_v against_o his_o knowledge_n he_o sin_v presumptuous_o therefore_o be_v this_o story_n bring_v in_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n immediate_o upon_o the_o law_n that_o god_n have_v make_v against_o presumptuous_a sinner_n applic._n as_o a_o sanction_n and_o ratification_n of_o that_o law_n numb_a 15.30_o 32._o o_o think_v of_o this_o you_o that_o at_o this_o day_n do_v so_o presumptuous_o profane_v the_o lord_n sabbath_n not_o by_o gather_v a_o few_o stick_n but_o by_o follow_v your_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n on_o that_o day_n with_o the_o neglect_n and_o contempt_n of_o god_n house_n and_o worship_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n wrought_v that_o love_n in_o david_n heart_n to_o the_o house_n of_o god_n that_o he_o profess_v psal._n 84_o 10._o he_o have_v rather_o be_v a_o doorkeeper_n in_o the_o house_n of_o his_o god_n then_o to_o dwell_v in_o the_o tent_n of_o wickedness_n and_o what_o spirit_n be_v it_o that_o make_v you_o to_o hate_v and_o loathe_v the_o house_n of_o god_n as_o you_o do_v that_o make_v you_o so_o far_o in_o love_n with_o the_o tent_n of_o wickedness_n i_o mean_v the_o alehouse_n the_o most_o of_o which_o if_o any_o house_n under_o heaven_n may_v well_o be_v call_v the_o tent_n of_o wickedness_n as_o you_o be_v that_o you_o can_v be_v draw_v from_o these_o tent_n of_o wickedness_n into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n no_o not_o upon_o the_o lord_n day_n you_o can_v pretend_v ignorance_n for_o your_o sin_n no_o more_o than_o he_o that_o gather_v stick_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n day_n can_v you_o sin_n against_o your_o knowledge_n as_o he_o do_v you_o sin_v presumptuous_o as_o he_o do_v yea_o your_o sin_n be_v worse_a than_o he_o be_v 1._o we_o read_v not_o that_o he_o do_v this_o in_o the_o time_n of_o god_n public_a worship_n as_o you_o do_v 2._o he_o spend_v not_o his_o time_n so_o ill_o in_o gather_v stick_n as_o you_o do_v in_o swill_v and_o game_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n day_n 3._o he_o draw_v not_o other_o lewd_a companion_n to_o join_v with_o he_o in_o his_o sin_n as_o you_o do_v and_o yet_o god_n meet_v with_o he_o he_o die_v without_o mercy_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v for_o his_o sin_n &_o be_v you_o sure_o the_o lord_n will_v meet_v with_o you_o also_o one_o day_n and_o unless_o you_o repent_v and_o forsake_v this_o sin_n you_o shall_v find_v no_o more_o mercy_n with_o god_n than_o he_o do_v well_o because_o i_o see_v many_o of_o you_o my_o
will_n be_v so_o thus_o the_o apostle_n prove_v it_o be_v no_o unrighteousness_n in_o god_n to_o love_n and_o choose_v jacob_n and_o to_o hate_v and_o reject_v esau_n before_o either_o of_o they_o have_v do_v good_a or_o evil_n even_o before_o they_o be_v bear_v because_o his_o holy_a will_n be_v so_o rom._n 9.14_o 15._o what_o shall_v we_o then_o say_v be_v there_o unrighteousness_n with_o god_n god_n forbid_v for_o he_o say_v to_o moses_n i_o will_v have_v mercy_n on_o who_o i_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o i_o will_v have_v compassion_n on_o who_o i_o will_v have_v compassion_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o ground_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o doctrine_n take_v from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o judge_n himself_o 2._o the_o second_o respect_v they_o that_o be_v judge_v and_o correct_v by_o the_o lord_n we_o must_v needs_o clear_v the_o lord_n from_o wrong_v any_o man_n in_o any_o of_o his_o judgement_n because_o he_o never_o judge_v nor_o punish_v any_o man_n before_o he_o have_v deserve_v that_o and_o much_o more_o than_o that_o that_o god_n lay_v upon_o he_o this_o reason_n elihu_n give_v job_n 34.10_o 11._o harken_v unto_o i_o you_o man_n of_o understanding_n far_o be_v it_o from_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v do_v wickedness_n and_o from_o the_o almighty_a that_o he_o shall_v commit_v iniquity_n for_o the_o work_n of_o a_o man_n shall_v he_o render_v unto_o he_o and_o cause_v every_o man_n to_o find_v according_a to_o his_o way_n and_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 3.19_o that_o every_o mouth_n may_v be_v stop_v and_o all_o the_o world_n may_v become_v guilty_a before_o god_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v see_v all_o the_o world_n be_v guilty_a before_o god_n and_o liable_a to_o his_o curse_n for_o the_o transgression_n of_o his_o law_n every_o mouth_n must_v needs_o be_v stop_v if_o not_o yet_o certain_o at_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n no_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o open_v his_o mouth_n against_o or_o charge_v he_o with_o injustice_n in_o any_o of_o his_o judgement_n upon_o man_n now_o this_o doctrine_n serve_v unto_o two_o use_n especial_o 1._o for_o instruction_n and_o the_o inform_v of_o our_o judgement_n 2._o for_o exhortation_n and_o work_n upon_o our_o will_n and_o affection_n for_o the_o first_o this_o doctrine_n serve_v notable_o for_o convince_a of_o a_o error_n that_o have_v too_o much_o place_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o most_o man_n 1_o all_o man_n by_o nature_n be_v apt_a at_o least_o secret_o in_o their_o heart_n to_o question_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o many_o of_o his_o judgement_n when_o the_o apostle_n have_v make_v this_o objection_n rom._n 3.5_o be_v god_n unrighteous_a who_o take_v vengeance_n he_o add_v present_o these_o word_n i_o speak_v as_o a_o man_n say_v he_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v every_o natural_a man_n be_v apt_a to_o speak_v and_o think_v so_o this_o appear_v evident_o by_o the_o general_a opposition_n that_o be_v make_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n which_o both_o our_o church_n and_o other_o reform_a church_n have_v long_o teach_v and_o receive_v by_o clear_a warrant_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o not_o only_o the_o papist_n and_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o the_o pelagian_n but_o every_o natural_a man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v apt_a to_o cavil_n against_o this_o doctrine_n &_o to_o account_v it_o a_o most_o absurd_a and_o unreasonable_a doctrine_n and_o all_o because_o they_o can_v conceive_v how_o it_o can_v stand_v with_o justice_n that_o god_n shall_v make_v such_o a_o decree_n as_o that_o be_v but_o the_o doctrine_n you_o have_v now_o hear_v and_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o be_v well_o understand_v and_o believe_v will_v stop_v their_o mouth_n and_o convince_v their_o error_n in_o this_o point_n this_o will_v be_v evident_a unto_o you_o if_o you_o will_v but_o observe_v these_o four_o point_n first_o god_n have_v do_v no_o wrong_n if_o in_o his_o eternal_a decree_n he_o have_v choose_v no_o man_n unto_o life_n but_o reprobate_v all_o man_n unto_o destruction_n for_o he_o be_v our_o absolute_a sovereign_a lord_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v and_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o do_v with_o his_o own_o what_o himself_o please_v and_o who_o have_v deserve_v that_o god_n shall_v choose_v he_o unto_o life_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o this_o very_a case_n rom._n 11.35_o who_o have_v first_o give_v unto_o he_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v recompense_v to_o he_o again_o second_o god_n never_o condemn_v any_o nor_o do_v decree_n to_o condemn_v any_o but_o for_o sin_n for_o he_o will_v render_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n rom._n 2.6_o so_o that_o if_o any_o man_n be_v damn_v the_o lord_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o but_o himself_o thou_o have_v destroy_v thyself_o say_v the_o lord_n to_o the_o wicked_a jew_n hos._n 13.9_o and_o we_o have_v more_o cause_n to_o admire_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o he_o have_v ordain_v to_o save_v any_o when_o he_o do_v foresee_v that_o all_o will_v cast_v away_o themselves_o then_o to_o doubt_v of_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n in_o appoint_v some_o to_o destruction_n which_o he_o do_v foresee_v they_o will_v by_o their_o voluntary_a and_o wilful_a transgression_n most_o just_o deserve_v three_o though_o god_n do_v foresee_v that_o such_o and_o such_o will_v by_o their_o sin_n and_o continuance_n in_o infidelity_n just_o deserve_v eternal_a damnation_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o the_o end_n god_n aim_v at_o and_o propound_v to_o himself_o in_o the_o decree_n of_o reprobation_n that_o wicked_a man_n may_v perish_v for_o that_o be_v a_o thing_n god_n never_o take_v pleasure_n in_o as_o i_o live_v say_v the_o lord_n god_n ezek._n 33_o 11._o i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o the_o death_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o the_o thing_n that_o move_v god_n to_o make_v that_o decree_n and_o the_o end_n he_o intend_v and_o aim_v at_o in_o it_o be_v the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o own_o glory_n pro._n 16.4_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v all_o thing_n for_o himself_o yea_o even_o the_o wicked_a for_o the_o day_n of_o evil_a 1._o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o glorious_a justice_n and_o wrath_n against_o sin_n upon_o the_o reprobate_n rome_n 9.22_o 2._o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o glorious_a mercy_n towards_o his_o elect_a which_o can_v never_o have_v be_v so_o glorious_a if_o it_o have_v be_v common_a to_o all_o mankind_n and_o this_o reason_n also_o be_v give_v by_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 19.23_o four_o the_o lord_n decree_v as_o it_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o damnation_n of_o any_o but_o their_o own_o sin_n so_o neither_o be_v it_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o sin_n it_o do_v not_o impose_v a_o necessity_n upon_o any_o to_o sin_n but_o notwithstanding_o this_o decree_n every_o man_n sin_v voluntary_o and_o unconstrain_o neither_o be_v the_o lord_n but_o his_o own_o corruption_n only_o and_o satan_n the_o cause_n of_o his_o sin_n jam._n 1.13_o 14._o so_o that_o to_o conclude_v this_o first_o use_n let_v every_o one_o of_o we_o strive_v to_o suppress_v and_o to_o reject_v with_o detestation_n and_o tremble_v all_o thought_n that_o shall_v rise_v in_o our_o heart_n to_o call_v into_o question_n the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o any_o of_o his_o decree_n or_o judgement_n according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 3.4_o who_o when_o he_o have_v but_o by_o occasion_n of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o reprobation_n mention_v this_o objection_n be_v there_o unrighteousness_n with_o god_n abhor_v it_o present_o and_o reject_v it_o in_o this_o manner_n god_n forbid_v say_v he_o and_o if_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o comprehend_v how_o any_o thing_n that_o the_o lord_n have_v decree_v or_o do_v can_v stand_v with_o equity_n and_o justice_n let_v we_o ascribe_v it_o rather_o to_o our_o own_o weakness_n and_o shallowness_n of_o understanding_n then_o impute_v the_o least_o shadow_n of_o injustice_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o check_v ourselves_o in_o that_o manner_n that_o holy_a job_n do_v job_n 42.3_o i_o have_v utter_v that_o i_o understand_v not_o thing_n too_o wonderful_a for_o i_o which_o i_o know_v not_o lecture_n l._n on_o psalm_n 51.4_o febru_n 27._o 1626._o it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o proceed_v unto_o the_o second_o use_n that_o this_o doctrine_n serve_v unto_o 2._o and_o that_o be_v to_o stir_v up_o every_o one_o of_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v strive_v and_o labour_n for_o this_o grace_n to_o be_v able_a to_o do_v as_o david_n do_v here_o when_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v our_o own_o case_n to_o yield_v this_o passive_a obedience_n unto_o god_n in_o all_o the_o degree_n of_o it_o that_o we_o have_v hear_v of_o whensoever_o or_o howsoever_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v please_v to_o judge_v and_o correct_v we_o the_o necessity_n
and_o fall_v down_o upon_o the_o ground_n and_o worship_v god_n second_o true_a patience_n be_v a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n 2_o thess._n 1.4_o paul_n glory_v of_o the_o thessalonian_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o their_o patience_n and_o faith_n in_o all_o their_o persecution_n and_o tribulation_n that_o they_o do_v endure_v and_o he_o desire_v the_o hebrew_n heb._n 6.12_o that_o they_o will_v be_v follower_n of_o they_o that_o through_o faith_n and_o patience_n inherit_v the_o promise_n and_o jam._n 1.3_o the_o try_v of_o your_o faith_n work_v patience_n true_a patience_n rise_v out_o of_o this_o persuasion_n that_o the_o cross_n that_o befall_v we_o be_v from_o god_n that_o he_o have_v a_o special_a hand_n and_o providence_n in_o it_o this_o be_v the_o root_n of_o david_n patience_n 2_o sam._n 16.10_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v to_o he_o curse_n david_n yea_o that_o this_o god_n that_o send_v the_o cross_n be_v our_o god_n and_o love_a father_n in_o christ_n and_o that_o make_v the_o child_n of_o god_n bear_v it_o patient_o john_n 18.11_o the_o cup_n which_o my_o father_n have_v give_v i_o shall_v i_o not_o drink_v the_o man_n that_o want_v this_o faith_n though_o he_o be_v never_o so_o quiet_a under_o any_o cross_n yet_o if_o his_o quietness_n grow_v from_o this_o conceit_n it_o be_v but_o his_o ill_a fortune_n and_o destiny_n as_o the_o philistine_n say_v 1_o sam._n 6.9_o it_o be_v a_o chance_n that_o happen_v to_o we_o he_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v true_o patient_a three_o true_a patience_n be_v a_o fruit_n of_o our_o obedience_n unto_o god_n and_o of_o a_o heart_n subdue_v and_o make_v able_a to_o yield_v unto_o god_n in_o all_o thing_n yea_o it_o be_v indeed_o a_o chief_a part_n of_o our_o obedience_n unto_o he_o so_o speak_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o patience_n our_o bless_a saviour_n show_v in_o all_o his_o suffering_n phil._n 2.8_o he_o humble_v himself_o and_o become_v obedient_a unto_o the_o death_n because_o he_o know_v it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n he_o shall_v suffer_v those_o thing_n though_o he_o be_v deep_o sensible_a of_o they_o how_o grievous_a and_o intolerable_a they_o be_v therefore_o he_o do_v so_o patient_o endure_v they_o his_o patience_n be_v a_o willing_a subject_n of_o his_o own_o will_n to_o the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n mat._n 26.39_o o_o my_o father_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a let_v this_o cup_n pass_v from_o i_o nevertheless_o not_o as_o i_o will_v but_o as_o thou_o will_v so_o then_o that_o quietness_n and_o temper_n that_o many_o show_n in_o great_a affliction_n which_o rise_v only_o out_o of_o a_o natural_a courage_n and_o stoutness_n of_o heart_n and_o out_o of_o this_o manly_a resolution_n i_o see_v no_o way_n to_o avoid_v this_o cross_n sorrow_v and_o fret_v at_o it_o be_v but_o a_o childish_a and_o womanish_a thing_n and_o will_v do_v no_o good_a at_o all_o and_o therefore_o i_o must_v and_o will_v endure_v it_o as_o the_o jew_n be_v say_v to_o speak_v jer._n 10.19_o true_o this_o be_v a_o grief_n and_o i_o must_v bear_v it_o this_o harden_v of_o a_o man_n self_n in_o sorrow_n as_o job_n speak_v job_n 6.10_o this_o patience_n perforce_o as_o we_o use_v to_o call_v it_o without_o all_o reference_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o respect_n of_o their_o obedience_n unto_o he_o deserve_v not_o the_o name_n of_o true_a patience_n four_o true_a patience_n consist_v not_o in_o bear_v of_o some_o cross_n and_o affliction_n but_o of_o those_o that_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v to_o exercise_v we_o by_o whatsoever_o they_o be_v we_o have_v a_o proverb_n that_o beggar_n must_v be_v no_o chooser_n if_o we_o be_v true_o patient_a we_o must_v learn_v to_o bear_v our_o own_o cross_n if_o any_o man_n will_v come_v after_o i_o say_v our_o saviour_n luk._n 9.23_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n daily_o i_o have_v learn_v say_v the_o apostle_n phil._n 4.11_o in_o whatsoever_o estate_n i_o be_o therewith_o to_o be_v content_a they_o therefore_o that_o will_v be_v their_o own_o carver_n and_o can_v say_v if_o my_o cross_n be_v but_o as_o such_o or_o such_o a_o one_o be_v i_o can_v well_o bear_v it_o but_o alas_o no_o man_n be_v in_o my_o case_n none_o can_v endure_v that_o that_o i_o do_v be_v far_o from_o true_a patience_n he_o that_o be_v true_o patient_a will_v do_v the_o lord_n that_o honour_n as_o to_o judge_v that_o the_o fit_a and_o best_a cross_n for_o he_o which_o he_o think_v good_a to_o lay_v upon_o he_o and_o resolve_v with_o moses_n deut_n 32_o 4._o his_o work_n be_v perfect_a it_o can_v not_o have_v be_v better_o do_v for_o all_o his_o way_n be_v judgement_n five_o true_a patience_n will_v make_v a_o man_n more_o desirous_a to_o profit_v by_o his_o affliction_n then_o to_o be_v rid_v of_o it_o it_o will_v keep_v a_o man_n from_o desire_v to_o shake_v it_o of_o till_o god_n have_v finish_v his_o work_n that_o he_o intend_v to_o do_v upon_o he_o by_o it_o let_v patience_n have_v her_o perfect_a work_n say_v the_o apostle_n jam._n 1.4_o we_o shall_v be_v of_o jacob_n mind_n gen._n 32.26_o we_o shall_v be_v unwilling_a that_o god_n when_o he_o have_v be_v wrestle_v and_o strive_v with_o we_o by_o his_o correction_n shall_v depart_v from_o we_o till_o he_o have_v leave_v a_o blessing_n behind_o he_o no_o wise_a man_n will_v desire_v to_o get_v from_o under_o the_o surgeon_n hand_n till_o he_o be_v cure_v of_o his_o wound_n or_o pass_v all_o danger_n that_o which_o the_o prophet_n say_v esa._n 28.16_o he_o that_o believe_v shall_v not_o make_v haste_n may_v fit_o be_v apply_v even_o unto_o this_o case_n this_o be_v asas_fw-la sin_n 2_o chron._n 16.12_o he_o seek_v to_o the_o physician_n to_o be_v cure_v of_o his_o disease_n but_o not_o to_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v cure_v of_o his_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n for_o which_o that_o disease_n be_v lay_v upon_o he_o six_o true_a patience_n will_v make_v a_o man_n able_a so_o to_o depend_v upon_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o all_o his_o affliction_n as_o he_o dare_v not_o ease_v himself_o of_o his_o cross_n by_o any_o unlawful_a mean_n by_o any_o other_o way_n then_o such_o as_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v or_o permit_v he_o to_o use_v the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o faithful_a that_o endure_v most_o grievous_a persecution_n under_o antiochus_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o maccabee_n say_v of_o they_o heb._n 11.35_o that_o they_o will_v not_o accept_v of_o deliverance_n he_o mean_v upon_o unlawful_a condition_n that_o they_o may_v obtain_v a_o better_a resurrection_n and_o we_o have_v a_o notable_a example_n of_o this_o in_o david_n 1_o sam_n 26.8_o 11._o who_o when_o god_n have_v deliver_v saul_n his_o enemy_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o abishai_n offer_v he_o with_o one_o blow_n to_o have_v ease_v he_o of_o he_o and_o all_o the_o extreme_a misery_n he_o endure_v by_o his_o mean_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n accept_v of_o it_o but_o answer_v he_o thus_o verse_n 10_o 11._o as_o the_o lord_n live_v the_o lord_n shall_v smite_v he_o or_o his_o day_n shall_v come_v to_o die_v or_o he_o shall_v descend_v into_o battle_n and_o perish_v the_o lord_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v stretch_v forth_o my_o hand_n against_o the_o lord_n anoint_v and_o what_o patience_n be_v there_o then_o in_o those_o man_n that_o how_o quiet_a soever_o they_o seem_v in_o their_o affliction_n will_v neglect_v no_o mean_n that_o either_o themselves_o can_v think_v of_o or_o other_o shall_v suggest_v unto_o they_o though_o it_o be_v by_o a_o witch_n or_o wizard_n that_o be_v by_o the_o devil_n himself_o to_o help_v themselves_o by_o as_o saul_n do_v who_o in_o the_o height_n of_o his_o impiety_n as_o the_o great_a sin_n that_o ever_o he_o commit_v seek_v to_o the_o witch_n of_o endor_n devil_n and_o familiar_a spirit_n for_o help_n and_o comfort_n 1_o sam._n 28.7_o seven_o and_o last_o true_a patience_n whereby_o we_o obedient_o submit_v our_o self_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o our_o affliction_n will_v moderate_v our_o passion_n and_o make_v we_o more_o meek_a spirit_v even_o towards_o man_n yea_o towards_o such_o man_n as_o have_v have_v any_o hand_n or_o be_v any_o instrument_n in_o our_o affliction_n this_o property_n of_o christian_a patience_n be_v commend_v to_o we_o in_o the_o example_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n 1_o peter_n 2.23_o who_o when_o he_o be_v revile_v revile_v not_o again_o when_o he_o suffer_v he_o threaten_v not_o but_o commit_v himself_o to_o he_o that_o judge_v righteous_o the_o apostle_n persuade_v unto_o patience_n have_v these_o word_n jam._n 5.9_o grudge_v not_o one_o against_o another_o brethren_n he_o say_v not_o rage_v not_o rail_v not_o revenge_v not_o
we_o good_a at_o our_o latter_a end_n as_o moses_n speak_v deut._n 8.16_o in_o which_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v say_v by_o the_o lord_n to_o every_o child_n of_o he_o who_o he_o do_v correct_v as_o it_o be_v say_v by_o christ_n unto_o peter_n when_o he_o will_v wash_v his_o foot_n joh._n 13.7_o what_o i_o do_v thou_o know_v not_o now_o but_o thou_o shall_v know_v hereafter_o let_v the_o lord_n alone_o till_o he_o have_v do_v his_o work_n upon_o thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v know_v it_o will_v be_v for_o thy_o good_a that_o he_o do_v thus_o afflict_v thou_o 3._o admit_v thou_o can_v never_o be_v able_a to_o discern_v how_o thy_o affliction_n have_v do_v thou_o any_o good_a yet_o be_v it_o enough_o for_o thou_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o oft_o have_v say_v that_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v certain_o do_v they_o good_a job._n 5.17_o behold_v happy_a be_v the_o man_n who_o the_o lord_n correct_v therefore_o despise_v not_o thou_o the_o chasten_n of_o the_o almighty_a and_o psal._n 94.12_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n who_o thou_o chastene_v o_o lord_n and_o jam._n 1.12_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n that_o endure_v tentation_n and_o 5.11_o behold_v we_o count_v they_o happy_a that_o endure_v object_n not_o thou_o then_o that_o thou_o can_v perceive_v no_o such_o thing_n learn_v thou_o to_o walk_v by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o sense_n 2_o cor._n 5.7_o and_o know_v assure_o the_o lord_n by_o afflict_v thou_o intend_v to_o do_v thou_o good_a if_o thou_o be_v he_o and_o will_v do_v thou_o good_a in_o the_o end_n certain_o this_o way_n of_o teach_v we_o and_o bring_v we_o to_o grace_v &_o glory_n be_v of_o such_o necessity_n as_o few_o or_o none_o ever_o attain_v to_o it_o any_o other_o way_n who_o teach_v like_o he_o say_v eliphaz_n job_n 36.22_o there_o can_v be_v no_o good_a expect_v when_o there_o be_v no_o rod_n walk_v this_o be_v note_v to_o be_v a_o cause_n of_o the_o ungraciousnes_n of_o many_o that_o they_o have_v have_v no_o affliction_n ps._n 55.19_o because_o they_o have_v no_o change_n therefore_o they_o fear_v not_o god_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o faithful_a it_o be_v say_v esa._n 43.10_o i_o have_v choose_v thou_o that_o be_v approve_v declare_v thou_o to_o be_v one_o of_o my_o choose_a in_o the_o furnace_n of_o affliction_n and_o of_o david_n himself_o it_o be_v say_v that_o though_o he_o have_v be_v well_o teach_v from_o his_o youth_n ps_n 71.17_o o_o god_n thou_o have_v teach_v i_o from_o my_o youth_n yet_o have_v even_o he_o need_v of_o affliction_n and_o learned_a by_o it_o much_o better_a to_o know_v god_n and_o himself_o than_o he_o can_v have_v do_v without_o it_o as_o he_o profess_v ps._n 119.71_o it_o be_v good_a for_o i_o that_o i_o have_v be_v afflict_v that_o i_o may_v learn_v thy_o statute_n and_o this_o be_v the_o second_o point_n wherein_o the_o lord_n love_v in_o afflict_v we_o do_v appear_v he_o afflict_v we_o for_o our_o own_o good_a and_o who_o will_v not_o willing_o endure_v some_o pain_n for_o his_o own_o good_a the_o three_o point_n wherein_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o afflict_v his_o people_n do_v appear_v be_v this_o that_o whatsoever_o loss_n they_o have_v sustain_v by_o the_o affliction_n he_o have_v lay_v upon_o they_o he_o use_v to_o recompense_v it_o unto_o they_o so_o as_o in_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v no_o way_n be_v loser_n by_o it_o this_o the_o lord_n do_v principal_o perform_v in_o those_o loss_n that_o his_o servant_n have_v sustain_v for_o his_o sake_n and_o the_o gospel_n but_o not_o in_o that_o case_n only_o see_v the_o promise_n that_o god_n do_v make_v unto_o his_o people_n upon_o their_o repentance_n joel_n 2.25_o i_o will_v restore_v unto_o you_o the_o year_n that_o the_o locust_n have_v eat_v hereupon_o the_o church_n ground_v that_o prayer_n psal_n 90.15_o make_v we_o glad_a according_a to_o the_o day_n wherein_o thou_o have_v afflict_v we_o and_o the_o year_n wherein_o we_o have_v see_v evil_a and_o so_o speak_v david_n 2._o sam._n 16.12_o it_o may_v be_v the_o lord_n will_v look_v on_o my_o affliction_n and_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v requite_v good_a for_o his_o curse_v this_o day_n god_n have_v be_v wont_a in_o this_o kind_n of_o restitution_n to_o keep_v a_o just_a proportion_n to_o pay_v they_o again_o in_o good_a measure_n luke_n 6.38_o insomuch_o as_o he_o have_v use_v to_o recompense_v extraordinary_a affliction_n with_o extraordinary_a comfort_n and_o blessing_n in_o the_o end_n see_v two_o example_n of_o this_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n great_a be_v their_o oppression_n in_o egypt_n but_o observe_v the_o manner_n of_o their_o deliverance_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v it_o be_v recompense_v to_o the_o full_a 1._o they_o go_v out_o like_a conqueror_n in_o a_o triumphant_a manner_n exod._n 14.8_o and_o 13.18_o 2._o they_o go_v away_o with_o the_o spoil_n of_o their_o enemy_n lade_v with_o their_o silver_n and_o gold_n and_o principal_a jewel_n exod._n 12.35_o 36._o 3._o their_o oppressor_n sue_v to_o they_o request_v and_o urge_v they_o to_o be_v go_v exod_a 12.33_o 4._o they_o grow_v to_o be_v in_o great_a credit_n and_o high_a favour_n with_o their_o enemy_n before_o they_o go_v exod._n 11.3_o 5._o they_o see_v all_o their_o enemy_n lie_v dead_a upon_o the_o sea_n shore_n exod._n 14.30_o 31._o whereas_o there_o be_v not_o one_o sick_a or_o feeble_a person_n in_o all_o their_o tribe_n psal._n 105.37_o so_o likewise_o great_a be_v the_o fear_n and_o perplexity_n that_o all_o god_n people_n be_v bring_v ●nto_o by_o the_o decree_n that_o haman_n have_v procure_v against_o they_o but_o mark_v their_o deliverance_n and_o you_o will_v say_v that_o the_o lord_n make_v they_o full_a restitution_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o it_o 1._o by_o the_o strange_a honour_n and_o advancement_n that_o mordecai_n be_v raise_v up_o unto_o est._n 6.11_o &_o 8.2.15_o 2._o in_o the_o shameful_a end_n god_n bring_v haman_n their_o proud_a enemy_n unto_o est._n 7.10_o 3._o in_o the_o hand_n they_o have_v over_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o enemy_n est_fw-la 9.2_o 3._o 4._o in_o the_o abundant_a joy_n and_o comfort_n that_o god_n give_v to_o all_o his_o people_n est_fw-la 9.18_o 19_o yea_o the_o lord_n have_v be_v wont_a to_o restore_v with_o great_a advantage_n all_o such_o loss_n as_o they_o have_v sustain_v by_o the_o affliction_n that_o he_o have_v lay_v upon_o they_o for_o your_o shame_n you_o shall_v have_v double_a say_v the_o lord_n to_o his_o people_n esa._n 61.7_o and_o thus_o deal_v he_o with_o job_n 42.10_o the_o lord_n give_v job_n twice_o as_o much_o as_o he_o have_v before_o and_o upon_o this_o promise_n do_v david_n ground_n his_o prayer_n psal._n 71.20_o 21._o thou_o which_o have_v show_v i_o great_a and_o sore_a trouble_n shall_v quicken_v i_o again_o and_o shall_v bring_v i_o up_o again_o from_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o earth_n thou_o shall_v increase_v my_o greatness_n and_o comfort_v i_o on_o every_o side_n and_o this_o be_v the_o three_o point_n wherein_o god_n love_n in_o afflict_v his_o people_n do_v appear_v and_o who_o will_v not_o be_v willing_a to_o endure_v the_o loss_n of_o any_o comfort_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o such_o a_o god_n as_o be_v both_o able_a and_o willing_a so_o abundant_o to_o recompense_v whatsoever_o loss_n we_o sustain_v from_o his_o hand_n as_o the_o prophet_n tell_v amaziah_n the_o king_n of_o judah_n which_o take_v think_v how_o he_o shall_v do_v for_o the_o hundred_o talent_n he_o have_v disburse_v upon_o the_o israelite_n 2_o chron._n 25.9_o the_o lord_n be_v able_a to_o give_v thou_o much_o more_o than_o this_o the_o four_o point_n wherein_o god_n show_v his_o love_n in_o afflict_v his_o people_n be_v this_o that_o he_o do_v moderate_v all_o their_o trouble_n both_o for_o the_o time_n how_o long_o they_o shall_v endure_v you_o shall_v have_v tribulation_n ten_o day_n rev._n 2.10_o yea_o he_o have_v set_v the_o very_a hour_n both_o for_o the_o beginning_n and_o end_v of_o they_o john_n 7.30_o his_o hour_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v as_o also_o for_o the_o measure_n and_o quantity_n of_o they_o the_o cup_n be_v in_o the_o lord_n hand_n psal._n 75.8_o he_o correct_v they_o not_o in_o his_o anger_n but_o in_o judgement_n and_o discretion_n jer._n 10.24_o proportion_v his_o correction_n by_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o party_n that_o he_o do_v correct_v lay_v great_a trial_n upon_o they_o who_o he_o have_v make_v strong_a to_o bear_v they_o 1_o cor._n 10.13_o for_o he_o know_v the_o weakness_n of_o any_o of_o his_o servant_n psal._n 78.38_o 39_o he_o do_v not_o stir_v up_o all_o his_o wrath_n for_o he_o remember_v that_o they_o be_v but_o flesh_n and_o 103.13_o 14._o
of_o our_o death_n and_o of_o the_o change_n and_o alteration_n of_o our_o estate_n that_o we_o have_v cause_n to_o look_v for_o be_v this_o that_o it_o will_v have_v great_a force_n to_o restrain_v from_o sin_n and_o breed_v in_o we_o a_o care_n to_o please_v the_o lord_n in_o all_o our_o way_n this_o be_v plain_a in_o that_o prayer_n of_o moses_n psal._n 90.12_o teach_v we_o so_o to_o number_v our_o day_n that_o be_v to_o consider_v how_o few_o they_o be_v that_o we_o may_v apply_v our_o heart_n unto_o wisdom_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n nothing_o have_v more_o force_n to_o corrupt_v our_o heart_n and_o life_n than_o the_o put_v out_o of_o our_o mind_n all_o thought_n of_o our_o death_n and_o of_o the_o evil_a day_n when_o david_n describe_v the_o most_o wicked_a man_n of_o who_o he_o say_v god_n be_v not_o in_o all_o his_o thought_n he_o be_v a_o very_a atheist_n towards_o god_n his_o way_n be_v always_o grievous_a he_o be_v a_o oppressor_n and_o tyrant_n towards_o man_n psal._n 10.4_o 5._o he_o give_v this_o for_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o verse_n 5_o 6._o thy_o judgement_n be_v far_o above_o out_o of_o his_o sight_n he_o never_o discern_v nor_o think_v of_o any_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o be_v approach_v he_o have_v say_v in_o his_o heart_n i_o shall_v never_o be_v move_v i_o shall_v never_o be_v in_o adversity_n and_o thus_o speak_v the_o prophet_n also_o amos_n 6.3_o the_o put_v far_o away_o the_o evil_a day_n be_v the_o cause_n why_o they_o approach_v to_o the_o seat_n of_o violence_n the_o three_o and_o last_o benefit_n we_o may_v receive_v by_o think_v oft_o of_o our_o change_n of_o the_o evil_a day_n and_o of_o the_o troublesome_a time_n we_o have_v cause_n to_o look_v for_o be_v this_o that_o it_o will_v make_v our_o affliction_n and_o trial_n yea_o death_n itself_o less_o bitter_a and_o terrible_a unto_o we_o it_o will_v make_v we_o better_a able_a with_o comfort_n and_o patience_n to_o bear_v they_o when_o they_o shall_v come_v for_o the_o suddenness_n and_o unexpectedness_n of_o any_o judgement_n make_v it_o far_o more_o grievous_a and_o intolerable_a then_o otherwise_o it_o will_v be_v and_o so_o it_o be_v oft_o threaten_v as_o a_o circumstance_n that_o do_v great_o aggravate_v god_n judgement_n upon_o wicked_a man_n pro._n 6.15_o his_o calamity_n shall_v come_v sudden_o sudden_o shall_v he_o be_v break_v without_o remedy_n and_o 1_o thess._n 5.3_o when_o they_o shall_v say_v peace_n and_o safety_n then_o sudden_a destruction_n come_v upon_o they_o so_o our_o saviour_n have_v foretell_v the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o the_o temple_n charge_v his_o disciple_n of_o who_o he_o do_v foresee_v some_o shall_v live_v unto_o that_o day_n to_o take_v heed_n luk._n 21.34_o that_o that_o day_n come_v not_o upon_o they_o at_o unaware_o therefore_o also_o he_o so_o oft_o foretell_v they_o of_o his_o death_n and_o of_o the_o heavy_a time_n and_o trouble_n they_o be_v to_o look_v for_o matth._n 24.25_o behold_v say_v he_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o before_o and_o why_o do_v he_o foretell_v they_o sure_o that_o this_o know_v and_o think_v of_o they_o before_o may_v make_v they_o the_o less_o grievous_a unto_o they_o when_o they_o shall_v come_v john_n 16.4_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o tell_v you_o that_o when_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v you_o may_v remember_v that_o i_o tell_v you_o of_o they_o and_o sure_o this_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v as_o a_o great_a mercy_n of_o god_n applic._n that_o he_o strike_v we_o not_o sudden_o with_o our_o deadly_a stroke_n but_o have_v give_v we_o many_o warning_n he_o have_v threaten_v we_o oft_o and_o shake_v his_o rod_n at_o we_o fearful_o he_o have_v long_o give_v we_o and_o do_v daily_o give_v we_o so_o palpable_a sign_n of_o a_o desolation_n approach_v as_o every_o natural_a man_n that_o have_v any_o brain_n in_o his_o head_n can_v take_v notice_n of_o it_o himself_o and_o speak_v of_o it_o to_o other_o but_o what_o be_v the_o use_n that_o we_o shall_v make_v of_o all_o these_o warning_n and_o of_o all_o these_o sign_n that_o god_n give_v we_o sure_o we_o shall_v so_o think_v of_o the_o evil_a time_n that_o be_v at_o hand_n that_o we_o may_v prepare_v ourselves_o for_o they_o and_o fit_v ourselves_o to_o bear_v they_o with_o patience_n and_o comfort_v when_o they_o shall_v come_v according_a to_o the_o speech_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n pro._n 22.3_o a_o prudent_a man_n forsee_v the_o evil_a and_o hide_v himself_o provide_v for_o his_o own_o safety_n and_o comfort_n in_o the_o evil_a day_n and_o how_o that_o may_v be_v do_v you_o shall_v hear_v in_o those_o seven_o direction_n that_o follow_v second_o he_o that_o will_v bear_v great_a trouble_n and_o affliction_n patient_o and_o comfortable_o when_o they_o shall_v come_v must_v before_o hand_n labour_n to_o wean_v his_o heart_n from_o the_o love_n of_o all_o earthly_a thing_n and_o inure_v himself_o to_o bear_v patient_o those_o ordinary_a loss_n and_o cross_n that_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o in_o they_o if_o any_o man_n will_v come_v after_o i_o say_v our_o bless_a saviour_n luk._n 9.23_o and_o the_o text_n say_v he_o say_v these_o word_n to_o they_o all_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n daily_o and_o follow_v i_o the_o deny_v of_o ourselves_o and_o take_v up_o of_o our_o daily_a cross_n will_v make_v we_o fit_a to_o follow_v christ_n through_o thick_a and_o thin_a and_o even_o to_o endure_v the_o fiery_a trial_n for_o his_o sake_n it_o be_v good_a for_o a_o man_n say_v the_o church_n in_o their_o miserable_a captivity_n lam._n 3.27_o that_o he_o bear_v the_o yoke_n in_o his_o youth_n that_o he_o have_v be_v accustom_v before_o great_a trouble_n come_v to_o bear_v small_a cross_n to_o cross_v and_o deny_v himself_o in_o his_o earthly_a contentment_n the_o holy_a apostle_n profess_v of_o himself_o 1_o cor._n 15.31_o that_o he_o do_v die_v daily_o by_o the_o daily_a cross_n he_o do_v endure_v and_o willing_a forsake_v of_o the_o comfort_n of_o this_o life_n he_o do_v learn_v to_o die_v and_o to_o part_v with_o they_o all_o willing_o and_o he_o counsel_v timothy_n 2_o tim._n 2.3_o to_o endure_v hardness_n as_o a_o good_a soldier_n of_o jesus_n christ._n nothing_o make_v we_o so_o unwilling_a to_o die_v or_o to_o suffer_v any_o thing_n for_o christ_n sake_n or_o to_o endure_v any_o great_a affliction_n as_o the_o overmuch_a love_n that_o we_o do_v bear_v unto_o these_o earthly_a thing_n therefore_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o our_o bless_a saviour_n when_o he_o will_v prepare_v his_o disciple_n for_o those_o heavy_a time_n that_o shall_v come_v upon_o they_o after_o his_o death_n do_v beat_v upon_o no_o point_n so_o much_o in_o all_o his_o sermon_n as_o this_o mat._n 10.37_o he_o that_o love_v father_n or_o mother_n more_o than_o i_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o and_o he_o that_o love_v son_n or_o daughter_n more_o than_o i_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o and_o luk._n 14.26_o if_o any_o man_n come_v to_o i_o and_o hate_v not_o his_o father_n and_o mother_n and_o wife_n &_o child_n and_o brethren_n and_o sister_n yea_o and_o his_o own_o life_n also_o that_o be_v love_v they_o not_o less_o than_o i_o or_o carry_v himself_o not_o towards_o they_o when_o they_o prove_v draw-back_n from_o i_o as_o he_o will_v do_v towards_o the_o thing_n he_o most_o hate_v he_o can_v be_v my_o disciple_n true_a it_o be_v we_o can_v be_v without_o these_o earthly_a comfort_n your_o heavenly_a father_n know_v that_o you_o have_v need_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n say_v our_o saviour_n mat._n 6.32_o the_o lord_n allow_v we_o the_o use_n yea_o the_o liberal_a use_n of_o they_o 1_o tim._n 6.17_o he_o give_v we_o rich_o all_o thing_n to_o enjoy_v but_o the_o love_n of_o these_o thing_n be_v a_o deadly_a enemy_n to_o grace_n special_o to_o this_o grace_n of_o christian_a patience_n the_o love_n of_o money_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o tim._n 6.10_o and_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o love_n of_o money_n may_v be_v say_v likewise_o of_o the_o love_n of_o any_o worldly_a thing_n as_o appear_v by_o compare_v with_o this_o place_n that_o of_o 1_o john_n 2.15_o the_o love_n of_o peace_n of_o ease_n of_o pleasure_n of_o credit_n of_o friend_n of_o good_a cheer_n and_o good_a clothes_n be_v the_o root_n of_o all_o evil_a which_o while_o some_o have_v covet_v after_o they_o have_v err_v from_o the_o faith_n fall_v quite_o from_o religion_n rather_o than_o they_o will_v suffer_v any_o thing_n for_o it_o applic._n if_o we_o will_v therefore_o make_v ourselves_o fit_a either_o to_o die_v willing_o or_o to_o endure_v persecution_n and_o trouble_v patient_o and_o comfortable_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n of_o
conscience_n to_o confess_v all_o their_o sin_n to_o the_o priest_n and_o they_o have_v direction_n give_v they_o to_o help_v they_o in_o call_v to_o mind_n their_o sin_n i_o know_v god_n require_v no_o such_o thing_n at_o their_o hand_n and_o it_o be_v but_o a_o counterfeit_a humiliation_n and_o repentance_n that_o be_v wrought_v that_o way_n but_o sure_o they_o do_v not_o so_o much_o offend_v in_o superstition_n then_o as_o we_o do_v in_o profaneness_n now_o no_o man_n hold_v himself_o bind_v now_o to_o call_v his_o sin_n to_o remembrance_n and_o make_v a_o particular_a confession_n of_o they_o unto_o the_o lord_n before_o he_o go_v to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o we_o find_v no_o more_o comfort_n in_o it_o i_o therefore_o hearty_o pray_v every_o one_o of_o you_o that_o desire_v to_o receive_v christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o comfort_n of_o your_o soul_n that_o you_o will_v hearken_v unto_o and_o make_v conscience_n to_o do_v as_o the_o apostle_n charge_v you_o to_o do_v 1_o cor._n 11.28_o let_v every_o man_n examine_v himself_o and_o verse_n 31._o if_o we_o will_v judge_v ourselves_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o the_o lord_n if_o you_o will_v receive_v comfort_n by_o it_o you_o must_v examine_v yourselves_o and_o find_v out_o your_o special_a sin_n you_o must_v judge_v and_o afflict_v your_o own_o soul_n for_o your_o sin_n if_o you_o will_v not_o do_v this_o you_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o receive_v comfort_n by_o the_o sacrament_n as_o you_o shall_v become_v the_o worse_a by_o it_o god_n will_v judge_v and_o afflict_v you_o for_o come_v unworthy_o unto_o it_o lecture_n liii_o on_o psal._n 51.4_o april_n 3._o 1627._o fiftly_o he_o that_o will_v attain_v unto_o this_o grace_n of_o true_a patience_n and_o be_v able_a to_o clear_v the_o lord_n as_o david_n do_v here_o when_o he_o shall_v judge_v he_o to_o bear_v patient_o and_o comfortable_o whatsoever_o trouble_n and_o affliction_n god_n shall_v be_v please_v to_o exercise_v he_o withal_o must_v before_o that_o time_n come_v get_v a_o true_a and_o a_o lively_a faith_n even_o a_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o his_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ._n this_o power_n that_o there_o be_v in_o faith_n to_o make_v a_o man_n able_a patient_o and_o comfortable_o to_o bear_v affliction_n of_o what_o kind_n or_o degree_n soever_o they_o be_v be_v plentiful_o teach_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o confirm_v to_o we_o by_o the_o experience_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n the_o holy_a apostle_n speak_v of_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a armour_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o whereby_o the_o foot_n and_o leg_n be_v to_o be_v defend_v he_o call_v it_o ephes._n 6.15_o the_o preparation_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o when_o once_o we_o be_v assure_v of_o our_o peace_n and_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n which_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o gospel_n then_o be_v we_o prepare_v to_o follow_v christ_n through_o thick_a and_o thin_a through_o the_o most_o hard_a and_o stony_a the_o most_o sharp_a and_o thorny_a way_n of_o any_o persecution_n and_o trouble_v whatsoever_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n say_v the_o same_o apostle_n rom._n 5.1_o we_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n and_o what_o follow_v upon_o that_o why_o when_o once_o we_o be_v justify_v from_o our_o sin_n and_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n than_o verse_n 3_o we_o glory_v in_o tribulation_n and_o so_o do_v the_o apostle_n make_v this_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o strange_a patience_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o maccabee_n when_o they_o be_v torture_v and_o be_v try_v with_o mock_n and_o scourge_n with_o bond_n and_o imprisonment_n when_o they_o be_v some_o stone_v and_o some_o saw_v in_o sunder_o what_o make_v they_o able_a to_o endure_v such_o thing_n and_o not_o to_o accept_v of_o deliverance_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v unto_o they_o if_o they_o will_v have_v yield_v a_o little_a sure_o their_o faith_n as_o you_o shall_v find_v heb._n 11._o 33.37_o by_o faith_n they_o attain_v to_o this_o strength_n to_o this_o measure_n of_o patience_n i_o show_v you_o in_o the_o handle_n of_o the_o doctrine_n that_o god_n servant_n and_o martyr_n can_v not_o be_v overcome_v nor_o make_v to_o yield_v unto_o adversary_n when_o they_o endure_v such_o torment_n as_o be_v impossible_a for_o flesh_n and_o blood_n to_o endure_v but_o become_v conqueror_n yea_o more_o than_o conqueror_n in_o they_o all_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v rome_n 8.37_o but_o will_v you_o know_v how_o they_o come_v to_o this_o valour_n to_o this_o admirable_a strength_n to_o hear_v and_o to_o overcome_v such_o intolerable_a torment_n sure_o it_o be_v their_o faith_n whereby_o they_o be_v assure_v of_o their_o peace_n with_o god_n that_o make_v they_o able_a to_o do_v it_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o in_o the_o very_a next_o word_n for_o i_o be_o persuade_v say_v he_o verse_n 38_o 39_o that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n nor_o angel_n nor_o principality_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n he_o that_o be_v so_o confident_o persuade_v of_o god_n unchangeable_a and_o everlasting_a love_n towards_o he_o in_o christ_n no_o marvel_n though_o no_o affliction_n be_v ever_o able_a to_o overcome_v he_o though_o he_o become_v more_o than_o a_o conqueror_n in_o the_o great_a tribulation_n that_o can_v befall_v he_o so_o when_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o holy_a martyr_n rev._n 12.11_o that_o they_o overcome_v the_o great_a dragon_n in_o all_o the_o bloody_a and_o extreme_a persecution_n that_o he_o raise_v up_o against_o they_o under_o the_o cruel_a emperor_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n the_o mean_n be_v also_o mention_v whereby_o they_o get_v such_o strength_n and_o patience_n to_o endure_v and_o overcome_v he_o they_o overcome_v he_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n the_o faith_n they_o have_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v sprinkle_v upon_o their_o heart_n make_v they_o able_a to_o bear_v and_o overcome_v so_o bitter_a torment_n as_o they_o do_v endure_v and_o so_o will_v it_o certain_o do_v any_o of_o we_o in_o the_o like_a case_n this_o be_v the_o victory_n that_o overcom_v the_o world_n even_o our_o faith_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o john_n 5.4_o and_o this_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v find_v psal._n 91.9_o because_o thou_o have_v make_v the_o lord_n which_o be_v my_o refuge_n thy_o habitation_n mark_v what_o follow_v ver_fw-la 13._o thou_o shall_v tread_v upon_o the_o lion_n and_o adder_n the_o young_a lion_n and_o the_o dragon_n thou_o shall_v trample_v under_o thy_o foot_n you_o see_v what_o testimony_n the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v to_o this_o five_o mean_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o faith_n will_v work_v patience_n and_o make_v a_o man_n able_a to_o endure_v any_o thing_n consider_v also_o three_o effect_n of_o it_o and_o you_o will_v easy_o discern_v it_o must_v needs_o ●ee_o so_o for_o first_o faith_n work_v in_o the_o heart_n that_o have_v it_o a_o light_a esteem_n of_o all_o worldly_a thing_n and_o he_o that_o be_v bring_v to_o that_o once_o will_v be_v easy_o able_a to_o suffer_v yea_o even_o to_o die_v it_o be_v the_o overmuch_o love_v we_o bear_v to_o these_o earthly_a thing_n that_o make_v we_o so_o unwilling_a to_o die_v or_o to_o endure_v any_o trouble_n by_o christ_n say_v the_o apostle_n galat._n 6.14_o the_o world_n be_v crucify_v unto_o i_o they_o in_o who_o heart_n christ_n dwell_v by_o faith_n the_o world_n become_v base_a and_o contemptible_a unto_o they_o they_o feel_v the_o love_n and_o high_a esteem_n of_o worldly_a thing_n decay_v in_o they_o second_o faith_n certify_v the_o heart_n that_o have_v it_o of_o god_n love_n and_o he_o that_o be_v sure_a of_o that_o will_v be_v able_a to_o endure_v any_o thing_n with_o patience_n from_o god_n hand_n thus_o do_v job_n stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o his_o impatient_a and_o foolish_a wife_n job._n 2.10_o what_o say_v he_o shall_v we_o receive_v good_a at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v we_o not_o receive_v evil_a shall_v we_o that_o have_v enjoy_v so_o many_o month_n and_o year_n of_o great_a prosperity_n and_o comfort_n think_v much_o to_o endure_v affliction_n and_o trouble_v for_o a_o few_o day_n we_o that_o have_v receive_v so_o many_o demonstration_n of_o god_n fatherly_a and_o unchangeable_a love_n shall_v we_o think_v much_o to_o receive_v correction_n from_o he_o thus_o do_v our_o bless_a saviour_n confirm_v his_o own_o heart_n in_o patience_n against_o those_o intolerable_a suffering_n he_o be_v to_o
endure_v for_o we_o john_n 18.11_o the_o cup_n which_o my_o father_n have_v give_v i_o shall_v i_o not_o drink_v when_o we_o be_v once_o assure_v god_n be_v our_o father_n we_o shall_v be_v make_v well_o content_a to_o take_v the_o bitter_a potion_n from_o his_o hand_n and_o thus_o do_v the_o holy_a apostle_n reason_n rom._n 5._o for_o when_o he_o have_v say_v that_o be_v justify_v by_o say_v we_o be_v able_a even_o to_o glory_n in_o tribulation_n he_o give_v this_o for_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o verse_n 5._o because_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v shed_v abroad_o in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v when_o once_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v shed_v abroad_o in_o our_o heart_n and_o soak_v into_o they_o so_o as_o we_o have_v a_o comfortable_a sense_n and_o feel_n of_o it_o how_o can_v we_o choose_v but_o bear_v tribulation_n patient_o and_o even_o glory_n in_o they_o three_o and_o last_o faith_n make_v the_o heart_n that_o have_v it_o undoubted_o certain_a of_o those_o promise_v god_n have_v make_v to_o his_o people_n in_o their_o affliction_n of_o which_o we_o hear_v when_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o motive_n unto_o this_o duty_n as_o namely_o 1._o that_o they_o shall_v tend_v to_o our_o good_a in_o the_o end_n heb._n 12.10_o he_o correct_v we_o for_o our_o profit_n and_o 2._o that_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o will_v not_o forsake_v we_o in_o they_o but_o assist_v and_o support_v we_o psal._n 91.15_o i_o will_v be_v with_o he_o in_o trouble_n i_o will_v deliver_v and_o honour_v he_o these_o promise_n i_o say_v faith_n make_v the_o heart_n certain_a of_o heb._n 11.1_o faith_n be_v the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n not_o see_v and_o he_o that_o be_v sure_a of_o these_o promise_n how_o can_v he_o choose_v but_o bear_v affliction_n patient_o and_o say_v with_o david_n psal._n 56.4_o in_o god_n will_v i_o praise_v his_o word_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o will_v praise_v god_n for_o his_o word_n and_o promise_n and_o what_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o verse_n in_o god_n have_v i_o put_v my_o trust_n i_o will_v not_o fear_v what_o flesh_n can_v do_v unto_o i_o let_v i_o apply_v this_o brief_o 1._o by_o way_n of_o exhortation_n 2._o by_o way_n of_o comfort_n 1_o first_o see_v faith_n will_v stand_v we_o in_o that_o stead_n in_o the_o evil_a day_n and_o yield_v we_o that_o strength_n and_o comfort_n in_o all_o affliction_n it_o stand_v we_o upon_o to_o get_v it_o in_o time_n and_o to_o look_v well_o to_o ourselves_o that_o that_o faith_n we_o think_v we_o have_v be_v such_o as_o will_v abide_v the_o trial_n in_o the_o furnace_n of_o affliction_n such_o as_o will_v not_o deceive_v we_o in_o the_o evil_a day_n it_o be_v the_o exhortation_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 13.5_o examine_v yourselves_o whether_o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n prove_v your_o own_o self_n for_o alas_o if_o we_o have_v no_o true_a faith_n no_o sound_a assurance_n that_o we_o be_v in_o christ_n when_o death_n shall_v come_v when_o the_o troublesome_a time_n of_o persecution_n when_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o bloody_a enemy_n shall_v come_v what_o shall_v we_o do_v how_o shall_v we_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v it_o what_o patience_n what_o comfort_n can_v we_o look_v to_o have_v in_o that_o day_n 1._o extreme_a affliction_n be_v wont_a to_o awaken_v the_o conscience_n and_o set_v it_o on_o work_n to_o bring_v a_o man_n sin_n to_o his_o remembrance_n that_o he_o never_o think_v of_o nor_o be_v trouble_v with_o before_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v from_o the_o example_n of_o josephs_n brethren_n gen._n 42.21_o and_o what_o will_v quiet_v the_o conscience_n when_o it_o fall_v on_o brawl_v and_o exclaim_v upon_o a_o man_n certain_o nothing_o but_o faith_n that_o sprinkle_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n upon_o it_o as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o heb_n 9.13_o 14._o 2._o in_o the_o evil_a day_n satan_n will_v be_v apt_a to_o cast_v into_o man_n soul_n his_o dart_n of_o desperation_n his_o fiery_a dart_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v they_o and_o what_o be_v it_o that_o will_v quench_v these_o dart_n surely_n nothing_o but_o faith_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v ephe._n 6.16_o above_o all_o take_v the_o shield_n of_o faith_n whereby_o you_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o quench_v all_o the_o fiery_a dart_n of_o that_o wicked_a one_o let_v we_o therefore_o look_v well_o to_o our_o faith_n since_o our_o patience_n and_o comfort_n in_o affliction_n depend_v so_o much_o upon_o it_o two_o note_n i_o will_v give_v you_o to_o try_v it_o by_o first_o by_o the_o mean_n and_o manner_n how_o it_o be_v wrought_v in_o thou_o how_o come_v thou_o by_o it_o do_v the_o lord_n work_v it_o in_o thou_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n do_v thy_o say_v come_v by_o hear_v rom._n 10.17_o can_v thou_o say_v that_o before_o ever_o christ_n come_v into_o thy_o heart_n john_n baptist_n come_v before_o he_o to_o prepare_v his_o way_n mark_n 1.2_o that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o law_n that_o effectual_o discover_v thy_o sin_n and_o miserable_a condition_n unto_o thou_o be_v thy_o schoolmaster_n to_o bring_v thou_o to_o christ_n gal._n 3.24_o that_o before_o the_o lord_n speak_v peace_n to_o thy_o heart_n by_o the_o still_o soft_a and_o sweet_a voice_n of_o his_o gospel_n he_o prepare_v thy_o heart_n to_o receive_v it_o as_o he_o do_v eliahs_n 1_o kin._n 19.11_o 12._o by_o great_a terror_n this_o be_v certain_o the_o ordinary_a way_n whereby_o god_n bring_v his_o elect_a to_o faith_n if_o thou_o come_v not_o to_o thy_o faith_n this_o way_n but_o in_o some_o other_o more_o extraordinary_a manner_n as_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o it_o be_v possible_a thou_o may_v for_o who_o can_v limit_v the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n psal._n 78_o 41._o or_o tie_v he_o to_o certain_a rule_n thou_o have_v the_o more_o cause_n to_o suspect_v it_o and_o to_o try_v it_o the_o more_o diligent_o by_o the_o second_o note_n and_o that_o be_v this_o second_o try_v it_o by_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o in_o thyself_o how_o have_v thy_o faith_n thou_o say_v thou_o have_v in_o jesus_n christ_n wrought_v with_o thou_o what_o change_n have_v it_o make_v in_o thou_o we_o have_v all_o of_o we_o very_o late_o renew_v our_o faith_n and_o make_v solemn_a profession_n of_o it_o and_o confirm_v it_o in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n in_o it_o we_o have_v by_o faith_n feed_v upon_o the_o lord_n jesus_n or_o else_o that_o bread_n we_o do_v eat_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n will_v be_v as_o gravel_n between_o our_o tooth_n one_o day_n as_o solomon_n speak_v in_o another_o case_n prov._n 20.17_o that_o cup_n we_o drink_v of_o there_o will_v be_v as_o a_o cup_n of_o deadly_a poison_n unto_o we_o as_o therefore_o i_o exhort_v you_o the_o last_o day_n to_o examine_v yourselves_o well_o before_o you_o go_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n so_o do_v i_o now_o exhort_v you_o to_o a_o after_o examination_n of_o yourselves_o have_v thou_o indeed_o by_o faith_n feed_v upon_o the_o lord_n jesus_n so_o late_o then_o certain_o 1._o thou_o shall_v find_v some_o abatement_n of_o the_o strength_n of_o thy_o corruption_n and_o lust_n where_o christ_n be_v by_o faith_n receive_v he_o will_v purify_v the_o heart_n act._n 15.9_o the_o woman_n that_o have_v the_o bloody_a issue_n when_o she_o have_v by_o faith_n touch_v but_o the_o border_n of_o his_o garment_n she_o feel_v such_o virtue_n come_v from_o he_o as_o dry_v up_o &_o staunch_v the_o issue_n of_o blood_n as_o you_o shall_v find_v luke_n 8.44_o and_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o we_o shall_v have_v by_o faith_n not_o only_o touch_v his_o garment_n but_o eat_v and_o drink_v his_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n and_o yet_o feel_v no_o virtue_n at_o all_o come_v from_o he_o to_o dry_v up_o the_o fountain_n of_o our_o corruption_n but_o it_o run_v as_o fresh_a and_o free_o as_o ever_o it_o do_v 2._o if_o thou_o have_v by_o faith_n feed_v upon_o the_o lord_n jesus_n some_o increase_n of_o spiritual_a strength_n to_o resist_v tentation_n and_o to_o walk_v in_o god_n way_n be_v wrought_v in_o thy_o foul_a by_o it_o do_v thou_o ever_o with_o a_o good_a appetite_n eat_v thy_o corporal_a food_n but_o thou_o receive_v some_o refresh_v and_o strength_n by_o it_o arise_v and_o eat_v say_v god_n to_o eliah_n the_o second_o time_n 1_o kin._n 19.7_o 8._o for_o thou_o have_v a_o great_a journey_n to_o go_v and_o he_o arise_v and_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v and_o go_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o that_o meat_n forty_o day_n and_o forty_o night_n and_o be_v there_o not_o as_o much_o virtue_n in_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v feed_v upon_o by_o faith_n to_o give_v and_o increase_v
strength_n in_o the_o soul_n as_o ever_o there_o be_v in_o any_o corporal_a food_n to_o strengthen_v the_o body_n my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o say_v our_o saviour_n joh._n 6.55_o 57_o and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v indeed_o he_o that_o eat_v i_o even_o be_v shall_v live_v by_o i_o will_v thou_o say_v then_o thou_o have_v feed_v on_o christ_n that_o have_v receive_v no_o strength_n by_o this_o food_n to_o resist_v tentation_n that_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o go_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o that_o meat_n forty_o day_n nor_o forty_o hour_n no_o no_o trust_v not_o to_o such_o a_o faith_n as_o this_o this_o will_v never_o abide_v the_o furnace_n of_o affliction_n nor_o bear_v thou_o up_o in_o it_o second_o let_v i_o apply_v this_o to_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o weak_a soul_n among_o you_o even_o to_o thy_o comfort_n that_o because_o of_o the_o weakness_n of_o thy_o faith_n tremble_v when_o thou_o hear_v of_o the_o troublesome_a time_n we_o be_v to_o look_v for_o tremble_v when_o thou_o think_v of_o death_n o_o say_v thou_o i_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o endure_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n yet_o have_v thou_o truth_n of_o faith_n in_o thou_o though_o in_o great_a weakness_n for_o 1._o thou_o mourn_v unfeigned_o for_o the_o weakness_n of_o thy_o faith_n and_o desire_v to_o believe_v all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o neglecte_v no_o mean_n whereby_o thy_o faith_n may_v grow_v like_v to_o that_o poor_a man_n mar._n 9.24_o 2._o this_o weak_a faith_n of_o thou_o have_v draw_v virtue_n from_o christ_n whereby_o the_o issue_n and_o fountain_n of_o thy_o corruption_n begin_v to_o be_v dry_v up_o and_o be_v not_o so_o strong_a as_o once_o it_o be_v and_o whereby_o also_o thou_o have_v receive_v some_o strength_n even_o to_o resist_v tentation_n as_o joseph_n do_v gen._n 39.9_o be_v thou_o of_o good_a comfort_n certain_o if_o thou_o have_v the_o least_o measure_n and_o degree_n of_o true_a faith_n in_o thou_o thou_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o bear_v trouble_n when_o they_o come_v much_o more_o patient_o and_o comfortable_o than_o thou_o think_v for_o be_v thou_o assure_v 1._o that_o christ_n will_v not_o so_o overcharge_v thou_o with_o trial_n and_o affliction_n as_o to_o smother_v and_o put_v out_o those_o weak_a beginning_n of_o grace_n that_o he_o have_v wrought_v in_o thou_o but_o will_v tender_v &_o nourish_v they_o mat._n 12.20_o 2._o the_o strength_n whereby_o any_o of_o god_n people_n be_v enable_v to_o stand_v in_o the_o day_n of_o trial_n be_v not_o their_o own_o but_o the_o lord_n only_o be_v strong_a in_o the_o lord_n &_o in_o the_o power_n of_o his_o might_n ephe._n 6.10_o in_o the_o deep_a sense_n of_o thy_o own_o weakness_n learn_v to_o fly_v out_o of_o thyself_o &_o to_o rely_v whole_o upon_o the_o lord_n &_o on_o the_o power_n of_o his_o might_n know_v his_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a for_o thou_o 2_o cor._n 12.9_o yea_o thou_o shall_v be_v hold_v up_o for_o god_n be_v able_a to_o make_v thou_o to_o stand_v rom._n 14.3.3_o remember_v the_o promise_n god_n have_v make_v unto_o his_o people_n in_o this_o case_n ps._n 29.11_o the_o lord_n will_v give_v strength_n to_o his_o people_n the_o lord_n delight_v to_o show_v his_o might_n most_o in_o they_o that_o be_v weak_a in_o their_o own_o sense_n 2_o cor._n 12.9_o god_n power_n be_v make_v perfect_a in_o weakness_n so_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o holy_a martyr_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o maccabee_n heb._n 11.34_o that_o by_o faith_n out_o of_o weakness_n they_o be_v make_v strong_a and_o that_o make_v the_o apostle_n say_v from_o his_o own_o experience_n 2_o cor._n 12.10_o when_o i_o be_o weak_a then_o be_o i_o strong_a and_o if_o peter_n have_v be_v weak_a in_o his_o own_o sense_n beforehand_o he_o have_v have_v more_o strength_n in_o the_o day_n of_o trial_n than_o he_o have_v mar._n 14.31_o lecture_n liiii_o on_o psalm_n 51.4_o april_n 17._o 1627._o the_o six_o mean_n to_o attain_v unto_o true_a patience_n be_v hope_n he_o that_o will_v with_o patience_n &_o comfort_n stand_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n must_v get_v assurance_n beforehand_o that_o when_o he_o die_v he_o shall_v go_v to_o heaven_n he_o that_o know_v not_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o this_o soul_n when_o he_o die_v whether_o it_o shall_v go_v to_o heaven_n or_o to_o hell_n can_v never_o endure_v any_o great_a affliction_n and_o trouble_n with_o patience_n and_o comfort_n such_o man_n must_v needs_o be_v through_o fear_n of_o death_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v hebr._n 2.15_o all_o their_o life_n time_n but_o special_o when_o any_o great_a trouble_n shall_v come_v upon_o they_o subject_a unto_o bondage_n &_o miserable_a slavery_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o that_o know_v death_n be_v the_o worst_a that_o can_v befall_v he_o in_o the_o most_o troublesome_a time_n and_o that_o death_n will_v make_v he_o a_o happy_a man_n he_o that_o can_v say_v to_o his_o soul_n as_o pro._n 23.18_o sure_o there_o be_v a_o end_n and_o thy_o expectation_n shall_v not_o be_v cut_v off_o that_o man_n must_v needs_o be_v patient_a and_o comfortable_a in_o any_o affliction_n that_o can_v befall_v he_o we_o rejoice_v even_o in_o tribulation_n say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 5.23_o in_o hope_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o 12.12_o rejoice_v in_o hope_n patient_a in_o tribulation_n what_o make_v god_n people_n not_o only_o so_o patient_a but_o even_o so_o comfortable_a and_o full_a of_o joy_n in_o all_o tribulation_n sure_o the_o hope_n they_o have_v of_o the_o glory_n that_o be_v prepare_v for_o they_o they_o know_v the_o end_n will_v pay_v for_o all_o this_o make_v moses_n to_o choose_v rather_o to_o suffer_v affliction_n with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n then_o to_o enjoy_v the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n for_o a_o season_n and_o to_o esteem_v the_o reproach_n of_o christ_n great_a riches_n than_o the_o treasure_n of_o egypt_n for_o say_v the_o apostle_n hebrew_n 11.25_o 26._o he_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o recompense_n of_o the_o reward_n heaven_n be_v ever_o in_o his_o eye_n and_o that_o make_v he_o to_o endure_v the_o reproach_n of_o christ_n so_o comfortable_o and_o of_o the_o faithful_a hebrew_n he_o say_v 10.34_o that_o they_o take_v joyful_o the_o spoil_n of_o their_o good_n know_v in_o themselves_o inward_o assure_o feel_o that_o they_o have_v in_o heaven_n a_o better_a and_o a_o endure_a substance_n in_o which_o respect_n this_o hope_n of_o heaven_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o helmet_n ephe._n 6.17_o that_o defend_v the_o head_n and_o keep_v we_o from_o the_o most_o capital_a tentation_n and_o danger_n heb._n 6.19_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o the_o anchor_n of_o the_o soul_n both_o sure_a and_o steadfast_a it_o will_v stay_v the_o soul_n and_o make_v it_o steady_a against_o all_o wave_n and_o tempest_n and_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n verse_n 18._o he_o compare_v it_o to_o a_o place_n of_o refuge_n we_o have_v strong_a consolation_n say_v he_o who_o have_v flee_v for_o refuge_n to_o take_v hold_n upon_o the_o hope_n that_o be_v set_v before_o we_o if_o a_o poor_a man_n that_o have_v all_o his_o wealth_n about_o he_o shall_v fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o thief_n and_o be_v rob_v and_o rifle_v by_o they_o he_o must_v needs_o cry_v and_o take_v on_o pitiful_o for_o alas_o he_o be_v clean_o undo_v he_o have_v nothing_o leave_v at_o home_n to_o succour_v he_o and_o his_o family_n withal_o but_o a_o rich_a man_n that_o have_v store_n of_o money_n at_o home_n safe_a lock_v up_o in_o his_o chest_n unless_o he_o be_v a_o base_a and_o miserable_a wretch_n will_v never_o complain_v much_o nor_o be_v disquiet_v when_o he_o have_v twenty_o or_o forty_o shilling_n take_v from_o he_o for_o worldling_n to_o rage_n and_o take_v on_o when_o they_o must_v loose_v their_o life_n or_o their_o peace_n or_o their_o wealth_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n for_o alas_o when_o these_o thing_n be_v go_v they_o have_v nothing_o leave_v they_o be_v quite_o undo_v but_o a_o christian_n that_o know_v and_o consider_v what_o he_o be_v bear_v unto_o and_o what_o he_o shall_v enjoy_v when_o he_o come_v home_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o die_v he_o can_v do_v so_o o_o then_o to_o apply_v this_o in_o a_o word_n as_o we_o desire_v to_o endure_v with_o patience_n and_o comfort_n the_o troublesome_a time_n that_o be_v at_o hand_n let_v we_o in_o time_n make_v this_o sure_a to_o ourselves_o that_o when_o we_o shall_v die_v we_o shall_v go_v to_o heaven_n i_o know_v most_o man_n will_v say_v they_o hope_v well_o to_o do_v so_o but_o it_o stand_v we_o upon_o to_o examine_v our_o hope_n whether_o it_o be_v such_o as_o will_v abide_v the_o trial_n when_o we_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o furnace_n of_o affliction_n the_o hypocrite_n hope_n
drunkard_n nor_o railer_n nor_o extortioner_n shall_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n they_o that_o will_v not_o or_o can_v forsake_v their_o sin_n how_o can_v they_o hope_v to_o go_v to_o heaven_n they_o that_o spend_v all_o their_o time_n in_o provide_v for_o this_o life_n but_o make_v no_o provision_n for_o heaven_n have_v no_o care_n to_o do_v that_o that_o may_v yield_v they_o profit_n and_o increase_v when_o they_o shall_v come_v thither_o what_o hope_n can_v they_o have_v to_o go_v to_o heaven_n when_o they_o die_v be_v not_o deceive_v say_v the_o apostle_n gal._n 6.7_o 8._o god_n be_v not_o mock_v for_o whatsoever_o a_o man_n sow_v that_o shall_v be_v also_o reap_v he_o that_o sow_v to_o the_o flesh_n shall_v of_o the_o flesh_n reap_v corruption_n but_o he_o that_o sow_v to_o the_o spirit_n shall_v of_o the_o spirit_n reap_v everlasting_a life_n seaventh_o he_o that_o will_v with_o patience_n and_o comfort_n bear_v trouble_n and_o affliction_n when_o they_o shall_v come_v and_o stand_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n must_v be_v careful_a before_o hand_n to_o lead_v a_o godly_a life_n and_o to_o get_v a_o good_a conscience_n the_o godly_a man_n that_o make_v conscience_n of_o all_o his_o way_n may_v seem_v to_o get_v no_o good_a by_o it_o at_o all_o but_o to_o be_v rather_o a_o great_a loser_n by_o it_o in_o the_o world_n while_o the_o day_n of_o peace_n and_o plenty_n and_o jollity_n do_v last_o long_o peace_n and_o plenty_n have_v in_o all_o age_n breed_v in_o worldly_a man_n a_o humour_n to_o hate_v and_o scorn_v true_a piety_n you_o have_v shame_v and_o dash_v out_o of_o countenance_n say_v the_o lord_n psal_n 14.6_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o humble_v christian_n because_o the_o lord_n be_v his_o refuge_n and_o esa._n 59.15_o he_o that_o depart_v from_o evil_a and_o dare_v not_o do_v as_o other_o man_n do_v make_v himself_o a_o prey_n every_o body_n will_v be_v apt_a to_o do_v he_o wrong_n but_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o piety_n will_v never_o stand_v a_o man_n in_o more_o stead_n than_o thus_o even_o in_o this_o life_n yes_o yes_o belove_v when_o the_o evil_a day_n shall_v come_v the_o godly_a man_n shall_v find_v his_o labour_n have_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a he_o shall_v certain_o find_v more_o strength_n and_o comfort_n in_o that_o day_n than_o any_o other_o man_n can_v do_v riches_n profit_v not_o in_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n say_v solomon_n pro._n 11.4_o but_o righteousness_n do_v righteousness_n deliver_v from_o death_n unto_o the_o upright_a say_v david_n psal._n 112.4_o there_o arise_v light_n in_o the_o darkness_n comfort_n in_o time_n of_o great_a heaviness_n thy_o light_n shall_v rise_v in_o obscurity_n say_v the_o lord_n esa._n 58.10_o when_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o palpable_a darkness_n in_o all_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n god_n people_n shall_v have_v light_n in_o their_o dwelling_n exod._n 10.22_o 23._o and_o thy_o darkness_n thy_o trouble_n and_o affliction_n shall_v be_v for_o comfort_n and_o joy_n as_o the_o noon_n day_n the_o apostle_n mention_v the_o mean_n whereby_o he_o be_v enable_v to_o bear_v with_o such_o patience_n such_o affliction_n necessity_n distress_n stripe_n and_o imprisonment_n among_o other_o reckon_v this_o 2_o cor._n 6.7_o by_o the_o armour_n of_o righteousness_n on_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o on_o the_o left_a and_o speak_v of_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a armour_n ephes._n 6.14_o he_o call_v this_o the_o breast_n plate_n certain_o the_o testimony_n that_o our_o conscience_n shall_v give_v we_o that_o we_o have_v endeavour_v in_o all_o our_o way_n to_o please_v god_n will_v be_v as_o armour_n of_o proof_n unto_o we_o in_o the_o evil_a day_n it_o will_v be_v so_o to_o we_o that_o be_v minister_n as_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o two_o notable_a example_n the_o first_o be_v jeremies_n jer._n 17.16_o 17_o i_o have_v not_o hasten_v from_o be_v a_o pastor_n to_o follow_v thou_o as_o jonah_n do_v neither_o have_v i_o desire_v the_o woeful_a day_n this_o woeful_a captivity_n that_o thou_o have_v cause_v i_o to_o denounce_v that_o which_o come_v out_o of_o my_o lip_n be_v right_o before_o thou_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o have_v deal_v faithful_o in_o my_o ministry_n and_o what_o follow_v be_v not_o a_o terror_n unto_o i_o thou_o be_v my_o hope_n in_o the_o day_n of_o evil_a god_n will_v not_o be_v a_o terror_n to_o such_o minister_n but_o their_o hope_n and_o comfort_n in_o the_o evil_a day_n the_o other_o example_n be_v paul_n 2_o cor._n 1._o who_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o trouble_v he_o have_v in_o asia_n wherein_o say_v he_o ver_fw-la 8._o we_o be_v press_v out_o of_o measure_n above_o strength_n insomuch_o that_o we_o despair_v even_o of_o life_n tell_v you_o verse_n 12._o what_o it_o be_v that_o yield_v he_o comfort_n in_o that_o great_a distress_n even_o the_o testimony_n of_o his_o conscience_n that_o in_o simplicty_n and_o godly_a sincerity_n not_o in_o fleshly_a wisdom_n as_o the_o flaunt_a corinthian_a preacher_n do_v he_o have_v exercise_v himself_o in_o his_o ministry_n and_o as_o this_o will_v be_v a_o great_a supporter_n to_o we_o that_o be_v minister_n in_o all_o our_o affliction_n so_o will_v it_o certain_o be_v to_o you_o that_o be_v god_n people_n also_o see_v this_o in_o the_o example_n of_o good_a hezekiah_n who_o when_o the_o doleful_a message_n be_v bring_v he_o from_o god_n by_o the_o prophet_n to_o set_v his_o house_n in_o order_n for_o he_o must_v die_v and_o not_o live_v comfort_v himself_o in_o this_o testimony_n of_o his_o conscience_n esa._n 38.3_o remember_v now_o o_o lord_n i_o beseech_v thou_o how_o i_o have_v walk_v before_o thou_o in_o truth_n and_o with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n this_o will_v comfort_v a_o man_n on_o his_o death_n bed_n and_o so_o our_o saviour_n assure_v we_o matth._n 7.24_o 25._o that_o he_o that_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o do_v it_o make_v conscience_n to_o practice_v what_o he_o know_v be_v like_o the_o wise_a man_n that_o build_v his_o house_n upon_o a_o rock_n and_o though_o the_o rain_n fall_v and_o the_o wind_n blow_v and_o the_o flood_n beat_v upon_o he_o that_o be_v the_o most_o sore_a and_o violent_a tentation_n or_o affliction_n come_v that_o can_v come_v yet_o shall_v he_o be_v able_a to_o stand_v and_o abide_v they_o all_o o_o think_v of_o this_o applic._n you_o that_o be_v so_o careless_a of_o your_o practice_n careless_a of_o your_o conscience_n who_o religion_n stand_v only_o in_o hear_v and_o in_o a_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n certain_o when_o the_o evil_a day_n shall_v come_v you_o will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v foolish_a builder_n that_o have_v build_v upon_o the_o sand_n when_o the_o rain_n shall_v fall_v and_o the_o wind_n blow_v and_o the_o flood_n beat_v upon_o you_o when_o great_a trouble_n and_o affliction_n shall_v come_v upon_o you_o you_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o stand_v out_o you_o must_v needs_o fall_v and_o sink_v under_o they_o and_o your_o fall_n will_v be_v great_a as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v there_o matth._n 7.26_o ●7_n the_o eight_o and_o last_o mean_n whereby_o this_o grace_n of_o christian_a patience_n to_o bear_v all_o trouble_n and_o affliction_n comfortable_o may_v be_v obtain_v be_v prayer_n if_o any_o man_n lack_v wisdom_n say_v the_o apostle_n jam._n 1.5_o and_o by_o wisdom_n he_o mean_v patience_n in_o that_o place_n let_v he_o ask_v of_o god_n that_o give_v to_o all_o man_n liberal_o and_o upbraid_v not_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v he_o here_o be_v a_o plain_a promise_n you_o see_v and_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o have_v exhort_v the_o roman_n rom._n 12.12_o to_o be_v patient_a in_o tribulation_n he_o add_v immediate_o continue_v instant_a in_o prayer_n instant_a and_o earnest_a prayer_n and_o continue_v in_o it_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o make_v we_o patient_a in_o tribulation_n so_o speak_v of_o the_o complete_a armour_n whereby_o a_o christian_a may_v be_v make_v able_a to_o bear_v and_o stand_v out_o in_o the_o evil_a day_n he_o name_v this_o as_o a_o principal_a part_n of_o it_o ephes._n 6.18_o pray_v always_o not_o by_o fit_n and_o start_v with_o all_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n according_a as_o our_o own_o and_o the_o church_n various_a necessity_n shall_v require_v in_o the_o spirit_n fervent_o not_o formal_o and_o with_o lip_n labour_v only_o watch_v thereunto_o against_o distraction_n and_o wander_a thought_n with_o all_o perseverance_n hold_v out_o and_o not_o give_v over_o when_o we_o speed_v not_o at_o the_o first_o this_o be_v the_o way_n whereby_o job_n seek_v strength_n to_o bear_v his_o affliction_n job_n 16.20_o my_o friend_n scorn_v i_o but_o my_o eye_n pour_v out_o tear_n unto_o god_n and_o david_n when_o many_o of_o his_o mortal_a enemy_n compass_v he_o about_o
must_v careful_a to_o give_v good_a example_n unto_o your_o child_n cause_v it_o to_o appear_v unto_o they_o in_o your_o whole_a conversation_n that_o yourselves_o do_v unfeigned_o fear_v god_n and_o love_v good_a thing_n see_v three_o notable_a precedent_n and_o example_n of_o this_o care_n 1._o in_o abraham_n of_o who_o god_n give_v this_o testimony_n gene._n 18.19_o that_o he_o know_v he_o that_o he_o will_v command_v his_o son_n and_o his_o house_n after_o he_o to_o keep_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o will_v go_v before_o they_o himself_o in_o that_o way_n 2._o in_o joshua_n i_o and_o my_o house_n say_v he_o josh._n 24.15_o will_v serve_v the_o lord_n 3._o in_o david_n ps._n 101.2_o i_o will_v walk_v in_o the_o uprightness_n of_o my_o heart_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o my_o house_n without_o this_o neither_o your_o commandment_n nor_o correction_n nor_o instruction_n will_v do_v they_o any_o good_a therefore_o paul_n require_v this_o even_a of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n man_n of_o such_o rare_a and_o extraordinary_a gift_n to_o see_v they_o give_v good_a example_n as_o well_o as_o teach_v well_o 1_o timothy_n 4.12_o be_v thou_o the_o example_n of_o the_o believer_n and_o titus_n 2_o 7._o in_o all_o thing_n show_v thyself_o a_o pattern_n of_o good_a work_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v you_o shall_v hardly_o do_v good_a upon_o the_o people_n by_o your_o doctrine_n if_o they_o shall_v not_o discern_v in_o your_o life_n that_o yourselves_o do_v believe_v and_o make_v conscience_n of_o that_o which_o you_o teach_v and_o persuade_v they_o unto_o on_o the_o otherside_n there_o be_v great_a force_n in_o example_n to_o draw_v other_o either_o to_o good_a or_o evil_n see_v the_o force_n of_o a_o good_a example_n even_o in_o a_o inferior_a special_o such_o a_o one_o as_o we_o love_v they_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o word_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o pet._n 3.1_o may_v without_o the_o word_n be_v win_v by_o the_o good_a conversation_n of_o the_o wife_n and_o the_o example_n of_o a_o superior_a of_o one_o who_o we_o not_o only_a love_n but_o reverence_n in_o our_o heart_n be_v of_o more_o force_n than_o any_o inferior_n can_v be_v the_o apostle_n say_v galat._n 2.14_o that_o peter_n by_o his_o example_n compel_v the_o gentile_n to_o do_v as_o the_o jew_n do_v but_o domestical_a example_n special_o the_o example_n of_o parent_n be_v of_o more_o force_n with_o their_o child_n to_o do_v they_o either_o good_a or_o hurt_n than_o all_o other_o example_n be_v see_v the_o force_n it_o have_v to_o draw_v our_o child_n to_o goodness_n at_o least_o in_o outward_a conformity_n in_o three_o notable_a example_n it_o be_v say_v of_o amazia_n king_n of_o juda_n 2_o kin_n 14.3_o he_o do_v that_o which_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o not_o like_o david_n his_o father_n he_o do_v according_a to_o all_o thing_n as_o joash_n his_o father_n do_v and_o of_o azaria_n or_o vzziah_n his_o son_n ●_o kin._n 15_o 3._o he_o do_v that_o which_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n according_a to_o all_o that_o amaziah_n his_o father_n have_v do_v and_o of_o jotham_n his_o son_n 2_o king_n 15.34_o he_o do_v that_o which_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o do_v according_a to_o all_o that_o his_o father_n vzziah_n have_v do_v and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n see_v the_o force_n that_o the_o parent_n example_n have_v to_o corrupt_v their_o child_n in_o three_o other_o example_n the_o first_o of_o zacharia_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v 2_o king_n 15.9_o he_o do_v evil_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o his_o father_n have_v do_v he_o depart_v not_o from_o the_o sin_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la he_o will_v be_v of_o his_o father_n religion_n the_o second_o be_v of_o the_o samaritan_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v 2_o king_n 17_o 41._o these_o nation_n fear_v the_o lord_n make_v some_o kind_n of_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n as_o the_o ten_o tribe_n have_v do_v and_o serve_v their_o grave_a image_n too_o both_o their_o child_n and_o their_o child_n child_n do_v thus_o as_o do_v their_o father_n so_o do_v they_o unto_o this_o day_n the_o example_n of_o their_o father_n draw_v they_o unto_o that_o idolatry_n and_o root_v they_o in_o it_o the_o three_o be_v of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o church_n of_o judah_n of_o which_o we_o read_v jere._n 17.1_o 2._o that_o the_o main_a reason_n why_o they_o be_v so_o settle_v in_o their_o idolatry_n that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o reclaim_v they_o it_o be_v grave_v upon_o the_o table_n of_o their_o heart_n as_o with_o a_o pen_n of_o iron_n or_o with_o the_o point_n of_o a_o diamond_n the_o reason_n of_o it_o i_o say_v be_v render_v to_o be_v this_o that_o their_o child_n remember_v their_o altar_n and_o their_o grove_n by_o the_o green_a tree_n upon_o the_o high_a hill_n and_o certain_o so_o it_o be_v also_o in_o these_o day_n applic._n a_o chief_a cause_n why_o profaneness_n and_o impiety_n do_v so_o cleave_v to_o the_o heart_n of_o most_o man_n that_o no_o mean_n be_v powerful_a enough_o to_o reclaim_v they_o be_v the_o evil_a example_n of_o parent_n o_o think_v of_o this_o you_o that_o be_v parent_n and_o if_o nothing_o else_o will_v reclaim_v you_o from_o lewdness_n and_o make_v you_o careful_a to_o take_v heed_n to_o your_o way_n yet_o let_v your_o love_n to_o your_o child_n do_v it_o that_o you_o may_v not_o corrupt_v they_o by_o your_o evil_a example_n be_v it_o not_o wrong_a enough_o that_o you_o have_v do_v unto_o they_o in_o convey_v into_o they_o so_o corrupt_a and_o curse_a a_o nature_n but_o will_v you_o also_o by_o your_o evil_a example_n make_v they_o twofold_a more_o the_o child_n of_o hell_n than_o they_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o four_o mean_n parent_n must_v use_v for_o the_o save_n of_o their_o child_n soul_n 4._o be_v this_o they_o must_v take_v heed_n how_o they_o dispose_v of_o they_o when_o they_o place_v they_o abroad_o from_o they_o and_o as_o every_o true_a christian_a will_v be_v careful_a of_o place_v of_o himself_o that_o however_o he_o do_v for_o other_o commodity_n and_o convenience_n he_o will_v not_o live_v where_o he_o shall_v want_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n but_o resolve_v with_o david_n psal._n 23.6_o i_o will_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n so_o will_v he_o in_o place_v of_o his_o child_n be_v careful_a that_o they_o may_v do_v so_o too_o they_o must_v take_v heed_n what_o schoolmaster_n and_o tutor_n they_o send_v they_o to_o what_o service_n and_o what_o marriage_n they_o place_v they_o in_o 1._o the_o apostle_n paul_n report_v act._n 22_o 3_o that_o he_o be_v send_v by_o his_o parent_n to_o jerusalem_n the_o best_a school_n the_o best_a university_n the_o best_a college_n &_o to_o gamaliel_n the_o best_a teacher_n the_o best_a tutor_n there_o where_o he_o be_v be_v teach_v according_a to_o the_o perfect_a manner_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o father_n and_o learned_a to_o be_v to_o zealous_a towards_o god_n 2._o as_o for_o service_n it_o be_v threaten_v as_o a_o great_a curse_n to_o god_n people_n that_o their_o child_n shall_v serve_v the_o great_a noble_a man_n yea_o the_o great_a prince_n in_o the_o world_n if_o he_o be_v a_o wicked_a man_n and_o enemy_n to_o god_n yea_o though_o they_o serve_v he_o in_o the_o high_a office_n that_o may_v be_v thy_o son_n that_o shall_v issue_v from_o thou_o say_v the_o lord_n to_o hezechiah_n esa._n 39.7_o shall_v be_v eunuch_n in_o the_o palace_n of_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n 3._o for_o marriage_n we_o see_v the_o care_n of_o abraham_n first_o gen._n 24.3_o 4._o and_o of_o rebecca_n after_o gen._n 27_o 46._o that_o their_o child_n may_v by_o no_o mean_n match_n with_o the_o canaanite_n certain_o in_o this_o point_n applic._n most_o parent_n do_v evident_o bewray_v they_o have_v no_o care_n at_o all_o of_o their_o child_n soul_n in_o place_v of_o their_o child_n any_o of_o these_o three_o way_n they_o aim_v at_o nothing_o but_o this_o that_o they_o may_v get_v that_o that_o may_v make_v they_o able_a to_o live_v and_o to_o live_v in_o credit_n but_o as_o for_o live_v under_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n for_o live_v so_o as_o they_o may_v live_v eternal_o that_o they_o have_v no_o respect_n at_o all_o unto_o whereby_o they_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v whole_o sensual_a not_o have_v the_o spirit_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v jude_n 19_o the_o five_o and_o last_o mean_n 5._o without_o which_o all_o the_o former_a be_v to_o no_o purpose_n be_v prayer_n parent_n must_v be_v earnest_a with_o god_n in_o prayer_n for_o their_o child_n solomon_n mother_n call_v
or_o for_o any_o of_o his_o judgement_n then_o must_v our_o original_a sin_n this_o fountain_n of_o corruption_n that_o we_o have_v within_o we_o come_v into_o our_o remembrance_n to_o further_o we_o in_o our_o humiliation_n before_o god_n the_o keep_n of_o fast_n be_v no_o better_a than_o gross_a hypocrisy_n and_o will_v but_o provoke_v the_o lord_n further_o against_o ourselves_o and_o all_o we_o pray_v for_o if_o our_o soul_n be_v not_o humble_v and_o afflict_v in_o we_o when_o we_o fast_o you_o know_v the_o fearful_a sentence_n of_o god_n against_o such_o keeper_n of_o fast_n levit._fw-la 23.29_o whatsoever_o soul_n it_o be_v that_o shall_v not_o be_v afflict_v in_o that_o same_o day_n he_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o among_o his_o people_n and_o the_o more_o we_o can_v be_v humble_v in_o our_o fast_n certain_o the_o more_o hope_n we_o may_v have_v to_o prevail_v with_o god_n in_o they_o he_o put_v his_o mouth_n in_o the_o dust_n say_v the_o church_n of_o a_o humble_a sinner_n lam._n 3.29_o if_o so_o be_v there_o may_v be_v hope_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v if_o any_o thing_n will_v give_v he_o hope_v of_o mercy_n that_o will_v do_v it_o and_o because_o so_o few_o keep_v fast_n with_o humble_a soul_n even_o when_o they_o make_v so_o solemn_a profession_n of_o their_o humiliation_n before_o god_n and_o his_o people_n therefore_o see_v we_o so_o little_a fruit_n of_o our_o fast_n now_o adays_o but_o god_n people_n have_v now_o cause_n if_o ever_o to_o complain_v unto_o god_n as_o they_o do_v psal._n 80.4_o o_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n how_o long_o will_v thou_o be_v angry_a against_o the_o prayer_n of_o thy_o people_n certain_o god_n seem_v even_o to_o be_v angry_a with_o the_o prayer_n of_o his_o people_n yet_o must_v we_o not_o give_v over_o our_o fast_n and_o day_n of_o humiliation_n for_o god_n call_v we_o to_o fast_v and_o prayer_n now_o if_o ever_o he_o do_v isaiah_n 22.12_o but_o our_o care_n must_v be_v to_o keep_v our_o fast_n with_o more_o humble_a soul_n than_o we_o have_v be_v heretofore_o first_o we_o must_v be_v humble_v for_o the_o token_n of_o god_n anger_n that_o be_v upon_o all_o the_o church_n and_o upon_o our_o own_o land_n if_o one_o father_n have_v spit_v in_o his_o face_n say_v god_n to_o moses_n numb_a 12.14_o shall_v he_o not_o be_v ashamed_a certain_o our_o heavenly_a father_n have_v spit_v upon_o our_o face_n and_o disgrace_v we_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o nation_n the_o lion_n have_v roar_v say_v the_o prophet_n amos_n 3.8_o who_o will_v not_o fear_v the_o lord_n threaten_v terrible_a thing_n against_o this_o nation_n such_o as_o if_o we_o will_v give_v ourselves_o leave_v serious_o to_o think_v of_o will_v make_v the_o stout_a heart_n among_o we_o to_o quake_v and_o tremble_v and_o sure_o such_o as_o will_v seem_v to_o keep_v fast_n and_o be_v not_o in_o their_o fast_n affect_v with_o nor_o humble_v for_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o all_o the_o church_n especial_o upon_o our_o own_o land_n be_v no_o better_o then_o graceless_a hypocrite_n jer._n 5.3_o thou_o have_v strike_v they_o but_o they_o have_v not_o grieve_v thou_o have_v consume_v they_o but_o they_o have_v refuse_v to_o receive_v correction_n they_o have_v make_v their_o face_n hard_a than_o a_o a_o rock_n these_o be_v they_o that_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o esa._n 29_o 15_o 18_o second_o we_o must_v be_v humble_v in_o our_o fast_n for_o the_o outrageous_a sin_n that_o be_v commit_v every_o where_o special_o such_o as_o ourselves_o hear_v and_o know_v of_o when_o blasphemy_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v speak_v by_o naboth_n against_o god_n and_o the_o king_n a_o fast_o be_v proclaim_v in_o jezreel_n for_o that_o 1_o king_n 21.9_o 10._o which_o doubtless_o jezabel_n have_v learn_v from_o the_o example_n of_o god_n own_o people_n that_o have_v be_v wont_a to_o do_v so_o in_o such_o case_n and_o the_o apostle_n blame_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o corinth_n 1_o cor._n 5.2_o because_o they_o have_v not_o at_o all_o mourn_v for_o that_o foul_a incest_n that_o have_v be_v commit_v among_o they_o what_o will_v he_o have_v do_v if_o so_o desperate_a a_o murder_n have_v be_v commit_v there_o as_o be_v here_o the_o last_o week_n certain_o we_o shall_v all_o mourn_v and_o be_v humble_v for_o it_o and_o be_v glad_a we_o have_v opportunity_n to_o do_v it_o with_o fast_v and_o prayer_n it_o be_v make_v a_o note_n of_o god_n people_n who_o he_o will_v mark_v for_o himself_o and_o take_v care_n to_o provide_v for_o in_o time_n of_o common_a calamity_n ezek._n 9.4_o that_o they_o be_v such_o as_o sigh_v and_o cry_v for_o all_o the_o abomination_n that_o be_v do_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o place_n they_o live_v in_o if_o we_o can_v be_v humble_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o land_n of_o the_o place_n we_o live_v in_o certain_o we_o can_v never_o be_v humble_v aright_o for_o any_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o be_v either_o present_o upon_o we_o or_o threaten_v against_o we_o we_o read_v of_o nehemiah_n that_o when_o he_o hear_v of_o the_o great_a affliction_n and_o reproach_n god_n people_n be_v in_o at_o jerusalem_n neh._n 1.4_o he_o weep_v and_o mourn_v certain_a day_n and_o fast_v and_o pray_v before_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n but_o what_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o most_o humble_a he_o in_o that_o fast_a sure_o not_o so_o much_o the_o judgement_n whereby_o god_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v angry_a against_o jerusalem_n as_o the_o sin_n of_o jerusalem_n whereby_o it_o have_v provoke_v god_n unto_o this_o anger_n as_o you_o may_v perceive_v by_o the_o confession_n he_o make_v of_o their_o sin_n in_o the_o six_o and_o seven_o verse_n of_o that_o chapter_n three_o we_o must_v in_o our_o fast_n be_v humble_v for_o our_o own_o sin_n especial_o thus_o be_v the_o humiliation_n of_o god_n people_n for_o sin_n set_v forth_o ezek_n 7.16_o they_o shall_v be_v on_o the_o mountain_n as_o the_o dove_n of_o the_o valley_n all_o of_o they_o mourning_n every_o man_n for_o his_o iniquity_n and_o therefore_o also_o we_o ought_v in_o our_o fast_n to_o call_v back_o into_o our_o remembrance_n the_o foul_a and_o gross_a of_o all_o the_o sin_n that_o ever_o we_o commit_v in_o our_o life_n though_o they_o be_v do_v long_o ago_o because_o the_o heart_n will_v soon_o be_v bring_v unto_o remorse_n and_o sorrow_n by_o the_o remembrance_n of_o these_o then_o of_o small_a sin_n remember_v and_o forget_v not_o say_v moses_n unto_o israel_n deut._n 9.7_o how_o thou_o provoke_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n in_o the_o wilderness_n he_o that_o bring_v not_o to_o the_o fast_a a_o heart_n humble_v for_o his_o own_o sin_n that_o have_v no_o sense_n of_o the_o beam_n that_o be_v or_o have_v be_v in_o his_o own_o eye_n as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v mat._n 7.5_o be_v but_o a_o hypocrite_n in_o pretend_v that_o he_o be_v humble_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o land_n four_o and_o last_o we_o must_v in_o our_o fast_n be_v humble_v for_o our_o original_a sin_n for_o the_o foul_a corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n so_o be_v david_n we_o see_v here_o in_o this_o his_o solemn_a profession_n of_o repentance_n and_o humiliation_n he_o be_v humble_v not_o only_o for_o his_o adultery_n and_o murder_n but_o for_o the_o corruption_n of_o his_o nature_n also_o wherein_o he_o be_v conceive_v and_o bear_v yea_o more_fw-it for_o that_o then_o for_o the_o other_o for_o he_o ascend_v in_o his_o confession_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v as_o to_o a_o high_a step_n and_o degree_n of_o sin_n and_o set_v a_o ecce_fw-la before_o this_o behold_v i_o be_v bear_v in_o iniquity_n etc._n etc._n thus_o be_v paul_n humble_v even_o after_o his_o regeneration_n for_o this_o corruption_n of_o his_o nature_n it_o be_v no_o actual_a sin_n no_o corruption_n that_o reign_v in_o he_o or_o that_o he_o do_v obey_v in_o the_o lust_n thereof_o that_o he_o complain_v so_o of_o and_o pray_v so_o against_o 2_o cor._n 12.7_o 8._o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o certain_o but_o the_o corruption_n of_o his_o nature_n the_o motion_n and_o strong_a inclination_n he_o find_v in_o himself_o unto_o some_o foul_a evil_n and_o this_o he_o say_v put_v his_o heart_n to_o that_o pain_n and_o anguish_n as_o a_o thorn_n in_o the_o flesh_n will_v put_v a_o man_n body_n to_o this_o be_v that_o that_o make_v he_o cry_v out_o so_o of_o himself_o rom._n 7.24_o owretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o this_o be_v that_o that_o he_o call_v his_o death_n who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n and_o why_o be_v david_n and_o paul_n be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o have_v no_o actual_a sin_n in_o they_o that_o they_o have_v not_o repent_v of_o in_o who_o
more_o shall_v this_o be_v the_o resolution_n of_o every_o true_a christian_a if_o wine_n and_o strong_a drink_n if_o such_o company_n and_o recreation_n as_o i_o have_v be_v wont_a to_o use_v cause_v i_o to_o offend_v i_o will_v never_o use_v they_o again_o while_o i_o live_v second_o to_o labour_v in_o our_o calling_n and_o to_o follow_v diligent_o the_o mean_n of_o our_o thrift_n be_v in_o itself_o a_o most_o lawful_a thing_n for_o god_n have_v express_o allow_v it_o exod._n 20.9_o six_o day_n shall_v thou_o labour_v and_o do_v all_o thy_o work_n and_o he_o that_o be_v not_o careful_a to_o provide_v for_o his_o family_n be_v worse_a than_o a_o infidel_n 1_o tim._n 5.8_o but_o a_o man_n may_v easy_o surfeit_v and_o take_v more_o of_o this_o also_o then_o will_v do_v he_o good_a for_o the_o care_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o deceitfullnesse_n of_o riches_n say_v our_o saviour_n mat._n 13.22_o choke_v the_o word_n and_o make_v it_o unfruitful_a even_o under_o the_o best_a ministry_n in_o the_o world_n nay_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a but_o the_o best_a man_n under_o heaven_n must_v needs_o surfeit_v and_o take_v hurt_v by_o it_o if_o he_o keep_v not_o a_o measure_n in_o it_o therefore_o the_o most_o wise_a god_n that_o know_v we_o better_o than_o we_o do_v ourselves_o have_v see_v it_o necessary_a to_o enjoin_v unto_o his_o people_n one_o day_n in_o every_o week_n to_o be_v keep_v as_o a_o sabbath_n a_o day_n of_o rest_n from_o our_o worldly_a labour_n and_o affair_n and_o spend_v in_o spiritual_a duty_n exod._n 20.8_o yea_o he_o see_v it_o necessary_a even_o for_o adam_n before_o his_o fall_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o continual_o be_v employ_v in_o dress_v of_o paradise_n but_o that_o one_o day_n in_o seven_o he_o shall_v rest_v from_o that_o labour_n and_o be_v employ_v whole_o in_o spiritual_a duty_n gen._n 2.3_o yea_o he_o have_v ordain_v that_o no_o one_o of_o the_o week_n day_n shall_v be_v whole_o spend_v in_o our_o worldly_a affair_n but_o that_o some_o part_n of_o every_o morning_n and_o of_o every_o evening_n shall_v be_v spare_v from_o they_o and_o employ_v in_o spiritual_a duty_n as_o appear_v plain_o in_o those_o two_o law_n the_o one_o for_o the_o sacrifice_n exod._n 29.38_o 39_o the_o other_o for_o the_o incense_n exod._n 30.7_o 8._o which_o every_o morning_n and_o evening_n be_v to_o be_v offer_v up_o unto_o the_o lord_n 1_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v say_v tush_o those_o be_v but_o ceremonial_a law_n what_o tell_v you_o we_o of_o they_o answ._n i_o answer_v they_o be_v so_o indeed_o but_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o moral_a equity_n of_o they_o which_o be_v perpetual_a and_o of_o they_o i_o may_v say_v as_o the_o apostle_n do_v of_o another_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n 1_o cor._n 9.10_o for_o our_o sake_n no_o doubt_n this_o be_v write_v to_o teach_v we_o that_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o every_o morning_n and_o every_o evening_n we_o shall_v spend_v some_o time_n in_o his_o service_n 2_o if_o any_o shall_v object_v again_o tush_o those_o law_n concern_v the_o priest_n only_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o serve_v well_o in_o the_o moral_a equity_n of_o they_o to_o prove_v that_o minister_n shall_v do_v so_o but_o what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o people_n ans._n i_o answer_v that_o these_o law_n concern_v the_o people_n as_o well_o as_o the_o priest_n as_o appear_z luke_n 1.10_o the_o whole_a multitude_n be_v pray_v without_o that_o be_v in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o lord_n house_n which_o be_v the_o place_n allot_v to_o they_o in_o the_o temple_n 2_o chron._n 22.5_o at_o the_o time_n of_o incense_n you_o see_v then_o how_o dangerous_a the_o lord_n see_v it_o be_v for_o we_o to_o be_v always_o employ_v in_o the_o affair_n of_o our_o worldly_a calling_n be_v our_o calling_n what_o they_o may_v be_v for_o some_o be_v certain_o more_o toilsome_a than_o other_o be_v how_o necessary_a it_o be_v for_o we_o to_o be_v oft_o take_v off_o from_o they_o and_o to_o have_v our_o heart_n and_o mind_n turn_v another_o way_n and_o certain_o the_o man_n that_o have_v most_o employment_n in_o the_o world_n have_v of_o all_o other_o man_n most_o cause_n to_o love_v the_o sabbath_n and_o praise_n god_n for_o it_o and_o long_o for_o it_o and_o acknowledge_v the_o necessity_n of_o it_o yea_o to_o keep_v his_o time_n constant_o for_o religious_a duty_n every_o morning_n and_o every_o evening_n and_o to_o account_v it_o a_o happiness_n if_o his_o occasion_n will_v also_o permit_v he_o to_o frequent_a lecture_n and_o to_o say_v with_o david_n psal._n 84.4_o bless_a be_v they_o that_o dwell_v in_o thy_o house_n they_o will_v still_o be_v praise_v thou_o because_o he_o of_o all_o other_o be_v in_o most_o danger_n to_o have_v his_o heart_n corrupt_v and_o glue_v to_o the_o world_n see_v a_o notable_a proof_n of_o this_o in_o that_o straight_a commandment_n that_o be_v give_v unto_o the_o king_n deut._n 17.19_o and_o josh._n 1.8_o to_o read_v every_o day_n some_o part_n of_o the_o bible_n and_o daniel_n will_v not_o omit_v his_o constant_a course_n of_o pray_v three_o time_n a_o day_n though_o he_o know_v he_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o lion_n den_n for_o it_o dan._n 6.10_o and_o therefore_o those_o man_n that_o never_o have_v enough_o of_o toil_v and_o moil_a about_o the_o world_n but_o as_o solomon_n speak_v eccl._n 4.8_o there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o their_o labour_n neither_o be_v their_o eye_n satisfy_v with_o riches_n they_o think_v they_o never_o have_v enough_o these_o long_a day_n be_v not_o long_a enough_o for_o they_o to_o do_v their_o business_n in_o they_o can_v spare_v no_o time_n morning_n nor_o evening_n for_o religious_a duty_n nay_o six_o day_n in_o a_o week_n be_v not_o time_n enough_o for_o they_o but_o they_o must_v needs_o take_v some_o part_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n to_o employ_v in_o their_o worldly_a occasion_n that_o see_v no_o necessity_n at_o all_o of_o spend_v any_o part_n of_o the_o week_n day_n in_o religious_a duty_n either_o in_o hear_v or_o read_v of_o the_o word_n or_o pray_v with_o their_o family_n but_o be_v apt_a to_o say_v of_o they_o that_o use_v it_o as_o pharaoh_n do_v exod._n 5.8_o they_o be_v idle_a and_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v and_o therefore_o they_o cry_v say_v let_v we_o go_v and_o sacrifice_n unto_o our_o god_n yea_o that_o see_v no_o necessity_n of_o the_o sabbath_n itself_o special_o not_o of_o those_o mean_v god_n have_v ordain_v for_o the_o sanctify_a of_o it_o but_o think_v they_o can_v do_v well_o enough_o without_o they_o and_o be_v apt_a to_o say_v of_o it_o as_o those_o do_v mal._n 1.13_o oh_o what_o a_o weariness_n be_v it_o and_o such_o man_n as_o i_o have_v describe_v the_o world_n yea_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v every_o where_o full_a of_o such_o man_n i_o may_v bold_o say_v have_v no_o mortification_n and_o consequent_o no_o true_a repentance_n in_o they_o at_o all_o no_o care_n to_o keep_v under_o the_o corruption_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n such_o man_n certain_o care_v not_o how_o strong_a it_o grow_v how_o much_o it_o increase_v in_o they_o and_o he_o that_o have_v no_o care_n of_o that_o he_o that_o do_v not_o study_n and_o practice_v mortification_n certain_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o he_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v and_o therefore_o be_v none_o of_o he_o he_o can_v possible_o be_v save_v take_v a_o notable_a proof_n for_o this_o in_o the_o speech_n and_o example_n of_o the_o bless_a apostle_n who_o when_o he_o have_v say_v 1_o cor_fw-la 9.25_o every_o man_n that_o strive_v for_o the_o mastery_n be_v temperate_a in_o all_o thing_n and_o so_o he_o that_o strive_v to_o get_v the_o mastery_n over_o his_o own_o corruption_n must_v be_v temperate_a in_o all_o thing_n and_o not_o take_v too_o much_o either_o of_o meat_n or_o drink_v or_o of_o company_n or_o of_o recreation_n or_o of_o worldly_a business_n he_o add_v verse_n 27._o i_o keep_v under_o my_o body_n and_o bring_v it_o into_o subjection_n lest_o by_o any_o mean_n when_o i_o have_v preach_v unto_o other_o i_o myself_o shall_v be_v a_o cast_v away_o if_o paul_n have_v not_o be_v temperate_a in_o all_o thing_n take_v no_o more_o of_o they_o then_o will_v stand_v with_o the_o health_n of_o his_o soul_n paul_n himself_o have_v be_v a_o cast_n away_o and_o can_v never_o have_v be_v save_v lecture_n lxv_o on_o psalm_n 51.5_o july_n 24._o 1627._o the_o four_o mean_n whereby_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n be_v to_o be_v mortify_v 4_o be_v a_o conscionable_a use_n of_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n i_o know_v there_o be_v many_o that_o use_v religious_a duty_n both_o public_a and_o private_a ordinary_a and_o
extraordinary_a constant_o who_o yet_o can_v master_v nor_o subdue_v any_o one_o lust_n but_o if_o they_o do_v use_v they_o conscionable_o and_o in_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n certain_o the_o strength_n of_o their_o corruption_n will_v be_v abate_v by_o they_o walk_v in_o the_o spirit_n say_v the_o apostle_n galat._n 5_o 16._o and_o you_o shall_v not_o fulfil_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n if_o in_o this_o as_o well_o as_o in_o other_o part_n of_o our_o conversation_n we_o can_v walk_v in_o the_o spirit_n perform_v spiritual_a duty_n in_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n we_o can_v not_o fulfil_v the_o lust_n of_o our_o flesh_n as_o we_o do_v see_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o but_o in_o two_o exercise_n of_o religion_n not_o to_o trouble_v you_o with_o more_fw-mi that_o be_v in_o most_o daily_o use_v with_o all_o christian_n and_o that_o be_v the_o word_n and_o prayer_n first_o there_o be_v great_a force_n in_o read_v of_o the_o word_n and_o hear_v of_o it_o to_o subdue_v and_o mortify_v sin_n in_o we_o if_o it_o be_v use_v conscionable_o now_o you_o be_v clean_o say_v our_o saviour_n to_o his_o apostle_n john_n 15.3_o through_o the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v unto_o you_o the_o conscionable_a hear_n of_o the_o word_n be_v able_a to_o cleanse_v the_o heart_n from_o the_o corruption_n that_o be_v in_o it_o it_o be_v therefore_o call_v james●_n 21_o because_o as_o the_o sciense_n of_o a_o good_a fruit_n that_o be_v graft_v into_o a_o crab-tree-stocke_n will_v change_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o juice_n and_o sap_n of_o it_o so_o the_o word_n be_v able_a to_o change_v our_o nature_n quite_o see_v two_o notable_a instance_n of_o the_o power_n the_o word_n have_v this_o way_n 1._o in_o the_o young_a man_n in_o who_o we_o know_v all_o kind_n of_o lust_n be_v most_o strong_a and_o violent_a and_o yet_o of_o he_o david_n say_v psal._n 119.9_o that_o if_o he_o will_v but_o conscionable_o exercise_v himself_o in_o the_o word_n if_o he_o will_v take_v heed_n to_o his_o way_n according_a the_o word_n he_o may_v be_v able_a to_o cleanse_v his_o way_n to_o cleanse_v his_o heart_n even_o from_o those_o unruly_a lust_n of_o he_o 2._o in_o a_o king_n who_o of_o all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v in_o most_o danger_n as_o of_o other_o sin_n so_o special_o of_o this_o to_o have_v his_o heart_n lift_v and_o puff_v up_o with_o pride_n and_o contempt_n of_o they_o special_o that_o be_v his_o own_o subject_n and_o yet_o of_o he_o the_o lord_n say_v that_o if_o he_o will_v but_o exercise_v himself_o conscionable_o in_o the_o read_n of_o the_o word_n he_o shall_v obtain_v power_n over_o this_o corruption_n for_o give_v the_o reason_n why_o he_o will_v have_v he_o every_o day_n to_o read_v some_o part_n of_o the_o bible_n he_o say_v thus_o deut._n 17.20_o that_o his_o heart_n be_v not_o lift_v up_o above_o his_o brethren_n and_o that_o he_o turn_v not_o aside_o from_o the_o commandment_n to_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o to_o the_o left_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v this_o will_v subdue_v both_o the_o pride_n of_o his_o heart_n and_o every_o other_o corruption_n that_o be_v in_o it_o and_o two_o reason_n there_o be_v why_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v so_o first_o because_o the_o word_n be_v able_a to_o discover_v every_o corruption_n to_o we_o how_o close_o soever_o it_o lurk_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o the_o loathsomnesse_n and_o odiousness_n of_o it_o also_o by_o the_o law_n come_v the_o knowledge_n of_o sin_n say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 3.20_o it_o be_v a_o discerner_n and_o discoverer_n of_o the_o very_a thought_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o heart_n as_o he_o say_v heb._n 3.12_o compare_v therefore_o to_o a_o glass_n jam._n 1.23_o and_o to_o the_o light_n that_o make_v all_o thing_n manifest_v as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v eph._n 5.13_o second_o because_o there_o be_v also_o a_o divine_a spirit_n life_n and_o power_n in_o it_o to_o work_v upon_o the_o heart_n to_o conquer_v and_o kill_v sin_n in_o it_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o say_v our_o saviour_n john_n 6.63_o they_o be_v spirit_n and_o they_o be_v life_n i_o have_v hide_v thy_o word_n in_o my_o heart_n say_v david_n psal._n 119.11_o that_o i_o may_v not_o sin_v against_o thou_o how_o can_v that_o keep_v he_o from_o sin_v sure_o when_o any_o lust_n begin_v to_o rise_v in_o his_o heart_n when_o he_o be_v tempt_v to_o any_o sin_n if_o he_o can_v then_o but_o remember_v some_o sentence_n of_o god_n word_n that_o condemn_v that_o sin_n that_o will_v be_v of_o force_n to_o stay_v he_o from_o it_o that_o even_o as_o our_o bless_a saviour_n himself_o do_v overcome_v satan_n with_o scriptum_n est_fw-la it_o be_v write_v matth._n 4.10_o so_o may_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n be_v able_a to_o overcome_v satan_n and_o their_o own_o corruption_n by_o call_v to_o mind_n and_o meditate_v and_o apply_v to_o themselves_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o word_n against_o they_o so_o say_v david_n psal._n 17.4_o by_o the_o word_n of_o thy_o lip_n i_o have_v keep_v i_o from_o the_o path_n of_o the_o destroyer_n for_o it_o be_v the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o ephes._n 6.17_o it_o be_v the_o weapon_n of_o our_o warfare_n mighty_a through_o god_n to_o cast_v down_o our_o imagination_n and_o every_o thing_n in_o we_o that_o exalt_v itself_o against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o bring_v into_o captivity_n every_o thought_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2_o cor_fw-la 10.4_o 5._o this_o divine_a power_n that_o be_v in_o the_o word_n to_o bridle_v and_o subdue_v their_o corruption_n god_n people_n have_v always_o feel_v and_o find_v by_o experience_n in_o themselves_o and_o do_v all_o of_o they_o to_o this_o day_n and_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o they_o do_v take_v such_o pain_n for_o it_o and_o esteem_v more_o of_o it_o as_o job_n speak_v job_n 23.12_o then_o of_o their_o necessary_a food_n applic._n they_o that_o regard_v not_o the_o word_n exercise_v not_o themselves_o in_o the_o read_n and_o hear_v of_o it_o or_o if_o they_o do_v read_v and_o hear_v it_o yet_o have_v no_o care_n to_o hide_v it_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o to_o use_v it_o as_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n against_o their_o own_o corruption_n certain_o such_o be_v far_o from_o mortification_n any_o have_v no_o desire_n at_o all_o to_o mortify_v and_o kill_v sin_n in_o themselves_o the_o other_o exercise_n of_o religion_n that_o have_v such_o force_n to_o master_n and_o conquer_v our_o corruption_n be_v prayer_n if_o it_o be_v use_v conscionable_o and_o spiritual_o this_o be_v the_o mean_n that_o paul_n use_v when_o he_o be_v trouble_v with_o the_o thorn_n in_o his_o flesh_n and_o seek_v to_o be_v rid_v of_o it_o 2_o cor._n 12.8_o and_o by_o it_o he_o obtain_v though_o not_o a_o full_a deliverance_n from_o it_o yet_o strength_n sufficient_a to_o master_v it_o so_o as_o he_o be_v not_o overcome_v by_o it_o that_o which_o david_n say_v of_o his_o worldly_a enemy_n psal._n 56.9_o every_o christian_a may_v say_v of_o these_o lust_n that_o war_n against_o his_o soul_n when_o i_o cry_v unto_o thou_o then_o shall_v my_o enemy_n turn_v back_o when_o we_o can_v pray_v we_o may_v be_v sure_a to_o become_v conqueror_n over_o any_o of_o our_o lust_n by_o our_o faithful_a prayer_n we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o deliver_v any_o brother_n from_o the_o bondage_n of_o any_o sin_n that_o he_o be_v fall_v into_o if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o unpardonable_a sin_n for_o so_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o john_n 5.16_o how_o much_o more_o may_v we_o have_v confidence_n to_o obtain_v by_o prayer_n deliverance_n from_o the_o dominion_n of_o any_o of_o our_o own_o corruption_n for_o of_o all_o suit_n we_o can_v make_v to_o god_n we_o have_v great_a assurance_n to_o speed_n in_o this_o when_o we_o pray_v for_o grace_n how_o much_o more_o say_v our_o saviour_n lut_n 11.13_o shall_v your_o heavenly_a father_n give_v the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o they_o that_o ask_v he_o applic._n certain_o this_o be_v one_o chief_a cause_n why_o the_o most_o of_o we_o can_v no_o better_o prevail_v against_o our_o corruption_n because_o we_o do_v not_o more_o hearty_o complain_v unto_o god_n of_o they_o and_o pray_v against_o they_o and_o we_o may_v say_v as_o the_o church_n do_v isaiah_n 64.6_o 7._o our_o iniquity_n like_o a_o wind_n have_v take_v we_o away_o they_o carry_v we_o headlong_o whether_o they_o please_v and_o the_o reason_n be_v give_v in_o the_o next_o word_n there_o be_v none_o that_o call_v upon_o thy_o name_n or_o that_o stir_v up_o himself_o to_o take_v hold_n of_o thou_o 5_o the_o five_o mean_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o word_n have_v
when_o all_o other_o mean_n do_v fail_v now_o for_o the_o more_o plain_a and_o profitable_a handle_n of_o this_o last_o mean_n these_o three_o point_n be_v distinct_o to_o be_v consider_v 1._o that_o till_o a_o man_n have_v true_a faith_n he_o can_v mortify_v no_o corruption_n 2._o that_o true_a faith_n wheresoever_o it_o be_v will_v mortify_v sin_n 3._o that_o for_o the_o mortify_n of_o sin_n faith_n must_v be_v exercise_v and_o put_v forth_o and_o how_o that_o be_v to_o be_v do_v first_o till_o a_o man_n be_v by_o a_o lively_a faith_n knit_v unto_o christ_n and_o so_o reconcile_v unto_o god_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o any_o one_o corruption_n shall_v be_v true_o mortify_v in_o he_o true_a it_o be_v a_o man_n that_o have_v no_o faith_n in_o christ_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v most_o free_a from_o many_o sin_n he_o may_v live_v most_o civil_o and_o unblamable_o that_o which_o the_o pharisee_n say_v of_o himself_o luk._n 18.11_o it_o may_v well_o be_v be_v true_o say_v he_o be_v no_o extortioner_n no_o unjust_a man_n no_o adulterer_n and_o that_o also_o mat._n 19.20_o all_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o keep_v from_o my_o youth_n up_o and_o paul_n say_v of_o himself_o phil._n 3.6_o that_o his_o life_n have_v be_v blameless_a even_o before_o he_o know_v christ._n but_o yet_o neither_o in_o the_o pharisee_n nor_o in_o paul_n nor_o in_o any_o other_o that_o be_v not_o in_o christ_n be_v ever_o any_o sin_n true_o mortify_v and_o subdue_v some_o corruption_n may_v lurk_v and_o lie_v very_o close_o in_o he_o and_o not_o break_v forth_o nor_o show_v themselves_o in_o outward_a action_n but_o mortify_v they_o can_v be_v neither_o the_o fox_n nor_o the_o wolf_n nor_o the_o lion_n nor_o the_o bear_n will_v do_v any_o hurt_n or_o show_v what_o they_o be_v so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v either_o a_o sleep_n or_o tie_v up_o sin_n shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o you_o say_v the_o apostle_n rome_n 6.14_o for_o you_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o grace_n till_o a_o man_n be_v under_o grace_n in_o the_o estate_n of_o grace_n reconcile_v to_o god_n in_o christ_n sin_n must_v needs_o have_v dominion_n over_o he_o for_o mortification_n be_v a_o part_n of_o sanctification_n and_o a_o man_n must_v first_o be_v justify_v before_o he_o can_v be_v sanctify_v rom._n 8.30_o who_o he_o justify_v they_o he_o glorify_v all_o true_a sanctification_n proceed_v from_o faith_n and_o be_v a_o fruit_n thereof_o as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v to_o paul_n act_v 26.18_o of_o such_o as_o shall_v have_v inheritance_n in_o heaven_n he_o call_v they_o such_o as_o be_v sanctify_v by_o faith_n in_o he_o as_o the_o branch_n say_v our_o saviour_n john_n 15.4_o can_v bear_v fruit_n of_o itself_o except_o it_o abide_v in_o the_o vine_n no_o more_o can_v you_o except_o you_o abide_v in_o i_o the_o good_a thing_n you_o see_v in_o any_o man_n that_o be_v not_o by_o a_o lively_a faith_n ingraft_v into_o christ_n be_v no_o better_o then_o wild_a grape_n or_o fig_n unacceptable_a to_o god_n and_o unprofitable_a to_o themselves_o applic._n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o pitiful_a thing_n to_o see_v how_o man_n content_v themselves_o with_o this_o that_o they_o have_v reform_v their_o life_n and_o find_v some_o good_a thing_n in_o themselves_o though_o they_o have_v no_o true_a faith_n at_o all_o nor_o ever_o seek_v after_o it_o we_o shall_v first_o labour_v to_o make_v the_o tree_n good_a or_o else_o the_o fruit_n can_v not_o be_v good_a as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v matth._n 12.33_o second_o true_a faith_n wheresoever_o it_o be_v will_v mortify_v sin_n it_o will_v abate_v and_o weaken_v the_o strength_n of_o every_o lust_n by_o faith_n god_n purify_v the_o heart_n as_o peter_n speak_v act_v 15.9_o yea_o nothing_o have_v that_o force_n to_o strengthen_v a_o man_n against_o any_o of_o his_o corruption_n and_o against_o the_o strong_a tentation_n he_o can_v have_v unto_o any_o sin_n as_o true_a faith_n have_v this_o the_o apostle_n teach_v 1_o john_n 5.4_o 5._o this_o be_v the_o victory_n that_o overcom_v the_o world_n even_o our_o faith_n who_o be_v he_o that_o overcom_v the_o world_n but_o he_o that_o believe_v he_o and_o none_o but_o he_o see_v the_o force_n of_o faith_n both_o these_o way_n in_o a_o instance_n or_o two_o first_o for_o purify_n the_o heart_n and_o kill_v of_o our_o lust_n see_v the_o force_n of_o faith_n in_o four_o of_o the_o strong_a and_o most_o unconquerable_a of_o they_o all_o 1._o in_o maliciousness_n and_o desire_n of_o revenge_n when_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v luk._n 17.3_o 4._o if_o thy_o brother_n trespass_n against_o thou_o seven_o time_n in_o a_o day_n and_o seven_o time_n in_o a_o day_n turn_v again_o to_o thou_o say_v i_o repent_v thou_o shall_v forgive_v he_o the_o apostle_n say_v unto_o the_o lord_n verse_n 5._o increase_v our_o faith_n as_o if_o they_o have_v say_v unless_o we_o have_v faith_n we_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o abstain_v from_o revenge_n so_o oft_o but_o if_o thou_o will_v increase_v our_o faith_n we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o conquer_v even_o this_o sin_n 2._o zacheus_n have_v be_v a_o most_o covetous_a man_n and_o that_o you_o know_v be_v a_o most_o strong_a corruption_n and_o hardly_o subdue_v and_o yet_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v receive_v christ_n by_o faith_n into_o his_o heart_n he_o overcome_v this_o lust_n present_o as_o you_o may_v see_v by_o the_o bountiful_a restitution_n he_o be_v content_a to_o make_v luk._n 19.8_o he_o will_v restore_v fourfold_a 3._o sundry_a of_o the_o corinthian_n have_v be_v outrageous_o filthy_a give_v not_o only_o to_o fornication_n and_o adultery_n but_o even_o to_o sodomy_n and_o unnatural_a lust_n 4._o they_o have_v be_v also_o give_v to_o drunkenness_n as_o the_o apostle_n tell_v they_o 1_o cor._n 6.9_o 11._o and_o these_o be_v sin_n you_o know_v that_o be_v hardly_o leave_v and_o overcome_v and_o yet_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v obtain_v grace_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n aright_o they_o be_v present_o deliver_v from_o the_o dominion_n of_o these_o sin_n such_o be_v some_o of_o you_o say_v he_o 1_o cor._n 6.11_o but_o you_o be_v wash_v but_o you_o be_v sanctify_v but_o you_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o god_n and_o as_o for_o the_o force_n that_o be_v in_o faith_n to_o make_v we_o overcome_v the_o world_n and_o the_o strong_a tentation_n unto_o sin_n we_o can_v meet_v with_o in_o it_o we_o have_v a_o notable_a example_n in_o god_n people_n that_o live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o maccabee_n of_o who_o the_o apostle_n say_v heb._n 11.33_o 37._o that_o though_o they_o be_v tempt_v and_o urge_v by_o most_o cruel_a torture_n and_o persecution_n to_o sin_n against_o god_n yet_o by_o faith_n they_o overcome_v they_o all_o yea_o as_o he_o say_v verse_n 34._o out_o of_o weakness_n be_v make_v strong_a that_o be_v though_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o at_o first_o as_o weak_a and_o timorous_a as_o any_o of_o we_o can_v be_v in_o the_o like_a case_n yet_o their_o faith_n in_o the_o end_n make_v they_o strong_a to_o overcome_v all_o and_o bless_a be_v god_n no_o age_n no_o place_n have_v want_v example_n of_o such_o as_o through_o faith_n have_v overcome_v and_o vanquish_v as_o strong_a corruption_n and_o as_o violent_a tentation_n as_o ever_o any_o of_o we_o can_v be_v subject_a unto_o this_o force_n of_o faith_n to_o mortify_v corruption_n will_v yet_o be_v further_a evident_a unto_o we_o if_o we_o will_v consider_v two_o reason_n and_o ground_n of_o it_o first_o true_a faith_n apply_v all_o that_o christ_n do_v and_o suffer_v particular_o to_o every_o believer_n and_o persuade_v his_o soul_n that_o out_o of_o his_o love_n to_o he_o and_o care_v to_o keep_v he_o from_o perish_v everlasting_o he_o endure_v all_o that_o he_o do_v endure_v no_o tongue_n can_v express_v nay_o no_o heart_n can_v conceive_v what_o torment_n and_o misery_n our_o bless_a saviour_n do_v endure_v for_o they_o that_o he_o do_v undertake_v for_o look_v but_o to_o his_o corporal_a suffering_n to_o that_o that_o be_v outward_a and_o open_a even_o to_o the_o view_n of_o man_n and_o he_o be_v even_o in_o that_o respect_n more_o wretched_a and_o contemptible_a then_o ever_o any_o other_o man_n be_v well_o may_v the_o apostle_n say_v phil._n 2.7_o that_o he_o make_v himself_o of_o no_o reputation_n many_o be_v astonish_v at_o thou_o say_v the_o prophet_n esa._n 52.14_o his_o visage_n be_v so_o mar_v more_o than_o any_o man_n and_o his_o form_n more_o than_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o 53.3_o we_o even_o his_o own_o people_n and_o disciple_n hide_v as_o it_o be_v our_o face_n from_o he_o he_o be_v despise_v and_o we_o
esteem_v he_o not_o and_o yet_o all_o this_o be_v nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o his_o inward_a misery_n and_o suffering_n his_o soul_n be_v exceed_v sorrowful_a even_o unto_o death_n matth._n 26.38_o he_o be_v so_o overwhelm_v with_o terror_n and_o fear_n of_o that_o death_n he_o be_v to_o endure_v that_o in_o his_o prayer_n he_o utter_v strong_a cry_n and_o roar_v and_o shed_v tear_n abundant_o heb._n 5.7_o he_o sweat_v drop_n of_o blood_n through_o the_o extremity_n of_o his_o sorrow_n and_o anguish_n so_o abundant_o that_o they_o fall_v upon_o the_o ground_n luk._n 22.44_o be_v on_o the_o cross_n he_o can_v not_o contain_v himself_o but_o though_o he_o know_v who_o be_v by_o to_o hear_v he_o mat._n 27.39_o 44._o yet_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o verse_n 46._o in_o a_o word_n he_o be_v make_v a_o curse_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v gal._n 3.13_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n and_o the_o torment_n due_a to_o all_o the_o elect_a be_v lay_v on_o his_o bless_a body_n and_o soul_n to_o the_o full_a now_o true_a faith_n as_o i_o say_v apply_v all_o this_o that_o christ_n have_v suffer_v particular_o to_o every_o believer_n and_o persuade_v his_o soul_n that_o out_o of_o his_o love_n to_o he_o he_o endure_v all_o this_o it_o make_v he_o able_a to_o say_v with_o bless_a paul_n gal._n 2.20_o he_o love_v i_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o i_o and_o as_o esa_fw-mi 53.4_o he_o have_v bear_v our_o grief_n and_o carry_v our_o sorrow_n these_o sorrow_n and_o terror_n and_o torment_n be_v i_o and_o i_o shall_v have_v endure_v they_o everlasting_o if_o he_o have_v not_o endure_v they_o for_o i_o and_o verse_n 5._o he_o be_v wound_v for_o our_o transgression_n and_o bruise_v for_o our_o iniquity_n they_o be_v my_o sin_n that_o put_v he_o to_o all_o these_o torment_n now_o he_o that_o be_v thus_o persuade_v christ_n have_v so_o love_v he_o have_v have_v this_o respect_n unto_o he_o in_o particular_a he_o can_v choose_v but_o he_o must_v needs_o out_o of_o love_n to_o christ_n hate_n and_o renounce_v his_o sin_n if_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n have_v persuade_v we_o once_o that_o christ_n have_v so_o dear_o love_v we_o we_o can_v choose_v but_o love_v he_o again_o we_o love_v he_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o jo●_a 4.19_o because_o he_o love_v we_o first_o the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o goat_n say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n 9_o 13_o 14._o sprinkle_v the_o unclean_a sanctify_v to_o the_o purify_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o be_v serve_v the_o turn_n to_o cleanse_v a_o man_n from_o legal_a and_o ceremonial_a pollution_n how_o much_o more_o shall_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n if_o it_o be_v sprinkle_v and_o by_o faith_n particular_o apply_v to_o you_o purge_v your_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n o_o there_o be_v great_a force_n in_o this_o particular_a application_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o assurance_n it_o be_v shed_v for_o thou_o to_o mortify_v sin_n in_o thou_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 5.14_o constrain_v we_o nothing_o have_v that_o force_n to_o curb_v corruption_n in_o god_n child_n and_o to_o compel_v he_o to_o live_v in_o god_n fear_n as_o this_o have_v they_o shall_v fear_v the_o lord_n and_o his_o goodness_n in_o the_o latter_a day_n that_o be_v under_o the_o gospel_n say_v the_o prophet_n hos._n 3.5_o when_o the_o apostle_n have_v pray_v for_o the_o ephesian_n 3.16_o that_o they_o may_v be_v strengthen_v with_o might_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o inner_a man_n he_o pray_v further_a verse_n 18_o 19_o that_o to_o that_o end_n they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v with_o all_o saint_n what_o be_v the_o length_n and_o breadth_n and_o depth_n and_o height_n and_o to_o know_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n which_o pass_v knowledge_n that_o you_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o all_o the_o fullness_n of_o god_n if_o thou_o do_v indeed_o know_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n aright_o that_o out_o of_o his_o love_n to_o thou_o he_o endure_v such_o torment_n even_o to_o save_v thou_o from_o hell_n thou_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o be_v strengthen_v with_o might_n by_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o inner_a man_n to_o withstand_v and_o overcome_v thy_o own_o corruption_n i_o know_v the_o papist_n prate_v much_o against_o and_o blaspheme_v this_o doctrine_n of_o particular_a application_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n of_o the_o assurance_n it_o give_v to_o a_o man_n of_o god_n special_a love_n to_o he_o in_o christ_n they_o say_v it_o lay_v reins_n on_o man_n neck_n and_o open_v a_o gap_n to_o all_o licentiousness_n but_o these_o two_o thing_n i_o confident_o affirm_v concern_v this_o doctrine_n by_o warrant_n of_o god_n word_n first_o that_o as_o a_o christian_a can_v have_v no_o sound_a comfort_n without_o it_o neither_o in_o life_n nor_o death_n so_o be_v there_o no_o doctrine_n have_v that_o force_n in_o a_o good_a heart_n to_o make_v it_o study_v and_o practice_v mortification_n as_o this_o have_v indeed_o with_o hypocrite_n wrath_n &_o judgement_n will_v do_v more_o as_o david_n say_v psal._n 78.34_o when_o he_o show_v they_o than_o they_o seek_v he_o and_o return_v and_o inquire_v early_o after_o god_n but_o it_o be_v far_o otherwise_o with_o god_n child_n the_o knowledge_n even_o of_o this_o more_o general_a love_n and_o goodness_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o poor_a sinner_n that_o he_o be_v ready_a upon_o their_o repentance_n and_o turn_n to_o he_o to_o forgive_v their_o sin_n how_o great_a soever_o they_o have_v be_v that_o he_o offer_v christ_n unto_o all_o man_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o proclaim_v his_o pardon_n in_o the_o most_o general_a term_n that_o can_v be_v joh._n 3.16_o and_o command_v all_o to_o believe_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o they_o even_o the_o consideration_n of_o this_o general_a love_n to_o all_o that_o live_v in_o the_o church_n be_v a_o most_o strong_a and_o effectual_a argument_n to_o persuade_v a_o man_n to_o forsake_v his_o sin_n and_o turn_v unto_o god_n nay_o till_o a_o man_n can_v be_v persuade_v of_o that_o love_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n he_o can_v never_o have_v a_o heart_n to_o repent_v and_o to_o turn_v unto_o he_o this_o be_v plain_a by_o that_o speech_n of_o the_o evangelicall_n prophet_n isaiah_n 55.7_o let_v the_o wicked_a forsake_v his_o way_n and_o the_o unrighteous_a man_n his_o thought_n and_o let_v he_o return_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n upon_o he_o and_o to_o our_o god_n for_o he_o will_v abundant_o pardon_v have_v these_o promise_n say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 7.1_o and_o what_o promise_n mean_v he_o sure_o those_o mention_v cap._n 6.16.18_o let_v we_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n second_o that_o he_o that_o true_o know_v that_o christ_n love_v he_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o he_o can_v possible_o grow_v licentious_a by_o it_o he_o that_o have_v get_v a_o conceit_n and_o persuasion_n of_o heart_n that_o christ_n die_v for_o he_o only_o out_o of_o a_o carnal_a and_o natural_a knowledge_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v abuse_v this_o persuasion_n i_o grant_v and_o grow_v the_o worse_a by_o it_o such_o a_o one_o i_o know_v may_v turn_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o wantonness_n but_o he_o that_o have_v be_v teach_v this_o of_o god_n and_o bring_v to_o this_o persuasion_n by_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n can_v possible_o abuse_v it_o but_o it_o must_v needs_o mortify_v sin_n in_o he_o see_v a_o plain_a proof_n of_o this_o ephe._n 4.20_o but_o you_o have_v not_o so_o learned_a christ_n so_o he_o mean_v as_o to_o live_v licentious_o still_o what_o follow_v verse_n 21_o if_o so_o be_v that_o you_o have_v hear_v he_o and_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o he_o as_o the_o truth_n be_v in_o jesus_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v many_o live_v in_o the_o church_n and_o make_v a_o profession_n of_o christ_n by_o virtue_n only_o of_o a_o outward_a call_n they_o have_v hear_v and_o be_v teach_v by_o many_o excellent_a minister_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o hear_v they_o have_v attain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o never_o hear_v christ_n himself_o speak_v to_o their_o heart_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n they_o be_v never_o teach_v of_o he_o as_o the_o truth_n be_v in_o jesus_n and_o what_o be_v it_o to_o be_v teach_v by_o he_o as_o the_o truth_n be_v in_o jesus_n to_o know_v christ_n aright_o that_o he_o tell_v verse_n 22._o that_o you_o put_v off_o concern_v the_o former_a conversation_n the_o old_a man_n which_o be_v corrupt_a according_a to_o the_o deceitful_a lust_n the_o man_n that_o
word_n this_o comfortable_a sentence_n verse_n 18._o we_o know_v that_o whosoever_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n sin_v not_o this_o we_o know_v and_o be_v most_o certain_a of_o that_o he_o can_v never_o fall_v into_o that_o sin_n insomuch_o as_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n rom._n 11.11_o may_v be_v true_o say_v of_o every_o elect_a child_n of_o god_n have_v they_o stumble_v that_o they_o shall_v fall_v that_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v fall_v final_o and_o for_o ever_o for_o in_o the_o next_o verse_n 12._o he_o grant_v they_o be_v fall_v god_n forbid_v say_v he_o see_v this_o also_o plain_o teach_v we_o psal._n 15._o where_o the_o prophet_n have_v describe_v the_o upright_a heart_a christian_a by_o sundry_a property_n and_o action_n he_o conclude_v verse_n 5._o he_o that_o do_v these_o thing_n shall_v never_o be_v move_v never_o be_v utter_o and_o final_o overcome_v by_o any_o tentation_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o our_o saviour_n teach_v also_o mat._n 7.24_o 25._o whosoever_o hear_v these_o say_n of_o i_o and_o do_v they_o i_o will_v liken_v he_o unto_o a_o wise_a man_n that_o build_v his_o house_n upon_o a_o rock_n and_o the_o rain_n descend_v and_o the_o flood_n come_v and_o the_o wind_n blue_a and_o beat_v upon_o that_o house_n and_o it_o fall_v not_o because_o it_o be_v build_v upon_o a_o rock_n and_o that_o which_o he_o say_v of_o a_o godly_a life_n he_o say_v matth._n 16.18_o of_o a_o lively_a and_o true_a faith_n also_o thou_o be_v peter_n a_o rock_n impregnable_a who_o satan_n with_o all_o his_o might_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o overcome_v though_o thou_o shall_v fall_v thou_o shall_v not_o fall_v utter_o and_o upon_o this_o rock_n this_o faith_n that_o thou_o have_v make_v confession_n of_o i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n all_o the_o cunning_a all_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o quest._n if_o any_o man_n shall_v ask_v i_o and_o why_o can_v a_o choose_v vessel_n and_o true_a believer_n what_o tentation_n soever_o shall_v assault_v he_o perish_v irrecoverable_o answ._n i_o answer_v there_o be_v two_o pillar_n that_o uphold_v he_o and_o make_v it_o impossible_a for_o he_o to_o fall_v in_o that_o manner_n of_o which_o i_o speak_v the_o last_o day_n 1._o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n 2._o the_o unchangeable_a love_n of_o god_n both_o fit_o typify_v by_o those_o two_o pillar_n we_o read_v of_o 1_o kin_n 7.21_o that_o be_v in_o solomon_n temple_n which_o be_v also_o itself_o a_o type_n of_o the_o church_n and_o people_n of_o god_n the_o one_o be_v call_v jachin_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o will_v establish_v the_o other_o boaz_n in_o he_o be_v strength_n first_o let_v we_o begin_v with_o boaz._n in_o the_o lord_n be_v strength_n enough_o to_o keep_v we_o from_o fall_v total_o or_o final_o upon_o this_o pillar_n our_o saviour_n lie_v this_o doctrine_n john_n 10.28.29_o none_o of_o my_o sheep_n shall_v perish_v my_o father_n which_o give_v they_o i_o be_v great_a than_o all_o and_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o pluck_v they_o out_o of_o my_o father_n hand_n no_o no_o man_n if_o he_o be_v once_o one_o of_o christ_n sheep_n a_o true_a believer_n no_o man_n can_v pluck_v he_o away_o upon_o this_o pillar_n do_v paul_n ground_n his_o confidence_n 2_o tim._n 1.12_o i_o be_o not_o ashamed_a for_o i_o know_v who_o i_o have_v believe_v and_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v that_o which_o i_o have_v commit_v unto_o he_o against_o that_o day_n yea_o upon_o this_o pillar_n he_o ground_v the_o confidence_n even_o of_o the_o weak_a christian_a that_o be_v have_v a_o honest_a heart_n rom._n 14._o for_o speak_v of_o one_o that_o be_v weak_a in_o the_o faith_n verse_n 1._o he_o say_v thus_o of_o he_o verse_n 4._o yea_o he_o shall_v be_v hold_v up_o for_o god_n be_v able_a to_o make_v he_o stand_v now_o for_o the_o second_o pillar_n lachin_n he_o will_v establish_v the_o lord_n not_o only_o have_v strength_n to_o keep_v his_o people_n but_o we_o be_v also_o sure_o he_o will_v establish_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o perish_v this_o pillar_n god_n give_v his_o church_n to_o ground_n and_o build_v upon_o esa._n 54.10_o the_o mountain_n shall_v depart_v and_o the_o hill_n be_v remove_v but_o my_o kindness_n shall_v not_o depart_v from_o thou_o neither_o shall_v the_o covenant_n of_o my_o peace_n be_v remove_v say_v the_o lord_n that_o have_v mercy_n on_o thou_o upon_o this_o pillar_n do_v the_o church_n ground_n her_o confidence_n esa._n 64.5_o behold_v thou_o be_v wroth_a for_o we_o have_v sin_v in_o those_o be_v continuance_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o so_o do_v david_n psalm_n 23.6_o sure_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n shall_v follow_v i_o all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n and_o 48.14_o this_o god_n be_v our_o god_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o he_o will_v be_v our_o guide_n even_o unto_o death_n lecture_n lxxii_o on_o psalm_n 51.5_o octob._n 16._o 1627._o it_o follow_v now_o grace_n that_o we_o proceed_v to_o the_o four_o and_o last_o point_n wherein_o the_o admirable_a goodness_n of_o god_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o original_a sin_n and_o that_o be_v this_o that_o the_o sinfulness_n and_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n be_v so_o great_a as_o it_o be_v it_o shall_v do_v we_o no_o more_o hurt_n than_o it_o do_v and_o sure_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o we_o can_v never_o sufficient_o admire_v that_o we_o not_o only_a slip_n and_o fall_v oft_o into_o many_o actual_a sin_n but_o have_v also_o still_o in_o we_o so_o vile_a a_o nature_n such_o a_o fountain_n of_o corruption_n that_o make_v we_o we_o can_v cease_v from_o sin_n any_o one_o moment_n and_o like_o the_o trouble_a sea_n that_o can_v rest_v it_o be_v the_o prophet_n comparison_n though_o in_o another_o sense_n esa._n 57.20_o be_v ever_o cast_v up_o some_o filthy_a mire_n and_o dirt_n or_o other_o to_o defile_v our_o best_a action_n by_o that_o we_o be_v such_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n shall_v not_o loathe_v and_o abhor_v both_o ourselves_o and_o every_o thing_n that_o proceed_v from_o we_o that_o the_o lord_n shall_v notwithstanding_o all_o this_o have_v so_o gracious_a respect_n unto_o we_o and_o to_o our_o poor_a service_n as_o he_o have_v this_o do_v notable_o set_v forth_o his_o admirable_a goodness_n and_o mercy_n towards_o we_o this_o will_v the_o better_o appear_v unto_o we_o if_o we_o shall_v distinct_o consider_v these_o three_o thing_n 1._o what_o we_o and_o our_o best_a action_n and_o performance_n be_v 2._o what_o the_o lord_n be_v in_o the_o holiness_n of_o his_o own_o nature_n 3._o what_o the_o respect_n be_v that_o the_o lord_n notwithstanding_o do_v show_v to_o we_o and_o to_o the_o service_n we_o do_v unto_o he_o for_o the_o first_o our_o flesh_n and_o corrupt_a nature_n be_v such_o as_o it_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o do_v any_o one_o duty_n in_o that_o manner_n as_o we_o ought_v this_o bless_a paul_n complain_v of_o rom._n 7.18_o to_o will_n be_v present_a with_o i_o this_o be_v doubtless_o the_o speech_n of_o a_o regenerate_a man_n but_o how_o to_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v good_a i_o find_v not_o and_o that_o that_o he_o say_v of_o himself_o there_o he_o say_v of_o all_o the_o faithful_a galat._n 5.17_o you_o can_v do_v the_o thing_n that_o you_o will_v nay_o it_o do_v so_o palpable_o corrupt_a and_o defile_v every_o good_a thing_n we_o desire_v to_o do_v as_o ourselves_o can_v choose_v if_o there_o be_v any_o truth_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o but_o discern_v and_o be_v ashamed_a of_o it_o and_o complain_v of_o it_o also_o as_o the_o church_n do_v esa._n 64.6_o we_o be_v all_o as_o the_o unclean_a man_n the_o leper_n and_o all_o our_o righteousness_n not_o one_o but_o all_o be_v as_o filthy_a rag_n so_o that_o when_o we_o have_v do_v the_o best_a service_n that_o ever_o we_o do_v to_o god_n we_o have_v cause_n to_o cry_v god_n mercy_n for_o it_o and_o to_o pray_v with_o good_a nehemiah_n 13.22_o lord_n pardon_v i_o according_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o thy_o mercy_n and_o if_o we_o as_o blind_a and_o senseless_a and_o full_a of_o self-love_n as_o we_o be_v can_v discern_v so_o much_o filth_n ourselves_o in_o they_o what_o can_v the_o lord_n do_v who_o be_v great_a than_o our_o heart_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o joh._n 3.20_o and_o know_v all_o thing_n for_o the_o second_o point_n the_o lord_n we_o know_v be_v so_o infinite_o holy_a that_o he_o can_v abide_v to_o look_v upon_o he_o can_v but_o detest_v all_o filthiness_n and_o sin_n thou_o be_v of_o pure_a eye_n say_v the_o prophet_n hab._n 1.13_o
then_o to_o behold_v evil_a and_o can_v not_o look_v on_o iniquity_n he_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n clear_v the_o guilty_a as_o the_o lord_n speak_v of_o himself_o exod._n 34.7_o therefore_o shall_v thy_o camp_n be_v holy_a say_v the_o lord_n deuterono_n 23.14_o lest_o he_o see_v any_o unclean_a thing_n in_o thou_o and_o turn_v away_o from_o thou_o now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o three_o point_n i_o tell_v you_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v though_o there_o be_v so_o much_o filthiness_n in_o we_o and_o all_o our_o best_a service_n and_o though_o the_o lord_n do_v so_o loath_a all_o filthiness_n of_o sin_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o loathe_v we_o nor_o our_o service_n but_o have_v great_a respect_n to_o we_o and_o to_o they_o for_o all_o that_o and_o this_o shall_v appear_v unto_o we_o in_o four_o point_n especial_o first_o he_o take_v notice_n of_o all_o the_o good_a thing_n that_o his_o poor_a servant_n do_v and_o will_v not_o forget_v the_o least_o of_o they_o but_o keep_v a_o register_n of_o they_o i_o know_v thy_o work_n and_o thy_o labour_n and_o thy_o patience_n and_o how_o thou_o can_v not_o bear_v they_o which_o be_v evil_a say_v christ_n to_o the_o poor_a angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n rev._n 2.2_o that_o have_v lose_v his_o first_o love_n and_o be_v much_o decay_v and_o fall_v away_o in_o his_o goodness_n there_o be_v not_o any_o patience_n that_o the_o poor_a weak_a christian_n have_v show_v in_o suffer_v aught_o for_o christ_n sake_n not_o any_o pain_n he_o have_v take_v to_o get_v to_o heaven_n not_o any_o zeal_n he_o have_v show_v against_o sin_n but_o the_o lord_n take_v notice_n of_o it_o be_v it_o do_v never_o so_o secret_o act_n 9.11_o yea_o he_o will_v remember_v it_o also_o and_o never_o forget_v it_o david_n know_v this_o and_o therefore_o pray_v psal._n 56.8_o put_v thou_o my_o tear_n into_o thy_o bottle_n be_v they_o not_o in_o thy_o register_n he_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o tear_n we_o shed_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o in_o our_o prayer_n and_o will_v not_o forget_v they_o and_o sure_o this_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a admiration_n and_o so_o david_n conceive_v of_o it_o psal._n 144.3_o lord_n what_o be_v man_n that_o thou_o take_v knowledge_n of_o he_o or_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o thou_o make_v account_v of_o he_o second_o as_o he_o do_v take_v notice_n of_o the_o least_o good_a duty_n we_o do_v in_o love_n and_o obedience_n to_o he_o so_o he_o take_v not_o notice_n of_o nor_o regard_v those_o stain_n and_o spot_n whereby_o the_o best_a service_n of_o his_o child_n be_v defile_v but_o pass_v by_o they_o and_o impute_v they_o not_o unto_o they_o but_o see_v they_o as_o it_o be_v through_o his_o finger_n even_o as_o sundry_a blemish_n that_o be_v in_o our_o child_n as_o a_o mole_n in_o the_o face_n or_o pock_fw-fr hole_n or_o a_o squint_a eye_n which_o to_o another_o man_n seem_v great_a deformity_n to_o we_o seem_v none_o at_o all_o even_o so_o be_v it_o with_o the_o lord_n in_o this_o case_n he_o see_v no_o iniquity_n in_o jacob_n as_o baalam_n himself_o be_v constrain_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n to_o confess_v number_n 23.21_o nor_o transgression_n in_o israel_n he_o do_v not_o for_o these_o spot_n and_o blemish_n that_o be_v in_o our_o service_n we_o do_v unto_o he_o reject_v we_o or_o our_o service_n but_o accept_v of_o they_o and_o take_v they_o in_o good_a part_n as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o spot_n or_o defect_n in_o they_o at_o all_o he_o do_v not_o reject_v the_o service_n that_o rahab_n do_v he_o in_o save_v of_o the_o spy_n though_o she_o have_v blemish_v and_o stain_v it_o with_o a_o lie_n joshua_n 2.4_o 5._o but_o accept_v and_o commend_v it_o hebrew_n 11.31_o the_o prayer_n that_o joshua_n make_v when_o out_o of_o impatiency_n he_o cry_v josh._n 7.7_o will_v to_o god_n we_o have_v be_v content_a and_o dwell_v on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o jordan_n and_o never_o come_v into_o canaan_n the_o lord_n reject_v not_o for_o all_o that_o when_o david_n in_o his_o prayer_n be_v so_o full_a of_o infidelity_n that_o he_o say_v in_o his_o haste_n i_o be_o cut_v off_o from_o before_o thy_o eye_n nevertheless_o say_v he_o psalm_n 31.22_o thou_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o my_o supplication_n when_o i_o cry_v unto_o thou_o and_o at_o another_o time_n when_o he_o be_v in_o that_o distress_n that_o he_o say_v his_o soul_n refuse_v to_o be_v comfort_v he_o remember_v god_n and_o be_v trouble_v and_o his_o spirit_n be_v overwhelm_v as_o he_o say_v psal._n 77.2_o 3._o a_o poor_a prayer_n you_o may_v think_v it_o be_v that_o a_o man_n in_o that_o case_n can_v make_v yet_o do_v not_o god_n reject_v that_o prayer_n that_o be_v so_o foul_o stain_v but_o as_o he_o say_v verse_n 1_o when_o he_o be_v in_o that_o case_n i_o cry_v to_o god_n with_o my_o voice_n even_o to_o god_n with_o my_o voice_n and_o he_o give_v ear_n unto_o i_o when_o moses_n have_v show_v a_o great_a deal_n both_o of_o impatiency_n and_o infidelity_n when_o god_n bid_v he_o only_o speak_v unto_o the_o rock_n before_o the_o people_n as_o you_o shall_v read_v num._n 20.10_o 11._o yet_o do_v not_o god_n reject_v his_o service_n for_o this_o but_o wrought_v with_o he_o and_o show_v his_o marvellous_a power_n even_o in_o that_o work_n nevertheless_o and_o sure_o so_o he_o do_v still_o he_o do_v not_o reject_v our_o prayer_n for_o our_o manifold_a infirmity_n he_o do_v not_o refuse_v to_o work_v with_o and_o bless_v our_o poor_a labour_n that_o be_v his_o minister_n though_o alas_o we_o bewray_v much_o of_o our_o own_o ignorance_n and_o other_o our_o corruption_n in_o they_o when_o we_o preach_v best_a of_o all_o and_o even_o in_o this_o also_o his_o marvellous_a goodness_n and_o mercy_n be_v to_o be_v admire_v by_o we_o which_o make_v the_o church_n break_v forth_o into_o that_o speech_n of_o admiration_n and_o so_o will_v we_o all_o if_o we_o do_v right_o consider_v it_o mic._n 7.18_o who_o be_v a_o god_n like_o unto_o thou_o that_o pardon_v iniquity_n and_o pass_v by_o the_o transgression_n of_o the_o remnant_n of_o his_o heritage_n three_o he_o delight_v in_o we_o and_o in_o our_o poor_a service_n notwithstanding_o all_o these_o corruption_n whereby_o they_o be_v desile_v the_o lord_n take_v pleasure_n in_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o say_v david_n psal._n 147.11_o and_o 149.4_o the_o lord_n take_v pleasure_n in_o his_o people_n if_o you_o will_v obey_v my_o voice_n indeed_o say_v the_o lord_n to_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n exodus_fw-la 19.5_o and_o keep_v my_o covenant_n than_o you_o shall_v be_v pecuculiar_a treasure_n unto_o i_o above_o all_o people_n and_o mala._n 3.17_o they_o shall_v be_v i_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n in_o that_o day_n when_o i_o make_v up_o my_o jewel_n and_o i_o will_v spare_v they_o as_o a_o man_n spare_v his_o own_o son_n that_o serve_v he_o yea_o those_o poor_a duty_n we_o perform_v to_o he_o in_o his_o service_n which_o ourselves_o take_v so_o small_a comfort_n in_o yet_o he_o delight_v in_o they_o he_o delight_v in_o the_o way_n of_o a_o good_a man_n say_v david_n psalm_n 37.23_o and_o solomon_n prov._n 15.8_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o upright_a in_o his_o delight_n thy_o voice_n be_v sweet_a say_v christ_n to_o his_o church_n cant._n 2_o 14_o in_o which_o respect_n he_o compare_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n that_o be_v able_a to_o pray_v revel_v 5_o 8._o unto_o golden_a vial_n full_a of_o sweet_a odour_n and_o the_o faithful_a minister_n be_v say_v by_o the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 2.15_o to_o be_v unto_o god_n a_o sweet_a savour_n of_o christ_n in_o they_o that_o be_v save_v and_o in_o they_o that_o perish_v whether_o the_o people_n receive_v good_a by_o our_o labour_n or_o no._n and_o for_o this_o cause_n also_o he_o desire_v to_o hear_v we_o pray_v to_o see_v we_o keep_v his_o sabbath_n preach_v and_o hear_v his_o word_n give_v alm_n to_o his_o poor_a member_n etc._n etc._n as_o much_o as_o ever_o man_n do_v desire_v any_o thing_n he_o most_o delight_v in_o let_v i_o see_v thy_o countenance_n say_v christ_n to_o his_o church_n cant._n 2.14_o let_v i_o hear_v thy_o voice_n and_o john_n 4.23_o the_o father_n seek_v such_o worshipper_n as_o worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n as_o a_o great_a man_n will_v seek_v far_o and_o near_o for_o a_o faithful_a and_o profitable_a servant_n and_o have_v not_o every_o one_o of_o we_o cause_n to_o wonder_v at_o this_o and_o to_o say_v to_o the_o lord_n as_o john_n baptist_n do_v to_o christ_n matth._n 3.14_o i_o have_v need_n to_o be_v baptize_v of_o thou_o and_o come_v thou_o to_o i_o i_o have_v need_n to_o seek_v to_o
not_o that_o the_o thing_n thou_o look_v after_o in_o all_o the_o work_n of_o man_n in_o all_o the_o service_n they_o do_v unto_o thou_o the_o true_a worshipper_n say_v our_o saviour_n john_n 4_o 23._o shall_v worship_v the_o father_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n for_o the_o father_n seek_v such_o to_o worship_v he_o he_o even_o long_v for_o such_o servant_n as_o will_v worship_v he_o in_o that_o manner_n second_o this_o be_v that_o that_o the_o lord_n delight_v in_o such_o as_o be_v upright_o in_o their_o way_n say_v solomon_n prov._n 11.20_o be_v the_o lord_n delight_n i_o know_v also_o my_o god_n say_v david_n 1_o chron._n 29.17_o that_o thou_o have_v pleasure_n in_o purightnesse_n we_o can_v by_o nothing_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v gratify_v and_o please_v the_o lord_n so_o much_o as_o in_o this_o three_o this_o be_v all_o in_o all_o with_o god_n the_o only_a thing_n that_o he_o require_v of_o we_o let_v our_o heart_n be_v true_a to_o he_o and_o he_o have_v enough_o indeed_o this_o comprehend_v much_o as_o we_o shall_v hear_v and_o where_o this_o be_v nothing_o can_v be_v want_v and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n ask_v no_o more_o but_o this_o this_o be_v all_o that_o god_n require_v of_o abram_n in_o that_o covenant_n that_o he_o make_v with_o he_o genes_n 17.1_o walk_v before_o i_o and_o be_v thou_o upright_o so_o speak_v samuel_n also_o to_o the_o people_n when_o he_o will_v renew_v the_o covenant_n between_o god_n and_o they_o 1_o sam._n 12.24_o only_o fear_v the_o lord_n and_o serve_v he_o in_o truth_n with_o all_o your_o heart_n so_o run_v the_o covenant_n also_o that_o god_n make_v with_o david_n and_o his_o posterity_n 1_o kin._n 2.4_o if_o thy_o child_n take_v heed_n to_o their_o way_n and_o walk_v before_o i_o in_o truth_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o all_o their_o soul_n there_o shall_v not_o fail_v thou_o a_o man_n upon_o the_o throne_n of_o israel_n four_o the_o lord_n value_v and_o esteem_v of_o we_o and_o of_o all_o our_o word_n and_o action_n according_a to_o this_o this_o be_v the_o very_a balance_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n whereby_o he_o weigh_v they_o all_o 1._o thus_o the_o prophet_n describe_v a_o good_a man_n psal._n 125.4_o do_v good_a o_o lord_n to_o those_o that_o be_v good_a who_o be_v they_o and_o to_o they_o that_o be_v upright_o in_o their_o heart_n 2._o a_o little_a grace_n a_o small_a measure_n of_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n the_o mean_a and_o poor_a service_n we_o do_v unto_o god_n be_v of_o a_o great_a price_n and_o worth_a with_o he_o where_o he_o see_v uprightness_n of_o heart_n philadelphia_n be_v say_v revel_v 3.8_o to_o have_v have_v but_o a_o little_a strength_n and_o yet_o of_o all_o the_o church_n christ_n write_v to_o he_o find_v least_o fault_n with_o she_o she_o please_v he_o best_o 3._o nay_o the_o lord_n will_v bear_v with_o many_o frailty_n and_o fault_n where_o he_o see_v there_o be_v truth_n in_o the_o inward_a part_n see_v three_o notable_a example_n of_o this_o 1._o asa_n have_v sundry_a great_a fault_n which_o you_o shall_v see_v record_v 2_o chron._n 16.10.12_o and_o yet_o because_o of_o this_o see_v what_o a_o testimony_n the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v of_o he_o 1_o king_n 15.14_o nevertheless_o asaes_n heart_n be_v perfect_a with_o the_o lord_n all_o his_o day_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v for_o all_o his_o slip_n and_o frailty_n he_o be_v a_o good_a man_n because_o his_o heart_n be_v upright_o 2_o the_o second_o example_n be_v of_o jehoshaphat_n his_o son_n of_o who_o also_o we_o read_v that_o he_o have_v many_o great_a frailty_n he_o make_v a_o league_n of_o great_a amity_n with_o ahab_n 2_o chron._n 18.3_o he_o go_v with_o he_o to_o battle_n against_o ramoth_n gilead_n though_o he_o have_v hear_v what_o micajah_n the_o prophet_n speak_v against_o it_o 2_o chron._n 18.27_o 28._o though_o he_o have_v be_v reprove_v for_o this_o by_o jehu_n the_o prophet_n 2_o chron._n 19.2_o yet_o do_v he_o after_o that_o again_o join_v himself_o in_o special_a league_n with_o ahaziah_n ahab_n son_n a_o most_o wicked_a man_n 2_o chron._n 20.35_o and_o he_o bestow_v his_o son_n jehoram_n in_o marriage_n upon_o ahab_n daughter_n 2_o chron._n 21.6_o and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o god_n account_v he_o a_o good_a man_n all_o his_o day_n 1_o king_n 22.43_o he_o turn_v not_o aside_o from_o do_v that_o which_o be_v right_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o why_o do_v god_n so_o esteem_v of_o he_o sure_o because_o his_o heart_n be_v upright_o with_o god_n for_o say_v the_o prophet_n jehu_n to_o he_o 2_o chron._n 19.3_o nevertheless_o there_o be_v good_a thing_n find_v in_o thou_o in_o that_o thou_o have_v prepare_v thy_o heart_n to_o seek_v god_n and_o as_o it_o be_v say_v 2_o chron._n 17.6_o his_o heart_n be_v lift_v up_o in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o be_v unfeigned_o and_o zealous_o bend_v in_o the_o purpose_n of_o his_o heart_n to_o please_v the_o lord_n 3._o the_o three_o and_o last_o example_n be_v of_o the_o people_n that_o receive_v the_o passover_n in_o hezechiahs_n time_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v 2_o chron._n 30.18_o that_o they_o do_v eat_v it_o otherwise_o then_o it_o be_v write_v they_o swerve_v in_o that_o holy_a service_n from_o the_o express_a direction_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n for_o they_o have_v not_o cleanse_v themselves_o according_a to_o the_o purification_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n they_o come_v not_o so_o prepare_v to_o the_o sacrament_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v and_o yet_o do_v god_n pass_v by_o this_o fault_n and_o impute_v it_o not_o unto_o they_o but_o at_o the_o prayer_n of_o hezekiah_n heal_v and_o forgive_v they_o make_v his_o sacrament_n effectual_a to_o their_o comfort_n for_o all_o that_o and_o why_o so_o the_o reason_n be_v give_v verse_n 19_o they_o have_v prepare_v their_o heart_n to_o seek_v god_n in_o that_o his_o ordinance_n the_o bent_n of_o their_o heart_n be_v upright_o with_o god_n in_o that_o service_n you_o see_v then_o what_o account_n god_n make_v of_o the_o uprightness_n of_o the_o heart_n 4_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o great_a show_n of_o goodness_n that_o can_v be_v in_o a_o man_n the_o best_a work_n he_o can_v do_v be_v of_o no_o worth_n with_o he_o if_o this_o be_v want_v judas_n repent_v confess_v his_o sin_n in_o particular_a and_o make_v restitution_n also_o of_o that_o he_o have_v unjust_o get_v matth._n 27.3_o 4._o and_o all_o to_o no_o purpose_n because_o his_o heart_n be_v rot_v and_o unsound_a the_o pharisee_n lead_v so_o civil_a and_o honest_a a_o life_n that_o he_o justify_v himself_o before_o man_n and_o be_v high_o esteem_v for_o it_o as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v luk._n 16.15_o but_o be_v of_o no_o reckon_n with_o god_n and_o why_o our_o saviour_n tell_v we_o matth._n 23._o ●8_o you_o outward_o appear_v righteous_a to_o man_n but_o within_o you_o be_v full_a of_o hypocr●sie_n and_o iniquity_n the_o people_n in_o ezekiels_n time_n frequent_v his_o ministry_n diligent_o take_v as_o great_a delight_n to_o hear_v he_o as_o as_o ever_o they_o do_v in_o any_o music_n yet_o be_v they_o stark_o naught_o in_o god_n account_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v give_v ezek._n 33.31_o their_o heart_n be_v false_a their_o heart_n go_v after_o their_o covetousness_n jehu_n show_v great_a zeal_n for_o god_n glory_n and_o do_v much_o for_o the_o advancement_n of_o it_o and_o glory_v of_o it_o unto_o good_a jeho●adab_n 2_o king_n 10.16_o come_v with_o i_o say_v he_o and_o see_v my_o zeal_n for_o the_o lord_n and_o yet_o do_v the_o lord_n account_n of_o he_o no_o better_o then_o of_o a_o murderer_n i_o will_v avenge_v say_v he_o hos._n 1.4_o the_o blood_n of_o jezreel_n upon_o the_o house_n of_o jehu_n and_o why_o because_o in_o do_v that_o excellent_a piece_n of_o service_n his_o heart_n be_v not_o right_a as_o you_o shall_v see_v 2_o king_n 10.31_o five_o and_o last_o the_o lord_n so_o high_o esteem_v of_o this_o truth_n of_o heart_n that_o he_o count_v he_o that_o have_v this_o a_o perfect_a man_n a_o righteous_a man_n as_o if_o he_o have_v no_o sin_n no_o defect_n no_o frailty_n in_o he_o at_o all_o for_o in_o the_o phrase_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n a_o upright_a heart_a man_n and_o a_o perfect_a man_n be_v all_o one_o so_o god_n call_v job_n 2.3_o a_o perfect_a and_o a_o upright_a man_n so_o speak_v david_n psal._n 37.37_o mark_v the_o perfect_a man_n and_o behold_v the_o upright_a so_o psal._n 32.11_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n you_o righteous_a why_o who_o can_v say_v he_o be_v righteous_a he_o answer_v in_o the_o next_o word_n shout_n for_o joy_n all_o you_o that_o be_v upright_o in_o heart_n and_o 97.11_o light_n be_v
god_n have_v not_o command_v be_v sudden_o consume_v with_o fire_n from_o heaven_n levit._n 10.1_o 2._o the_o other_o be_v in_o vzzah_n who_o because_o in_o a_o right_n good_a intent_n he_o put_v forth_o his_o hand_n to_o stay_v the_o ark_n from_o fall_v which_o he_o have_v no_o calling_n nor_o warrant_n from_o god_n word_n to_o do_v the_o anger_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v kindle_v against_o he_o and_o strike_v he_o dead_a sudden_o 2_o sam_n 6.6.7_o and_o thus_o have_v we_o see_v what_o be_v the_o rule_n and_o pattern_n of_o all_o true_a righteousness_n and_o that_o nothing_o can_v be_v a_o good_a work_n that_o be_v not_o do_v by_o the_o direction_n of_o god_n word_n which_o be_v the_o first_o general_n poi●t_v i_o propound_v in_o handle_v the_o first_o property_n of_o true_a goodness_n let_v we_o proceed_v now_o to_o the_o second_o of_o they_o that_o the_o cleave_a unto_o the_o word_n and_o follow_v the_o direction_n of_o it_o in_o all_o that_o we_o do_v be_v a_o good_a note_n of_o a_o upright_a heart_n to_o make_v god_n word_n the_o only_a guide_n of_o our_o life_n to_o make_v conscience_n of_o nothing_o as_o in_o itself_o sinful_a or_o holy_a but_o only_a of_o that_o which_o god_n have_v command_v or_o forbid_v in_o his_o word_n be_v a_o singular_a note_n of_o a_o upright_a heart_n see_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o first_o in_o the_o description_n the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v of_o the_o man_n that_o have_v a_o upright_a heart_n psal._n 119.1_o bless_a be_v the_o undefiled_a or_o the_o perfect_a and_o sincere_a in_o the_o way_n yea_o but_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v who_o be_v such_o who_o walk_v in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o be_v the_o note_n to_o know_v they_o by_o so_o verse_n 7._o i_o will_v praise_v thou_o with_o uprightness_n of_o heart_n when_o i_o shall_v have_v learn_v thy_o righteous_a judgement_n and_o psal._n 112.1_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n that_o fear_v the_o lord_n yea_o but_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v he_o that_o delight_v great_o in_o his_o commandment_n that_o be_v the_o way_n to_o know_v who_o true_o fear_v god_n second_o see_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o in_o four_o notable_a example_n 1._o job_n be_v a_o upright_a heart_a man_n job_n 1.1_o yea_o himself_o be_v very_o confident_a of_o the_o uprightness_n of_o his_o heart_n as_o you_o may_v see_v job_n 23.10_o he_o know_v the_o way_n that_o i_o take_v when_o he_o have_v try_v i_o i_o shall_v come_v forth_o like_o gold_n and_o what_o make_v he_o so_o confident_a of_o this_o that_o he_o tell_v you_o in_o the_o next_o word_n verse_n 11_o 12._o my_o foot_n have_v hold_v his_o step_n his_o way_n have_v i_o keep_v and_o not_o decline_v neither_o have_v i_o go_v back_o from_o the_o commandment_n of_o his_o lip_n i_o have_v esteem_v the_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n more_o than_o my_o necessary_a food_n 2._o of_o david_n likewise_o god_n himself_o give_v testimony_n 1_o king_n 9.4_o that_o he_o have_v walk_v before_o he_o in_o integrity_n and_o uprightness_n of_o heart_n but_o how_o do_v that_o appear_v that_o he_o tell_v you_o in_o the_o next_o word_n by_o do_v according_a to_o all_o that_o i_o have_v command_v 3._o of_o jehoshaphat_n god_n give_v testimony_n 2_o chron._n 19.3_o that_o he_o prepare_v his_o heart_n to_o seek_v god_n he_o have_v a_o upright_a heart_n how_o do_v it_o appear_v sure_o when_o he_o show_v most_o frailty_n in_o take_v part_n first_o with_o ahab_n then_o with_o his_o son_n joram_n yet_o even_o then_o the_o uprightness_n of_o his_o heart_n appear_v in_o his_o dependence_n upon_o the_o direction_n of_o god_n word_n and_o the_o high_a account_n he_o make_v of_o it_o 1_o king_n 22.5_o inquire_v i_o pray_v thou_o at_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o to_o ahab_n and_o verse_n 7._o be_v there_o not_o here_o a_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n beside_o that_o we_o may_v inquire_v of_o he_o and_o the_o same_o you_o shall_v see_v note_v of_o he_o also_o when_o he_o go_v with_o joram_n 2_o king_n 3.11_o be_v there_o not_o here_o a_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o we_o may_v inquire_v of_o the_o lord_n by_o he_o and_o when_o he_o hear_v that_o elisha_n be_v there_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v with_o he_o say_v he_o ver_fw-la 12._o so_o he_o and_o by_o his_o mean_n the_o other_o two_o king_n likewise_o send_v not_o for_o the_o prophet_n though_o that_o they_o may_v well_o have_v do_v but_o go_v down_o to_o he_o the_o four_o and_o last_o example_n be_v josiah_n of_o who_o goodness_n the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v honourable_a mention_n even_o after_o his_o death_n 2_o chron._n 35.26_o now_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o act_n of_o josiah_n and_o his_o goodness_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v there_o be_v goodness_n indeed_o and_o truth_n of_o grace_n in_o he_o but_o how_o be_v that_o prove_v according_a to_o all_o that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v the_o text_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v his_o goodness_n appear_v in_o make_v god_n write_v word_n the_o only_a rule_n of_o his_o life_n applic._n now_o let_v we_o make_v some_o application_n of_o all_o this_o that_o we_o have_v hear_v touch_v this_o first_o property_n of_o true_a goodness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o that_o 1_o by_o way_n of_o exhortation_n 2_o by_o way_n of_o trial_n and_o examination_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n for_o the_o first_o if_o this_o be_v so_o that_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o true_a righteousness_n if_o it_o be_v so_o perfect_a a_o rule_n and_o pattern_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v if_o the_o follow_v of_o the_o direction_n of_o it_o in_o all_o thing_n be_v so_o sure_a a_o note_n of_o a_o upright_a heart_n than_o what_o a_o necessity_n be_v there_o lay_v upon_o every_o one_o of_o we_o that_o desire_v to_o please_v god_n to_o exercise_v ourselves_o with_o all_o diligence_n in_o the_o read_n and_o hear_v and_o meditate_v of_o it_o what_o marvel_n be_v it_o though_o not_o only_a king_n and_o magistrate_n deut._n 17.18.19_o josh._n 1.8_o be_v command_v daily_o to_o read_v and_o meditate_v in_o it_o but_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n describe_v the_o bless_a and_o good_a man_n psal._n 1.2_o by_o this_o that_o his_o delight_n be_v in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o it_o he_o do_v meditate_v day_n and_o night_n o_o with_o what_o certainty_n and_o security_n and_o comfort_n may_v we_o walk_v in_o all_o our_o way_n if_o we_o have_v that_o knowledge_n in_o the_o word_n and_o be_v so_o well_o acquaint_v with_o it_o as_o in_o these_o day_n wherein_o we_o live_v and_o under_o such_o mean_n as_o we_o enjoy_v we_o may_v be_v second_o let_v we_o all_o examine_v the_o uprightness_n of_o our_o heart_n by_o this_o note_n 1._o certain_o if_o we_o make_v no_o reckon_n of_o the_o word_n delight_v not_o in_o it_o desire_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o but_o have_v other_o rule_n to_o guide_v our_o life_n and_o conscience_n by_o beside_o the_o word_n how_o much_o devotion_n so_o ever_o seem_v to_o be_v in_o we_o how_o good_a so_o ever_o our_o life_n be_v there_o be_v no_o truth_n nor_o uprightness_n in_o our_o heart_n if_o either_o we_o make_v the_o commandment_n and_o custom_n of_o man_n or_o our_o own_o heart_n and_o good_a meaning_n the_o rule_n of_o our_o spiritual_a life_n or_o if_o we_o make_v conscience_n of_o and_o be_v religious_o strict_a in_o the_o observation_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o god_n in_o his_o word_n have_v give_v we_o no_o direction_n for_o we_o be_v no_o better_a than_o hypocrite_n see_v how_o bitter_a our_o saviour_n be_v against_o the_o pharisee_n for_o the_o great_a conscience_n they_o make_v themselves_o and_o for_o the_o great_a zeal_n they_o show_v in_o press_v other_o to_o the_o observation_n of_o their_o purifying_n as_o a_o point_n of_o holiness_n which_o they_o have_v no_o other_o warrant_n for_o but_o the_o tradition_n of_o their_o elder_n and_o the_o commandment_n of_o man_n mar._n 7.6_o and_o so_o forward_o for_o this_o he_o call_v they_o hypocrite_n and_o say_v they_o do_v worship_n god_n in_o vain_a and_o the_o apostle_n likewise_o against_o such_o as_o do_v forbid_v marriage_n and_o the_o eat_n of_o meat_n that_o god_n word_n do_v allow_v 1_o tim._n 4.1_o 3._o he_o say_v this_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n that_o they_o that_o teach_v it_o teach_v lie_n through_o hypocrisy_n and_o have_v their_o conscience_n sear_v with_o a_o hot_a iron_n mark_v well_o i_o say_v the_o vehemency_n and_o bitterness_n of_o they_o both_o against_o these_o man_n and_o you_o will_v see_v cause_n to_o wonder_v at_o it_o for_o admit_v this_o be_v a_o error_n
love_n and_o mercy_n towards_o man_n aright_o when_o the_o thing_n that_o move_v we_o to_o do_v they_o be_v the_o love_n we_o bear_v unto_o god_n so_o speak_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o work_n of_o mercy_n heb._n 6.10_o god_n be_v not_o unrighteous_a to_o forget_v your_o work_n and_o labour_n of_o love_n which_o you_o have_v show_v towards_o his_o name_n in_o that_o you_o have_v minister_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o do_v minister_v it_o be_v their_o love_n to_o god_n that_o move_v they_o to_o minister_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o such_o work_n of_o mercy_n as_o proceed_v from_o that_o root_n god_n will_v never_o forget_v to_o reward_v so_o speak_v the_o apostle_n john_n likewise_o 1_o john_n 5.2_o by_o this_o we_o know_v we_o love_v the_o child_n of_o god_n when_o we_o love_v god_n before_o we_o can_v love_v the_o child_n of_o god_n we_o must_v first_o love_n god_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n love_v his_o child_n in_o a_o word_n to_o conclude_v the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o first_o branch_n this_o be_v make_v the_o root_n of_o all_o obedience_n in_o general_a to_o any_o commandment_n of_o god_n of_o all_o good_a work_n deut._n 7.9_o he_o keep_v covenant_n and_o mercy_n with_o they_o that_o love_v he_o and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n first_o we_o must_v love_v he_o before_o we_o can_v keep_v any_o of_o his_o commandment_n well_o in_o which_o respect_n the_o apostle_n rom._n 13.10_o call_v love_n the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n he_o that_o have_v not_o this_o love_n can_v keep_v no_o part_n of_o god_n law_n well_o he_o can_v fulfil_v it_o he_o that_o have_v it_o keep_v the_o whole_a law_n yea_o fulfil_v it_o keep_v it_o so_o as_o god_n in_o christ_n accept_v of_o it_o as_o if_o he_o have_v perfect_o keep_v it_o now_o before_o i_o pass_v from_o this_o branch_n object_n a_o objection_n must_v here_o be_v answer_v be_v nothing_o well_o do_v unless_o it_o be_v do_v out_o of_o love_n to_o god_n be_v nothing_o well_o do_v that_o be_v do_v out_o of_o fear_n of_o god_n judgement_n if_o a_o man_n abstain_v from_o sin_n and_o perform_v good_a duty_n out_o of_o fear_n of_o wrath_n even_o out_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o hell_n will_v god_n in_o no_o case_n be_v please_v with_o this_o i_o answer_v 1_o first_o yes_o very_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n wrath_n keep_v job_n from_o sundry_a sin_n it_o keep_v he_o from_o uncleanness_n for_o he_o profess_v job_n 31.1_o that_o he_o dare_v not_o give_v himself_o liberty_n in_o wanton_a look_n nor_o in_o wanton_a thought_n he_o tell_v we_o verse_n 3._o what_o move_v he_o to_o it_o be_v not_o destruction_n say_v he_o to_o the_o wicked_a and_o a_o strange_a punishment_n to_o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n and_o profess_v verse_n 21._o that_o he_o dare_v not_o oppress_v or_o wrong_v any_o poor_a man_n he_o give_v this_o for_o the_o reason_n whereby_o he_o be_v keep_v from_o it_o verse_n 23._o for_o destruction_n from_o god_n be_v a_o terror_n to_o i_o say_v he_o and_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o highness_n i_o can_v not_o endure_v as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v the_o wrath_n and_o fury_n of_o that_o high_a and_o mighty_a god_n and_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o noah_n obedience_n unto_o that_o strange_a commandment_n that_o god_n give_v he_o to_o prepare_v the_o ark_n one_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o year_n before_o the_o flood_n come_v wherein_o doubtless_o he_o make_v himself_o a_o scorn_n and_o laugh_a stock_n to_o all_o that_o know_v he_o tell_v we_o heb._n 11.7_o that_o he_o be_v move_v by_o fear_n to_o do_v it_o and_o the_o same_o apostle_n profess_v of_o himself_o 2_o cor._n 5.11_o that_o he_o have_v not_o be_v so_o diligent_a and_o conscionable_a in_o his_o ministry_n as_o he_o be_v if_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n wrath_n against_o all_o idle_a and_o unconscionable_a and_o unprofitable_a minister_n have_v not_o move_v he_o unto_o it_o know_v say_v he_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o persuade_v man_n so_o that_o it_o be_v certain_o lawful_a and_o please_a unto_o god_n that_o we_o shall_v both_o think_v oft_o of_o god_n wrath_n due_a to_o sin_n yea_o even_o of_o the_o torment_v prepare_v in_o hell_n for_o sinner_n where_o the_o worm_n never_o die_v and_o the_o fire_n never_o go_v out_o and_o to_o abstain_v and_o restrain_v ourselves_o from_o evil_a even_o out_o of_o that_o fear_n nay_o our_o saviour_n command_v we_o so_o to_o do_v luke_n 12.5_o fear_v he_o that_o after_o he_o have_v kill_v and_o take_v away_o your_o life_n have_v power_n to_o cast_v you_o into_o hell_n yea_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o fear_v he_o but_o then_o i_o answer_v second_o 2_o that_o no_o godly_a man_n do_v abstain_v from_o sin_n or_o do_v good_a duty_n only_o out_o of_o this_o fear_n of_o god_n wrath_n but_o out_o of_o the_o love_n he_o bear_v to_o god_n for_o his_o goodness_n as_o well_o nay_o more_o out_o of_o that_o than_o out_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o his_o wrath_n this_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o apostle_n even_o in_o that_o very_a chapter_n 2_o cor._n 5._o wherein_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v he_o profess_v what_o force_n there_o be_v in_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o move_v he_o unto_o his_o duty_n he_o tell_v we_o of_o this_o other_o motive_n verse_n 14._o and_o say_v it_o be_v more_o forcible_a with_o he_o then_o fear_n for_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n constrain_v we_o say_v he_o and_o of_o noah_n it_o be_v say_v heb._n ●1_n 7_o by_o faith_n he_o prepare_v a_o ark_n there_o be_v in_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o godly_a a_o holy_a mixture_n of_o fear_n and_o love_n as_o their_o love_n to_o god_n be_v not_o a_o fellowlike_o familiarity_n as_o be_v among_o equal_n but_o be_v out_o of_o a_o apprehension_n of_o his_o greatness_n and_o holiness_n and_o justice_n temper_v with_o fear_n and_o a_o dreadful_a awe_n of_o he_o so_o neither_o be_v that_o fear_n of_o god_n that_o be_v in_o they_o a_o servile_a fear_n like_o that_o of_o the_o slave_n that_o have_v nothing_o to_o move_v he_o unto_o duty_n but_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o whip_n but_o be_v out_o of_o a_o apprehension_n and_o assurance_n of_o his_o goodness_n mix_v with_o love_n like_o the_o fear_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o every_o good_a child_n towards_o his_o parent_n leu._n 9.3_o you_o shall_v fear_v every_o man_n his_o mother_n and_o his_o father_n yea_o the_o love_n they_o bear_v to_o god_n for_o his_o goodness_n be_v the_o chief_a root_n of_o that_o fear_n they_o have_v of_o he_o according_a to_o that_o hos._n 3.5_o they_o shall_v fear_v the_o lord_n and_o his_o goodness_n in_o the_o latter_a day_n the_o fear_n they_o have_v of_o god_n be_v not_o such_o a_o torment_a fear_n as_o wicked_a man_n have_v but_o there_o be_v joy_n and_o comfort_v mix_v with_o their_o fear_n they_o rejoice_v even_o in_o their_o tremble_n as_o david_n speak_v psal._n 2.11_o yea_o they_o have_v confidence_n in_o their_o fear_n psal._n 56.3_o what_o time_n i_o be_o afraid_a i_o will_v trust_v in_o thou_o the_o fear_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v like_o that_o of_o the_o soldier_n that_o keep_v christ_n sepulchre_n when_o the_o angel_n that_o roll_v away_o the_o stone_n appear_v unto_o they_o for_o fear_v of_o he_o say_v the_o text_n matth._n 28.4_o the_o keeper_n do_v shake_v and_o become_v as_o dead_a man_n they_o have_v no_o comfort_n no_o hope_n but_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v like_o that_o of_o the_o two_o maryes_fw-mi of_o who_o we_o read_v verse_n 8._o that_n when_o they_o have_v both_o see_v the_o angel_n and_o hear_v his_o glorious_a voice_n also_o they_o depart_v from_o the_o sepulchre_n with_o fear_n and_o great_a joy_n and_o thus_o have_v i_o finish_v the_o first_o branch_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o show_v you_o that_o we_o can_v do_v nothing_o well_o we_o can_v please_v god_n in_o any_o thing_n we_o do_v unless_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o love_n we_o bear_v to_o god_n unless_o it_o grow_v from_o that_o root_n cant._n 1.4_o the_o upright_a love_n thou_o 2_o now_o let_v we_o proceed_v unto_o the_o second_o branch_n that_o the_o true_a love_n of_o god_n wheresoever_o it_o be_v be_v a_o infallible_a sign_n of_o a_o true_a and_o upright_a heart_n this_o you_o shall_v hear_v confirm_v unto_o you_o by_o three_o sort_n of_o proof_n first_o this_o be_v oft_o make_v in_o the_o word_n a_o proper_a note_n and_o character_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o upright_o heart_a man_n that_o he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o love_v the_o lord_n yea_o these_o two_o property_n be_v make_v convertible_a term_n every_o good_a man_n every_o upright_a heart_a man_n love_v the_o lord_n cant._n 1.4_o the_o upright_a love_n thou_o and_o every_o one_o
that_o love_v the_o lord_n be_v a_o good_a man_n a_o sound_a elect_a christian_a a_o upright_a heart_a man_n let_v they_o that_o love_v thy_o name_n all_o good_a man_n all_o sound_a heart_a man_n say_v david_n psal._n 5.11_o be_v joyful_a in_o thou_o so_o psal._n 119.132_o look_v thou_o upon_o i_o and_o be_v merciful_a unto_o i_o as_o thou_o use_v to_o do_v to_o those_o that_o love_v thy_o name_n if_o any_o man_n love_n god_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 8.3_o the_o same_o be_v know_v of_o he_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v whatsoever_o man_n may_v think_v of_o such_o howsoever_o man_n may_v account_v many_o of_o such_o to_o be_v no_o better_o than_o hypocrite_n yea_o howsoever_o they_o may_v oft_o time_n think_v so_o of_o themselves_o also_o yet_o god_n approve_v and_o high_o esteem_v of_o they_o second_o all_o god_n promise_n be_v appropriate_v unto_o such_o as_o love_v the_o lord_n and_o therefore_o all_o such_o must_v needs_o be_v upright_o in_o heart_n see_v this_o first_o in_o heavenly_a and_o eternal_a blessing_n james_n 1.12_o he_o shall_v receive_v the_o crown_n of_o li●●_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o and_o 2.5_o have_v not_o god_n choose_v the_o poor_a of_o this_o world_n rich_a in_o faith_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o all_o that_o love_n the_o lord_n shall_v go_v to_o heaven_n and_o none_o but_o they_o see_v this_o second_o in_o spiritual_a blessing_n all_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o gospel_n righteousness_n peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o fatness_n of_o god_n house_n comfort_n in_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n be_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v the_o lord_n and_o to_o none_o but_o they_o 1_o cor._n 2.9_o eye_n have_v not_o see_v ear_n have_v not_o hear_v neither_o have_v enter_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n the_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v prepare_v for_o they_o that_o love_v he_o see_v this_o three_o in_o temporal_a blessing_n because_o he_o have_v set_v his_o love_n upon_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n psal._n 91.14_o therefore_o will_v i_o deliver_v he_o rom._n 8.28_o we_o know_v that_o all_o thing_n work_v together_o for_o the_o good_a of_o such_o as_o love_v god_n they_o that_o love_v god_n may_v be_v sure_a to_o be_v make_v the_o better_a by_o their_o prosperity_n and_o by_o their_o adversity_n by_o their_o sickness_n and_o by_o their_o health_n everything_o that_o befall_v they_o shall_v be_v sanctify_v unto_o they_o and_o to_o none_o but_o such_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o that_o love_v not_o the_o lord_n have_v no_o right_a to_o any_o blessing_n of_o god_n no_o promise_n of_o god_n belong_v unto_o he_o but_o a_o certain_a look_v for_o of_o judgement_n and_o fiery_a indignation_n which_o shall_v devour_v the_o adversary_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v heb._n 10.27_o if_o any_o man_n love_v not_o the_o lord_n jesus_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o corinthian_n 16.22_o let_v he_o be_v anathema_n maranatha_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v even_o unto_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n to_o judgement_n three_o and_o last_o see_v this_o confirm_v by_o a_o practical_a experiment_n when_o peter_n be_v so_o deject_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o fearful_a sin_n that_o he_o think_v himself_o unworthy_a ever_o to_o be_v employ_v or_o to_o meddle_v any_o more_o in_o the_o work_n of_o his_o apostleship_n and_o ministry_n see_v how_o and_o by_o what_o argument_n our_o saviour_n seek_v to_o raise_v he_o and_o comfort_v he_o john_n 21.15_o simon_n thou_o son_n of_o jonas_n love_v thou_o i_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v if_o this_o be_v in_o thou_o be_v of_o good_a comfort_n thou_o be_v not_o quite_o fall_v from_o god_n thy_o heart_n be_v upright_o for_o all_o thy_o fall_n and_o thus_o may_v we_o comfort_v any_o poor_a christian_a in_o their_o great_a distress_n of_o conscience_n you_o see_v then_o that_o that_o we_o do_v out_o of_o true_a love_n to_o god_n will_v give_v we_o a_o comfortable_a testimony_n that_o our_o heart_n be_v upright_o so_o will_v not_o that_o do_v that_o be_v do_v mere_o out_o of_o such_o a_o fear_n of_o god_n wrath_n as_o have_v no_o mixture_n of_o love_n in_o it_o see_v a_o instance_n for_o this_o in_o those_o false_a heart_a jew_n that_o perish_v in_o the_o wilderness_n as_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o set_v down_o psal._n 78.34_o 36_o 37._o when_o he_o slay_v they_o sometime_o by_o fiery_a serpent_n sometime_o by_o strange_a pestilence_n and_o other_o judgement_n than_o they_o seek_v he_o and_o return_v and_o inquire_v early_o after_o god_n they_o make_v great_a show_n of_o repentance_n great_a protestation_n of_o amendment_n as_o you_o have_v know_v many_o lewd_a man_n in_o extreme_a sickness_n do_v but_o what_o come_v all_o these_o show_n unto_o that_o you_o shall_v find_v verse_n 36_o 37._o they_o do_v but_o flatter_v he_o with_o their_o mouth_n and_o they_o lie_v to_o he_o with_o their_o tongue_n for_o their_o heart_n be_v not_o right_a with_o he_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n of_o heart_n in_o those_o show_v of_o repentance_n and_o goodness_n that_o be_v extort_a from_o we_o only_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o sense_n of_o his_o wrath_n that_o grow_v out_o of_o that_o fear_n that_o have_v no_o mixture_n of_o love_n in_o it_o now_o let_v we_o make_v some_o application_n of_o this_o that_o we_o have_v hear_v applic._n and_o see_v whatsoever_o good_a thing_n we_o do_v out_o of_o love_n to_o god_n be_v please_v to_o he_o and_o nothing_o else_o if_o we_o true_o love_v the_o lord_n our_o heart_n be_v upright_o if_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v not_o in_o we_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o our_o heart_n but_o we_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o have_v our_o portion_n with_o hypocrite_n let_v we_o therefore_o try_v our_o own_o heart_n by_o this_o note_n let_v we_o every_o one_o of_o we_o serious_o bethink_v ourselves_o if_o the_o lord_n shall_v speak_v to_o every_o one_o of_o we_o particular_o and_o by_o name_n and_o ask_v we_o that_o question_n that_o he_o do_v peter_n john_n 21.15_o simon_n thou_o son_n of_o jonas_n love_v thou_o i_o what_o answer_v we_o will_v be_v able_a to_o make_v unto_o he_o certain_o your_o answer_n to_o this_o question_n will_v be_v very_o indifferent_a some_o of_o you_o that_o have_v no_o love_n of_o god_n in_o you_o at_o all_o but_o hate_v he_o in_o your_o heart_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o answer_v he_o most_o confident_o and_o some_o other_o of_o you_o that_o do_v indeed_o entire_o and_o unfeigned_o love_v he_o will_v make_v a_o very_a doubtful_a and_o fearful_a answer_n unto_o this_o question_n let_v i_o direct_v my_o speech_n to_o you_o both_o several_o and_o apart_o for_o the_o first_o of_o you_o i_o know_v you_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o say_v be_v there_o any_o man_n so_o ungracious_a so_o lewd_a that_o he_o do_v not_o love_v the_o lord_n that_o he_o do_v hate_v the_o lord_n yes_o yes_o alas_o there_o be_v many_o such_o in_o the_o world_n and_o in_o the_o church_n too_o they_o hate_v the_o lord_n not_o as_o he_o be_v their_o creator_n and_o preserver_n for_o in_o those_o respect_n they_o will_v seem_v to_o love_v he_o but_o as_o he_o be_v a_o lawgiver_n and_o have_v give_v they_o such_o law_n as_o do_v curb_v they_o and_o be_v most_o cross_a and_o contrary_a to_o their_o nature_n as_o he_o be_v their_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o king_n that_o require_v obedience_n of_o they_o unto_o those_o law_n as_o he_o be_v god_n the_o avenger_n as_o the_o prophet_n call_v he_o psal._n 94.1_o that_o will_v take_v vengeance_n of_o they_o for_o their_o sin_n in_o these_o respect_n they_o hate_v he_o his_o citizen_n hate_v he_o say_v our_o saviour_n in_o the_o parable_n luke_n 19.14_o we_o will_v not_o have_v he_o to_o reign_v over_o we_o yea_o they_o hate_v he_o with_o a_o mortal_a hatred_n their_o soul_n abhor_v i_o say_v the_o lord_n zach._n 11.8_o and_o wish_v with_o all_o their_o heart_n as_o to_o their_o most_o mortal_a enemy_n a_o fearful_a thing_n to_o be_v speak_v or_o think_v that_o he_o have_v no_o be_v that_o he_o be_v quite_o rid_v out_o of_o the_o world_n many_o such_o wretch_n i_o say_v there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o even_o in_o the_o church_n too_o and_o if_o thou_o know_v thyself_o well_o thou_o will_v find_v thyself_o to_o be_v of_o that_o wretched_a number_n but_o though_o thou_o know_v not_o thyself_o the_o lord_n know_v thou_o well_o and_o will_v one_o day_n say_v to_o thou_o as_o he_o say_v to_o a_o great_a number_n that_o be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o thou_o be_v professor_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n as_o thou_o
he_o and_o cry_v to_o he_o that_o be_v the_o god_n of_o love_n 2_o cor._n 13.11_o that_o by_o that_o bless_a spirit_n of_o he_o which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o love_n 2_o tim._n 1.7_o he_o will_v give_v thou_o a_o heart_n to_o love_v he_o and_o if_o thou_o can_v seek_v to_o he_o this_o way_n thou_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o despair_v for_o he_o that_o command_v we_o matth._n 5.44_o 45._o love_v your_o enemy_n bless_v they_o that_o curse_v you_o etc._n etc._n will_v doubtless_o love_v thou_o if_o in_o truth_n of_o heart_n thou_o desire_v to_o love_v he_o lecture_n lxxix_o on_o psalm_n 51.6_o january_n 29._o 1627._o now_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o proceed_v unto_o the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o application_n and_o so_o unto_o the_o second_o grace_n whereof_o the_o right_a root_n of_o all_o true_a righteousness_n and_o goodness_n do_v consist_v namely_o a_o lively_a faith_n i_o tell_v you_o the_o last_o day_n that_o if_o god_n shall_v move_v to_o every_o one_o of_o you_o particular_o that_o that_o be_v move_v unto_o peter_n john_n 21.15_o as_o who_o know_v how_o soon_o it_o may_v be_v move_v to_o we_o either_o by_o the_o lord_n himself_o when_o he_o shall_v wrestle_v with_o we_o as_o he_o do_v with_o jacob_n gen._n ●2_n or_o by_o satan_n our_o adversary_n there_o be_v many_o a_o one_o among_o you_o that_o do_v unfeigned_o love_v the_o lord_n will_v make_v a_o very_a doubtful_a and_o fearful_a answer_n unto_o this_o question_n because_o though_o you_o do_v indeed_o love_v he_o yet_o you_o do_v not_o feel_v or_o perceive_v in_o yourselves_o that_o you_o do_v so_o but_o you_o be_v ready_a upon_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o former_a doctrine_n to_o say_v have_v none_o upright_a heart_n but_o such_o only_a as_o do_v love_n the_o lord_n alas_o than_o i_o fear_v i_o be_o no_o better_a than_o a_o hypocrite_n for_o i_o be_o exceed_o subject_a unto_o slavish_a fear_n i_o can_v think_v of_o death_n but_o i_o tremble_v i_o can_v hear_v of_o any_o danger_n of_o a_o invasion_n or_o such_o like_a trouble_n but_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o quake_v for_o fear_n i_o can_v hear_v or_o see_v any_o great_a thunder_n or_o lightning_n but_o i_o be_o exceed_o distemper_v with_o slavish_a fear_n and_o can_v there_o be_v any_o true_a love_n of_o god_n in_o such_o a_o heart_n now_o to_o these_o poor_a soul_n that_o object_n thus_o against_o themselves_o i_o have_v three_o thing_n to_o say_v 1._o thou_o may_v have_v the_o true_a love_n of_o god_n in_o thy_o heart_n though_o thou_o be_v subject_a unto_o these_o fear_n 2._o thou_o have_v in_o thou_o evident_a sign_n that_o thou_o have_v the_o true_a love_n of_o god_n in_o thy_o heart_n though_o thou_o be_v so_o subject_a unto_o these_o fear_n 3._o yet_o thou_o must_v strive_v against_o these_o fear_n and_o labour_n to_o rid_v thy_o heart_n of_o they_o for_o the_o first_o i_o say_v it_o be_v possible_a for_o one_o that_o true_o love_v the_o lord_n and_o that_o have_v a_o upright_a heart_n to_o be_v much_o subject_n to_o these_o fear_n this_o i_o will_v make_v evident_a to_o you_o 1_o by_o some_o instance_n and_o example_n that_o will_v make_v it_o plain_a unto_o you_o that_o it_o may_v be_v so_o 2_o by_o certain_a reason_n that_o will_v show_v you_o why_o it_o may_v be_v and_o be_v so_o for_o example_n we_o read_v job_n be_v subject_a to_o these_o fear_n even_o before_o the_o time_n of_o his_o great_a affliction_n while_o he_o enjoy_v much_o prosperity_n and_o outward_a peace_n for_o whereas_o he_o say_v of_o himself_o job_n 3.26_o that_o in_o those_o day_n i_o be_v not_o in_o peace_n neither_o have_v i_o rest_v neither_o be_v i_o quiet_a he_o tell_v we_o in_o the_o former_a verse_n 25._o that_o it_o be_v fear_v that_o do_v thus_o disquiet_v he_o david_n also_o oft_o complain_v of_o this_o psal._n 119.120_o my_o flesh_n tremble_v for_o fear_n of_o thou_o and_o i_o be_o afraid_a of_o thy_o judgement_n this_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v more_o than_o a_o childlike_a fear_n to_o offend_v god_n that_o he_o can_v not_o see_v nor_o hear_v of_o any_o strange_a judgement_n of_o god_n but_o his_o flesh_n tremble_v at_o it_o and_o psal._n ●●_o 4_o ●_o my_o heart_n be_v ●ore_o pain_v within_o i_o with_o what_o with_o fear_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o next_o word_n and_o the_o terror_n of_o death_n be_v fall_v upon_o i_o fearfulness_n and_o tremble_a be_v come_v upon_o i_o and_o horror_n have_v overwhelm_v i_o what_o poor_a christian_a be_v there_o in_o the_o world_n can_v say_v more_o of_o his_o fear_n and_o yet_o heman_n the_o prophet_n go_v further_a psal._n 88.15_o while_o i_o suffer_v thy_o terror_n i_o be_o distract_v and_o verse_n 16._o thy_o terror_n have_v cut_v i_o off_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v for_o fear_v and_o terror_n i_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v i_o have_v no_o use_n of_o my_o understanding_n i_o be_o become_v even_o as_o a_o dead_a man_n take_v another_o example_n for_o this_o in_o the_o apostle_n paul_n who_o profess_v of_o himself_o 2_o cor._n 7.5_o that_o while_o he_o be_v in_o macedonia_n he_o find_v no_o rest_n in_o his_o flesh_n but_o that_o as_o he_o have_v fight_n without_o much_o opposition_n and_o trouble_n raise_v against_o he_o by_o man_n so_o he_o have_v terror_n within_o certain_o he_o be_v much_o subject_n to_o these_o fear_n we_o speak_v of_o but_o what_o speak_v i_o of_o particular_a example_n this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o most_o christian_n that_o at_o one_o time_n or_o other_o they_o be_v subject_a unto_o they_o yea_o they_o be_v more_o subject_n unto_o they_o a_o great_a deal_n then_o the_o lewd_a man_n be_v who_o have_v much_o more_o just_a cause_n to_o fear_v than_o they_o have_v as_o we_o see_v the_o tree_n that_o have_v life_n and_o sap_n in_o they_o be_v shake_v too_o and_o fro_o with_o the_o wind_n when_o those_o that_o be_v dry_a and_o dead_a be_v not_o move_v at_o all_o but_o strand_n stone-still_a in_o which_o respect_n the_o lord_n speak_v to_o they_o to_o who_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v belong_v call_v they_o esa._n 35.4_o such_o as_o be_v of_o a_o fearful_a heart_n and_o chide_v they_o for_o this_o esa._n 51.13_o thou_o have_v fear_v continual_o every_o day_n because_o of_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o oppressor_n now_o if_o you_o will_v know_v the_o reason_n why_o god_n most_o faithful_a and_o upright-hearted_n servant_n may_v be_v so_o subject_a to_o these_o fear_n and_o why_o they_o be_v so_o i_o find_v two_o principal_a cause_n of_o this_o first_o their_o own_o weakness_n when_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o those_o fear_n he_o be_v subject_a to_o among_o the_o corinthian_n he_o impute_v they_o to_o his_o own_o weakness_n i_o be_v with_o you_o say_v he_o 1_o cor._n 2.3_o in_o weakness_n and_o in_o fear_n and_o in_o much_o tremble_n and_o there_o be_v a_o double_a weakness_n in_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n a_o natural_a weakness_n and_o a_o sinful_a weakness_n and_o so_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a fear_n and_o a_o sinful_a fear_n in_o they_o our_o bless_a saviour_n that_o have_v no_o sin_n in_o he_o yet_o when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o garden_n be_v sore_o afraid_a and_o be_v to_o pray_v dare_v not_o be_v alone_o but_o get_v three_o of_o his_o disciple_n to_o be_v by_o he_o yea_o charge_v they_o to_o keep_v themselves_o awake_a too_o as_o you_o shall_v find_v mar._n 14.32_o 34._o through_o this_o natural_a weakness_n it_o be_v that_o the_o best_a man_n that_o be_v may_v feel_v in_o himself_o some_o fear_n of_o death_n and_o when_o he_o serious_o think_v of_o his_o appear_v before_o god_n or_o when_o the_o lord_n do_v by_o any_o extraordinary_a work_n as_o thunder_a and_o lightning_n and_o earthquake_n etc._n etc._n manifest_a unto_o he_o his_o glorious_a power_n he_o can_v choose_v but_o fear_n and_o tremble_v i_o remember_v god_n and_o be_v trouble_v say_v the_o prophet_n psal._n 77.3_o and_o that_o have_v oft_o be_v the_o case_n of_o many_o a_o good_a soul_n when_o god_n show_v his_o glory_n in_o the_o deliver_n of_o the_o law_n by_o darkness_n and_o tempest_n by_o thunder_n and_o lightning_n it_o be_v say_v by_o the_o apostle_n heb._n 12.21_o that_o the_o sight_n be_v so_o terrible_a that_o moses_n himself_o say_v i_o exceed_o fear_v and_o quake_v yea_o when_o christ_n do_v show_v his_o divine_a and_o glorious_a power_n even_o in_o goodness_n by_o bring_v such_o a_o multitude_n of_o fish_n to_o the_o net_n that_o it_o break_v withal_o it_o be_v say_v luk._n 5.8_o 9_o that_o peter_n be_v so_o astonish_v with_o fear_n that_o he_o fall_v down_o at_o jesus_n knee_n say_v depart_v from_o i_o for_o i_o be_o a_o sinful_a man_n o_o lord_n but_o beside_o
goodness_n thou_o see_v in_o they_o therefore_o thou_o love_v god_n if_o we_o love_v one_o another_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o john_n 4.12_o god_n dwell_v in_o we_o and_o his_o love_n be_v perfect_v in_o we_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o a_o sound_n and_o perfect_a love_n of_o god_n so_o christ_n will_v acknowledge_v at_o the_o last_o day_n that_o the_o love_n that_o be_v show_v to_o the_o least_o of_o his_o brethren_n be_v show_v unto_o he_o matth._n 25.40_o if_o thou_o love_v the_o brethren_n thou_o love_v the_o lord_n six_o and_o last_o thou_o do_v unfeigned_o desire_v to_o love_v the_o lord_n and_o strive_v against_o these_o fear_n that_o trouble_v thou_o and_o will_v feign_v do_v god_n service_n out_o of_o love_n and_o not_o out_o of_o fear_n therefore_o thou_o love_v he_o for_o even_o as_o he_o that_o do_v unfeigned_o desire_v to_o fear_n god_n do_v fear_n god_n neh._n 1.11_o and_o he_o that_o mourn_v for_o his_o infidelity_n and_o strive_v against_o it_o have_v true_a faith_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o that_o example_n of_o the_o poor_a man_n mention_v mar._n 9.24_o so_o have_v he_o the_o true_a love_n of_o god_n in_o his_o heart_n that_o do_v unfeigned_o desire_v to_o love_v the_o lord_n but_o how_o can_v this_o be_v object_n will_v you_o say_v can_v i_o be_v so_o afrray_v of_o god_n as_o i_o be_o if_o i_o do_v true_o love_v he_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v so_o afraid_a of_o he_o who_o he_o do_v love_v do_v not_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o john_n 4.18_o that_o there_o be_v no_o fear_n in_o love_n but_o perfect_a love_n cast_v out_o fear_n i_o answer_v answ._n 1._o it_o be_v true_a that_o in_o love_n there_o be_v no_o such_o fear_n nothing_o be_v more_o contrary_a unto_o the_o nature_n of_o love_n than_o these_o fear_n be_v but_o in_o the_o person_n that_o have_v true_a love_n these_o fear_n may_v be_v as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o infidelity_n or_o doubt_v of_o god_n favour_n in_o faith_n nothing_o more_o contrary_a unto_o faith_n then_o doubt_v and_o infidelity_n yet_o in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o true_a believer_n there_o may_v be_v much_o infidelity_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v out_o of_o mar._n 9.24_o 2._o perfect_a love_n will_v cast_v out_o all_o these_o fear_n and_o the_o perfect_a our_o love_n to_o god_n be_v the_o more_o it_o will_v cast_v out_o these_o fear_n and_o deliver_v we_o from_o they_o but_o the_o love_n of_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n be_v imperfect_a and_o will_v be_v till_o we_o come_v to_o heaven_n for_o there_o and_o there_o only_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o just_a man_n make_v perfect_a as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v heb._n 12.23_o the_o three_o and_o last_o thing_n i_o have_v to_o say_v unto_o these_o poor_a soul_n that_o be_v so_o much_o disquiet_v with_o fear_n be_v this_o they_o must_v strive_v against_o these_o fear_n and_o labour_n to_o rid_v their_o heart_n of_o they_o as_o david_n do_v psal._n 56.3_o what_o time_n i_o be_o afraid_a i_o will_v trust_v in_o thou_o for_o 1_o a_o tremble_a heart_n be_v in_o itself_o a_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o part_n of_o that_o curse_n that_o god_n have_v threaten_v in_o his_o law_n against_o sin_n as_o you_o shall_v find_v deut._n 28.65_o and_o job_n 18.11_o terror_n shall_v make_v he_o afraid_a on_o every_o side_n yea_o it_o be_v the_o great_a tormentor_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o enemy_n to_o the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o it_o that_o can_v be_v fear_n have_v torment_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o john_n 4.18_o he_o that_o be_v afraid_a to_o die_v must_v needs_o live_v in_o continual_a and_o extreme_a bondage_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v heb._n 2.15_o 2._o it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o judgement_n but_o a_o sin_n also_o for_o it_o be_v oft_o forbid_a and_o condemn_v in_o the_o word_n esa_n 8.12_o fear_v not_o their_o fear_n nor_o be_v afraid_a and_o matth._n 8.26_o why_o be_v you_o fearful_a o_o you_o of_o little_a faith_n yea_o it_o be_v a_o cause_n of_o many_o other_o sin_n the_o fear_n of_o man_n bring_v a_o snare_n say_v solomon_n pro._n 29.25_o 1._o it_o make_v a_o man_n apt_a to_o hide_v himself_o from_o god_n and_o run_v away_o from_o he_o i_o be_v afraid_a say_v adam_n gen._n 3.10_o because_o i_o be_v naked_a and_o i_o hide_v myself_o 2._o it_o make_v a_o man_n unprofitable_a and_o heartless_a to_o every_o good_a duty_n i_o be_v afraid_a say_v the_o unprofitable_a servant_n matth._n 25.25_o and_o go_v and_o hide_v thy_o talon_n in_o the_o earth_n 3._o it_o keep_v a_o man_n from_o love_a god_n as_o he_o shall_v the_o more_o servile_a fear_n of_o god_n be_v in_o the_o heart_n the_o less_o love_n of_o god_n must_v needs_o be_v in_o it_o these_o be_v so_o contrary_a that_o they_o do_v mutual_o diminish_v and_o expel_v one_o another_o as_o the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v we_o 1_o john_n 4.18_o object_n all_o this_o be_v true_a will_v you_o say_v but_o by_o what_o mean_n may_v i_o rid_v my_o heart_n of_o this_o servile_a fear_n answ._n i_o answer_v these_o be_v the_o mean_n first_o consider_v wherein_o thou_o have_v offend_v he_o and_o seek_v peace_n with_o he_o seek_v his_o favour_n see_v thou_o can_v not_o flee_v nor_o hide_v thyself_o from_o he_o it_o be_v the_o course_n solomon_n will_v have_v we_o take_v when_o a_o great_a man_n be_v offend_v with_o we_o eccle._n 8.3_o be_v not_o hasty_a to_o go_v out_o of_o his_o sight_n it_o be_v good_a for_o i_o say_v david_n psal._n 73.28_o to_o draw_v near_o unto_o god_n to_o get_v within_o he_o when_o he_o be_v most_o angry_a and_o to_o fall_v down_o at_o his_o foot_n if_o thou_o return_v to_o the_o almighty_a say_v eliphaz_n joh_n 22.23.26_o then_o shall_v thou_o have_v thy_o delight_n in_o the_o almighty_a and_o shall_v lift_v up_o thy_o face_n unto_o god_n second_o nourish_v in_o thy_o heart_n a_o childlike_a fear_n to_o offend_v god_n and_o it_o will_v banish_v out_o of_o it_o these_o slavish_a fear_n fear_v not_o their_o fear_n nor_o be_v afraid_a say_v the_o lord_n esa._n 8.12_o 13_o alas_o how_o shall_v we_o help_v that_o may_v they_o say_v he_o answer_v sanctify_v the_o lord_n of_o ●osts_n himself_o and_o let_v he_o be_v your_o fear_n and_o let_v he_o be_v your_o dread_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v solomon_n pro._n 14.26_o be_v strong_a confidence_n three_o pray_v earnest_o unto_o god_n against_o these_o fear_n this_o be_v david_n practice_n psal._n 34.4_o i_o seek_v the_o lord_n and_o he_o hear_v i_o and_o deliver_v i_o from_o all_o my_o fear_n pray_v as_o jer._n 17.17_o be_v not_o thou_o a_o terror_n unto_o i_o thou_o be_v my_o hope_n in_o the_o day_n of_o evil_a as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v if_o i_o be_v afraid_a of_o thou_o what_o hope_n can_v i_o have_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n four_o frequent_a god_n sanctuary_n and_o in_o his_o ordinance_n there_o behold_v oft_o and_o meditate_v of_o the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n how_o amiable_a he_o be_v and_o worthy_a to_o be_v love_v one_o thing_n have_v i_o desire_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o will_v i_o seek_v after_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n to_o behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v david_n psal._n 27.4_o five_o seek_v assurance_n by_o faith_n that_o christ_n be_v thou_o and_o give_v thyself_o no_o rest_n till_o thou_o can_v be_v able_a to_o say_v as_o psal._n 48.14_o this_o god_n be_v my_o god_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o he_o will_v be_v my_o guide_n even_o unto_o death_n in_o he_o say_v the_o apostle_n ephes._n 3.12_o we_o have_v boldness_n and_o access_n with_o confidence_n by_o faith_n in_o he_o six_o and_o last_o acquaint_v thyself_o with_o the_o promise_v god_n have_v so_o oft_o make_v his_o people_n to_o free_v they_o from_o these_o fear_n job_n 11.15_o thou_o shall_v lift_v up_o thy_o face_n without_o spot_n yea_o thou_o shall_v be_v steadfast_a and_o shall_v not_o fear_v psal._n 112.7_o 8._o he_o shall_v not_o be_v afraid_a of_o evil_a riding_n his_o heart_n be_v fix_v his_o heart_n be_v establish_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v afraid_a and_o pro._n 1.33_o who_o so_o hearken_v unto_o i_o shall_v dwell_v safe_o and_o shall_v be_v quiet_a from_o fear_n of_o evil_a these_o and_o such_o promise_n thou_o shall_v by_o faith_n give_v undoubted_a credit_n unto_o and_o apply_v they_o to_o thyself_o and_o rest_n upon_o they_o and_o make_v claim_v and_o challenge_v unto_o they_o remember_v how_o able_a the_o lord_n be_v to_o perform_v they_o how_o faithful_a also_o and_o true_a of_o his_o word_n lecture_n lxxx_o on_o psalm_n 51.6_o february_n 5._o 1627._o it_o follow_v now_o that_o
we_o say_v paul_n rom._n 8.31_o who_o can_v be_v against_o we_o to_o hurt_v we_o he_o mean_v the_o lord_n be_v my_o light_n and_o my_o salvation_n say_v david_n psalm_n 27.1_o who_o shall_v i_o fear_v and_o 49.5_o wherefore_o shall_v i_o fear_v in_o the_o day_n of_o evil_a when_o the_o iniquity_n of_o my_o heel_n shall_v compass_v i_o about_o why_o david_n what_o make_v thou_o so_o secure_a in_o the_o midst_n of_o danger_n he_o tell_v you_o verse_n 15._o god_n will_v redeem_v my_o soul_n from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o grave_n for_o he_o shall_v receive_v i_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o that_o doubt_v of_o god_n love_n to_o he_o in_o christ_n must_v needs_o be_v vex_v with_o continual_a fear_n fear_v of_o death_n and_o fear_v of_o trouble_n it_o be_v christ_n only_o say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n 2.15_o that_o deliver_v they_o who_o through_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n be_v all_o their_o life_n time_n subject_a to_o bondage_n three_o 3_o this_o bring_v with_o it_o unto_o we_o all_o good_a thing_n seek_v you_o first_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o his_o righteousness_n say_v our_o saviour_n matth._n 6.33_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v make_v your_o salvation_n sure_a make_v this_o sure_a unto_o yourselves_o that_o god_n be_v reconcile_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o be_v in_o his_o favour_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v add_v unto_o you_o o_o that_o man_n can_v believe_v christ_n in_o this_o that_o this_o be_v the_o best_a way_n to_o be_v certain_a of_o all_o earthly_a comfort_n so_o far_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v good_a for_o we_o he_o that_o spare_v not_o his_o own_o son_n say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 8.32_o but_o deliver_v he_o up_o for_o we_o all_o how_o shall_v he_o not_o with_o he_o also_o free_o give_v we_o all_o thing_n yea_o this_o sweeten_v all_o god_n blessing_n to_o we_o and_o give_v a_o pleasant_a relish_n unto_o they_o when_o we_o can_v taste_v in_o they_o god_n love_n unto_o we_o in_o christ._n when_o job_n speak_v job_n 29.1_o 7._o of_o the_o comfort_n he_o take_v in_o all_o god_n blessing_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o prosperity_n in_o his_o child_n and_o riches_n in_o that_o honour_n and_o esteem_n god_n give_v he_o among_o all_o man_n he_o give_v this_o for_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o verse_n 3_o his_o candle_n his_o light_n the_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o his_o savour_n shine_v upon_o my_o head_n yea_o this_o will_v not_o only_o sustain_v and_o keep_v we_o from_o faint_v in_o time_n of_o common_a trouble_n and_o calamity_n as_o job_n say_v there_o job_n 29.3_o by_o his_o light_n i_o walk_v through_o darkness_n while_o the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n shine_v upon_o i_o i_o can_v walk_v cheerful_o in_o the_o dark_a and_o sad_a time_n but_o it_o will_v also_o sweeten_v the_o bitter_a affliction_n that_o can_v befall_v ourselves_o in_o particular_a when_o we_o know_v they_o be_v but_o the_o chastisement_n of_o our_o father_n that_o love_v we_o dear_o though_o he_o thus_o correct_v we_o the_o cup_n which_o my_o father_n have_v give_v i_o say_v our_o saviour_n john_n 18.11_o shall_v i_o not_o drink_v it_o all_o hope_v of_o deliverance_n and_o comfort_n in_o danger_n and_o distress_n grow_v from_o the_o assurance_n of_o god_n favour_n upon_o this_o david_n ground_v his_o hope_n psal._n 42.5_o why_o be_v thou_o cast_v down_o o_o my_o soul_n etc._n etc._n hope_v thou_o in_o god_n for_o i_o shall_v yet_o praise_v he_o for_o the_o help_n of_o his_o countenance_n to_o this_o he_o ascribe_v all_o the_o deliverance_n the_o church_n have_v receive_v from_o the_o lord_n right_a hand_n psalm_n 44.3_o they_o get_v not_o the_o land_n in_o possession_n by_o their_o own_o sword_n neither_o do_v their_o own_o arm_n save_o they_o but_o thy_o right_a hand_n and_o thy_o arm_n and_o the_o light_n of_o thy_o countenance_n because_o thou_o have_v a_o favour_n unto_o they_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 15.56_o and_o if_o of_o death_n then_o of_o all_o other_o affliction_n sure_a be_v sin_n and_o if_o the_o sting_n of_o they_o be_v once_o go_v certain_o there_o can_v be_v no_o deadly_a pain_n in_o they_o and_o thus_o christ_n comfort_v a_o poor_a man_n that_o be_v sick_a of_o a_o dead_a palsy_n a_o disease_n that_o dull_v the_o spirit_n and_o make_v the_o heart_n as_o heavy_a as_o any_o disease_n can_v matth._n 9.2_o son_n be_v of_o good_a cheer_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o that_o doubt_v of_o god_n love_n to_o he_o in_o christ_n what_o comfort_n can_v he_o have_v in_o life_n or_o in_o death_n in_o prosperity_n or_o in_o adversity_n special_o if_o god_n shall_v be_v please_v to_o awaken_v his_o conscience_n what_o sweetness_n can_v a_o man_n find_v in_o all_o his_o wealth_n or_o pleasure_n or_o good_a cheer_n when_o it_o have_v this_o bitter_a tang_n and_o loose_v with_o it_o that_o his_o heart_n shall_v say_v to_o he_o i_o may_v be_v a_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n for_o all_o that_o alas_o cain_n have_v as_o much_o as_o all_o this_o come_v to_o and_o esau_n and_o dives_n who_o be_v all_o now_o firebrand_n in_o hell_n must_v not_o the_o joy_n that_o all_o such_o man_n seem_v to_o take_v in_o their_o prosperity_n be_v such_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o 2_o cor._n 5.12_o in_o the_o face_n only_o and_o not_o in_o the_o heart_n and_o if_o this_o be_v their_o condition_n in_o their_o great_a prosperity_n than_o what_o comfort_n can_v they_o have_v in_o their_o affliction_n and_o in_o their_o death_n think_v you_o what_o be_v the_o hope_n of_o the_o hypocrite_n say_v job_n 27.8_o though_o he_o have_v gain_v when_o god_n take_v away_o his_o soul_n 4._o four_o if_o we_o be_v once_o assure_v of_o god_n special_a love_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n this_o will_v make_v we_o yield_v obedience_n unto_o god_n and_o do_v his_o service_n not_o grudge_o or_o as_o of_o necessity_n but_o as_o out_o of_o love_n and_o willing_o and_o cheerful_o for_o a_o good_a man_n a_o bountiful_a a_o kind_a man_n say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 5.7_o some_o will_v even_o dare_v to_o die_v and_o if_o the_o goodness_n and_o bounty_n of_o a_o man_n have_v such_o force_n with_o we_o that_o we_o think_v we_o can_v never_o do_v too_o much_o for_o he_o will_v not_o the_o assurance_n of_o this_o marvellous_a bounty_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n make_v we_o to_o say_v with_o david_n psal._n 116.12_o what_o shall_v i_o render_v unto_o the_o lord_n for_o all_o his_o benefit_n towards_o i_o what_o may_v i_o do_v to_o please_v and_o honour_v he_o that_o have_v so_o dear_o love_v i_o this_o will_v make_v we_o pray_v with_o boldness_n and_o zeal_n o_o god_n thou_o be_v my_o god_n say_v david_n psal._n 63.1_o early_a will_n i_o seek_v thou_o when_o our_o saviour_n teach_v his_o disciple_n and_o in_o they_o we_o all_o to_o pray_v matth._n 6.9_o he_o bid_v we_o begin_v thus_o our_o father_n which_o art_n in_o heaven_n till_o our_o heart_n do_v thus_o conceive_v of_o god_n that_o he_o be_v our_o father_n that_o he_o love_v we_o with_o a_o fatherly_a love_n we_o can_v never_o pray_v aright_o we_o may_v say_v a_o prayer_n and_o that_o be_v all_o that_o the_o most_o of_o we_o do_v but_o we_o can_v never_o pray_v with_o our_o heart_n till_o then_o therefore_o also_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o rom._n 8.15_o 16._o that_o the_o spirit_n that_o make_v we_o able_a to_o cry_v in_o our_o prayer_n unto_o god_n that_o be_v to_o pray_v fervent_o and_o earnest_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n that_o spirit_n which_o witness_v with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n and_o daughter_n of_o god_n that_o assure_v we_o god_n be_v our_o father_n and_o make_v we_o able_a to_o call_v he_o father_n yea_o to_o cry_n to_o he_o abba_n father_n and_o as_o this_o will_v make_v we_o able_a to_o pray_v with_o comfort_n so_o will_v this_o also_o make_v we_o able_a to_o hear_v and_o read_v and_o meditate_v in_o the_o word_n with_o cheerfulness_n and_o a_o good_a appetite_n as_o new_o bear_v babe_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o pet._n 2.2_o 3._o desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n if_o so_o be_v that_o you_o have_v taste_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v gracious_a this_o will_v make_v we_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n even_o whole_a sabbath_n without_o wearisomenesse_n you_o shall_v keep_v every_o man_n my_o sabbath_n say_v the_o lord_n levit._n 19.3_o why_o so_o what_o may_v move_v we_o to_o do_v this_o willing_o and_o cheerful_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n say_v he_o in_o a_o word_n this_o will_v make_v we_o walk_v cheerful_o in_o every_o duty_n of_o obedience_n in_o every_o way_n of_o
spirit_n say_v the_o apostle_n gal._n 5.17_o and_o the_o spirit_n against_o the_o flesh_n and_o these_o be_v contrary_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o thou_o hearty_o dislike_v and_o checke_v thyself_o for_o the_o corruption_n thou_o find_v in_o thy_o thought_n in_o thy_o memory_n in_o thy_o affection_n in_o thy_o eye_n and_o ear_n and_o in_o every_o other_o part_n and_o whence_o come_v this_o but_o from_o sanctify_a grace_n 2._o thou_o mourn_v and_o be_v unfeigned_o grieve_v for_o any_o corruption_n any_o untowardness_n to_o that_o that_o be_v good_a which_o thou_o find_v in_o any_o part_n and_o can_v say_v with_o paul_n rom._n 7.24_o o_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o can_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n 3._o thou_o do_v unfeigned_o desire_v &_o endeavour_v to_o be_v rid_v of_o that_o corruption_n that_o be_v in_o any_o faculty_n of_o thy_o soul_n and_o part_n of_o thy_o body_n to_o offer_v thyself_o unto_o god_n as_o a_o holocaust_n a_o whole_a burn_a sacrifice_n to_o be_v sanctify_v throughout_o and_o can_v say_v with_o david_n psal._n 103.1_o bless_v the_o lord_n o_o my_o soul_n and_o all_o that_o be_v within_o i_o understanding_n memory_n conscience_n will_n affection_n bless_v his_o holy_a name_n and_o certain_o that_o man_n that_o can_v thus_o unfeigned_o desire_v and_o endeavour_v to_o have_v better_a thought_n a_o better_a memory_n a_o better_a conscience_n a_o better_a will_n better_a affection_n a_o better_a tongue_n a_o better_a eye_n and_o a_o better_a ear_n have_v grace_n in_o all_o these_o part_n and_o be_v in_o some_o measure_n sanctify_v in_o they_o all_o let_v we_o now_o make_v some_o application_n of_o this_o point_n applic._n for_o the_o trial_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n whither_o they_o be_v upright_o or_o no_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o truth_n of_o save_a grace_n in_o they_o that_o truth_n in_o the_o inward_a part_n that_o david_n here_o speak_v of_o and_o which_o the_o lord_n take_v so_o great_a delight_n in_o and_o certain_o it_o will_v appear_v by_o this_o doctrine_n that_o many_o that_o glory_n much_o in_o the_o uprightness_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n have_v no_o truth_n of_o grace_n in_o they_o because_o the_o grace_n they_o pretend_v to_o have_v be_v not_o total_a but_o partial_a it_o go_v not_o through_o the_o whole_a man_n two_o sort_n there_o be_v especial_o that_o be_v discover_v to_o be_v void_a of_o truth_n in_o their_o heart_n by_o this_o doctrine_n first_o many_o there_o be_v that_o persuade_v themselves_o they_o have_v good_a heart_n and_o truth_n of_o grace_n in_o they_o and_o yet_o no_o such_o thing_n appear_v in_o their_o outward_a man_n such_o liberty_n they_o give_v to_o themselves_o in_o their_o speech_n and_o in_o all_o their_o outward_a behaviour_n that_o all_o man_n that_o see_v they_o must_v needs_o judge_v they_o void_a of_o grace_n 2._o yea_o they_o persuade_v themselves_o it_o be_v utter_o needless_a to_o restrain_v themselves_o of_o any_o liberty_n that_o way_n or_o to_o regard_v what_o they_o be_v in_o the_o view_n and_o judgement_n of_o man_n do_v not_o the_o apostle_n say_v they_o profess_v 1_o corinth_n 4.3_o he_o pass_v very_o little_a for_o the_o judgement_n and_o censure_n of_o man_n god_n say_v 1._o sam._n 16.7_o he_o look_v not_o to_o the_o outward_a appearance_n man_n make_v but_o to_o the_o heart_n 3._o nay_o they_o shun_v all_o outward_a show_n of_o goodness_n special_o of_o strictness_n in_o religion_n and_o purposely_o desire_v to_o carry_v themselves_o so_o in_o their_o company_n and_o speech_n and_o attire_n and_o behaviour_n every_o way_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v think_v to_o be_v too_o religious_a because_o they_o see_v that_o be_v so_o odious_a a_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n concern_v this_o sect_n say_v the_o jew_n to_o paul_n act._n 28.22_o we_o know_v that_o every_o where_o it_o be_v speak_v against_o 4._o yea_o they_o hate_v those_o that_o be_v of_o any_o north_n for_o more_o forwardness_n in_o religion_n then_o be_v in_o other_o man_n and_o confident_o pronounce_v of_o they_o as_o their_o father_n the_o devil_n do_v of_o job_n 1.9_o 10._o that_o they_o be_v all_o hypocrite_n they_o can_v abide_v to_o make_v show_n of_o more_o goodness_n than_o be_v in_o they_o indeed_o they_o hate_v hypocrisy_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n to_o these_o man_n i_o have_v two_o thing_n to_o say_v first_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o such_o a_o one_o as_o thou_o be_v to_o have_v a_o good_a heart_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o possible_a that_o that_o shall_v save_v thou_o for_o 1._o thou_o be_v bind_v to_o reform_v thy_o outward_a man_n as_o well_o as_o thy_o inward_a to_o cleanse_v thyself_o from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o the_o flesh_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o spirit_n 2_o cor_fw-la 7.1_o to_o glorify_v god_n in_o thy_o body_n as_o well_o as_o in_o thy_o spirit_n for_o both_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o both_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o price_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o cor._n 6.20_o yea_o thou_o shall_v be_v judge_v at_o the_o last_o day_n not_o so_o much_o according_a to_o that_o that_o have_v be_v in_o thy_o heart_n as_o according_a to_o that_o that_o thou_o have_v do_v in_o thy_o body_n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n teach_v plain_o 2_o cor_fw-la 5.10_o we_o must_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n that_o every_o one_o may_v receive_v the_o thing_n do_v in_o his_o body_n yea_o god_n have_v prepare_v torment_n in_o hell_n for_o every_o member_n of_o thy_o body_n whereby_o thou_o have_v dishonour_v he_o the_o rich_a glutton_n tongue_n the_o member_n that_o none_o abuse_v more_o than_o your_o drunkard_n and_o glutton_n we_o read_v luke_n 16.24_o be_v torment_v in_o hell_n fire_n and_o 2._o whereas_o thou_o glory_v that_o thou_o be_v no_o hyprocite_v i_o assure_v thou_o that_o as_o thy_o sin_n be_v great_a than_o the_o hyprocrite_n and_o god_n more_o dishonour_v by_o it_o so_o shall_v thy_o portion_n be_v more_o deep_a in_o hell_n than_o he_o they_o declare_v their_o sin_n as_o sodom_n say_v the_o prophet_n isaiah_n 3_o 9_o they_o care_v not_o who_o hear_v they_o blaspheme_v and_o scorn_v religion_n they_o care_v not_o who_o know_v they_o be_v drink_v they_o hide_v it_o not_o woe_n unto_o their_o soul_n 3._o if_o ever_o thou_o will_v be_v save_v thou_o must_v live_v so_o as_o man_n may_v be_v witness_n of_o thy_o goodness_n and_o those_o place_n that_o thou_o alleadg_a out_o of_o 1_o sam._n 16.7_o and_o 1_o cor_fw-la 4.3_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v simple_o but_o comparative_o only_a let_v your_o light_n so_o shine_v before_o man_n say_v our_o saviour_n matth._n 5.16_o that_o they_o may_v see_v your_o good_a work_n with_o the_o heart_n man_n believe_v unto_o righteousness_n say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 10.10_o and_o with_o the_o mouth_n confession_n be_v make_v unto_o salvation_n no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n without_o a_o open_a profession_n of_o religion_n and_o thus_o the_o faithful_a be_v bring_v in_o by_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n 44.5_o glory_v in_o the_o open_a profession_n of_o their_o religion_n one_o shall_v say_v i_o be_o the_o lord_n another_o shall_v call_v himself_o by_o the_o name_n of_o jacob_n and_o another_o shall_v subscribe_v with_o his_o hand_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o surname_n himself_o by_o the_o name_n of_o israel_n and_o he_o that_o be_v ashamed_a to_o profess_v religion_n even_o in_o the_o strict_a manner_n so_o that_o the_o strictness_n be_v no_o other_o than_o such_o as_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o upon_o the_o fancy_n of_o man_n certain_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n to_o be_v save_v for_o so_o say_v our_o bless_a saviour_n that_o amen_n that_o faithful_a and_o true_a witness_n rev._n 3.14_o mar._n 8.38_o whosoever_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o i_o and_o of_o my_o word_n in_o this_o adulterous_a and_o sinful_a generation_n of_o he_o also_o shall_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v ashamed_a when_o he_o come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o thing_n i_o have_v to_o say_v to_o these_o kind_n of_o man_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o such_o as_o they_o be_v to_o have_v good_a heart_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o possible_a for_o they_o to_o be_v save_v for_o all_o that_o but_o the_o second_o thing_n i_o have_v to_o say_v to_o they_o be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a there_o shall_v be_v any_o truth_n of_o grace_n any_o religion_n in_o thy_o heart_n when_o thy_o outward_a man_n thy_o word_n and_o work_n be_v so_o unreformed_a and_o irreligious_a as_o they_o be_v but_o for_o this_o i_o shall_v need_v to_o say_v no_o more_o than_o i_o have_v already_o say_v in_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o doctrine_n the_o second_o sort_n
tim._n 1.6_o 2._o second_o every_o regenerate_a man_n be_v of_o himself_o exceed_v prone_a thus_o to_o quench_v the_o spirit_n and_o to_o fall_v from_o grace_n and_o it_o be_v the_o wonderful_a mercy_n and_o power_n of_o god_n only_o that_o do_v keep_v we_o from_o fall_v quite_o away_o if_o he_o shall_v let_v go_v his_o hand_n never_o so_o little_a we_o can_v be_v no_o more_o able_a to_o stand_v than_o the_o little_a infant_n which_o the_o nurse_n dade_v can_v do_v if_o she_o let_v go_v she_o hold_v she_o have_v of_o it_o or_o then_o your_o staff_n can_v do_v when_o you_o take_v off_o your_o hand_n it_o be_v god_n alone_o that_o keep_v the_o foot_n of_o his_o saint_n 1_o sam_n 2._o ●_o and_o this_o be_v a_o just_a cause_n why_o we_o shall_v be_v continual_o in_o fear_n of_o fall_v away_o work_v out_o your_o salvation_n say_v the_o apostle_n philippian_n 2.12_o 13_o with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a because_o it_o be_v god_n that_o work_v in_o you_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v of_o his_o good_a pleasure_n 3._o three_o as_o god_n have_v make_v a_o everlasting_a covenant_n with_o we_o that_o he_o will_v never_o forsake_v we_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o he_o jeremy_n 32._o so_o the_o mean_n whereby_o he_o in_o his_o goodness_n do_v preserve_v we_o from_o fall_v away_o from_o he_o be_v by_o work_v in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n this_o fear_n of_o fall_v away_o this_o care_n to_o persevere_v and_o hold_v out_o and_o grow_v in_o grace_n and_o so_o he_o express_o speak_v jer._n 32.40_o i_o will_v put_v my_o fear_n in_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o i_o so_o that_o he_o that_o find_v not_o in_o himself_o this_o fear_n of_o fall_v away_o this_o care_n to_o nourish_v grace_n in_o himself_o and_o to_o finish_v his_o course_n with_o joy_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o judge_v that_o god_n never_o receive_v he_o into_o this_o covenant_n of_o grace_n this_o everlasting_a covenant_n that_o you_o have_v hear_v of_o 4._o four_o and_o last_o constancy_n in_o well-doing_n and_o a_o uniformity_n in_o a_o christian_a course_n be_v a_o inseparable_a property_n of_o true_a grace_n it_o be_v nothing_o for_o any_o of_o you_o to_o be_v devout_a in_o your_o prayer_n and_o in_o hear_v of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o morning_n and_o in_o your_o buy_n and_o sell_v afterward_o to_o play_v the_o cutthroat_n and_o cheatour_n of_o your_o neighbour_n thus_o much_o a_o hypocrite_n can_v do_v but_o this_o be_v that_o that_o may_v give_v thou_o comfort_v when_o thou_o keep_v thy_o heart_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n long_o as_o solomon_n speak_v pro._n 23.17_o when_o thou_o can_v say_v with_o paul_n act_v 24.10_o herein_o do_v i_o exercise_v myself_o to_o have_v always_o a_o conscience_n void_a of_o offence_n towards_o god_n and_o towards_o man_n too_o it_o be_v a_o small_a sign_n of_o grace_n for_o any_o of_o you_o to_o have_v some_o fit_n of_o remorse_n for_o sin_n and_o of_o good_a motion_n and_o desire_n when_o you_o have_v be_v dangerous_o sick_a or_o the_o morning_n before_o you_o receive_v the_o communion_n pharaoh_n and_o saul_n have_v such_o fit_n and_o good_a mood_n but_o this_o be_v that_o that_o will_v give_v you_o comfort_n when_o you_o find_v yourselves_o constant_a in_o the_o hatred_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o perform_v good_a duty_n bless_a be_v the_o man_n that_o fear_v always_o to_o offend_v god_n say_v solomon_n pro._n 28.14_o and_o psal._n 106.3_o bless_a be_v they_o that_o keep_v judgement_n and_o do_v righteousness_n at_o all_o time_n when_o we_o can_v say_v with_o david_n psal._n 119.117_o i_o will_v have_v respect_n to_o thy_o statute_n continual_o lecture_n lxxxviii_o on_o psalm_n 51.6_o april_n 29._o 1628._o the_o four_o and_o last_o property_n of_o true_a obedience_n righteousness_n of_o true_a righteousness_n and_o goodness_n which_o will_v give_v we_o a_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o the_o uprightness_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v the_o manner_n how_o it_o be_v perform_v with_o what_o affection_n we_o do_v it_o what_o end_v we_o aim_v at_o in_o it_o he_o that_o will_v approve_v the_o uprightness_n of_o his_o heart_n by_o the_o unblameablenesse_n and_o godliness_n of_o his_o life_n must_v not_o content_v himself_o with_o this_o that_o he_o eschew_v evil_a and_o do_v good_a he_o abstain_v from_o all_o know_a sin_n that_o god_n have_v forbid_v and_o perform_v all_o good_a duty_n that_o god_n have_v command_v he_o to_o do_v unless_o he_o be_v careful_a also_o to_o do_v this_o in_o that_o manner_n as_o god_n require_v this_o i_o will_v 1_o confirm_v unto_o you_o and_o then_o 2_o i_o will_v give_v you_o some_o direction_n how_o to_o perform_v good_a duty_n in_o a_o good_a and_o right_a manner_n and_o for_o the_o first_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o lord_n in_o require_v obedience_n of_o we_o stand_v not_o so_o much_o upon_o this_o that_o we_o do_v good_a duty_n as_o that_o we_o do_v they_o in_o the_o right_a manner_n it_o shall_v be_v our_o righteousness_n say_v moses_n deut._n 6.25_o if_o we_o observe_v to_o do_v all_o these_o commandment_n before_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n as_o he_o have_v command_v we_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v say_v we_o shall_v do_v all_o he_o have_v command_v we_o yet_o if_o we_o do_v it_o not_o as_o he_o have_v command_v we_o it_o be_v no_o righteousness_n in_o god_n account_n you_o shall_v see_v this_o also_o confirm_v more_o particular_o by_o instance_v in_o duty_n of_o all_o sort_n 1_o in_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v to_o man_n 2_o in_o those_o that_o be_v do_v direct_o and_o immediate_o unto_o god_n no_o good_a thing_n we_o do_v be_v of_o any_o account_n with_o god_n unless_o it_o be_v do_v in_o a_o good_a manner_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o servant_n towards_o their_o master_n this_o be_v the_o chief_a thing_n god_n require_v he_o stand_v not_o so_o much_o upon_o what_o they_o do_v as_o how_o and_o in_o what_o manner_n they_o do_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v ephes._n 6.5_o 6._o in_o singleness_n of_o heart_n as_o unto_o christ_n not_o with_o eye-service_n as_o men-pleasers_a but_o as_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n from_o the_o heart_n so_o in_o other_o duty_n of_o government_n and_o care_n of_o other_o duty_n the_o apostle_n stand_v upon_o this_o principal_o rom._n 12.8_o he_o that_o give_v let_v he_o do_v it_o with_o simplicity_n he_o that_o rule_v with_o diligence_n he_o that_o show_v mercy_n with_o cheerfulness_n so_o though_o it_o be_v a_o excellent_a work_n of_o mercy_n of_o bounty_n and_o kindness_n that_o gajus_n show_v to_o the_o godly_a of_o who_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 16.23_o that_o he_o be_v not_o his_o host_n only_o but_o the_o host_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n yet_o the_o thing_n that_o grace_v this_o excellent_a good_a work_n of_o his_o so_o much_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n be_v this_o that_o he_o do_v it_o in_o so_o good_a a_o manner_n and_o with_o so_o good_a a_o heart_n belove_v say_v the_o apostle_n to_o he_o 3_o john_n 5._o thou_o do_v faithful_o whatsoever_o thou_o do_v both_o to_o the_o brethren_n and_o to_o stranger_n see_v this_o also_o confirm_v in_o the_o duty_n of_o god_n own_o worship_n which_o be_v great_a than_o the_o other_o even_o in_o they_o also_o the_o manner_n of_o do_v they_o be_v all_o in_o all_o 1._o for_o prayer_n if_o a_o man_n pray_v never_o so_o constant_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n unless_o he_o pray_v in_o the_o right_a manner_n james._n 4.3_o you_o ask_v and_o receive_v not_o because_o you_o ask_v amiss_o 2._o neither_o will_v the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n do_v we_o any_o good_a unless_o we_o receive_v they_o in_o that_o manner_n as_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o hypocrite_n that_o perish_v in_o the_o wilderness_n say_v of_o they_o 1_o cor._n 10._o 4._o they_o be_v all_o baptize_v unto_o moses_n in_o the_o cloud_n and_o in_o the_o sea_n and_o do_v all_o eat_v the_o same_o spiritual_a meat_n that_o we_o do_v in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o do_v drink_v the_o same_o spiritual_a drink_n yet_o with_o many_o of_o they_o god_n be_v not_o well_o please_v 3._o of_o hear_v the_o word_n you_o know_v what_o our_o saviour_n say_v luke_n 8.18_o take_v heed_n how_o you_o hear_v not_o only_o that_o you_o hear_v and_o what_o you_o hear_v but_o even_o how_o and_o in_o what_o manner_n you_o hear_v also_o 4_o last_o t●e_v preach_v of_o the_o word_n though_o it_o be_v the_o great_a work_n of_o all_o other_o in_o respect_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n say_v 2_o cor._n 2.15_o we_o be_v unto_o
from_o they_o about_o indifferent_a thing_n rom._n 14.6_o he_o that_o regard_v a_o day_n regard_v it_o unto_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o that_o regard_v not_o a_o day_n unto_o the_o lord_n he_o regard_v it_o not_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v he_o do_v it_o in_o obedience_n unto_o god_n and_o out_o of_o a_o care_n to_o please_v he_o therefore_o he_o be_v no_o hypocrite_n thus_o may_v a_o man_n get_v a_o comfortable_a assurance_n to_o himself_o of_o the_o uprightness_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n in_o every_o good_a thing_n he_o do_v if_o he_o do_v it_o to_o the_o lord_n if_o he_o serve_v god_n in_o that_o that_o he_o do_v if_o he_o do_v it_o in_o obedience_n unto_o he_o the_o intent_n of_o his_o heart_n be_v in_o it_o to_o please_v god_n if_o we_o do_v thus_o when_o we_o preach_v and_o hear_v when_o we_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n when_o we_o pray_v or_o sing_v psalm_n there_o be_v never_o a_o one_o of_o these_o duty_n but_o will_v yield_v as_o much_o more_o comfort_n than_o they_o do_v thus_o do_v paul_n in_o preach_v as_o we_o be_v allow_v of_o god_n say_v he_o 1_o thess._n 2.4_o to_o be_v put_v in_o trust_n with_o the_o gospel_n even_o so_o we_o speak_v not_o as_o please_a man_n but_o god_n which_o try_v our_o heart_n thus_o do_v god_n people_n in_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n 2_o chron_n 30.19_o they_o prepare_v their_o heart_n to_o seek_v god_n in_o that_o ordinance_n and_o so_o do_v josiah_n 2_o chron_n 35.1_o he_o keep_v a_o passeover_n to_o the_o lord_n so_o the_o apostle_n require_v we_o to_o do_v in_o sing_v of_o psalm_n ephes._n 5.19_o make_v melody_n in_o your_o heart_n to_o the_o lord_n yea_o even_o in_o the_o duty_n we_o perform_v unto_o man_n in_o our_o almesdeed_n in_o the_o labour_n of_o our_o ordinary_a calling_n we_o may_v get_v comfortable_a assurance_n to_o ourselves_o of_o the_o uprightness_n of_o our_o heart_n if_o we_o do_v they_o to_o the_o lord_n we_o respect_v and_o serve_v god_n in_o they_o we_o do_v they_o in_o obedience_n and_o care_n to_o please_v he_o be_v not_o slothful_a to_o do_v service_n say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 12.11_o he_o mean_v one_o to_o another_o as_o appear_v verse_n 10._o servant_n in_o spirit_n serve_v the_o lord_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v even_o in_o the_o service_n you_o do_v to_o man_n serve_v the_o lord_n so_o in_o almsdeed_n pro._n 3.9_o 10._o honour_n the_o lord_n with_o thy_o substance_n and_o with_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o all_o thy_o increase_n so_o shall_v thy_o barn_n be_v fill_v with_o plenty_n and_o thy_o press_n shall_v burst_v out_o with_o new_a wine_n and_o 19.17_o he_o that_o have_v pity_n on_o the_o poor_a dare_v unto_o the_o lord_n so_o speak_v the_o apostle_n to_o comfort_v poor_a servant_n that_o have_v infidel_n unto_o their_o master_n whatsoever_o you_o do_v say_v he_o col._n 3.23_o 24._o do_v it_o as_o unto_o the_o lord_n and_o not_o unto_o man_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v look_v to_o god_n in_o it_o do_v it_o in_o conscience_n and_o obedience_n unto_o he_o content_v yourselves_o with_o this_o that_o he_o be_v please_v with_o that_o you_o do_v know_v that_o of_o the_o lord_n you_o shall_v receive_v the_o reward_n of_o inheritance_n for_o you_o serve_v the_o lord_n christ._n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v whatsoever_o good_a thing_n any_o man_n do_v as_o a_o service_n unto_o god_n he_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o be_v reward_v for_o it_o god_n will_v pay_v his_o servant_n their_o wage_n certain_o and_o in_o this_o respect_n of_o all_o good_a duty_n that_o a_o christian_n can_v perform_v those_o will_v yield_v he_o great_a comfort_n and_o assurance_n of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o his_o heart_n wherein_o there_o be_v least_o danger_n of_o have_v any_o other_o respect_n then_o unto_o the_o lord_n only_o i_o will_v instance_n in_o three_o sort_n of_o those_o duty_n first_o of_o all_o kind_n of_o liberality_n that_o that_o be_v show_v to_o the_o poor_a will_v give_v we_o most_o assurance_n of_o our_o sincerity_n when_o thou_o make_v a_o feast_n say_v our_o saviour_n luk._n 14.13_o 14_o call_v the_o poor_a the_o maim_a the_o lame_a the_o blind_a and_o thou_o shall_v be_v bless_v foe_n they_o can_v recompense_v thou_o for_o thou_o shall_v be_v recompense_v at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a second_o of_o all_o love_n and_o kindness_n that_o be_v the_o sure_a sign_n of_o uprightness_n and_o truth_n of_o grace_n which_o we_o show_v to_o our_o enemy_n and_o to_o such_o christian_n as_o be_v poor_a and_o in_o who_o we_o see_v sundry_a infirmity_n i_o say_v unto_o you_o say_v our_o saviour_n mat._n 5.44_o 45._o love_v your_o enemy_n bless_v they_o that_o curse_v you_o do_v good_a to_o they_o that_o hate_v you_o and_o pray_v for_o they_o that_o despiteful_o use_v you_o &_o persecute_v you_o that_o you_o may_v be_v that_o be_v manifest_v yourselves_o to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o your_o heavenly_a father_n so_o mat._n 10.42_o whosoever_o shall_v give_v to_o drink_v unto_o one_o of_o these_o little_a one_o contemptible_a for_o their_o poor_a estate_n contemptible_a for_o their_o infirmity_n a_o cup_n of_o cold_a water_n only_o in_o the_o name_n of_o a_o disciple_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o shall_v in_o no_o wise_n lose_v his_o reward_n three_o and_o last_o of_o all_o duty_n both_o of_o piety_n and_o charity_n those_o that_o be_v perform_v in_o secret_a will_v give_v a_o man_n more_o assurance_n of_o the_o uprightness_n of_o his_o heart_n than_o those_o will_v do_v that_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o sight_n and_o presence_n of_o other_o when_o thou_o do_v alm_n say_v our_o saviour_n mat._n 6.3_o let_v not_o thy_o left_a hand_n know_v what_o thy_o right_a hand_n do_v and_o verse_n 6._o when_o thou_o pray_v enter_v into_o thy_o closet_n and_o when_o thou_o have_v shut_v thy_o door_n pray_v to_o thy_o father_n which_o be_v in_o secret_a the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o the_o sincerity_n and_o soundness_n of_o repentance_n that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v work_v in_o the_o faithful_a speak_v thus_o zach._n 12.12_o the_o land_n shall_v mourn_v every_o family_n apart_o and_o their_o wife_n apart_o true_a it_o be_v there_o be_v other_o respect_n for_o which_o it_o be_v not_o only_o lawful_a but_o fit_a and_o necessary_a also_o for_o a_o man_n both_o to_o pray_v and_o give_v alm_n and_o to_o mourn_v for_o sin_n so_o as_o other_o may_v take_v notice_n of_o it_o but_o in_o this_o respect_n for_o give_v we_o assurance_n of_o the_o uprightness_n of_o our_o heart_n they_o can_v never_o be_v so_o well_o do_v as_o in_o secret_a nay_o they_o can_v be_v do_v in_o sincerity_n of_o heart_n if_o they_o be_v do_v only_o open_o and_o not_o in_o secret_a also_o applic._n o_o then_o belove_v let_v every_o one_o of_o we_o examine_v ourselves_o oft_o in_o this_o point_n and_o in_o every_o good_a duty_n we_o do_v ask_v our_o own_o heart_n that_o question_n that_o our_o saviour_n do_v andrew_n and_o his_o fellow_n john_n 1.38_o what_o seek_v thou_o what_o aim_v thou_o at_o what_o end_n do_v thou_o propound_v to_o thyself_o in_o do_v these_o thing_n let_v we_o all_o strive_v in_o our_o preach_n and_o hear_v in_o our_o pray_n and_o every_o other_o good_a thing_n we_o do_v to_o do_v it_o unto_o the_o lord_n as_o a_o service_n unto_o he_o in_o obedience_n and_o care_n to_o please_v he_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o 2_o cor._n 5.15_o that_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o that_o they_o which_o live_v shall_v not_o hence_o forth_o that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o the_o time_n that_o they_o have_v give_v their_o name_n unto_o christ_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o live_v unto_o themselves_o but_o unto_o he_o which_o die_v for_o they_o and_o speak_v of_o all_o the_o faithful_a he_o say_v rom._n 14.7_o 8._o none_o of_o we_o live_v to_o himself_o nor_o die_v to_o himself_o for_o whether_o we_o live_v we_o live_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o whether_o we_o die_v we_o die_v unto_o the_o lord_n o_o that_o we_o can_v so_o say_v of_o ourselves_o that_o none_o of_o we_o live_v unto_o himself_o but_o to_o the_o lord_n for_o than_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a we_o shall_v not_o die_v unto_o ourselves_o but_o to_o the_o lord_n but_o what_o hope_n be_v there_o that_o he_o that_o have_v live_v only_o to_o himself_o have_v seek_v himself_o only_o and_o have_v no_o respect_n to_o god_n no_o care_n to_o please_v or_o honour_v he_o all_o his_o life_n long_o shall_v die_v unto_o the_o lord_n shall_v please_v the_o lord_n in_o his_o death_n or_o that_o the_o lord_n shall_v then_o have_v any_o respect_n unto_o he_o well_o certain_o of_o most_o man_n best_a work_n and_o duty_n that_o they_o have_v at_o any_o time_n perform_v that_o may_v
weakness_n that_o cost_v i_o so_o dear_a yet_o my_o heart_n be_v for_o god_n i_o do_v it_o not_o with_o the_o full_a sway_n of_o my_o soul_n this_o you_o see_v every_o true_a heart_a christian_a can_v to_o his_o comfort_n say_v of_o every_o evil_n that_o through_o infirmity_n he_o have_v slip_v into_o this_o i_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v do_v it_o be_v against_o the_o purpose_n of_o my_o heart_n against_o my_o will_n that_o i_o have_v do_v so_o and_o of_o every_o good_a thing_n that_o he_o have_v fail_v in_o either_o for_o matter_n or_o manner_n thus_o i_o shall_v do_v and_o thus_o with_o all_o my_o heart_n i_o desire_v to_o do_v now_o for_o the_o three_o degree_n of_o proof_n for_o this_o point_n see_v what_o high_a account_n the_o lord_n himself_o make_v of_o this_o when_o our_o mind_n and_o the_o purpose_n and_o desire_v of_o our_o heart_n be_v set_v to_o please_v he_o though_o there_o be_v much_o want_v in_o our_o performance_n see_v this_o in_o three_o point_n first_o he_o accept_v the_o will_n for_o the_o deed_n even_o as_o he_o account_v every_o wicked_a man_n guilty_a of_o that_o sin_n which_o he_o purpose_v and_o desire_v to_o do_v though_o he_o commit_v it_o not_o he_o that_o look_v on_o a_o woman_n to_o lust_n after_o she_o say_v the_o lord_n matth._n 5.28_o have_v commit_v adultery_n with_o she_o already_o in_o his_o heart_n and_o 1_o john_n 3.15_o whosoever_o hate_v his_o brother_n be_v a_o murderer_n and_o as_o solomon_n say_v prov._n 23.7_o as_o he_o think_v in_o his_o heart_n so_o be_v he_o in_o god_n account_n so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o lord_n account_v every_o good_a thing_n as_o do_v yea_o as_o perfect_o perform_v by_o any_o of_o his_o servant_n which_o he_o see_v they_o purpose_n and_o endeavour_v and_o unfeigned_o desire_v to_o do_v if_o there_o be_v first_o a_o willing_a mind_n say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 8_o 12._o it_o be_v accept_v so_o the_o lord_n say_v of_o abraham_n that_o he_o do_v offer_v up_o his_o son_n in_o sacrifice_n heb._n 11.17_o because_o he_o be_v willing_a and_o purpose_a to_o do_v it_o so_o because_o david_n have_v a_o purpose_n and_o desire_v to_o build_v god_n a_o house_n he_o commend_v he_o for_o this_o purpose_n 1_o kin._n 8.18_o thou_o do_v well_o that_o it_o be_v in_o thy_o heart_n yea_o he_o reward_v he_o for_o it_o as_o if_o he_o have_v do_v it_o and_o tell_v he_o 2_o sam._n 7.27_o that_o for_o that_o he_o will_v build_v he_o a_o house_n so_o when_o the_o servant_n that_o ought_v his_o lord_n ten_o thousand_o talent_n have_v show_v himself_o willing_a to_o pay_v all_o and_o say_v mat_n 18._o ●6_n lord_n have_v patience_n with_o i_o and_o i_o will_v pay_v thou_o all_o a_o thing_n utter_o impossible_a for_o he_o to_o do_v yet_o be_v he_o desirous_a and_o willing_a to_o do_v it_o as_o every_o true_a christian_a be_v willing_a and_o desirous_a to_o keep_v all_o god_n commandment_n complete_o though_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o he_o to_o do_v it_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o next_o word_n ver_fw-la 27._o that_o his_o lord_n have_v compassion_n on_o he_o and_o loose_v he_o and_o fargave_v he_o the_o debt_n he_o take_v this_o for_o full_a payment_n he_o accept_v of_o the_o will_n for_o the_o deed_n so_o when_o zacheus_n have_v unfeigned_o profess_v his_o willingness_n to_o make_v restitution_n christ_n say_v of_o he_o lu._n 19.9_o this_o day_n be_v salvation_n come_v to_o thy_o house_n so_o the_o lord_n account_v that_o soul_n a_o true_a believer_n that_o do_v unfeigned_o desire_v to_o believe_v for_o christ_n say_v they_o be_v bless_v that_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o righteousness_n mat._n 5.6_o and_o he_o a_o true_a penitent_a sinner_n that_o do_v unfeigned_o purpose_n and_o desire_v to_o repent_v and_o turn_v unto_o god_n when_o the_o prodigal_n do_v but_o purpose_n to_o return_v &_o humble_v himself_o to_o his_o father_n when_o he_o be_v yet_o a_o great_a way_n off_o his_o father_n see_v he_o and_o have_v compassion_n and_o run_v and_o fall_v on_o his_o neck_n and_o kiss_v he_o lu._n 15.20_o and_o the_o lord_n account_v he_o a_o godly_a man_n and_o a_o observer_n of_o all_o his_o holy_a commandment_n that_o do_v unfeigned_o desire_v to_o obey_v he_o in_o all_o thing_n if_o you_o be_v willing_a and_o obedient_a say_v the_o lord_n esa._n 1_o ●9_n you_o shall_v eat_v the_o good_a of_o the_o land_n thus_o you_o see_v how_o god_n accept_v the_o will_n for_o the_o deed_n but_o second_o he_o do_v more_o than_o so_o for_o in_o the_o best_a service_n we_o can_v do_v unto_o he_o he_o esteem_v more_o of_o our_o will_n then_o of_o our_o deed_n the_o lord_n regard_v nothing_o so_o much_o the_o benevolence_n that_o the_o corinthian_n bestow_v on_o the_o saint_n in_o judea_n as_o he_o do_v the_o willingness_n of_o their_o mind_n in_o bestow_v you_o have_v begin_v say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 8.10_o not_o only_o to_o do_v but_o also_o to_o be_v willing_a a_o year_n ago_o neither_o do_v god_n so_o much_o esteem_v of_o paul_n preach_v though_o that_o be_v excellent_a as_o he_o do_v this_o that_o he_o preach_v with_o so_o willing_a a_o mind_n if_o i_o do_v this_o thing_n willing_o say_v he_o 1_o cor._n 9_o 17._o i_o have_v a_o reward_n and_o this_o god_n make_v high_a account_n of_o in_o every_o minister_n when_o he_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o god_n not_o by_o constraint_n but_o willing_o 1_o peter_n 5.2_o and_o when_o the_o lord_n bid_v moses_n speak_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n that_o they_o shall_v bring_v a_o offering_n for_o the_o make_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n he_o say_v exodus_fw-la 25.2_o of_o every_o man_n that_o give_v it_o willing_o with_o his_o heart_n you_o shall_v take_v my_o offering_n he_o esteem_v more_o of_o the_o willingness_n of_o the_o heart_n in_o offering_n then_o of_o the_o offering_n itself_o and_o this_o reason_n paul_n give_v to_o philemon_n verse_n 14._o why_o he_o will_v not_o retain_v onesimus_n without_o his_o mind_n that_o thy_o benefit_n say_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v as_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n but_o willing_o he_o know_v god_n do_v most_o esteem_v of_o that_o three_o and_o last_o when_o god_n have_v once_o wrought_v a_o unfeigned_a purpose_n and_o desire_v of_o heart_n to_o please_v he_o for_o it_o be_v he_o only_a that_o work_v in_o we_o to_o will_v as_o well_o as_o to_o do_v phil._n 2.13_o he_o will_v reward_v it_o with_o a_o increase_n of_o strength_n and_o ability_n to_o do_v well_o and_o a_o chief_a cause_n why_o we_o have_v no_o more_o ability_n to_o do_v well_o be_v because_o we_o no_o more_o desire_n to_o do_v well_o for_o the_o lord_n have_v promise_v to_o fulfil_v the_o desire_n of_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o psalm_n 145_o 19_o to_o fill_v thy_o mouth_n if_o thou_o open_v it_o wide_o psalm_n 8●_n 10_o to_o fill_v the_o hungry_a with_o good_a thing_n luke_n 1.53_o and_o thus_o you_o have_v hear_v this_o truth_n confirm_v unto_o you_o that_o a_o christian_n may_v gather_v more_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o the_o uprightness_n of_o his_o heart_n from_o the_o goodness_n of_o his_o will_n and_o desire_n then_o from_o the_o goodness_n of_o his_o life_n or_o of_o any_o action_n he_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o answer_v that_o which_o may_v be_v object_v against_o this_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o three_o thing_n that_o in_o my_o method_n i_o propound_v and_o promise_v to_o do_v for_o this_o doctrine_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v too_o broad_a a_o way_n and_o too_o open_a a_o door_n of_o hope_n and_o comfort_n to_o the_o most_o lewd_a man_n oh_o will_v they_o say_v this_o doctrine_n we_o like_v well_o this_o give_v we_o assurance_n that_o our_o heart_n be_v as_o upright_o as_o the_o precise_a of_o they_o all_o for_o we_o also_o have_v good_a desire_n we_o will_v fain_o do_v well_o we_o desire_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n we_o desire_v to_o repent_v and_o leave_v our_o sin_n and_o so_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o word_n of_o sundry_a castaway_n that_o have_v not_o only_o have_v desire_n to_o be_v save_v as_o baalam_n number_n 23.10_o let_v i_o die_v the_o death_n of_o the_o righteous_a and_o let_v my_o last_o end_n be_v like_o he_o and_o those_o foolish_a virgin_n that_o cry_v mat._n 25.11_o lord_n lord_n open_a unto_o we_o but_o have_v have_v desire_n also_o to_o go_v in_o the_o way_n that_o lead_v unto_o life_n desire_v to_o do_v well_o many_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o say_v our_o saviour_n luke_n 13.24_o will_v seek_v to_o enter_v in_o at_o the_o strait_a gate_n and_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a 1._o now_o my_o answer_n unto_o this_o objection_n shall_v consist_v of_o two_o part_n first_o
admit_v that_o wicked_a man_n will_v take_v hurt_v by_o this_o doctrine_n as_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o many_o do_v and_o will_v do_v the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n will_v be_v apt_a to_o stumble_v at_o the_o word_n and_o thereunto_o they_o be_v even_o appoint_v as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o peter_n 2.8_o yet_o must_v not_o so_o necessary_a a_o truth_n and_o that_o tend_v so_o much_o to_o the_o comfort_n of_o poor_a christian_n be_v conceal_v for_o that_o we_o may_v not_o indeed_o take_v the_o child_n bread_n and_o cast_v it_o to_o dog_n as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v mat._n 15.26_o but_o yet_o we_o must_v not_o withhold_v from_o god_n child_n their_o bread_n because_o such_o dog_n will_v be_v snatch_v at_o it_o we_o be_v to_o have_v more_o respect_n in_o our_o ministry_n to_o the_o comfort_n of_o one_o poor_a christian_a then_o to_o the_o offence_n of_o a_o hundred_o such_o as_o these_o and_o therein_o we_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o example_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n himself_o matth._n 15.12_o 14._o 2._o but_o second_o i_o answer_v if_o there_o be_v indeed_o in_o these_o who_o life_n be_v most_o wicked_a such_o infeined_a desire_n to_o do_v well_o and_o to_o please_v god_n i_o will_v be_v bold_a to_o assure_v they_o in_o god_n name_n and_o by_o warrant_n of_o his_o word_n that_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o wickedness_n of_o their_o life_n their_o heart_n be_v upright_o and_o there_o be_v truth_n of_o save_a grace_n in_o they_o but_o alas_o no_o man_n who_o life_n be_v wicked_a have_v indeed_o any_o good_a and_o unfeigned_a and_o sanctify_a desire_n to_o do_v well_o nay_o he_o have_v no_o true_a and_o unfeigned_a desire_n to_o be_v save_v five_o note_n of_o difference_n i_o will_v give_v you_o out_o of_o god_n word_n between_o the_o true_a save_n and_o sanctify_a desire_n which_o be_v in_o the_o regenerate_a and_o the_o natural_a and_o counterfeit_v good_a desire_n that_o be_v in_o wicked_a man_n first_o the_o regenerate_a man_n desire_n of_o salvation_n or_o of_o any_o save_a grace_n be_v join_v with_o a_o love_n and_o desire_v to_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o of_o grace_n so_o it_o be_v with_o david_n psal._n 119.174_o i_o have_v long_v for_o thy_o salvation_n o_o lord_n and_o thy_o law_n be_v my_o delight_n the_o natural_a man_n have_v no_o desire_n or_o love_n to_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o grace_n to_o those_o mean_n that_o god_n have_v ordain_v to_o bring_v they_o to_o faith_n and_o repentance_n by_o and_o therefore_o certain_o he_o do_v not_o unfeigned_o desire_v to_o believe_v or_o to_o repent_v or_o to_o be_v save_v he_o that_o desire_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n way_n do_v say_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o god_n depart_v from_o i_o job._n 21.14_o he_o do_v not_o desire_v god_n favour_n he_o do_v not_o desire_v to_o believe_v in_o he_o or_o to_o serve_v he_o or_o to_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o he_o second_o the_o regenerate_a man_n desire_n of_o salvation_n or_o of_o any_o save_a grace_n be_v constant_a and_o permanent_a my_o soul_n break_v for_o the_o longing_n that_o it_o have_v unto_o thy_o judgement_n at_o all_o time_n say_v david_n psalm_n 119.20_o and_o 27.4_o one_o thing_n have_v i_o desire_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o will_v i_o seek_v after_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n the_o natural_a man_n good_a motion_n and_o desire_n be_v like_o the_o fit_v of_o a_o ague_n or_o flashing_n of_o lightning_n sudden_a and_o vanish_v when_o the_o terror_n of_o god_n be_v upon_o they_o their_o goodness_n be_v as_o the_o more_v cloud_n say_v the_o prophet_n hos._n 6.4_o and_o as_o early_a dew_n it_o go_v away_o therefore_o they_o be_v counterfeit_v they_o can_v have_v no_o comfort_n in_o they_o three_o the_o regenerate_a man_n desire_n to_o do_v well_o be_v not_o without_o endeavour_n to_o do_v what_o he_o can_v and_o some_o ability_n also_o to_o do_v well_o as_o paul_n profess_v of_o himself_o heb._n 13.18_o that_o he_o be_v willing_a in_o all_o thing_n to_o live_v honest_o so_o he_o show_v the_o sincerity_n of_o his_o desire_n in_o this_o herein_o say_v he_o act_v 24.6_o do_v i_o endeavour_v myself_o always_o to_o have_v a_o conscience_n void_a of_o offence_n towards_o god_n and_o towards_o man_n he_o have_v not_o only_o a_o desire_n to_o live_v honest_o but_o he_o do_v endeavour_v it_o also_o so_o speak_v of_o the_o macedonian_n mercifullnesse_n towards_o the_o distress_a saint_n in_o judea_n 2_o cor._n 8.3_o to_o their_o power_n say_v he_o i_o bear_v they_o record_v yea_o and_o beyond_o their_o power_n they_o be_v willing_a they_o do_v what_o they_o be_v able_a though_o their_o will_n be_v far_o above_o their_o ability_n the_o natural_a man_n flatter_v himself_o in_o this_o that_o he_o have_v good_a desire_n he_o desire_v to_o be_v save_v he_o will_v fain_o leave_v his_o sin_n and_o believe_v and_o do_v well_o but_o he_o can_v take_v no_o pain_n use_v no_o endeavour_n that_o he_o may_v be_v save_v that_o he_o may_v believe_v and_o reform_v his_o life_n he_o can_v leave_v no_o sin_n nor_o do_v any_o good_a duty_n god_n know_v my_o heart_n say_v he_o i_o will_v fain_o do_v well_o and_o there_o he_o rest_v the_o confidence_n he_o have_v in_o his_o good_a desire_n undo_v he_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o slothful_a kill_v he_o say_v solomon_n pro._n ●1_n 25_o for_o his_o hand_n refuse_v to_o labour_v pilat_z seem_v very_o desirous_a to_o save_v christ_n and_o deliver_v he_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o jew_n pilate_n be_v willing_a to_o release_v jesus_n say_v the_o evangelist_n luke_n 23.20_o he_o be_v determine_v to_o let_v he_o go_v say_v the_o apostle_n peter_n act_v 3.13_o but_o pilat_n good_a purpose_n and_o desire_n be_v counterfeit_a and_o such_o as_o yield_v he_o no_o comfort_n because_o he_o do_v not_o what_o he_o may_v and_o be_v in_o his_o power_n to_o do_v pilat_z give_v sentence_n say_v the_o text_n luke_n 23_o 24._o that_o it_o shall_v be_v as_o they_o require_v four_o the_o regenerate_a man_n good_a desire_n be_v vehement_a as_o the_o apostle_n call_v they_o 2_o cor._n 7.11_o like_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o thirsty_a and_o hungry_a man_n as_o the_o hart_n pant_v after_o the_o water_n brook_v say_v david_n psal._n 42.1_o 2._o so_o pant_v my_o soul_n after_o thou_o o_o god_n my_o soul_n thirst_v for_o god_n for_o the_o live_a god_n he_o desire_v nothing_o so_o much_o as_o god_n favour_n as_o faith_n and_o grace_n to_o please_v he_o he_o can_v say_v with_o david_n psal._n 73.25_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o sense_n the_o original_n will_v bear_v as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o on_o earth_n that_o i_o desire_v beside_o thou_o yea_o he_o so_o desire_v god_n favour_n and_o grace_n as_o he_o be_v content_a to_o part_v with_o any_o thing_n for_o it_o he_o count_v it_o a_o pearl_n of_o such_o price_n as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v mat._n 13.46_o that_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o sell_v all_o that_o he_o have_v to_o buy_v it_o as_o the_o condemn_a man_n desire_v nothing_o so_o much_o as_o a_o pardon_n nor_o the_o thirsty_a man_n as_o drink_v but_o the_o natural_a man_n good_a desire_n be_v faint_a and_o cold_a there_o be_v a_o thousand_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n he_o desire_v more_o than_o his_o salvation_n or_o god_n favour_n and_o grace_n he_o will_v part_v with_o nothing_o for_o it_o one_o that_o hear_v christ_n speak_v in_o a_o heavenly_a manner_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a be_v present_o ravish_v with_o a_o desire_n after_o heaven_n and_o cry_v out_o luk_n 14.15_o bless_a be_v he_o that_o shall_v eat_v bread_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o our_o saviour_n to_o show_v he_o the_o vanity_n of_o such_o wisher_n and_o woulder_n as_o he_o be_v utter_v the_o parable_n of_o the_o guest_n ver_fw-la 18_o 20_o that_o rather_o than_o they_o will_v leave_v but_o for_o a_o while_o their_o profit_n pleasure_n refuse_v to_o come_v to_o the_o king_n marriage_n feast_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v and_o so_o it_o be_v with_o such_o as_o thou_o be_v you_o set_v your_o mind_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o not_o upon_o heaven_n five_o and_o last_o the_o regenerate_a man_n so_o desire_v god_n favour_n and_o grace_n as_o he_o mourn_v for_o the_o want_n of_o it_o hope_v defer_v make_v the_o heart_n sick_a say_v solomon_n pro._n 12.12_o but_o when_o the_o desire_n come_v it_o be_v a_o tree_n of_o life_n he_o feel_v his_o poverty_n of_o spirit_n so_o as_o he_o mourn_v for_o want_v of_o grace_n mat._n 5.3.4_o he_o seek_v christ_n sorrow_v as_o his_o parent_n do_v luk._n 2.48_o the_o poor_a man_n mar._n 9.24_o so_o desire_v increase_v
every_o man_n conscience_n and_o man_n shall_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o those_o book_n according_a to_o their_o work_n every_o man_n own_o book_n his_o own_o conscience_n will_v plead_v for_o god_n against_o himself_o at_o that_o day_n at_o that_o day_n it_o will_v appear_v that_o not_o the_o lord_n but_o every_o wicked_a man_n himself_o be_v the_o only_a cause_n of_o his_o own_o destruction_n that_o he_o be_v not_o save_v because_o he_o have_v no_o desire_n nor_o will_n to_o be_v save_v he_o do_v not_o his_o endeavour_n nor_o what_o lie_v in_o he_o to_o come_v to_o grace_n and_o salvation_n that_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o want_v to_o he_o this_o way_n but_o he_o be_v want_v to_o himself_o in_o that_o day_n the_o lord_n will_v say_v to_o every_o wicked_a man_n as_o he_o say_v to_o jerusalem_n matth._n 22.37_o o_o wretched_a man_n and_o woman_n how_o oft_o will_v i_o have_v gather_v thou_o but_o thou_o will_v not_o how_o oft_o will_v i_o have_v convert_v thou_o what_o mean_v of_o grace_n do_v i_o give_v unto_o thou_o how_o often_o have_v i_o show_v myself_o willing_a by_o such_o and_o such_o a_o sermon_n by_o such_o and_o such_o a_o affliction_n to_o have_v change_v thy_o heart_n but_o thou_o will_v not_o certain_o all_o wicked_a man_n perish_v wilful_o they_o perish_v because_o they_o will_v perish_v they_o have_v no_o desire_n to_o be_v save_v why_o will_v you_o die_v o_o house_n of_o israel_n say_v the_o lord_n ezek._n 33.11_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v you_o die_v because_o you_o will_v die_v now_o that_o man_n do_v perish_v thus_o wilful_o that_o they_o have_v no_o true_a desire_n nor_o will_n to_o be_v save_v appear_v evident_o by_o these_o four_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v observe_v in_o they_o first_o they_o will_v use_v no_o mean_n nor_o take_v any_o pain_n to_o escape_v damnation_n to_o obtain_v grace_n and_o to_o get_v to_o heaven_n as_o they_o will_v do_v to_o escape_v any_o great_a danger_n they_o desire_v to_o avoid_v or_o to_o obtain_v any_o good_a thing_n they_o desire_v to_o have_v salvation_n be_v far_o from_o the_o wicked_a say_v david_n psal._n 119.155_o how_o shall_v they_o come_v by_o it_o for_o they_o keep_v not_o thy_o statute_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v they_o will_v not_o use_v the_o mean_n nor_o labour_n to_o get_v it_o second_o when_o they_o may_v have_v the_o mean_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o grace_n and_o salvation_n without_o any_o labour_n or_o charge_n to_o they_o they_o fl●ight_v and_o neglect_v they_o they_o account_v they_o rather_o a_o burden_n and_o trouble_v then_o any_o benefit_n or_o blessing_n unto_o they_o they_o show_v no_o desire_n to_o they_o but_o say_v in_o their_o heart_n to_o god_n as_o those_o wretch_n do_v of_o who_o we_o read_v job_n 21.24_o depart_v from_o i_o for_o we_o desire_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thy_o way_n three_o when_o the_o lord_n do_v sometime_o by_o his_o word_n sometime_o by_o his_o judgement_n force_v they_o to_o have_v some_o thought_n of_o heaven_n some_o good_a motion_n and_o desire_n they_o resist_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n therein_o as_o stephen_n say_v the_o jew_n do_v act_v 7.51_o they_o hold_v the_o truth_n in_o unrighteousness_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v rom._n 1.18_o they_o violent_o withstand_v and_o oppose_v these_o good_a motion_n and_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o they_o four_o and_o last_o which_o be_v the_o root_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n they_o do_v in_o their_o heart_n base_o esteem_v of_o and_o despise_v grace_n and_o salvation_n and_o the_o mean_n thereof_o and_o prefer_v any_o trifle_n before_o they_o and_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o gallio_n the_o profane_a deputy_n act._n 8.17_o he_o care_v for_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n so_o may_v it_o be_v say_v of_o they_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o their_o salvation_n be_v the_o least_o of_o their_o care_n when_o they_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o do_v or_o think_v of_o than_o they_o will_v think_v of_o heaven_n so_o that_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o esau_n that_o he_o despise_v his_o birthright_n gen_n 25.34_o because_o he_o sell_v it_o for_o one_o morsel_n of_o meat_n for_o one_o meal_n meat_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v heb._n 12.16_o so_o may_v it_o be_v true_o say_v of_o all_o wicked_a that_o they_o despise_v grace_n and_o salvation_n because_o there_o be_v so_o many_o trifle_n that_o they_o prefer_v before_o it_o and_o so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n express_o speak_v pro._n 11.33_o he_o that_o refuse_v instruction_n despise_v his_o own_o soul_n so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a you_o see_v that_o every_o wicked_a man_n be_v utter_o inexcusable_a he_o perish_v just_o because_o he_o perish_v wilful_o he_o have_v no_o desire_n at_o all_o no_o will_n to_o be_v save_v but_o a_o utter_a averseness_n and_o unwillingness_n to_o go_v to_o heaven_n or_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n that_o lead_v thither_o now_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v object_v against_o this_o and_o say_v how_o can_v this_o be_v see_v the_o spirit_n speak_v express_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 1._o that_o man_n have_v by_o nature_n no_o freedom_n of_o will_n to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a but_o be_v dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v ephes._n 2.1_o he_o can_v desire_v to_o have_v grace_n or_o to_o be_v save_v no_o more_o than_o a_o dead_a man_n can_v desire_v to_o live_v nay_o he_o can_v accept_v of_o god_n grace_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v 1_o cor._n 2.14_o the_o natural_a man_n receive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n unto_o he_o he_o can_v choose_v but_o be_v unwilling_a and_o averse_a from_o good_a thing_n 2._o that_o the_o matter_n of_o man_n salvation_n depend_v whole_o not_o upon_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o upon_o the_o will_n and_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v rom._n 9.16_o it_o be_v not_o of_o he_o that_o will_v nor_o of_o he_o that_o run_v this_o matter_n depend_v neither_o upon_o the_o desire_n of_o man_n nor_o upon_o any_o endeavour_n neither_o that_o he_o can_v use_v but_o of_o god_n that_o show_v mercy_n and_o verse_n 18._o he_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v and_o he_o work_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o own_o will_n say_v the_o apostle_n ephes._n 1.11_o 3._o god_n grace_n be_v irresistible_a and_o able_a to_o overcome_v and_o subdue_v this_o unwillingness_n and_o averseness_n that_o be_v in_o our_o nature_n god_n be_v able_a of_o these_o stone_n to_o raise_v up_o child_n unto_o abraham_n as_o john_n baptist_n speak_v matth._n 3.9_o and_o that_o in_o these_o three_o respect_n it_o shall_v seem_v that_o the_o wicked_a man_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o own_o destruction_n but_o the_o lord_n rather_o 1._o to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n why_o man_n be_v by_o nature_n dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n but_o himself_o only_o he_o kill_v himself_o and_o deprive_v himself_o of_o this_o spiritual_a life_n the_o lord_n do_v it_o not_o god_n require_v nothing_o of_o man_n for_o not_o do_v whereof_o the_o condemn_v he_o but_o he_o make_v he_o well_o able_a to_o do_v it_o god_n make_v man_n upright_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n eccl._n 7.29_o not_o the_o first_o man_n but_o man_n indefinite_o mankind_n god_n make_v man_n upright_o and_o as_o in_o adam_n all_o man_n be_v make_v upright_o so_o in_o adam_n all_o man_n voluntary_o and_o unconstrain_o sin_v as_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 5.12_o kill_v themselves_o lose_v this_o spiritual_a life_n so_o that_o even_o in_o this_o respect_n that_o stand_v good_a which_o you_o hear_v out_o of_o hos._n 13.9_o o_o man_n thou_o have_v destroy_v thyself_o second_o 2._o though_o god_n be_v able_a to_o restore_v to_o every_o wicked_a man_n this_o spiritual_a life_n again_o and_o to_o quicken_v he_o by_o his_o grace_n yet_o be_v he_o not_o bind_v to_o do_v it_o he_o do_v no_o man_n wrong_v if_o he_o do_v it_o not_o be_v it_o not_o lawful_a for_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n mat._n 20.15_o to_o do_v what_o i_o will_v with_o my_o own_o who_o have_v first_o give_v to_o he_o say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 11.35_o who_o have_v make_v god_n a_o debtor_n to_o he_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v recompense_v to_o he_o again_o three_o 3._o though_o every_o natural_a man_n be_v dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n so_o as_o he_o can_v do_v nothing_o that_o be_v spiritual_o good_a and_o please_a unto_o god_n nothing_o that_o he_o can_v save_v himself_o by_o yet_o may_v every_o natural_a man_n do_v much_o more_o than_o he_o do_v to_o
further_a his_o own_o salvation_n he_o be_v not_o so_o dead_a but_o there_o be_v enough_o leave_v in_o he_o to_o make_v he_o without_o excuse_n as_o the_o apostle_n plain_o teach_v rom._n 1.20_o he_o may_v do_v more_o than_o he_o do_v to_o avoid_v damnation_n he_o may_v do_v more_o than_o he_o do_v to_o further_a his_o own_o salvation_n and_o because_o he_o will_v not_o do_v what_o he_o may_v therefore_o he_o be_v inexcusable_a therefore_o he_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o own_o destruction_n why_o what_o can_v he_o do_v quest._n will_v you_o say_v i_o answer_v 1._o first_o he_o have_v power_n enough_o leave_v in_o he_o by_o nature_n to_o curb_v and_o restrain_v himself_o from_o all_o gross_a sin_n from_o drunkenness_n and_o whoredom_n and_o such_o like_a sin_n yea_o and_o from_o haunt_v of_o lewd_a company_n that_o may_v draw_v he_o to_o such_o sin_n he_o may_v forbear_v these_o thing_n if_o he_o will_v he_o have_v enough_o leave_v in_o he_o to_o make_v he_o able_a to_o live_v a_o civil_a and_o unblameable_a life_n there_o be_v many_o a_o man_n that_o even_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n can_v true_o say_v as_o he_o say_v luk._n 18.11_o i_o thank_v god_n i_o be_o no_o extortioner_n nor_o unjust_a in_o my_o deal_n with_o man_n nor_o a_o adulterer_n second_o 2._o he_o have_v enough_o leave_v in_o he_o to_o make_v he_o able_a to_o do_v many_o good_a work_n i_o mean_v work_n that_o be_v material_o and_o moral_o good_a he_o can_v if_o he_o will_v make_v restitution_n of_o that_o that_o he_o have_v get_v unjust_o and_o do_v work_n of_o mercy_n also_o to_o the_o poor_a else_o will_v not_o daniel_n 4.27_o have_v speak_v thus_o to_o such_o a_o man_n as_o nabuchadnezzar_n be_v break_v off_o thy_o sin_n by_o righteousness_n and_o thy_o iniquity_n by_o show_v mercy_n to_o the_o poor_a and_o that_o which_o the_o young_a man_n say_v of_o the_o outward_a observation_n of_o all_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o second_o table_n matth._n 19_o 20._o all_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o keep_v from_o my_o youth_n up_o that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v even_o of_o many_o a_o gentile_a rom._n 2.14_o the_o gentile_n do_v by_o nature_n the_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n and_o in_o the_o church_n many_o a_o man_n be_v even_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n able_a to_o say_v not_o of_o the_o second_o table_n only_o but_o of_o the_o three_o latter_a commandment_n of_o the_o first_o table_n also_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o letter_n and_o external_a observation_n of_o they_o all_o these_o have_v i_o keep_v three_o 3._o he_o can_v if_o he_o will_v frequent_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n the_o plain_a and_o most_o powerful_a ministry_n and_o that_o constant_o when_o thou_o be_v young_a say_v our_o saviour_n to_o peter_n john_n 21.18_o thou_o girde_v thyself_o and_o walkedst_a whither_o thou_o will_v so_o much_o freedom_n of_o will_n every_o man_n have_v by_o nature_n so_o much_o power_n even_o by_o that_o general_a and_o common_a grace_n and_o assistance_n that_o god_n communicate_v unto_o all_o man_n that_o he_o may_v go_v to_o church_n if_o he_o will_v yea_o he_o may_v if_o he_o will_v ride_v or_o go_v many_o mile_n to_o a_o sermon_n ordinary_o as_o well_o as_o he_o may_v to_o a_o market_n so_o far_o the_o lord_n speak_v of_o such_o as_o be_v no_o better_a than_o natural_a man_n tell_v the_o prophet_n ezek._n 33.31_o they_o come_v to_o thou_o as_o the_o people_n come_v and_o they_o sit_v before_o thou_o as_o my_o people_n and_o they_o hear_v thy_o word_n 4._o four_o he_o may_v if_o he_o will_v so_o serious_o mark_v and_o observe_v the_o word_n that_o be_v preach_v unto_o he_o and_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n which_o he_o see_v and_o feel_v as_o he_o may_v bring_v himself_o thereby_o unto_o legal_a repentance_n even_o to_o such_o a_o sight_n and_o sense_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n as_o may_v make_v his_o heart_n to_o quake_v and_o judge_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o a_o most_o miserable_a estate_n of_o they_o that_o be_v no_o more_o than_o natural_a man_n we_o do_v read_v esa._n 58.3_o that_o they_o do_v use_v in_o the_o time_n of_o god_n judgement_n upon_o they_o to_o fast_o and_o afflict_v their_o own_o soul_n and_o of_o ahab_n and_o felix_n we_o read_v how_o by_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o observe_v what_o they_o hear_v they_o be_v wrought_v upon_o ahab_n 1_o king_n 21.27.29_o rend_v his_o clothes_n put_z sackcloth_z upon_o his_o flesh_n fast_v and_o humble_v himself_o before_o god_n and_o felix_n act_n 24.25_o tremble_v exceed_o 5._o five_o and_o last_o he_o may_v be_v able_a out_o of_o this_o sense_n he_o have_v of_o his_o own_o miserable_a estate_n not_o only_o to_o desire_v the_o prayer_n of_o other_o as_o pharaoh_n do_v exod._n 10.17_o and_o jeroboam_fw-la 1_o king_n 13.6_o but_o even_o himself_o also_o to_o cry_v importunate_o and_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o mercy_n so_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o mariner_n jonah_n 1._o that_o in_o the_o extreme_a fear_n they_o be_v in_o through_o the_o apprehension_n of_o god_n wrath_n they_o cry_v not_o only_o every_o man_n unto_o his_o god_n verse_n 5._o but_o unto_o the_o lord_n also_o unto_o jehovah_n verse_n 14._o so_o it_o be_v likewise_o say_v of_o saul_n act_v 9.11_o behold_v he_o pray_v when_o our_o saviour_n exhort_v the_o hypocritical_a jew_n in_o a_o allegorical_a speech_n to_o make_v their_o peace_n with_o god_n in_o time_n while_o this_o life_n and_o the_o day_n of_o grace_n last_v luke_n 12.58_o 59_o he_o make_v this_o preface_n to_o that_o exhortation_n verse_n 57_o yea_o and_o why_o even_o of_o yourselves_o judge_v you_o not_o what_o be_v right_a as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v you_o have_v so_o much_o light_n and_o judgement_n in_o yourselves_o even_o by_o nature_n as_o to_o discern_v that_o that_o be_v fit_a and_o necessary_a to_o be_v do_v even_o by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n a_o man_n may_v be_v able_a out_o of_o the_o apprehension_n and_o sense_n of_o his_o own_o fearful_a condition_n to_o desire_v reconciliation_n with_o god_n and_o to_o cry_v earnest_o for_o it_o quest._n now_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v ask_v i_o and_o what_o be_v all_o to_o the_o purpose_n that_o you_o say_v a_o natural_a man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v see_v none_o of_o all_o this_o be_v any_o thing_n worth_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n or_o please_v unto_o he_o see_v there_o be_v no_o true_a goodness_n in_o any_o of_o this_o that_o a_o natural_a man_n do_v without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n hebrew_n 11.6_o 1._o i_o answer_v first_o that_o though_o this_o be_v so_o yet_o i_o may_v say_v to_o the_o natural_a man_n that_o do_v these_o thing_n that_o do_v thus_o what_o in_o he_o lie_v as_o our_o saviour_n say_v to_o the_o scribe_n mark_v 12.34_o thou_o be_v not_o far_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n such_o a_o man_n be_v near_o to_o heaven_n then_o any_o other_o natural_a man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v 2._o second_o that_o though_o by_o do_v all_o this_o that_o lie_v in_o his_o power_n 1_o he_o can_v deserve_v neither_o ex_fw-la condigno_fw-la nor_o ex_fw-la congruo_fw-la as_o the_o papist_n speak_v that_o god_n shall_v save_v he_o or_o give_v he_o his_o grace_n for_o god_n grace_n be_v free_a he_o work_v in_o man_n both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v of_o his_o own_o good_a pleasure_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v phil._n 2.13_o 2_o he_o can_v have_v no_o certain_a assurance_n when_o he_o have_v do_v all_o this_o that_o lie_v in_o he_o to_o do_v that_o he_o shall_v find_v mercy_n with_o god_n for_o there_o be_v no_o promise_n make_v to_o these_o thing_n all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n yea_o and_o amen_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2_o cor._n 1.20_o till_o a_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o have_v no_o promise_n from_o god_n yet_o may_v the_o natural_a man_n be_v great_o encourage_v to_o do_v thus_o what_o lie_v in_o he_o to_o fly_v from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v and_o to_o please_v god_n and_o may_v conceive_v hope_n that_o by_o do_v these_o thing_n as_o well_o as_o he_o be_v able_a god_n will_v be_v please_v out_o of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n to_o show_v mercy_n on_o he_o and_o these_o ground_n he_o have_v out_o of_o god_n word_n for_o his_o encouragement_n therein_o 1._o because_o the_o lord_n have_v reveal_v himself_o in_o his_o word_n to_o be_v so_o infinite_a in_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n exod._n 34.7_o and_o have_v swear_v ezek._n 33.11_o that_o he_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o the_o death_n of_o the_o wicked_a 2._o because_o god_n seek_v to_o the_o vile_a sinner_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n 2_o cor._n 5._o ●0_n
in_o our_o heart_n be_v because_o we_o observe_v it_o no_o more_o nor_o take_v ourselves_o with_o it_o we_o feel_v it_o no_o burden_n nor_o trouble_v to_o we_o we_o complain_v not_o more_o to_o god_n of_o it_o nor_o cry_v more_o earnest_o to_o he_o for_o help_v against_o it_o we_o have_v not_o because_o we_o ask_v not_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o another_o case_n jam._n 4.2_o lectures_fw-fr on_o psal._n li._n 6_o lecture_n xcv_o on_o psalm_n li._n 6._o august_n xix_o mdcxxviii_o and_o in_o the_o hide_a part_n thou_o have_v make_v i_o to_o know_v wisdom_n we_o have_v already_o hear_v that_o david_n sue_v unto_o god_n for_o mercy_n in_o the_o pardon_n of_o those_o heinous_a sin_n he_o have_v fall_v into_o do_v make_v humble_a confession_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o accuse_v himself_o before_o god_n for_o it_o not_o only_o in_o gross_a and_o general_a ver_fw-la 3._o but_o more_o full_o in_o the_o three_o verse_n follow_v for_o 1._o he_o acknowledge_v his_o sin_n in_o particular_a that_o very_a sin_n that_o nathan_n have_v charge_v he_o with_o ver_fw-la 4._o i_o have_v do_v this_o evil_a in_o thy_o sight_n 2._o he_o aggravate_v his_o sin_n by_o four_o argument_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 1._o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o person_n against_o who_o he_o have_v sin_v verse_n 4._o against_o thou_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v and_o do_v this_o evil_a in_o thy_o sight_n 2._o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o fountain_n and_o root_n from_o whence_o this_o his_o sin_n do_v spring_v even_o his_o vile_a and_o curse_a nature_n ver_fw-la 5._o behold_v i_o be_v bear_v in_o iniquity_n and_o in_o sin_n do_v my_o mother_n conceive_v i_o 3._o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o that_o delight_n the_o lord_n take_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o uprightness_n of_o the_o heart_n which_o he_o find_v his_o corrupt_a heart_n so_o far_o from_o special_o in_o the_o commit_n of_o these_o foul_a sin_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o six_o verse_n behold_v thou_o desire_v truth_n in_o the_o inward_a part_n 4._o last_o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o that_o truth_n of_o save_a grace_n which_o god_n have_v wrought_v in_o he_o before_o he_o fall_v into_o these_o sin_n in_o these_o last_o word_n of_o the_o six_o verse_n and_o in_o the_o hide_a part_n thou_o have_v make_v i_o to_o know_v wisdom_n for_o so_o i_o read_v the_o word_n 1._o because_o the_o original_n will_v bear_v this_o sense_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o as_o may_v be_v show_v by_o many_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n where_o word_n of_o the_o future_a tense_n be_v put_v for_o the_o preter-perfect_a tense_n and_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o most_o and_o best_a interpreter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o septuagint_n the_o vulgar_a latin_a pagin_n vatablus_n tremellius_n calvin_n bucer_n the_o geneva_n translatour_n who_o all_o understand_v the_o word_n to_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o time_n past_a not_o of_o the_o present_a or_o future_a time_n 2._o because_o this_o sense_n do_v best_a agree_v with_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n for_o david_n do_v yet_o continue_v in_o the_o aggravation_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o in_o profess_v his_o humiliation_n and_o sorrow_n for_o it_o the_o sum_n then_o of_o these_o word_n be_v a_o aggravation_n of_o his_o foul_a sin_n from_o the_o consideration_n of_o that_o sound_a conversion_n and_o truth_n of_o grace_n that_o god_n have_v wrought_v in_o he_o before_o he_o do_v thus_o fall_v and_o in_o the_o word_n there_o be_v these_o three_o principal_a thing_n to_o be_v observe_v 1._o the_o description_n david_n make_v of_o his_o own_o true_a conversion_n and_o regeneration_n in_o the_o hide_a part_n he_o have_v know_v wisdom_n 2._o the_o author_n and_o worker_n of_o this_o his_o conversion_n in_o the_o hide_a part_n thou_o have_v make_v i_o to_o know_v wisdom_n 3._o the_o end_n and_o purpose_n david_n have_v in_o mention_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o conversion_n in_o this_o place_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o aggravate_v and_o increase_v his_o sin_n by_o the_o consideration_n of_o it_o nota._n and_o for_o the_o first_o of_o these_o three_o point_n before_o we_o can_v receive_v that_o instruction_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n intend_v to_o give_v we_o in_o they_o three_o question_n must_v first_o be_v move_v and_o answer_v for_o the_o open_n of_o the_o word_n 1._o first_o what_o mean_v he_o here_o by_o wisdom_n answ._n i_o answer_v by_o wisdom_n he_o mean_v true_a religion_n and_o piety_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o right_a way_n how_o to_o serve_v god_n and_o to_o save_v our_o own_o soul_n this_o only_a the_o holy_a ghost_n call_v true_a wisdom_n unto_o man_n he_o say_v say_v job_n 28.28_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v wisdom_n teach_v we_o so_o to_o number_v our_o day_n to_o be_v so_o persuade_v of_o and_o to_o think_v of_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o our_o life_n say_v moses_n in_o his_o prayer_n psal._n 90_o 1●_n as_o we_o may_v apply_v our_o heart_n unto_o wisdom_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v as_o we_o may_v serious_o study_v and_o endeavour_v to_o please_v thou_o and_o provide_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o own_o soul_n but_o wisdom_n be_v justify_v of_o her_o child_n say_v our_o saviour_n matth._n 11.19_o as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v though_o the_o right_a way_n of_o salvation_n which_o john_n baptist_n and_o i_o do_v teach_v be_v despise_v and_o reject_v by_o the_o world_n yet_o by_o all_o those_o that_o god_n have_v appoint_v unto_o salvation_n it_o be_v approve_v of_o and_o receive_v 2._o second_o what_o mean_v he_o here_o by_o the_o hide_a part_n answ._n i_o answer_v by_o it_o he_o mean_v the_o heart_n which_o he_o call_v before_o the_o inward_a part_n thus_o the_o lord_n himself_o expound_v it_o job_n 38.36_o who_o have_v put_v wisdom_n in_o the_o inward_a part_n or_o who_o have_v give_v understanding_n to_o the_o heart_n so_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o regenerate_a part_n the_o hide_a man_n of_o the_o heart_n 1_o pet._n 3.4_o because_o it_o be_v hide_v and_o conceal_v from_o all_o man_n who_o can_v know_v it_o jer._n 17.9_o thou_o even_o thou_o only_o say_v solomon_n 1_o king_n 8.39_o know_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o the_o child_n of_o man_n 3._o three_o and_o how_o be_v he_o then_o say_v here_o to_o have_v know_v wisdom_n in_o the_o hide_a part_n answ._n i_o answer_v he_o do_v not_o only_o see_v and_o discern_v in_o his_o judgement_n the_o right_a way_n of_o salvation_n but_o god_n have_v make_v he_o able_a also_o with_o his_o heart_n and_o in_o affection_n to_o approve_v and_o like_v of_o it_o to_o know_v it_o feel_o experimental_o effectual_o and_o indeed_o this_o be_v the_o only_a right_n and_o save_a knowledge_n this_o be_v the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o apostle_n make_v so_o high_a account_n of_o doubtless_o say_v he_o phil._n 3.8.10_o i_o count_v all_o thing_n but_o loss_n for_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o i_o m●y_v know_v he_o and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o the_o fellowship_n of_o his_o suffering_n that_o be_v experimental_o and_o effectual_o and_o they_o that_o know_v not_o god_n and_o his_o way_n thus_o in_o their_o heart_n but_o in_o their_o brain_n only_o know_v he_o not_o aright_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o priest_n elye_v son_n 1_o sam._n 2.12_o and_o may_v be_v too_o true_o of_o many_o a_o minister_n now_o even_o of_o such_o as_o can_v preach_v well_o that_o they_o know_v not_o the_o lord_n the_o word_n then_o be_v thus_o open_v we_o see_v this_o doctrine_n do_v natural_o arise_v from_o they_o for_o our_o instruction_n 21_o that_o true_a and_o save_a knowledge_n be_v the_o principal_a work_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o man_n see_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o doctrine_n in_o three_o point_n first_o in_o every_o one_o who_o god_n do_v convert_v and_o regenerate_a he_o work_v save_v knowledge_n &_o spiritual_a understanding_n this_o be_v the_o tenor_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n jer._n 31_o 3●_n 34._o i_o will_v put_v my_o law_n in_o their_o inward_a part_n and_o write_v it_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n and_o they_o shall_v teach_v no_o more_o every_o man_n his_o neighbour_n and_o every_o man_n his_o brother_n say_v know_v the_o lord_n for_o they_o shall_v all_o know_v i_o from_o the_o least_o of_o they_o to_o the_o great_a of_o they_o say_v the_o lord_n for_o i_o will_v forgive_v their_o iniquity_n and_o i_o will_v remember_v their_o sin_n no_o more_o every_o one_o who_o god_n receive_v into_o covenant_n and_o to_o favour_n who_o sin_n he_o forgive_v even_o the_o least_o the_o weak_a of_o they_o all_o
thy_o estate_n even_o by_o the_o nature_n and_o quality_n of_o that_o knowledge_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o and_o for_o our_o help_n herein_o i_o will_v show_v you_o the_o sign_n and_o note_n whereby_o sound_a and_o save_a knowledge_n such_o as_o be_v the_o work_n not_o of_o nature_n but_o of_o god_n sanctify_a spirit_n may_v be_v discern_v and_o judge_v of_o and_o they_o be_v refer_v to_o these_o three_o head_n the_o first_o be_v take_v from_o the_o object_n of_o this_o knowledge_n the_o second_o from_o the_o property_n and_o quality_n of_o it_o the_o three_o and_o last_o from_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o in_o he_o that_o have_v it_o and_o concern_v the_o object_n of_o it_o we_o have_v these_o two_o note_n to_o know_v it_o by_o knowledge_n first_o the_o object_n of_o all_o save_a knowledge_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o that_o have_v it_o have_v get_v it_o out_o of_o this_o book_n love_v it_o delight_v in_o it_o study_v it_o esteem_v more_o of_o it_o then_o of_o all_o the_o book_n in_o the_o world_n he_o that_o have_v get_v his_o knowledge_n out_o of_o other_o book_n more_o than_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n affect_v and_o delight_v in_o other_o book_n more_o than_o in_o they_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o suspect_v he_o have_v no_o save_v knowledge_n in_o he_o by_o thy_o precept_n thy_o word_n i_o get_v understanding_n say_v david_n psalm_n 119.104_o and_o verse_n 99_o i_o have_v more_o understanding_n than_o all_o my_o teacher_n for_o thy_o testimony_n be_v my_o meditation_n thus_o get_v he_o his_o knowledge_n and_o the_o knowledge_n he_o get_v thus_o he_o esteem_v the_o only_a knowledge_n and_o such_o as_o he_o take_v comfort_n in_o o_o how_o love_v i_o thy_o law_n it_o be_v my_o meditation_n all_o the_o day_n verse_n 97._o and_o paul_n commend_v the_o knowledge_n that_o timothy_n have_v learn_v and_o charge_v he_o to_o hold_v and_o continue_v in_o it_o 2_o timothy_n 3.14_o commend_v it_o by_o this_o note_n verse_n 15._o from_o a_o child_n thou_o have_v know_v the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v able_a to_o make_v thou_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o be_v a_o excellent_a knowledge_n indeed_o that_o be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o man_n wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o no_o knowledge_n can_v do_v this_o but_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n only_o second_o though_o the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v the_o object_n of_o save_a knowledge_n and_o he_o that_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n desire_v to_o know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o dare_v not_o shut_v his_o eye_n against_o any_o light_n that_o he_o may_v receive_v from_o the_o word_n we_o be_v present_a before_o god_n say_v cornelius_n act_v 10.33_o to_o hear_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v command_v thou_o of_o god_n yet_o the_o special_a object_n of_o save_a knowledge_n be_v those_o part_n of_o the_o word_n that_o be_v most_o useful_a and_o profitable_a that_o concern_v ourselves_o if_o a_o man_n be_v never_o so_o learned_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o understand_v all_o mystery_n and_o all_o knowledge_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o cor._n 13.2_o yet_o if_o he_o know_v not_o and_o desire_v not_o to_o know_v above_o all_o thing_n the_o thing_n that_o concern_v his_o own_o practice_n his_o own_o salvation_n he_o have_v no_o sound_n or_o save_a knowledge_n in_o he_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o prudent_a be_v to_o understand_v his_o way_n say_v solomon_n pro._n 14.8_o that_o be_v sound_a wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n to_o know_v how_o thing_n stand_v at_o home_n between_o god_n and_o his_o own_o soul_n to_o understand_v his_o own_o way_n whether_o it_o be_v right_a or_o wrong_n let_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n dwell_v in_o you_o rich_o in_o all_o wisdom_n say_v the_o apostle_n col._n 3.16_o teach_v and_o admonish_v your_o own_o self_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v if_o you_o can_v teach_v and_o admonish_v your_o own_o self_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n dwell_v not_o in_o you_o in_o wisdom_n there_o be_v no_o save_v knowledge_n in_o you_o this_o be_v save_v knowledge_n for_o a_o man_n to_o know_v his_o own_o sin_n the_o evil_a of_o his_o own_o way_n make_v i_o to_o know_v my_o transgression_n and_o my_o sin_n say_v job_n 13_o 23._o that_o i_o may_v be_v humble_v for_o it_o and_o forsake_v it_o this_o be_v save_v knowledge_n to_o know_v christ_n aright_o i_o determine_v not_o say_v paul_n 1_o corinthian_n 7.2_o to_o know_v any_o thing_n among_o you_o save_v jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v this_o be_v save_v knowledge_n to_o know_v how_o we_o may_v walk_v in_o our_o whole_a conversation_n to_o please_v and_o honour_n god_n cause_v i_o to_o know_v the_o way_n wherein_o i_o shall_v walk_v say_v david_n psal._n 14●_n 8_o this_o be_v that_o that_o the_o people_n and_o publican_n and_o soldier_n when_o god_n have_v effectual_o touch_v their_o heart_n by_o johns_n ministry_n desire_v to_o know_v and_o learn_v of_o john_n luk._n 3.10_o 12_o 14._o though_o doubtless_o they_o may_v have_v learn_v of_o he_o many_o other_o high_a and_o excellent_a point_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v and_o though_o a_o man_n abound_v never_o so_o much_o in_o knowledge_n yea_o even_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o if_o he_o know_v not_o these_o thing_n if_o he_o can_v see_v a_o far_o off_o nor_o discern_v these_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o his_o future_a estate_n he_o be_v blind_a say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o pet._n 1.9_o he_o see_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n he_o that_o can_v see_v nor_o understand_v that_o his_o swear_n or_o his_o drunkenness_n his_o usury_n or_o his_o idleness_n be_v a_o sin_n certain_o he_o have_v no_o save_v knowledge_n in_o he_o knowledge_n the_o second_o sort_n of_o sign_n be_v take_v from_o the_o property_n the_o quality_n and_o nature_n of_o save_a knowledge_n and_o those_o be_v also_o two_o for_o first_o save_v knowledge_n be_v a_o clear_a and_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o those_o profitable_a and_o necessary_a truth_n that_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o we_o in_o his_o word_n i_o know_v there_o be_v degree_n in_o this_o certainty_n some_o see_v and_o know_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n more_o clear_o and_o certain_o then_o other_o of_o god_n servant_n do_v yet_o every_o one_o that_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n have_v in_o his_o measure_n a_o clear_a and_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o these_o thing_n the_o word_n be_v write_v to_o that_o end_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o this_o certainty_n of_o knowledge_n proverbes_n 22.20_o 21._o have_v not_o i_o write_v to_o thou_o excellent_a thing_n in_o counsel_n and_o knowledge_n that_o i_o may_v make_v thou_o know_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v ordain_v by_o christ_n and_o give_v to_o his_o church_n to_o that_o end_n also_o ephesian_n 4.14_o and_o every_o one_o that_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n be_v able_a to_o say_v with_o the_o apostle_n john_n 6.69_o we_o believe_v and_o be_v sure_a that_o thou_o be_v that_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n and_o with_o paul_n rom._n 14.14_o i_o know_v and_o be_o persuade_v this_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n my_o people_n shall_v know_v my_o name_n say_v the_o lord_n esa._n 52.6_o they_o shall_v know_v in_o that_o day_n that_o i_o be_o he_o that_o do_v speak_v behold_v it_o be_v i._o and_o he_o that_o know_v himself_o thus_o to_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n be_v so_o sure_a of_o the_o truth_n that_o nothing_o that_o be_v object_v by_o any_o adversary_n against_o it_o though_o so_o learned_o as_o he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o answer_v he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o draw_v he_o from_o it_o the_o sheep_n follow_v he_o say_v our_o saviour_n john_n 10.4_o 5._o for_o they_o know_v his_o voice_n and_o a_o stranger_n will_v they_o not_o follow_v but_o will_v flee_v from_o he_o for_o they_o know_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o stranger_n he_o that_o be_v spiritual_a teach_v of_o god_n judge_v all_o thing_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o corinthian_n 2.15_o he_o have_v judgement_n to_o discern_v of_o that_o that_o be_v teach_v yet_o he_o himself_o be_v judge_v of_o no_o man_n no_o man_n shall_v alter_v he_o or_o sway_n with_o he_o against_o the_o truth_n i_o have_v not_o depart_v from_o thy_o judgement_n say_v david_n psal._n 119.102_o for_o thou_o have_v teach_v i_o they_o that_o have_v indeed_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n shall_v never_o depart_v from_o his_o truth_n they_o that_o either_o be_v fall_v away_o from_o the_o truth_n that_o once_o they_o profess_v or_o that_o can_v attain_v to_o any_o certainty_n in_o religion_n but_o be_v like_o child_n toss_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o
the_o lord_n hos._n 8.12_o speak_v of_o ephraim_n the_o whole_a church_n of_o israel_n as_o of_o one_o man_n the_o great_a thing_n of_o my_o law_n but_o they_o be_v count_v as_o a_o strange_a thing_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v as_o a_o letter_n or_o epistle_n send_v from_o god_n to_o every_o man_n and_o woman_n that_o be_v a_o member_n of_o his_o church_n and_o it_o be_v a_o high_a contempt_n do_v to_o god_n by_o any_o man_n that_o refuse_v to_o receive_v it_o or_o count_v it_o as_o a_o strange_a thing_n that_o think_v there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o it_o that_o concern_v not_o he_o nay_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o a_o christian_a man_n be_v more_o interest_v in_o which_o a_o man_n may_v say_v it_o belong_v to_o he_o and_o be_v his_o own_o wherein_o he_o may_v challenge_v a_o propriety_n to_o himself_o than_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v therefore_o call_v his_o inheritance_n moses_n command_v we_o a_o law_n say_v god_n people_n deut._n 33.4_o even_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o congregation_n of_o jacob_n and_o so_o david_n speak_v of_o it_o psal._n 119.111_o thy_o testimony_n have_v i_o take_v as_o a_o heritage_n for_o ever_o and_o what_o may_v be_v say_v more_o proper_o to_o be_v a_o man_n own_o then_o his_o inheritance_n be_v or_o who_o will_v not_o be_v desirous_a to_o know_v his_o own_o inheritance_n yea_o and_o every_o parcel_n every_o foot_n of_o land_n that_o do_v belong_v unto_o it_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o motive_n to_o persuade_v we_o to_o seek_v knowledge_n be_v take_v from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o necessity_n and_o benefit_n of_o knowledge_n compare_v with_o the_o danger_n and_o mischief_n of_o ignorance_n 2_o this_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o four_o point_n first_o knowledge_n be_v a_o duty_n command_v we_o of_o god_n and_o that_o in_o the_o first_o and_o great_a commandment_n of_o his_o law_n every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o know_v god_n and_o his_o will_n reveal_v in_o his_o word_n as_o well_o as_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o fear_n god_n or_o to_o love_v he_o or_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o or_o to_o perform_v any_o other_o duty_n of_o service_n or_o worship_n unto_o he_o and_o thou_o solomon_n my_o son_n say_v david_n not_o as_o a_o father_n only_o but_o as_o a_o prophet_n too_o 1_o chron._n 28.9_o know_v thou_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o father_n be_v you_o not_o unwise_a say_v the_o apostle_n ephes._n 5.17_o but_o understand_v what_o the_o will_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v yea_o you_o be_v all_o bind_v to_o increase_v in_o knowledge_n as_o god_n give_v you_o mean_n and_o to_o seek_v to_o abound_v in_o it_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 14.20_o brethren_n be_v not_o child_n in_o understand_v but_o in_o understanding_n be_v perfect_a man_n and_o col._n 3.6_o let_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n dwell_v in_o you_o rich_o be_v plain_a and_o direct_a commandment_n of_o god_n give_v unto_o every_o man_n on_o the_o other_o side_n ignorance_n in_o these_o matter_n be_v a_o sin_n that_o grieve_v god_n much_o and_o high_o provoke_v he_o see_v how_o god_n complain_v of_o this_o jer._n 4.22_o my_o people_n be_v foolish_a they_o have_v not_o know_v i_o they_o be_v sortish_a child_n and_o have_v no_o understanding_n yea_o see_v how_o angry_a christ_n be_v for_o this_o even_a with_o elect_a disciple_n be_v you_o also_o yet_o without_o understanding_n say_v he_o to_o they_o matth._n 15.16_o when_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o that_o he_o have_v say_v touch_v that_o which_o defile_v a_o man_n and_o at_o another_o time_n mar._n 8.17_o perceive_v you_o not_o yet_o neither_o understand_v have_v you_o your_o heart_n yet_o harden_v and_o how_o do_v the_o apostle_n heb._n 5.11.12_o rebuke_v they_o for_o be_v such_o dullard_n under_o the_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n that_o they_o have_v so_o long_o enjoy_v yea_o he_o threaten_v they_o heb._n 6.1_o 4._o that_o if_o they_o do_v not_o stir_v up_o themselves_o and_o endeavour_v to_o grow_v to_o great_a ripeness_n and_o perfection_n in_o knowledge_n they_o will_v be_v in_o danger_n to_o fall_v quite_o away_o from_o god_n even_o into_o the_o unpardonable_a sin_n certain_o god_n will_v be_v angry_a even_o with_o you_o that_o be_v his_o own_o people_n if_o you_o profit_v not_o in_o knowledge_n according_a to_o the_o mean_n he_o give_v you_o what_o will_v he_o then_o be_v with_o they_o that_o have_v no_o spiritual_a knowledge_n in_o they_o at_o all_o nor_o any_o desire_n of_o knowledge_n let_v no_o man_n think_v it_o a_o advantage_n to_o he_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n when_o he_o may_v have_v the_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n or_o that_o such_o ignorance_n will_v be_v any_o excuse_n to_o his_o sin_n to_o such_o the_o lord_n will_v say_v as_o abiah_n the_o king_n of_o juda_n say_v to_o israel_n 2_o chron._n 13_o 5._o ought_v you_o not_o to_o know_v whether_o thou_o know_v my_o will_n or_o no_o that_o be_v nether_a here_o nor_o there_o but_o ought_v thou_o not_o to_o have_v know_v be_v it_o not_o thy_o sin_n that_o thou_o be_v so_o ignorant_a of_o it_o say_v not_o thou_o before_o the_o angel_n before_o christ_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n say_v solomon_n eccle._n 5.6_o it_o be_v a_o error_n it_o be_v out_o of_o my_o ignorance_n that_o i_o make_v such_o a_o vow_n wherefore_o shall_v god_n be_v angry_a at_o thy_o voice_n and_o destroy_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o will_v not_o excuse_v thy_o rash_a vow_n but_o rather_o such_o a_o excuse_n will_v anger_v the_o lord_n and_o provoke_v he_o to_o accurse_v thou_o in_o whatsoever_o thou_o take_v in_o hand_n be_v not_o deceive_v belove_v certain_o god_n will_v be_v high_o offend_v with_o you_o even_o for_o your_o ignorance_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v reveal_v from_o heaven_n against_o man_n for_o their_o ignorance_n many_o way_n 1._o in_o corporal_a judgement_n my_o people_n be_v go_v into_o captivity_n say_v the_o lord_n esa._n 5.13_o because_o they_o have_v no_o knowledge_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o many_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o have_v fall_v upon_o the_o state_n and_o upon_o many_o of_o your_o own_o family_n and_o person_n that_o there_o be_v so_o much_o ignorance_n so_o little_a desire_n of_o knowledge_n among_o man_n 2._o in_o spiritual_a judgement_n the_o people_n that_o do_v not_o understand_v shall_v fall_v hos._n 4.14_o certain_o god_n punish_v the_o wilful_a ignorance_n of_o many_o man_n and_o their_o contempt_n of_o knowledge_n by_o give_v they_o up_o unto_o many_o foul_a sin_n as_o they_o regard_v not_o to_o know_v god_n say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 1.28_o even_o so_o god_n deliver_v they_o up_o unto_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n to_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o convenient_a 3._o with_o eternal_a judgement_n it_o be_v a_o people_n that_o do_v err_v in_o their_o heart_n say_v the_o lord_n psal._n 95.10_o 11._o and_o they_o have_v not_o know_v my_o way_n unto_o who_o i_o swear_v in_o my_o wrath_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o my_o rest_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v even_o for_o this_o cause_n they_o shall_v never_o come_v to_o heaven_n for_o that_o be_v mean_v by_o god_n rest_n there_o and_o not_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n only_o as_o be_v plain_a by_o that_o application_n the_o apostle_n make_v of_o this_o place_n heb._n 3_o &_o 4._o because_o they_o have_v not_o know_v my_o way_n say_v the_o lord_n certain_o man_n shall_v be_v damn_v not_o only_o though_o they_o sin_v ignorant_o their_o ignorance_n shall_v be_v no_o excuse_n unto_o they_o but_o even_o because_o of_o their_o ignorance_n when_o christ_n shall_v come_v at_o the_o last_o day_n inflame_v fire_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2_o thess._n 1.8_o he_o will_v take_v vengeance_n on_o they_o that_o know_v not_o god_n it_o be_v a_o people_n of_o no_o understanding_n say_v the_o lord_n esa._n 27.11_o therefore_o he_o that_o make_v they_o will_v not_o have_v mercy_n upon_o they_o and_o he_o that_o form_v they_o will_v show_v they_o no_o favour_n let_v no_o man_n plead_v for_o his_o ignorance_n that_o yet_o his_o punishment_n in_o hell_n shall_v not_o be_v so_o great_a as_o they_o that_o have_v have_v much_o knowledge_n and_o yet_o have_v do_v as_o bad_a as_o he_o his_o ignorance_n will_v be_v some_o privilege_n unto_o he_o for_o so_o say_v our_o saviour_n luke_n 12._o ●8_o he_o that_o know_v not_o his_o master_n will_v and_o do_v commit_v thing_n worthy_a of_o stripe_n shall_v be_v beat_v with_o few_o stripe_n for_o 1._o no_o heart_n can_v conceive_v how_o great_a and_o intolerable_a his_o misery_n shall_v be_v that_o shall_v have_v the_o few_o stripe_n that_o shall_v have_v the_o least_o portion_n
give_v you_o pastor_n according_a to_o my_o heart_n which_o shall_v feed_v you_o with_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n it_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o harvest_n that_o send_v forth_o labourer_n into_o his_o harvest_n as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v matth._n 9.38_o and_o even_o as_o he_o do_v at_o the_o first_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n not_o only_o send_v forth_o his_o apostle_n his_o chief_a labourer_n into_o his_o harvest_n but_o do_v also_o appoint_v they_o the_o special_a field_n and_o part_n of_o the_o field_n where_o they_o shall_v work_v go_v not_o into_o the_o way_n of_o the_o gentile_n say_v our_o saviour_n to_o they_o matthew_n 10.5_o 6._o and_o into_o any_o city_n of_o the_o samaritan_n enter_v you_o not_o but_o go_v rather_o to_o the_o lose_a sheep_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o after_o when_o he_o do_v send_v they_o to_o the_o gentile_n to_o work_v in_o that_o field_n he_o still_o have_v a_o special_a hand_n in_o appoint_v they_o what_o part_n of_o the_o field_n they_o shall_v work_v in_o he_o forbid_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o word_n in_o asia_n act_v 16.6_o and_o verse_n 7._o he_o suffer_v they_o not_o to_o go_v into_o bythinia_n and_o verse_n 10._o he_o call_v and_o command_v they_o to_o go_v into_o macedonia_n and_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n there_o and_o even_o so_o now_o also_o though_o not_o so_o sensible_o as_o then_o because_o vision_n and_o revelation_n be_v now_o cease_v yet_o as_o true_o and_o powerful_o the_o lord_n have_v still_o a_o special_a hand_n in_o dispose_v the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n who_o shall_v enjoy_v it_o and_o who_o shall_v want_v it_o how_o long_o it_o shall_v continue_v where_o it_o be_v and_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v remove_v from_o thence_o it_o be_v he_o that_o hold_v the_o seven_o star_n that_o be_v all_o the_o star_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o himself_o revel_v 2.1_o he_o dispose_v of_o they_o as_o it_o please_v he_o and_o he_o also_o protect_v and_o maintain_v they_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o pluck_v they_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n or_o to_o remove_v they_o till_o they_o have_v do_v the_o work_n that_o he_o have_v appoint_v they_o to_o do_v and_o he_o lie_v they_o down_o himself_o and_o so_o the_o lord_n speak_v of_o his_o two_o witness_n that_o be_v of_o that_o competent_a number_n of_o faithful_a teacher_n that_o god_n say_v he_o will_v raise_v up_o to_o his_o church_n to_o discover_v and_o oppose_v antichrist_n revel_v 11._o not_o only_o that_o the_o just_a period_n of_o time_n even_o to_o a_o day_n be_v determine_v by_o he_o how_o long_o they_o shall_v prophesy_v verse_n 3._o even_o a_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o threescore_o day_n but_o also_o verse_n 7._o that_o till_o they_o have_v finish_v their_o testimony_n and_o do_v that_o work_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v they_o the_o beast_n that_o ascend_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n shall_v not_o make_v war_n against_o they_o nor_o overcome_v and_o kill_v they_o applic._n let_v no_o man_n impute_v it_o either_o to_o chance_v or_o to_o the_o goodness_n or_o policy_n of_o man_n that_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v banish_v out_o of_o the_o palatinate_n and_o many_o other_o place_n be_v preach_v in_o this_o land_n and_o among_o we_o so_o plentiful_o that_o it_o have_v continue_v and_o make_v it_o abode_n with_o we_o for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n no_o no_o let_v we_o acknowledge_v god_n special_a hand_n and_o goodness_n towards_o our_o land_n and_o towards_o ourselves_o in_o this_o and_o let_v he_o have_v all_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o certain_o if_o we_o have_v heart_n right_o to_o consider_v and_o weigh_v this_o with_o ourselves_o we_o will_v find_v just_a cause_n to_o say_v of_o this_o as_o the_o church_n do_v in_o another_o case_n psal._n 118.23_o this_o be_v the_o lord_n do_v and_o it_o be_v marvellous_a in_o our_o eye_n it_o be_v of_o the_o lord_n certain_o and_o of_o his_o special_a goodness_n that_o any_o man_n do_v enjoy_v the_o benefit_n of_o a_o sound_a ministry_n whereby_o he_o have_v his_o outward_a call_n unto_o grace_n and_o which_o be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o his_o conversion_n and_o even_o in_o this_o first_o respect_n the_o conversion_n of_o a_o man_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o god_n alone_o second_o as_o god_n give_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o all_o such_o as_o do_v enjoy_v they_o it_o be_v of_o his_o gift_n and_o goodness_n only_o that_o they_o have_v they_o so_o be_v this_o a_o special_a and_o rare_a favour_n of_o god_n not_o common_a unto_o all_o man_n all_o man_n have_v not_o mean_n give_v they_o of_o god_n sufficient_a to_o convert_v they_o and_o bring_v they_o to_o save_v grace_n this_o be_v a_o peculiar_a favour_n that_o god_n vouchsafe_v but_o unto_o some_o it_o be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o man_n it_o be_v a_o error_n to_o think_v that_o god_n do_v in_o this_o respect_n love_n and_o desire_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n alike_o that_o he_o give_v to_o one_o as_o well_o as_o to_o another_o without_o difference_n the_o mean_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o grace_n and_o salvation_n these_o two_o thing_n indeed_o can_v be_v deny_v 1._o that_o god_n do_v vouchsafe_v the_o mean_n of_o save_a grace_n yea_o as_o excellent_a mean_n to_o many_o a_o reprobate_n as_o he_o do_v to_o any_o of_o his_o elect_a when_o the_o sour_a go_v forth_o to_o sow_v matth._n 13.3_o 8._o there_o fall_v every_o whit_n as_o good_a seed_n upon_o the_o highway_n side_n and_o upon_o the_o stony_a and_o thorny_a land_n as_o upon_o the_o good_a ground_n but_o his_o main_a aim_n be_v for_o the_o elect_v sake_n that_o live_v among_o they_o as_o our_o saviour_n also_o teach_v we_o in_o another_o case_n in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o tare_n matthew_n 13.29_o 30._o 2._o to_o all_o man_n even_o to_o all_o the_o reprobate_n god_n vouchsafe_v some_o mean_n of_o grace_n some_o mean_n to_o convert_v they_o and_o bring_v they_o unto_o repentance_n christ_n light_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n say_v the_o apostle_n john_n 1.9_o every_o man_n have_v receive_v from_o he_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o do_v in_o many_o thing_n know_v what_o be_v good_a and_o what_o be_v evil_a and_o that_o which_o may_v be_v know_v of_o god_n say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 1.9_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v and_o worship_v be_v manifest_a in_o they_o in_o their_o very_a heart_n and_o conscience_n for_o god_n show_v it_o unto_o they_o even_o unto_o all_o man_n by_o nature_n god_n have_v give_v this_o knowledge_n unto_o they_o and_o they_o that_o have_v this_o light_n and_o knowledge_n can_v be_v deny_v to_o have_v mean_n give_v they_o of_o god_n to_o bring_v they_o unto_o grace_n and_o unto_o repentance_n nay_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o rom._n 2.4_o that_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n whereof_o all_o man_n live_v do_v taste_v lead_v they_o unto_o repentance_n be_v a_o notable_a mean_n to_o turn_v and_o convert_v their_o heart_n unto_o god_n yea_o he_o tell_v we_o ver_fw-la 15._o that_o the_o gentile_n have_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o which_o the_o law_n require_v write_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o that_o thereupon_o they_o do_v by_o nature_n the_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n verse_n 14._o but_o all_o this_o that_o man_n have_v by_o nature_n these_o help_n that_o god_n thus_o vouchsafe_v unto_o all_o man_n be_v not_o sufficient_a mean_n of_o grace_n and_o conversion_n they_o be_v sufficient_a indeed_o to_o make_v they_o without_o excuse_n and_o to_o that_o end_n they_o serve_v as_o the_o apostle_n express_o teach_v we_o rom._n 1.10_o by_o give_v unto_o all_o man_n this_o light_n and_o these_o mean_v god_n have_v not_o leave_v himself_o without_o witness_n against_o they_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v act._n 14.17_o but_o to_o breed_v save_v grace_n and_o to_o work_v sound_a conversion_n in_o the_o heart_n they_o be_v not_o sufficient_a no_o no_o it_o be_v not_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n not_o that_o knowledge_n of_o god_n that_o be_v get_v by_o the_o contemplation_n of_o the_o creature_n nor_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n that_o be_v write_v in_o all_o man_n heart_n but_o the_o gospel_n only_o that_o be_v a_o sufficient_a mean_n of_o grace_n and_o conversion_n the_o gospel_n be_v the_o ministration_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o 2_o corinth_n 3.8_o and_o therefore_o he_o tell_v the_o ephesian_n 2_o 12._o that_o while_n they_o be_v without_o christ_n while_o they_o be_v stranger_n from_o the_o covenant_n of_o promise_n they_o be_v without_o hope_n till_o christ_n
purpose_n in_o give_v his_o word_n to_o some_o be_v that_o some_o shall_v be_v make_v inexcusable_a by_o it_o when_o the_o lord_n send_v the_o prophet_n ezekiel_n to_o preach_v he_o do_v not_o absolute_o intend_v in_o send_v he_o that_o all_o to_o who_o he_o shall_v preach_v shall_v profit_v by_o he_o for_o he_o tell_v and_o assure_v he_o of_o the_o contrary_a ezek._n 3.7_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n will_v not_o hearken_v unto_o thou_o for_o they_o will_v not_o hearken_v unto_o i_o for_o all_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n be_v impudent_a and_o hard-hearted_a what_o be_v the_o lord_n intent_n then_o in_o send_v he_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v express_v ezek._n 2.5_o yet_o they_o shall_v know_v that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o prophet_n among_o they_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v to_o make_v they_o without_o excuse_n to_o make_v their_o condemnation_n more_o just_a the_o lord_n send_v his_o word_n unto_o they_o so_o when_o our_o saviour_n say_v matth._n 24.14_o that_o before_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v in_o all_o the_o world_n he_o declare_v that_o the_o intent_n of_o god_n in_o send_v his_o apostle_n to_o preach_v to_o all_o nation_n be_v for_o a_o witness_n to_o all_o nation_n that_o be_v to_o make_v they_o without_o excuse_n and_o our_o saviour_n himself_o speak_v of_o his_o own_o ministry_n say_v john_n 9.39_o for_o judgement_n be_o i_o come_v into_o this_o world_n not_o only_o that_o those_o that_o see_v not_o might_n see_v but_o also_o that_o they_o which_o see_v may_v be_v make_v blind_a three_o and_o last_o it_o be_v express_o say_v that_o this_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n whereby_o man_n be_v make_v to_o profit_n by_o the_o mean_n to_o repent_v and_o believe_v be_v peculiar_a and_o proper_a to_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n and_o not_o common_a to_o all_o man_n as_o many_o as_o be_v ordain_v to_o eternal_a life_n believe_v say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n act_v 13.48_o and_o rom._n 8.30_o who_o he_o do_v predestine_v they_o he_o also_o call_v that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o a_o inward_a and_o effectual_a call_n and_o 11.7_o the_o election_n have_v obtain_v it_o and_o the_o rest_n be_v blind_v and_o thus_o you_o have_v see_v also_o the_o second_o point_n prove_v that_o every_o man_n to_o who_o god_n give_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n have_v not_o so_o powerful_a and_o effectual_a grace_n give_v he_o as_o whereby_o he_o shall_v be_v convert_v now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o three_o and_o last_o point_n i_o propound_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o doctrine_n namely_o that_o the_o work_n of_o god_n spirit_n whereby_o he_o make_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n effectual_a to_o the_o conversion_n of_o any_o be_v most_o free_a it_o proceed_v mere_o from_o god_n free_a grace_n and_o good_a pleasure_n the_o son_n quicken_v who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v of_o his_o own_o will_v say_v the_o apostle_n jam._n 1.18_o beget_v he_o we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n so_o when_o our_o saviour_n fall_v into_o a_o admiration_n at_o the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o this_o case_n that_o he_o shall_v hide_v the_o mystery_n of_o his_o kingdom_n from_o the_o wise_a man_n in_o the_o world_n and_o reveal_v they_o to_o babe_n luke_n 10.21_o he_o can_v find_v no_o other_o reason_n of_o it_o but_o only_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n even_o so_o o_o father_n say_v he_o for_o so_o it_o seem_v good_a in_o thy_o sight_n the_o conversion_n of_o a_o man_n you_o see_v depend_v whole_o on_o the_o will_n and_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o will_n of_o man_n it_o depend_v not_o at_o all_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n say_v the_o evangelist_n john_n 1.13_o be_v bear_v not_o of_o blood_n nor_o of_o the_o will_n of_o the_o flesh_n nor_o of_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n this_o will_v appear_v clear_o to_o we_o in_o two_o point_n first_o nothing_o that_o be_v in_o man_n before_o his_o conversion_n can_v move_v or_o procure_v god_n to_o convert_v he_o he_o have_v call_v we_o with_o a_o holy_a call_n say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o timothy_n 1.9_o not_o according_a to_o our_o work_n but_o according_a to_o his_o own_o purpose_n and_o grace_n even_o when_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n he_o quicken_v we_o say_v the_o apostle_n ephesian_n 2.5_o and_o add_v these_o word_n upon_o it_o by_o grace_n you_o be_v save_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v thus_o say_v nothing_o but_o god_n free_a grace_n can_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o man_n that_o have_v no_o goodness_n in_o he_o to_o move_v god_n to_o it_o but_o be_v dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n second_o nothing_o that_o be_v in_o man_n before_o his_o conversion_n can_v hinder_v god_n work_n in_o his_o conversion_n true_a it_o be_v the_o best_a of_o god_n elect_n have_v be_v apt_a to_o draw_v back_o and_o to_o resist_v god_n grace_n in_o the_o work_n of_o their_o conversion_n and_o even_o of_o they_o the_o lord_n may_v complain_v as_o rome_n 10.21_o all_o the_o day_n long_o have_v i_o stretch_v out_o my_o hand_n to_o a_o disobedient_a and_o gainsay_v people_n but_o when_o god_n be_v please_v to_o convert_v they_o he_o do_v by_o his_o grace_n overcome_v this_o rebellion_n that_o be_v in_o their_o will_n that_o they_o resist_v no_o long_o yet_o do_v he_o not_o convert_v any_o man_n against_o his_o will_n nor_o force_v the_o will_n of_o man_n to_o obey_v his_o call_n but_o he_o change_v the_o will_n of_o man_n and_o take_v from_o it_o that_o frowardness_n and_o rebelliousnesse_n that_o be_v in_o it_o by_o nature_n and_o make_v it_o hearty_o willing_a to_o yield_v unto_o god_n i_o will_v take_v the_o stony_a heart_n out_o of_o they_o say_v the_o lord_n ezek._n 11.19_o and_o will_v give_v they_o a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n god_n work_v in_o we_o to_o will_v of_o his_o good_a pleasure_n say_v the_o apostle_n phil._n 2.13_o this_o may_v fit_o be_v resemble_v by_o the_o change_n that_o god_n wrought_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o esau_n towards_o his_o brother_n jacob_n esau_n heart_n and_o will_n be_v most_o strong_o bend_v against_o jacob_n he_o come_v against_o he_o with_o a_o great_a power_n and_o with_o a_o most_o cruel_a mind_n genesis_n 32.6_o yet_o when_o he_o meet_v he_o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o hurt_v he_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o do_v god_n by_o force_n restrain_v he_o or_o bind_v he_o from_o hurt_v jacob_n no_o very_o god_n change_v his_o will_n and_o heart_n that_o he_o be_v natural_o affect_v towards_o he_o gen_n 33.4_o he_o run_v to_o meet_v he_o and_o embrace_v he_o and_o fall_v on_o his_o neck_n and_o kiss_v he_o and_o weep_v in_o kindness_n over_o he_o and_o even_o so_o be_v it_o in_o this_o case_n the_o lord_n in_o convert_v of_o a_o man_n do_v not_o only_o persuade_v he_o by_o effectual_a argument_n out_o of_o the_o word_n to_o repent_v and_o turn_v to_o god_n nor_o only_o give_v a_o man_n so_o much_o grace_n as_o he_o may_v be_v able_a to_o repent_v and_o turn_v to_o god_n if_o he_o will_v himself_o but_o he_o do_v also_o infuse_v and_o work_v the_o grace_n of_o repentance_n in_o he_o he_o do_v so_o change_v his_o will_n that_o he_o do_v most_o willing_o repent_v and_o obey_v the_o call_n of_o god_n a_o new_a heart_n will_v i_o give_v you_o say_v the_o lord_n ezechiel_n 36.26_o 27._o and_o a_o new_a spirit_n will_v i_o put_v within_o you_o and_o i_o will_v put_v my_o spirit_n within_o you_o and_o cause_v you_o to_o walk_v in_o my_o statute_n and_o you_o shall_v keep_v my_o judgement_n and_o do_v they_o and_o so_o say_v the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n act._n 5.31_o god_n have_v exalt_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prince_n and_o a_o saviour_n not_o only_o to_o persuade_v man_n to_o repent_v or_o to_o give_v they_o power_n to_o repent_v if_o they_o will_v themselves_o but_o to_o give_v repentance_n unto_o israel_n to_o infuse_v this_o grace_n into_o they_o and_o to_o work_v this_o change_n in_o their_o heart_n so_o that_o you_o see_v the_o work_n of_o man_n conversion_n be_v whole_o to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o his_o will_n and_o good_a pleasure_n not_o to_o the_o natural_a will_n of_o man_n at_o all_o it_o lie_v not_o in_o man_n either_o to_o further_a or_o absolute_o to_o hinder_v it_o in_o which_o respect_n we_o shall_v find_v it_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n 2_o cor._n 5.17_o and_o to_o the_o work_n of_o raise_v man_n from_o death_n john_n 5.25_o and_o to_o the_o work_n of_o generation_n john_n 3.5_o and_o what_o use_n have_v man_n of_o his_o own_o will_n in_o any_o of_o these_o work_n what_o power_n
they_o be_v distemper_v in_o their_o brain_n either_o with_o melancholy_n or_o satan_n tentation_n as_o experience_n show_v we_o daily_o that_o many_o good_a soul_n be_v which_o make_v they_o judge_v worse_o of_o their_o estate_n than_o they_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o do_v if_o they_o have_v be_v their_o own_o man_n and_o in_o their_o right_a mind_n they_o will_v easy_o have_v discern_v they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o be_v so_o trouble_v see_v they_o be_v once_o regenerate_v be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o grace_n and_o consequent_o their_o sin_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v how_o heinous_a soever_o can_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o they_o rom._n 6.14_o they_o have_v not_o sin_v nor_o can_v possible_o sin_n as_o other_o man_n do_v with_o the_o full_a sway_n of_o their_o soul_n the_o full_a consent_n of_o their_o will_n for_o the_o seed_n of_o god_n remain_v still_o in_o they_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o john_n 3.9_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v damn_v for_o any_o sin_n that_o they_o have_v commit_v or_o can_v commit_v for_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o that_o be_v once_o in_o christ_n rom._n 8.1_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a they_o shall_v die_v in_o their_o sin_n but_o they_o shall_v certain_o be_v renew_v by_o repentance_n no_o sin_n they_o can_v commit_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n or_o cast_v they_o out_o of_o his_o favour_n for_o who_o christ_n ever_o love_v he_o love_v to_o the_o end_n john_n 13.1_o to_o these_o man_n that_o shall_v thus_o object_v as_o doubtless_o too_o many_o be_v apt_a to_o do_v answ._n too_o many_o be_v apt_a to_o think_v that_o all_o god_n people_n who_o they_o see_v humble_v and_o much_o perplex_v in_o mind_n for_o their_o sin_n be_v distemper_v in_o their_o brain_n or_o at_o least_o be_v but_o silly_a weak_a creature_n void_a of_o all_o judgement_n to_o these_o man_n i_o say_v that_o those_o three_o person_n who_o i_o have_v bring_v for_o witness_n to_o confirm_v this_o truth_n be_v all_o in_o their_o right_a mind_n they_o be_v not_o mad_a they_o be_v not_o distemper_v in_o their_o brain_n either_o through_o melancholy_a o●_n tentation_n though_o i_o confess_v many_o of_o god_n people_n be_v so_o often_o time_n they_o judge_v not_o otherwise_o of_o their_o fall_n then_o they_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o do_v they_o be_v no_o more_o trouble_v for_o their_o sin_n then_o they_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o be_v and_o to_o prove_v this_o i_o will_v produce_v my_o second_o witness_n that_o i_o tell_v you_o i_o will_v bring_v for_o proof_n of_o this_o truth_n the_o lord_n himself_o who_o be_v great_a than_o the_o conscience_n do_v thus_o judge_v of_o the_o foul_a sin_n that_o regenerate_a man_n fall_v into_o for_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v or_o can_v possible_o be_v say_v out_o of_o god_n word_n touch_v the_o unchangeableness_n of_o god_n love_n to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n or_o touch_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o their_o happy_a estate_n that_o be_v once_o true_o regenerate_v yet_o the_o lord_n have_v both_o by_o his_o word_n and_o work_n give_v two_o testimony_n in_o this_o case_n whereby_o he_o have_v clear_o declare_v how_o he_o judge_v and_o esteem_v of_o the_o sin_n that_o his_o own_o people_n fall_v into_o and_o the_o two_o testimony_n god_n have_v give_v concern_v this_o matter_n be_v these_o 1._o that_o he_o can_v no_o better_o brook_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o regenerate_a then_o of_o other_o man_n but_o hate_v sin_n as_o much_o in_o they_o as_o in_o any_o other_o person_n 2._o that_o he_o hate_v sin_n more_o in_o they_o then_o in_o any_o other_o observe_v the_o proof_n of_o the_o first_o of_o these_o two_o testimony_n in_o three_o point_n first_o of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o regenerate_a of_o god_n own_o people_n it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n will_v not_o pardon_v they_o he_o be_v a_o holy_a god_n he_o be_v a_o jealous_a god_n say_v joshua_n to_o god_n own_o people_n josh._n 24.19_o he_o will_v not_o forgive_v your_o transgression_n nor_o your_o sin_n and_o even_o of_o christ_n jesus_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n the_o lord_n say_v to_o his_o people_n exod._n 23.21_o obey_v his_o voice_n provoke_v he_o not_o for_o he_o will_v not_o pardon_v your_o transgression_n and_o mark_v the_o reason_n god_n give_v for_o it_o for_o my_o name_n be_v in_o he_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v because_o he_o be_v god_n therefore_o he_o will_v not_o pardon_v your_o transgression_n he_o be_v not_o god_n if_o he_o shall_v do_v it_o what_o will_v you_o say_v can_v the_o sin_n that_o a_o regenerate_a man_n fall_v into_o be_v pardon_v be_v all_o their_o fall_n impardonable_a sin_n no_o very_o for_o i_o prove_v to_o you_o the_o last_o day_n that_o no_o elect_a child_n of_o god_n can_v possible_o commit_v the_o unpardonable_a sin_n that_o all_o their_o sin_n shall_v upon_o their_o repentance_n certain_o be_v forgive_v the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o john_n 1.7_o but_o in_o those_o fearful_a sentence_n that_o i_o mention_v to_o you_o two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v 1._o that_o god_n will_v not_o wink_v at_o christ_n himself_o because_o he_o be_v god_n can_v brook_v nor_o bear_v with_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o people_n he_o can_v count_v they_o innocent_a nor_o think_v well_o of_o they_o till_o they_o have_v repent_v 2._o that_o though_o ever_o since_o they_o first_o believe_v and_o be_v convert_v they_o have_v have_v a_o pardon_n upon_o record_n in_o heaven_n that_o can_v never_o be_v revoke_v nor_o cancel_v yet_o if_o they_o fall_v again_o into_o gross_a sin_n they_o shall_v have_v no_o comfort_n at_o all_o of_o that_o pardon_n but_o be_v as_o if_o they_o have_v no_o pardon_n till_o by_o renew_v their_o repentance_n and_o faith_n they_o have_v sue_v out_o their_o pardon_n and_o be_v able_a to_o show_v and_o plead_v it_o in_o the_o court_n of_o their_o own_o conscience_n second_o of_o the_o regenerate_a of_o god_n own_o people_n it_o be_v say_v that_o though_o they_o be_v not_o eternal_o damn_v for_o their_o sin_n yet_o the_o lord_n will_v take_v vengeance_n of_o they_o and_o plague_v they_o for_o they_o in_o this_o life_n as_o grievousl_o and_o sharp_o as_o any_o other_o man_n in_o all_o the_o world_n the_o lord_n our_o god_n know_v well_o how_o to_o love_v the_o person_n of_o his_o child_n and_o yet_o to_o hate_v his_o sin_n nevertheless_o how_o to_o continue_v his_o fatherly_a affection_n towards_o he_o and_o yet_o to_o show_v extreme_a detestation_n to_o his_o sin_n if_o they_o break_v my_o statute_n and_o keep_v not_o my_o commandment_n say_v the_o lord_n psalm_n 89.31_o 34._o then_o will_v i_o visit_v their_o transgression_n with_o the_o rod_n and_o their_o iniquity_n with_o stripe_n nevertheless_o my_o love_a kindness_n i_o will_v not_o utter_o take_v from_o he_o nor_o suffer_v my_o faithfulness_n to_o fail_v my_o covenant_n will_v i_o not_o break_v nor_o alter_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v go_v out_o of_o my_o lip_n and_o again_o psalm_n 99.8_o thou_o be_v a_o god_n that_o forgave_v they_o though_o thou_o do_v take_v vengeance_n of_o their_o invention_n though_o the_o regenerate_a man_n have_v a_o general_a pardon_n and_o all_o his_o sin_n be_v so_o forgive_v he_o as_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v impute_v to_o his_o condemnation_n yet_o if_o he_o give_v himself_o liberty_n to_o sin_n he_o can_v hope_v to_o be_v exempt_v from_o any_o of_o god_n judgement_n and_o plague_n that_o ever_o fall_v upon_o sinner_n in_o this_o life_n he_o may_v be_v plague_v as_o much_o as_o ever_o man_n be_v in_o his_o estate_n in_o his_o name_n in_o his_o posterity_n in_o his_o body_n yea_o in_o his_o mind_n and_o conscience_n also_o and_o who_o can_v tell_v in_o what_o kind_n and_o in_o what_o measure_n god_n will_v plague_v he_o how_o heavy_a and_o sharp_a or_o of_o how_o long_a continuance_n the_o judgement_n shall_v be_v wherewith_o he_o will_v afflict_v he_o the_o lord_n we_o know_v have_v great_a store_n and_o variety_n of_o judgement_n to_o punish_v sinner_n with_o he_o have_v a_o armoury_n full_a of_o the_o weapon_n of_o his_o indignation_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v jeremy_n 50.25_o o_o how_o terrible_a have_v the_o lord_n show_v himself_o to_o many_o of_o his_o dear_a servant_n this_o way_n he_o be_v apt_a indeed_o as_o we_o hear_v the_o last_o day_n to_o pass_v by_o the_o frailty_n and_o infirmity_n of_o his_o servant_n such_o as_o they_o discern_v and_o bewail_v in_o themselves_o but_o wilful_a sin_n scandalous_a sin_n nay_o sin_n of_o negligence_n and_o carelessness_n such_o as_o themselves_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o he_o
be_v not_o wont_a to_o wink_v at_o in_o they_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o correct_v they_o sharp_o for_o such_o sin_n shall_v i_o instance_n in_o some_o few_o example_n for_o this_o and_o indeed_o how_o shall_v i_o spend_v the_o time_n more_o profitable_o in_o so_o secure_a a_o age_n as_o this_o first_o i_o will_v not_o stand_v upon_o the_o example_n of_o david_n how_o sharp_o god_n scourge_v he_o for_o those_o sin_n which_o he_o bewail_v in_o this_o psalm_n with_o what_o change_n and_o army_n of_o sorrow_n and_o plague_n as_o job_n speak_v cap._n 10.17_o he_o follow_v he_o ever_o after_o all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n for_o you_o may_v say_v his_o were_z most_o presumptuous_a and_o notorious_a sin_n such_o as_o few_o that_o be_v ever_o true_o regenerate_v have_v fall_v into_o i_o will_v therefore_o come_v to_o the_o second_o example_n wherein_o i_o will_v couple_v he_o and_o good_a hezechiah_n together_o what_o say_v you_o to_o that_o foolish_a pride_n they_o show_v the_o one_o in_o number_v the_o people_n the_o other_o in_o show_v all_o his_o treasure_n to_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o king_n of_o babel_n o_o how_o severe_a be_v god_n in_o his_o judgement_n against_o they_o both_o even_o for_o this_o sin_n of_o david_n it_o be_v say_v 1_o chron_n 21.14_o that_o god_n slay_v of_o his_o subject_n for_o that_o seventy_o thousand_o man_n and_o of_o hezechiah_n it_o be_v say_v ●_o chron_n 32.25_o that_o for_o that_o sin_n there_o be_v wrath_n upon_o he_o and_o upon_o judah_n and_o jerusalem_n but_o you_o will_v say_v also_o that_o this_o be_v a_o presumptuous_a sin_n o_o that_o we_o will_v learn_v yet_o from_o this_o example_n how_o unable_a god_n be_v to_o brook_v or_o bear_v with_o presumptuous_a sin_n though_o it_o be_v but_o in_o heart_n in_o his_o dear_a child_n but_o let_v we_o come_v to_o a_o three_o example_n what_o say_v you_o then_o to_o the_o sin_n of_o aaron_n and_o moses_n when_o they_o be_v bid_v to_o speak_v only_o to_o the_o rock_n and_o promise_v that_o it_o shall_v yield_v water_n enough_o for_o all_o the_o camp_n do_v but_o doubt_v a_o little_a and_o stagger_v at_o that_o promise_n and_o instead_o of_o speak_v only_o to_o the_o rock_n smite_v it_o twice_o you_o shall_v see_v the_o story_n numb_a 20.8_o 1●_n and_o moses_n in_o a_o passion_n speak_v unadvised_o with_o his_o lip_n as_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v psalm_n 106.33_o certain_o this_o be_v but_o a_o frailty_n in_o they_o no_o presumptuous_a sin_n and_o therefore_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o prophet_n there_o psalm_n 136.32_o 33._o lay_v that_o fault_n on_o the_o people_n rather_o than_o on_o they_o and_o so_o do_v moses_n himself_o also_o deut_n 1.37_o and_o yet_o see_v how_o angry_a the_o lord_n be_v with_o they_o even_o for_o this_o sin_n because_o of_o this_o he_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v entreat_v to_o let_v they_o go_v into_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n though_o moses_n earnest_o beseech_v he_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v he_o the_o lord_n be_v wroth_a with_o i_o say_v he_o deut._n 3.26_o and_o will_v not_o hear_v i_o but_o charge_v he_o to_o speak_v no_o more_o unto_o he_o of_o that_o matter_n o_o but_o you_o will_v say_v though_o this_o be_v but_o a_o sin_n of_o frailty_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o scandalous_a sin_n true_o it_o be_v so_o indeed_o and_o the_o lord_n allege_v that_o for_o the_o cause_n why_o he_o be_v so_o provoke_v by_o it_o because_o it_o be_v do_v open_o to_o the_o scandal_n of_o the_o people_n numb_a 20.12_o then_o learn_v by_o this_o example_n how_o severe_a god_n will_v be_v in_o his_o judgement_n upon_o his_o people_n for_o scandalous_a sin_n but_o what_o say_v you_o then_o to_o moses_n his_o delay_n of_o the_o circumcision_n of_o his_o son_n to_o old_a elye_v bear_v too_o much_o with_o his_o lewd_a son_n and_o the_o faithful_a corinthian_n go_v to_o the_o communion_n without_o care_n to_o prepare_v and_o examine_v themselves_o before_o certain_o these_o be_v but_o sin_n of_o carelessness_n and_o negligence_n and_o yet_o see_v how_o severe_a god_n be_v in_o his_o judgement_n against_o they_o even_o for_o these_o sin_n the_o lord_n meet_v moses_n in_o the_o inn_n and_o seek_v to_o kill_v he_o say_v the_o text_n exod._n 4.24_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o only_o bring_v old_a ely_n to_o a_o violent_a and_o strange_a death_n he_o break_v his_o neck_n 1_o sam._n 4_o 18._o but_o he_o plague_v his_o whole_a house_n and_o posterity_n for_o ever_o for_o that_o sin_n in_o a_o most_o fearful_a manner_n 1_o sam._n 2.31_o 33_o and_o cap._n 3.11.14_o the_o lord_n send_v a_o pestilence_n and_o mortality_n among_o the_o faithful_a corinthian_n even_o for_o this_o sin_n for_o this_o cause_n many_o be_v weak_a and_o sickly_a among_o you_o and_o many_o sleep_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 11.30_o behold_v how_o god_n hate_v and_o will_v punish_v his_o own_o people_n even_o for_o their_o negligence_n and_o carelessness_n if_o they_o judge_v not_o themselves_o for_o it_o and_o make_v conscience_n of_o it_o but_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o three_o degree_n that_o show_v much_o more_o how_o odious_a the_o sin_n of_o his_o own_o people_n be_v unto_o the_o lord_n for_o of_o the_o regenerate_a of_o god_n own_o people_n it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o may_v so_o sin_n as_o they_o may_v make_v their_o very_a person_n odious_a and_o hateful_a unto_o god_n they_o may_v make_v their_o god_n their_o enemy_n they_o rebel_v and_o vex_v his_o holy_a spirit_n say_v the_o prophet_n esa._n 6●_n 10_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o wilderness_n therefore_o he_o be_v turn_v to_o be_v their_o enemy_n when_o god_n hear_v this_o that_o be_v when_o he_o understand_v this_o that_o they_o fall_v into_o idolatry_n for_o that_o be_v the_o sin_n that_o so_o provoke_v he_o then_o as_o you_o may_v see_v vers_fw-la 58._o he_o be_v wroth_a say_v the_o psalmist_n psalm_n 78.59_o and_o great_o abhor_a israel_n though_o the_o lord_n can_v bear_v with_o many_o sin_n in_o his_o people_n or_o though_o he_o bear_v not_o with_o they_o yet_o can_v correct_v they_o only_o for_o they_o and_o love_v they_o never_o the_o worse_o as_o you_o know_v parent_n ofttimes_o do_v yet_o may_v god_n child_n fall_v into_o such_o sin_n as_o will_v even_o make_v they_o odious_a unto_o their_o father_n these_o be_v thing_n which_o defile_v a_o man_n and_o will_v make_v he_o loathsome_a say_v our_o saviour_n mat._n 15.20_o what_o be_v those_o thing_n that_o he_o tell_v we_o verse_n 19_o murder_n adultery_n fornication_n theft_n false_a witness_n blasphemy_n quest._n how_o can_v that_o be_v will_v you_o say_v who_o the_o lord_n once_o love_v in_o christ_n he_o love_v for_o ever_o i_o have_v love_v thou_o say_v the_o lord_n to_o his_o people_n jer._n 31.3_o with_o a_o everlasting_a love_n answ._n i_o answer_v that_o be_v most_o true_a yet_o may_v his_o child_n so_o provoke_v he_o that_o though_o he_o do_v not_o quite_o disinherit_v they_o or_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o father_n to_o they_o yet_o will_v he_o show_v they_o no_o countenance_n or_o fatherly_a affection_n at_o all_o as_o david_n so_o loathe_v absalon_n for_o murder_v his_o brother_n that_o though_o he_o continue_v a_o fatherly_a affection_n towards_o he_o still_o yea_o and_o after_o that_o too_o when_o he_o have_v do_v far_o worse_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o abide_v to_o see_v he_o let_v he_o turn_v to_o his_o own_o house_n and_o let_v he_o not_o see_v my_o face_n say_v he_o 2_o sam._n 14_o ●4_n a_o christian_a may_v by_o his_o sin_n cause_v his_o father_n so_o to_o loathe_v he_o as_o it_o may_v be_v he_o shall_v never_o have_v good_a countenance_n of_o he_o again_o he_o shall_v never_o see_v his_o face_n with_o comfort_n while_o he_o live_v his_o adoption_n the_o right_a and_o title_n he_o have_v thereby_o to_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n to_o christ_n and_o unto_o heaven_n the_o comfort_n i_o say_v of_o all_o these_o and_o of_o all_o the_o privilege_n the_o 〈◊〉_d he_o may_v make_v of_o they_o he_o shall_v loose_v as_o vzzia_n when_o he_o fall_v into_o a_o leprosy_n lose_v not_o his_o kingdom_n the_o right_a &_o title_n he_o have_v unto_o it_o thereby_o but_o he_o lose_v the_o use_n and_o execution_n of_o his_o regal_a authority_n to_o the_o very_a day_n of_o his_o death_n as_o we_o read_v ●_o chron._n 26.21_o of_o asa_n we_o read_v that_o though_o he_o die_v the_o child_n of_o god_n as_o appear_v both_o by_o that_o which_o be_v say_v of_o he_o in_o his_o life_n time_n 1_o kin._n 15.14_o that_o his_o heart_n be_v perfect_a with_o the_o lord_n all_o his_o day_n and_o also_o by_o the_o testimony_n be_v give_v of_o he_o twice_o after_o his_o death_n 2_o chron._n 20.32_o and_o 21.12_o
though_o he_o continue_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n to_o his_o very_a death_n yet_o by_o his_o sin_n he_o lose_v the_o use_n and_o operation_n the_o vigour_n power_n and_o comfort_n of_o his_o adoption_n and_o of_o that_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o he_o and_o recover_v it_o not_o even_o to_o his_o die_a day_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o that_o report_n the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v of_o his_o last_o day_n 2_o chron._n 16.10_o 12._o a_o fearful_a yet_o most_o profitable_a example_n for_o all_o secure_a christian_n to_o read_v and_o meditate_v of_o and_o thus_o you_o have_v hear_v the_o first_o testimony_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v in_o this_o case_n he_o hate_v sin_n every_o whit_n as_o much_o in_o the_o regenerate_a man_n as_o he_o do_v in_o any_o other_o person_n in_o the_o world_n lecture_n cix_o on_o psalm_n 51.6_o janu._n 27._o 1628._o the_o second_o testimony_n that_o i_o tell_v you_o the_o lord_n himself_o have_v give_v in_o this_o case_n be_v this_o that_o he_o show_v in_o this_o life_n more_o hatred_n to_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o own_o people_n than_o he_o do_v to_o the_o sin_n of_o any_o other_o man_n in_o the_o world_n and_o this_o he_o have_v in_o all_o age_n and_o do_v still_o declare_v four_o way_n 1._o he_o afflict_v in_o this_o life_n all_o his_o own_o people_n for_o sin_n so_o do_v he_o not_o all_o wicked_a man_n 2._o when_o he_o do_v intend_v to_o bring_v general_a judgement_n on_o the_o world_n or_o upon_o a_o nation_n he_o use_v to_o begin_v with_o his_o own_o people_n 3._o when_o he_o will_v make_v any_o a_o example_n unto_o other_o of_o his_o anger_n against_o sin_n he_o use_v to_o make_v choice_n of_o his_o own_o people_n for_o this_o purpose_n rather_o than_o of_o lewd_a and_o wicked_a man_n 4._o his_o judgement_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v more_o heavy_a and_o sharp_a upon_o his_o own_o people_n than_o those_o be_v which_o he_o use_v to_o inflict_v upon_o wicked_a man_n for_o the_o first_o of_o these_o it_o be_v wonderful_a to_o observe_v what_o difference_n god_n put_v between_o many_o lewd_a man_n and_o his_o dear_a child_n that_o way_n 1._o the_o lord_n use_v admirable_a patience_n and_o forbearance_n towards_o many_o lewd_a man_n he_o reserve_v they_o to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v punish_v say_v the_o apostle_n 2._o pet._n 2.9_o 2._o in_o this_o life_n many_o a_o wicked_a man_n go_v scotfree_a he_o taste_v of_o no_o affliction_n they_o be_v not_o in_o trouble_n as_o other_o man_n say_v he_o psalmist_n psal._n ●3_n ●_o neither_o be_v they_o plague_v like_o other_o man_n 3._o nay_o though_o their_o sin_n be_v outrageous_a yet_o god_n plague_v they_o not_o job_n speak_v of_o some_o job._n 24.12_o that_o be_v cruel_a oppressor_n and_o play_v the_o tyrant_n and_o yet_o say_v he_o god_n lay_v not_o folly_n unto_o they_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v he_o no_o way_n lay_v it_o to_o their_o charge_n 4._o the_o lord_n let_v they_o run_v riot_n and_o do_v what_o they_o list_v and_o never_o stop_v they_o in_o their_o course_n he_o suffer_v they_o to_o walk_v in_o their_o own_o way_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v act_v 14.16_o 5._o he_o hold_v his_o peace_n and_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o by_o his_o word_n rebuke_v they_o these_o thing_n have_v thou_o do_v and_o i_o keep_v silence_n say_v the_o lord_n psalm_n 50.21_o 6._o nay_o he_o seem_v not_o to_o see_v they_o but_o to_o wink_v at_o they_o the_o time_n of_o ignorance_n god_n wink_v at_o say_v paul_n act_v 17.30_o 7._o so_o that_o you_o see_v many_o lewd_a man_n be_v in_o this_o life_n privilege_v person_n they_o go_v under_o a_o protection_n as_o we_o read_v gen._n 4_o 15._o that_o cain_n do_v no_o man_n may_v touch_v cain_n on_o the_o other_o side_n look_v upon_o the_o estate_n of_o god_n child_n in_o this_o life_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v it_o be_v far_o otherwise_o with_o they_o they_o have_v no_o such_o privilege_n for_o 1._o every_o godly_a man_n shall_v be_v sure_a to_o be_v afflict_v in_o this_o life_n in_o one_o degree_n or_o other_o who_o the_o lord_n love_v he_o chasten_v say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n 12.6_o he_o scourge_v every_o son_n who_o he_o receive_v and_o verse_n 8._o if_o you_o be_v without_o chastisement_n whereof_o all_o be_v partaker_n then_o be_v you_o bastard_n and_o not_o son_n 2._o the_o lord_n use_v not_o to_o wink_v at_o his_o child_n fault_n but_o he_o observe_v they_o strict_o and_o if_o they_o fall_v into_o presumptuous_a and_o scandalous_a sin_n yea_o or_o into_o sin_n of_o secure_a carelessness_n and_o negligence_n they_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o hear_v of_o he_o and_o to_o taste_v of_o his_o rod_n if_o i_o sin_v say_v job_n 10.14_o thou_o mark_v i_o and_o will_v not_o acquit_v i_o from_o my_o iniquity_n his_o fire_n be_v in_o zion_n say_v the_o prophet_n esa._n 31.9_o and_o his_o furnace_n in_o jerusalem_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v they_o that_o sin_n there_o can_v escape_v the_o furnace_n of_o affliction_n as_o the_o same_o prophet_n speak_v and_o interprete_v himself_o isaiah_n 48.10_o 3_o last_o god_n use_v not_o nor_o may_v any_o child_n of_o god_n expect_v that_o he_o shall_v show_v such_o patience_n and_o forbearance_n towards_o he_o when_o he_o have_v sin_v as_o he_o use_v to_o do_v towards_o many_o a_o lewd_a man_n see_v this_o in_o that_o speech_n of_o phinehas_n and_o the_o prince_n unto_o the_o two_o tribe_n and_o the_o half_a josh._n 22.18_o it_o will_v be_v say_v he_o see_v you_o rebel_v to_o day_n against_o the_o lord_n that_o to_o morrow_n he_o will_v be_v wroth_a with_o the_o whole_a congregation_n of_o israel_n that_o wise_a and_o holy_a man_n you_o see_v expect_v present_a judgement_n will_v fall_v upon_o god_n people_n for_o their_o sin_n he_o have_v no_o hope_n that_o god_n will_v forbear_v they_o for_o any_o time_n if_o you_o rebel_v to_o day_n to_o morrow_n god_n vengeance_n will_v come_v second_o when_o the_o lord_n have_v purpose_v to_o bring_v upon_o the_o world_n or_o upon_o any_o nation_n any_o common_a calamity_n or_o desolation_n any_o overflow_a scourge_n that_o shall_v pass_v through_o a_o nation_n or_o place_n as_o the_o lord_n call_v it_o esa._n 28.18_o his_o manner_n have_v be_v to_o begin_v with_o his_o own_o church_n and_o people_n judgement_n must_v begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o pet._n 4.17_o begin_v at_o my_o sanctuary_n say_v the_o lord_n to_o the_o destroy_a angel_n ezek_n 9.6_o he_o be_v wont_n first_o to_o scourge_v his_o own_o people_n for_o their_o sin_n before_o he_o begin_v with_o the_o world_n and_o to_o make_v their_o misery_n and_o trouble_n a_o forerunner_n of_o the_o common_a and_o general_a destruction_n i_o take_v the_o cup_n at_o the_o lord_n hand_n the_o cup_n of_o god_n fury_n say_v the_o prophet_n jeremy_n 25.17_o and_o make_v all_o the_o nation_n to_o drink_v that_o be_v prophesy_v that_o they_o shall_v certain_o drink_v of_o it_o unto_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v send_v i_o but_o who_o be_v to_o drink_v first_o of_o this_o cup_n he_o tell_v we_o verse_n 18._o jerusalem_n and_o the_o city_n of_o juda_n and_o the_o king_n thereof_o and_o the_o prince_n thereof_o they_o be_v to_o begin_v in_o this_o cup_n to_o egypt_n and_o the_o philistine_n to_o edom_n and_o moab_n and_o the_o ammonite_n and_o to_o all_o other_o nation_n as_o he_o show_v in_o the_o verse_n follow_v so_o when_o our_o saviour_n have_v prophesy_v luke_n 21.10_o 11._o that_o before_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n nation_n shall_v rise_v against_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n against_o kingdom_n and_o great_a earthquake_n shall_v be_v in_o divers_a place_n and_o famine_n and_o pestilence_n he_o add_v verse_n 12._o but_o before_o all_o these_o they_o shall_v lay_v their_o hand_n on_o you_o speak_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n and_o persecute_v you_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o judgement_n shall_v begin_v at_o my_o house_n three_o the_o lord_n have_v be_v wont_a to_o make_v his_o own_o people_n example_n and_o spectacle_n of_o his_o wrath_n against_o sin_n unto_o other_o man_n thus_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o his_o time_n esa._n 8.18_o behold_v i_o and_o the_o child_n the_o lord_n have_v give_v i_o be_v for_o sign_n and_o for_o wonder_n in_o israel_n from_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n which_o dwell_v in_o mount_n zion_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v this_o be_v of_o the_o lord_n he_o make_v we_o so_o and_o thus_o speak_v the_o apostle_n of_o his_o time_n 1_o cor._n 4.9_o we_o be_v make_v a_o spectacle_n unto_o the_o world_n so_o the_o lord_n make_v vzzah_n a_o example_n to_o the_o whole_a congregation_n of_o israel_n of_o his_o wrath_n against_o they_o
all_o for_o carry_v his_o ark_n in_o a_o cart_n which_o by_o his_o ordinance_n shall_v have_v be_v carry_v on_o the_o priest_n shoulder_n only_o be_v vzza_n the_o worst_a man_n in_o all_o the_o company_n no_o very_o we_o have_v rather_o cause_v to_o judge_v he_o be_v a_o good_a man_n though_o he_o transgress_v god_n law_n in_o that_o point_n be_v god_n displease_v with_o vzza_n only_o or_o have_v he_o respect_v to_o his_o sin_n only_o in_o that_o judgement_n no_o very_o for_o because_o you_o do_v not_o carry_v the_o ark_n at_o the_o first_o say_v david_n to_o the_o priest_n 1_o chron._n 15.13_o because_o you_o set_v it_o on_o a_o cart_n the_o lord_n our_o god_n make_v a_o breach_n upon_o we_o all_o the_o congregation_n be_v as_o deep_a in_o that_o sin_n as_o vzza_n the_o lord_n be_v as_o much_o displease_v with_o they_o all_o as_o with_o he_o only_o he_o make_v he_o a_o example_n to_o they_o all_o that_o they_o may_v see_v what_o be_v due_a to_o they_o all_o in_o the_o judgement_n that_o fall_v upon_o he_o and_o david_n make_v that_o use_n of_o it_o as_o you_o may_v see_v 1_o chron._n 13.11.12_o david_n be_v displease_v that_o be_v grieve_v and_o trouble_v in_o mind_n because_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v a_o breach_n upon_o vzza_n and_o david_n be_v afraid_a of_o god_n that_o day_n in_o like_a manner_n do_v the_o lord_n deal_v with_o the_o young_a prophet_n that_o we_o read_v of_o 1_o king_n 13_o 24._o he_o make_v he_o a_o example_n to_o jerohoam_n and_o to_o all_o israel_n alas_o may_v you_o say_v be_v there_o never_o a_o great_a sinner_n in_o bethel_n nor_o in_o all_o israel_n never_o a_o fit_a man_n to_o be_v make_v a_o example_n of_o god_n severity_n than_o this_o poor_a man_n i_o answer_v great_a sinner_n there_o be_v many_o we_o may_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o prophet_n be_v a_o good_a man_n and_o god_n dear_a child_n though_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o old_a prophet_n he_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v in_o bethel_n contrary_a to_o god_n commandment_n and_o so_o do_v just_o deserve_v to_o die_v neither_o have_v the_o lord_n in_o that_o judgement_n so_o much_o respect_n to_o the_o sin_n of_o that_o good_a man_n as_o to_o the_o sin_n of_o jerohoam_n and_o all_o israel_n that_o by_o his_o severity_n towards_o his_o own_o servant_n for_o so_o small_a a_o sin_n they_o may_v either_o learn_v how_o much_o more_o be_v due_a to_o they_o for_o their_o gross_a idolatry_n and_o so_o fear_v and_o repent_v or_o else_o by_o the_o fall_n and_o inconstancy_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v bring_v to_o esteem_v the_o less_o of_o his_o pprophecy_n against_o they_o and_o so_o be_v further_o harden_v in_o their_o sin_n and_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v this_o respect_n in_o his_o judgement_n on_o the_o prophet_n may_v appear_v by_o that_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v verse_n 33._o of_o that_o chapter_n after_o this_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v after_o the_o prophet_n have_v so_o sin_v and_o be_v so_o plague_v of_o god_n for_o it_o jeroboam_fw-la return_v not_o from_o his_o evil_a way_n but_o make_v again_o of_o the_o low_a of_o the_o people_n priest_n of_o the_o high_a place_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v thus_o he_o receive_v no_o good_a by_o this_o example_n as_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v but_o become_v the_o worse_a by_o it_o and_o certain_o thus_o be_v we_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o marvellous_a severity_n god_n have_v of_o late_o show_v towards_o his_o people_n in_o the_o palatinate_n and_o other_o part_n of_o germany_n and_o towards_o the_o poor_a rocheller_n think_v not_o belove_v that_o they_o be_v great_a sinner_n than_o any_o other_o or_o then_o we_o be_v only_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v they_o example_n of_o his_o severity_n to_o we_o and_o to_o all_o man_n and_o we_o may_v say_v of_o they_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v 1_o cor._n 10.11_o all_o these_o thing_n happen_v unto_o they_o for_o ensample_n and_o thus_o it_o have_v seem_v good_a unto_o god_n only_o wise_a who_o be_v righteous_a in_o all_o his_o way_n and_o holy_a in_o all_o his_o work_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v psalm_n 145.17_o to_o make_v his_o dear_a servant_n spectacle_n and_o example_n of_o his_o severity_n against_o sin_n rather_o and_o often_o than_o he_o do_v the_o lewd_a man_n that_o live_v though_o sometime_o he_o bring_v they_o upon_o the_o stage_n also_o as_o he_o do_v korah_n and_o his_o company_n numb_a 16._o and_o 26.10_o the_o four_o and_o last_o way_n whereby_o god_n do_v in_o this_o life_n show_v more_o hatred_n to_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o own_o people_n then_o of_o any_o other_o man_n be_v this_o that_o though_o he_o do_v in_o this_o life_n execute_v his_o judgement_n also_o upon_o some_o wicked_a man_n as_o well_o as_o upon_o his_o own_o god_n be_v angry_a with_o the_o wicked_a say_v the_o prophet_n psalm_n 7.11_o and_o pla●ueth_v one_o or_o other_o of_o they_o every_o day_n yet_o be_v not_o his_o judgement_n usual_o when_o they_o do_v fall_v so_o heavy_a so_o sharp_a and_o extreme_a upon_o they_o as_o they_o be_v upon_o his_o own_o people_n god_n be_v very_o terrible_a in_o the_o assembly_n of_o his_o saint_n in_o his_o true_a church_n among_o his_o own_o people_n say_v the_o prophet_n psalm_n 89.7_o and_o of_o his_o judgement_n that_o he_o execute_v upon_o wicked_a man_n in_o this_o life_n if_o they_o be_v compare_v with_o those_o whereby_o he_o scourge_v his_o own_o people_n it_o may_v be_v say_v as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o misery_n and_o oppression_n the_o people_n endure_v under_o solomon_n compare_v with_o that_o they_o shall_v suffer_v under_o rehoboam_n 1_o kin._n 1●_n 11_o he_o chasten_v they_o with_o whip●_n but_o his_o own_o people_n with_o scorpion_n therefore_o when_o the_o lord_n threaten_v extreme_a affliction_n he_o express_v it_o thus_o micab_n 6.16_o you_o shall_v bear_v the_o reproach_n of_o my_o people_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o will_v so_o afflict_v you_o as_o i_o use_v to_o afflict_v my_o people_n when_o they_o provoke_v i_o see_v a_o experiment_n of_o this_o in_o both_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n never_o do_v any_o people_n in_o the_o world_n endure_v so_o great_a misery_n as_o god_n people_n do_v there_o in_o both_o of_o they_o of_o the_o first_o the_o church_n thus_o complain_v lamenta_fw-la 1.12_o behold_v and_o see_v if_o there_o be_v any_o sorrow_n like_a unto_o my_o sorrow_n which_o be_v do_v unto_o i_o wherewith_o the_o lord_n have_v afflict_v i_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o fierce_a anger_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n it_o have_v not_o be_v do_v say_v daniel_n 9_o 12._o as_o both_o be_v do_v upon_o jerusalem_n and_o such_o a_o destruction_n the_o lord_n himself_o foretell_v it_o shall_v be_v as_o never_o come_v upon_o any_o other_o people_n such_o as_o all_o other_o nation_n shall_v even_o wonder_v to_o see_v and_o hear_v of_o and_o be_v astonish_v at_o it_o this_o house_n which_o i_o have_v sanctify_v for_o my_o name_n say_v the_o lord_n 2_o chron._n 7.20.21_o will_v i_o cast_v out_o of_o my_o sight_n and_o will_v make_v it_o to_o be_v a_o proverb_n and_o a_o byword_n among_o all_o nation_n and_o this_o house_n which_o be_v high_a shall_v be_v a_o astonishment_n to_o every_o one_o that_o pass_v by_o it_o and_o ezek._n 5.9_o i_o will_v do_v in_o thou_o that_o which_o i_o have_v not_o do_v and_o whereunto_o i_o will_v not_o do_v any_o more_o the_o like_a and_o of_o the_o latter_a destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n our_o saviour_n propehsy_v mar._n 13.19_o in_o those_o day_n shall_v be_v affliction_n such_o as_o be_v not_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o creation_n which_o god_n make_v unto_o this_o time_n neither_o shall_v be_v and_o thus_o have_v we_o hear_v the_o doctrine_n confirm_v sufficient_o that_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o regenerate_a be_v in_o sundry_a respect_n more_o heinous_a and_o dangerous_a than_o the_o same_o sin_n be_v be_v commit_v by_o other_o man_n and_o this_o we_o have_v have_v prove_v both_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o regenerate_a themselves_o and_o by_o the_o lord_n own_o testimony_n he_o can_v as_o ill_o abide_v sin_n in_o his_o own_o people_n as_o in_o any_o other_o yea_o he_o have_v show_v more_o hatred_n in_o this_o life_n to_o their_o sin_n then_o to_o the_o sin_n of_o any_o other_o man_n let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o inquire_v into_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o and_o first_o let_v we_o inquire_v what_o shall_v be_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o lord_n be_v so_o severe_a against_o they_o above_o all_o other_o man_n for_o it_o may_v seem_v strange_a that_o have_v free_o pardon_v the_o sin_n of_o his_o people_n and_o be_v full_o reconcile_v to_o they_o in_o christ_n and_o love_v they_o dear_o with_o a_o everlasting_a
the_o harp_n and_o the_o viol_n the_o tabret_n and_o the_o pipe_n and_o wine_n be_v in_o our_o feast_n but_o we_o regard_v not_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o this_o his_o marvellous_a severity_n towards_o his_o people_n neither_o do_v we_o consider_v the_o operation_n of_o his_o hand_n while_o we_o enjoy_v our_o delight_n in_o all_o fullness_n we_o care_v not_o a_o rush_n what_o become_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o mark_v how_o we_o provoke_v god_n against_o we_o by_o our_o profane_a stupidity_n because_o they_o regard_v not_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v david_n psalm_n 28.5_o nor_o the_o operation_n of_o his_o hand_n he_o shall_v destroy_v they_o and_o not_o build_v they_o up_o we_o can_v take_v a_o ready_a way_n for_o the_o hasten_v of_o our_o own_o ruin_n then_o to_o be_v thus_o careless_a and_o senseless_a of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o his_o people_n lecture_n cxiii_o on_o psalm_n 51.6_o march_n 17._o 1628._o the_o second_o duty_n which_o we_o owe_v unto_o they_o that_o be_v in_o misery_n be_v this_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o take_v to_o heart_n the_o misery_n of_o the_o church_n abroad_o &_o to_o work_v our_o heart_n unto_o unfeigned_a grief_n and_o sorrow_n for_o they_o certain_o none_o of_o we_o can_v have_v any_o comfort_n in_o our_o estate_n till_o we_o can_v hearty_o grieve_v for_o the_o misery_n of_o our_o brethren_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n we_o know_v to_o condole_v any_o man_n that_o we_o see_v to_o be_v in_o misery_n job_n take_v great_a comfort_n in_o his_o great_a affliction_n in_o this_o that_o he_o have_v do_v so_o do_v not_o i_o weep_v say_v he_o job._n 30.25_o for_o he_o that_o be_v in_o trouble_n be_v not_o my_o soul_n grieve_v for_o the_o poor_a and_o if_o we_o must_v be_v thus_o affect_v with_o the_o misery_n of_o all_o man_n then_o much_o more_o with_o the_o misery_n of_o god_n people_n three_o sort_n of_o proof_n i_o will_v give_v you_o for_o this_o 1._o example_n 2._o a_o precept_n 3._o the_o reason_n and_o ground_n both_o of_o the_o example_n and_o of_o the_o precept_n also_o and_o the_o example_n that_o i_o will_v give_v you_o shall_v be_v of_o two_o sort_n first_o when_o the_o holy_a servant_n of_o god_n do_v but_o foresee_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n the_o trouble_n and_o affliction_n that_o shall_v befall_v the_o church_n they_o have_v be_v wont_a to_o be_v exceed_o affect_v and_o grieve_v for_o it_o though_o they_o be_v not_o to_o happen_v until_o many_o year_n after_o themselves_o be_v dead_a and_o go_v three_o notable_a example_n we_o have_v for_o this_o the_o first_o be_v of_o elisha_n of_o who_o we_o read_v 2_o king_n 8.11_o 12._o that_o when_o he_o look_v steadfast_o upon_o haza●l_n the_o man_n of_o god_n weep_v and_o when_o he_o ask_v he_o why_o he_o do_v so_o because_o i_o know_v say_v he_o the_o evil_a that_o thou_o will_v do_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n their_o strong_a hold_n will_v thou_o set_v on_o fire_n and_o their_o young_a man_n will_v thou_o slay_v with_o the_o sword_n and_o will_v dash_v their_o child_n and_o rip_v up_o their_o woman_n with_o child_n and_o this_o be_v certain_o no_o more_o nor_o so_o much_o neither_o as_o the_o bloody_a papist_n have_v do_v to_o many_o of_o god_n people_n where_o they_o have_v come_v the_o second_o example_n be_v of_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n i_o will_v weep_v bitter_o say_v he_o isaiah_n 22.4_o 5_o labour_v not_o to_o comfort_v i_o because_o of_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o my_o people_n why_o there_o be_v no_o such_o spoil_n make_v of_o god_n people_n in_o all_o his_o time_n in_o the_o day_n of_o vzzia_n jotham_n ahaz_n and_o hezechia_n in_o who_o time_n he_o prophesy_v as_o you_o may_v see_v esa._n 1.1_o no_o but_o he_o do_v foresee_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n a_o day_n of_o trouble_n and_o of_o tread_v down_o as_o he_o say_v verse_n 5._o and_o of_o perplexity_n by_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n in_o the_o valley_n of_o vision_n break_v down_o the_o wall_n a_o day_n of_o cry_v in_o the_o mountain_n the_o think_v upon_o the_o misery_n that_o the_o valley_n of_o vision_n the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n shall_v endure_v from_o the_o chaldaean_n which_o be_v to_o be_v above_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o his_o own_o death_n and_o consider_v that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n it_o be_v to_o be_v the_o lord_n do_v and_o a_o fruit_n of_o his_o wrath_n i_o say_v the_o consideration_n of_o this_o make_v the_o holy_a man_n to_o weep_v bitter_o and_o refuse_v to_o be_v comfort_v the_o three_o example_n be_v of_o daniel_n dan._n 8._o who_o when_o he_o do_v foresee_v the_o misery_n that_o god_n people_n be_v to_o endure_v under_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v before_o above_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o his_o own_o death_n how_o antiochus_n shall_v take_v away_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n verse_n 11_o 12._o and_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o transgression_n of_o god_n people_n shall_v cast_v down_o the_o truth_n to_o the_o ground_n how_o both_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o god_n and_o the_o host_n and_o army_n of_o god_n people_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o he_o to_o be_v tread_v under_o foot_n as_o it_o be_v verse_n 13._o how_o he_o shall_v destroy_v wonderful_o the_o holy_a people_n and_o prosper_v in_o it_o as_o it_o be_v verse_n 24._o when_o i_o say_v he_o do_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n foresee_v these_o misery_n that_o shall_v befall_v god_n people_n it_o be_v say_v verse_n 27_o that_o he_o even_o faint_v and_o be_v sick_a of_o grief_n for_o it_o certain_a day_n what_o will_v these_o holy_a man_n have_v do_v how_o will_v they_o have_v mourn_v if_o they_o have_v live_v in_o the_o time_n wherein_o all_o this_o have_v be_v fulfil_v which_o they_o do_v prophesy_v and_o foretell_v if_o all_o these_o evil_n have_v fall_v upon_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n as_o they_o have_v do_v in_o we_o alas_o we_o have_v see_v a_o day_n a_o long_a day_n of_o trouble_n and_o of_o tread_v down_o and_o of_o perplexity_n by_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n in_o the_o valley_n of_o vision_n we_o have_v see_v and_o know_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n take_v away_o from_o many_o church_n we_o have_v see_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n cast_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n in_o many_o place_n and_o abominable_a heresy_n and_o false_a doctrine_n set_v up_o in_o the_o room_n of_o it_o we_o have_v see_v and_o know_v both_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o god_n and_o the_o host_n and_o army_n of_o his_o people_n give_v of_o god_n to_o the_o enemy_n to_o be_v tread_v under_o foot_n and_o trample_v upon_o we_o have_v see_v the_o day_n wherein_o the_o proud_a enemy_n have_v destroy_v and_o make_v havoc_n of_o the_o holy_a people_n wonderful_o and_o prosper_v in_o it_o certain_o those_o holy_a man_n that_o be_v so_o affect_v with_o the_o evil_n they_o do_v foresee_v will_v befall_v the_o people_n of_o god_n will_v have_v be_v much_o more_o grieve_a for_o they_o if_o they_o have_v fall_v out_o in_o their_o day_n and_o it_o be_v therefore_o promise_v as_o a_o great_a favour_n and_o mercy_n to_o josiah_n 2_o chron._n 34.28_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v gather_v to_o his_o grave_n in_o peace_n neither_o shall_v his_o eye_n see_v all_o the_o evil_a that_o god_n will_v bring_v upon_o judah_n and_o jerusalem_n the_o lord_n know_v well_o how_o much_o it_o will_v have_v affect_v good_a josiahs_n heart_n if_o he_o shall_v have_v live_v to_o see_v though_o he_o have_v be_v out_o of_o the_o gunshot_n himself_o all_o the_o evil_n and_o misery_n that_o god_n people_n do_v endure_v in_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n let_v i_o give_v you_o also_o four_o famous_a example_n of_o this_o how_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n that_o have_v live_v in_o such_o time_n as_o these_o be_v have_v be_v affect_v with_o they_o the_o first_o be_v that_o of_o the_o man_n of_o gibeah_n mention_v 1_o sam._n 11.2.4_o when_o tiding_n be_v bring_v they_o of_o the_o misery_n of_o one_o poor_a city_n jabesh_n gilead_n how_o nahash_n the_o ammonite_n that_o besiege_v they_o will_v admit_v of_o no_o covenant_n of_o peace_n with_o they_o but_o upon_o this_o condition_n that_o he_o may_v thrust_v out_o all_o their_o right_a eye_n and_o lay_v it_o for_o a_o reproach_n upon_o all_o israel_n and_o we_o know_v that_o the_o papist_n have_v to_o the_o poor_a christian_n in_o the_o palatinate_n and_o other_o place_n offer_v far_o worse_o and_o more_o reproachful_a article_n and_o condition_n of_o peace_n than_o this_o be_v when_o this_o tiding_n i_o say_v be_v tell_v they_o of_o gibeah_n
of_o that_o which_o my_o brother_n speak_v the_o last_o day_n touch_v their_o estate_n but_o to_o you_o belove_v i_o be_o to_o direct_v my_o speech_n at_o this_o time_n that_o have_v more_o than_o a_o form_n of_o godliness_n that_o have_v feel_v the_o life_n and_o power_n of_o it_o in_o your_o own_o heart_n to_o every_o one_o of_o you_o that_o can_v say_v with_o david_n here_o unto_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o the_o feel_n and_o experience_n of_o his_o own_o soul_n in_o the_o hide_a part_n thou_o have_v make_v m●e_a to_o know_v wisdom_n to_o every_o one_o that_o be_v such_o i_o have_v two_o word_n of_o exhortation_n to_o speak_v from_o the_o doctrine_n that_o you_o have_v hear_v 1._o be_v thou_o above_o all_o man_n most_o afraid_a to_o fall_v into_o any_o sin_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v 2._o be_v thou_o above_o all_o man_n most_o humble_v for_o the_o sin_n that_o since_o thou_o be_v in_o this_o estate_n thou_o have_v fall_v into_o for_o the_o first_o no_o man_n have_v so_o great_a cause_n to_o be_v afraid_a to_o sin_n as_o the_o child_n of_o god_n as_o the_o regenerate_a man_n have_v o_o fear_v the_o lord_n you_o his_o saint_n say_v david_n psalm_n 34.9_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v though_o you_o be_v his_o saint_n in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o in_o his_o favour_n yea_o because_o you_o be_v his_o saint_n in_o his_o favour_n and_o in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n therefore_o you_o must_v fear_v he_o none_o have_v more_o cause_n to_o fear_v he_o then_o you_o but_o to_o speak_v distinct_o of_o this_o point_n i_o will_v show_v you_o 1._o how_o far_o forth_o this_o fear_n of_o sin_v must_v extend_v 2._o reason_n why_o the_o regenerate_a the_o child_n of_o god_n have_v more_o cause_n to_o fear_v sin_n than_o any_o other_o man_n for_o the_o first_o the_o extent_n of_o this_o fear_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v 1._o in_o the_o object_n of_o it_o the_o kind_n and_o degree_n of_o sin_n that_o we_o must_v be_v afraid_a of_o 2._o in_o the_o continuance_n and_o durableness_n of_o it_o for_o the_o first_o of_o these_o for_o the_o help_n of_o your_o understanding_n and_o memory_n you_o shall_v see_v it_o in_o seven_o degree_n first_o the_o child_n of_o god_n have_v cause_n to_o be_v afraid_a of_o fall_v into_o gross_a and_o scandalous_a sin_n as_o joseph_n be_v when_o he_o be_v strong_o tempt_v to_o adultery_n and_o may_v have_v commit_v it_o most_o secret_o and_o secure_o yet_o he_o dare_v not_o do_v it_o how_o can_v i_o do_v this_o great_a wickedness_n say_v he_o genesis_n 39_o ●_o and_o sin_n against_o god_n and_o david_n when_o he_o be_v as_o strong_o tempt_v to_o take_v revenge_n of_o his_o mortal_a enemy_n and_o have_v such_o opportunity_n also_o as_o flesh_n and_o blood_n will_v never_o have_v let_v slip_v insomuch_o as_o saul_n himself_o wonder_v at_o it_o 1._o samuel_n 24_o 18_o 19_o yet_o he_o dare_v not_o do_v it_o and_o why_o dare_v he_o not_o do_v it_o be_v it_o out_o of_o baseness_n of_o mind_n because_o he_o be_v a_o coward_n no_o no_o he_o be_v as_o valiant_a a_o man_n as_o ever_o draw_v sword_n why_o then_o dare_v he_o not_o do_v it_o sure_o he_o dare_v not_o sin_n nor_o do_v that_o that_o will_v so_o offend_v god_n who_o can_v stretch_v forth_o his_o hand_n or_o offer_v to_o do_v such_o a_o thing_n say_v he_o 1_o sam._n 26_o 9_o against_o the_o lord_n anoint_v and_o be_v guiltless_a these_o be_v gross_a sin_n you_o will_v say_v and_o he_o can_v be_v no_o better_o than_o a_o hypocrite_n that_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o do_v such_o thing_n i_o say_v therefore_o second_o if_o thou_o be_v god_n child_n be_v thou_o afraid_a to_o do_v the_o least_o thing_n that_o may_v offend_v god_n daniel_n be_v afraid_a of_o the_o king_n meat_n dan._n 1.8_o because_o it_o be_v such_o as_o god_n in_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n have_v forbid_v he_o know_v it_o will_v have_v defile_v his_o conscience_n nay_o three_o if_o thou_o be_v god_n child_n be_v thou_o afraid_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o thou_o see_v cause_n to_o doubt_v thou_o shall_v sin_v and_o offend_v god_n in_o do_v it_o he_o that_o doubt_v be_v damn_v if_o he_o eat_v say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 14.23_o nay_o four_a if_o thou_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n thou_o have_v cause_n to_o be_v afraid_a not_o only_o to_o speak_v amiss_o but_o even_o to_o think_v evil_a to_o offend_v god_n in_o the_o very_a thought_n of_o thy_o heart_n beware_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o thought_n in_o thy_o wicked_a heart_n say_v the_o lord_n deut._n 15.9_o say_v the_o seven_o year_n the_o year_n of_o release_n be_v at_o hand_n five_o if_o thou_o be_v a_o christian_n thou_o have_v cause_n to_o be_v afraid_a of_o do_v good_a duty_n loose_o perfunctory_o careless_o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n say_v david_n ps._n 2.11_o yea_o sixth_o thou_o have_v cause_n to_o be_v afraid_a even_o of_o stand_v at_o a_o stay_n and_o not_o grow_v better_o under_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n work_v out_o your_o own_o salvation_n say_v the_o apostle_n phil._n 2.12_o with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o the_o work_n go_v not_o forward_o if_o it_o be_v not_o forward_a than_o it_o be_v many_o year_n since_o you_o have_v cause_n of_o fear_n and_o tremble_a even_o for_o that_o nay_o seventhly_a and_o last_o if_o thou_o be_v god_n child_n be_v thou_o afraid_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o thou_o see_v be_v of_o evil_a report_n and_o will_v cause_v thy_o religion_n and_o profession_n to_o be_v evil_a speak_v of_o though_o thou_o know_v never_o so_o assure_o that_o the_o thing_n in_o itself_o be_v not_o sin_n but_o lawful_a enough_o dare_v any_o of_o you_o have_v a_o matter_n against_o another_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 6.1_o go_v to_o law_n before_o the_o unjust_a and_o not_o before_o the_o saint_n yea_o why_o not_o i_o pray_v you_o may_v some_o of_o they_o have_v say_v what_o sin_n what_o unlawfulness_n be_v there_o in_o that_o have_v thou_o not_o teach_v we_o rom._n 13.1.4_o that_o the_o law_n and_o magistracy_n be_v ordain_v of_o god_n for_o our_o use_n and_o benefit_n whatsoever_o the_o man_n be_v that_o execute_v it_o and_o do_v not_o thou_o thyself_o seek_v the_o benefit_n of_o law_n before_o a_o unbeliever_n when_o thou_o do_v appeal_v unto_o caesar_n act._n 25.11_o yes_o may_v the_o apostle_n say_v but_o though_o the_o thing_n in_o itself_o be_v never_o so_o lawful_a yet_o because_o it_o expose_v your_o religion_n to_o the_o scorn_n and_o reproach_n of_o the_o unbeliever_n you_o that_o fear_v god_n may_v not_o dare_v to_o do_v it_o say_v he_o all_o thing_n all_o such_o kind_n of_o thing_n as_o he_o there_o speak_v of_o be_v lawful_a say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 6.12_o but_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o expedient_a though_o the_o thing_n be_v never_o so_o lawful_a yet_o if_o thou_o see_v cause_n to_o think_v that_o hurt_n will_v come_v of_o it_o thou_o must_v be_v afraid_a to_o do_v it_o you_o see_v in_o these_o seven_o degree_n how_o tender_a heart_a how_o cautelous_a and_o precise_a the_o child_n of_o god_n have_v need_v to_o be_v the_o prophet_n call_v they_o esa._n 35.4_o such_o as_o be_v of_o a_o fearful_a heart_n and_o you_o see_v they_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o be_v so_o but_o how_o long_o must_v they_o be_v so_o will_v you_o say_v which_o be_v the_o second_o thing_n i_o tell_v you_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o extent_n of_o this_o fear_n surely_n so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v we_o have_v cause_n to_o nourish_v this_o fear_n in_o ourselves_o my_o son_n say_v solomon_n prov._n 23.15.17_o let_v thy_o heart_n be_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n long_o and_o the_o apostle_n 1_o pet._n 1.17_o pass_v the_o time_n of_o your_o sojourn_v here_o all_o the_o time_n of_o your_o life_n in_o fear_n object_n if_o any_o man_n shall_v object_v how_o can_v this_o be_v see_v the_o apostle_n say_v of_o the_o faithful_a 2_o tim_n 1.7_o god_n have_v not_o give_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o fear_n and_o rom._n 8.15_o we_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n to_o fear_v again_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n whereby_o we_o cry_v abba_n father_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v before_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n we_o be_v indeed_o subject_a to_o much_o fear_n but_o now_o we_o have_v receive_v another_o spirit_n and_o be_v free_v from_o those_o fear_n and_o the_o life_n of_o a_o christian_a be_v the_o great_a bondage_n and_o slavery_n in_o the_o world_n if_o he_o must_v be_v always_o of_o so_o fearful_a a_o heart_n answ._n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o to_o live_v continual_o in_o
that_o i_o have_v raise_v from_o these_o word_n a_o undoubted_a truth_n that_o those_o outward_a help_n that_o god_n have_v appoint_v we_o in_o his_o worship_n even_o the_o least_o of_o they_o may_v not_o be_v neglect_v by_o we_o see_v the_o proof_n of_o the_o doctrine_n in_o two_o degree_n first_o in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a worship_n which_o david_n speak_v of_o here_o those_o purification_n and_o wash_n that_o be_v prescribe_v in_o moses_n law_n though_o they_o be_v but_o carnal_a ordinance_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v they_o hebr._n 9.10_o that_o be_v such_o as_o a_o carnal_a man_n may_v easy_o perform_v and_o as_o be_v very_o suitable_a to_o the_o disposition_n of_o a_o carnal_a man_n and_o though_o they_o be_v impose_v upon_o god_n people_n not_o as_o perpetual_a ordinance_n but_o until_o the_o time_n of_o reformation_n as_o the_o apostle_n there_o speak_v yet_o while_o that_o law_n stand_v in_o force_n they_o may_v in_o no_o case_n be_v neglect_v this_o be_v evident_a both_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n who_o make_v conscience_n of_o the_o law_n of_o purification_n and_o observe_v it_o careful_o as_o you_o may_v read_v luke_n 2.22_o and_o by_o that_o commandment_n also_o which_o christ_n give_v unto_o the_o leper_n mar._n 1.44_o go_v and_o show_v thyself_o unto_o the_o priest_n and_o offer_v for_o thy_o cleanse_v those_o thing_n which_o moses_n command_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v neglect_v not_o those_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n which_o be_v appoint_v for_o thy_o cleanse_n by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n second_o observe_v the_o proof_n of_o the_o doctrine_n even_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v no_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n but_o only_a matter_n of_o circumstance_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n these_o thing_n though_o they_o be_v of_o less_o moment_n than_o the_o worship_n itself_o yet_o be_v appoint_v and_o command_v of_o god_n see_v what_o account_n be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o they_o four_o instance_n i_o will_v give_v you_o for_o this_o first_o the_o gesture_n of_o kneel_v in_o prayer_n though_o it_o be_v not_o of_o absolute_a necessity_n for_o stand_v up_o reverent_o as_o we_o may_v see_v mar._n 11.25_o and_o express_v of_o our_o reverence_n by_o other_o gesture_n of_o our_o body_n when_o we_o can_v convenient_o kneel_v be_v lawful_a also_o in_o prayer_n as_o we_o see_v in_o old_a jacob_n who_o lie_v on_o his_o deathbed_n though_o he_o can_v not_o kneel_v in_o his_o thanksgiving_n yet_o lift_v up_o himself_o to_o the_o bed_n head_n as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v and_o bow_v himself_o gen._n 47.31_o yet_o see_v what_o account_n be_v to_o be_v make_v even_o of_o the_o gesture_n of_o kneel_v in_o prayer_n when_o we_o can_v convenient_o use_v it_o see_v it_o i_o say_v in_o three_o proof_n 1._o in_o that_o direction_n we_o have_v for_o it_o psal._n 95.6_o o_o come_v let_v we_o worship_n and_o bow_v down_o let_v we_o kneel_v before_o the_o lord_n our_o maker_n 2._o in_o the_o example_n of_o god_n servant_n of_o daniel_n 6.10_o of_o ezra_n 9.5_o of_o stephen_n act_v 7.60_o of_o peter_n act_v 9.40_o of_o paul_n act_v 20.36_o yea_o of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n himself_o and_o of_o these_o two_o last_o we_o read_v that_o they_o use_v this_o gesture_n of_o kneel_v in_o their_o prayer_n when_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o kneel_v on_o but_o the_o bare_a ground_n our_o saviour_n in_o the_o garden_n luke_n 22.41_o and_o paul_n with_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o tyre_n that_o accompany_v he_o unto_o the_o ship_n upon_o the_o seashore_n act_v 21.5_o 3._o last_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n express_v of_o the_o duty_n of_o prayer_n in_o this_o phrase_n of_o kneel_v unto_o god_n every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v to_o i_o esa._n 45.23_o for_o this_o cause_n i_o bow_v my_o knee_n unto_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n say_v the_o apostle_n ephes._n 3.14_o that_o be_v i_o pray_v unto_o he_o second_o the_o place_n where_o god_n appoint_v the_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v offer_v and_o other_o part_n of_o his_o ceremonial_a and_o solemn_a worship_n to_o be_v perform_v be_v but_o a_o small_a matter_n one_o will_v think_v jeroboaem_n think_v that_o see_v he_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o worship_v any_o false_a god_n as_o solomon_n have_v do_v 1_o king_n 11.4_o 5_o 7._o but_o the_o true_a god_n only_o it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n in_o what_o place_n he_o do_v worship_v he_o special_o though_o he_o do_v it_o not_o at_o jerusalem_n which_o he_o of_o all_o other_o place_n think_v the_o most_o inconvenient_a and_o dangerous_a to_o he_o 1_o king_n 12.27_o therefore_o he_o make_v choice_n of_o dan_n and_o bethel_n to_o be_v the_o place_n of_o god_n solemn_a worship_n 1_o king_n 12.29_o but_o see_v how_o the_o holy_a ghost_n note_v even_o this_o for_o a_o most_o heinous_a sin_n 1_o king_n 12.30_o yea_o see_v what_o a_o matter_n god_n make_v even_o of_o this_o leviticus_n 17.3_o 4._o he_o pronounce_v he_o to_o be_v no_o better_o than_o a_o murderer_n that_o shall_v offer_v a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o any_o other_o place_n then_o before_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o lord_n three_o the_o person_n that_o by_o god_n appointment_n be_v to_o meddle_v with_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n be_v but_o a_o matter_n of_o circumstance_n and_o yet_o see_v what_o account_n the_o lord_n make_v even_o of_o this_o if_o any_o other_o than_o such_o as_o he_o have_v appoint_v thereunto_o do_v meddle_v with_o it_o or_o but_o touch_v it_o or_o but_o look_n into_o it_o he_o account_v he_o worthy_a of_o death_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o example_n both_o of_o vzzah_n 2_o sam._n 6.7_o and_o of_o the_o man_n of_o bethshemesh_n 1_o sam._n 6.19_o jeroboam_fw-la thought_n it_o a_o matter_n of_o no_o great_a moment_n though_o he_o make_v other_o man_n priest_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o god_n than_o such_o as_o be_v of_o the_o son_n of_o levi_n special_o in_o a_o case_n of_o necessity_n when_o no_o levites_n can_v be_v get_v as_o it_o appear_v indeed_o by_o 2_o chron._n 11.13_o 14._o that_o he_o can_v get_v none_o but_o see_v how_o the_o lord_n note_v this_o also_o for_o one_o of_o his_o heinous_a sin_n 1_o king_n 12.31_o and_o for_o a_o chief_a cause_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o his_o house_n 1_o king_n 13.34_o four_o and_o last_o the_o time_n when_o the_o passeover_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v be_v but_o a_o matter_n of_o circumstance_n jeroboam_fw-la a_o worldly_a wise_a man_n think_v it_o it_o seem_v a_o point_n of_o foolish_a preciseness_n to_o think_v the_o solemn_a worship_n must_v needs_o be_v perform_v just_a at_o those_o time_n that_o god_n have_v appoint_v in_o his_o law_n and_o therefore_o out_o of_o a_o politic_a respect_n he_o alter_v the_o time_n but_o mark_v how_o the_o holy_a ghost_n note_v this_o also_o to_o have_v be_v his_o heinous_a sin_n he_o offer_v upon_o the_o altar_n which_o he_o have_v make_v in_o bethel_n say_v the_o holy_a story_n 1_o king_n 12.33_o the_o fifteen_o day_n of_o the_o eight_o month_n even_o in_o the_o month_n which_o he_o have_v devise_v of_o his_o own_o heart_n on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o see_v the_o conscience_n our_o saviour_n make_v to_o observe_v precise_o the_o lord_n direction_n even_o in_o this_o he_o receive_v it_o we_o know_v at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o he_o institute_v the_o lord_n supper_n and_o that_o be_v the_o same_o night_n that_o he_o be_v betray_v as_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v 1_o cor._n 11.23_o yea_o he_o make_v it_o a_o matter_n of_o necessity_n to_o receive_v it_o just_a at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o he_o do_v luke_n 22.7_o then_o come_v the_o day_n of_o unleavened_a bread_n when_o the_o passover_n must_v be_v kill_v and_o yet_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n receive_v it_o not_o till_o the_o day_n after_o his_o passion_n for_o the_o day_n of_o his_o passion_n be_v the_o day_n of_o the_o preparation_n for_o the_o passover_n as_o you_o shall_v find_v john_n 19.14_o why_o will_v he_o differ_v from_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o such_o a_o trifle_n as_o this_o why_o will_v he_o not_o conform_v himself_o to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o such_o a_o matter_n o_o he_o account_v it_o no_o trifle_n though_o it_o be_v but_o a_o matter_n of_o circumstance_n because_o god_n have_v give_v express_a direction_n in_o his_o word_n for_o that_o circumstance_n number_n 9.2_o 3._o let_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n keep_v the_o passover_n at_o his_o appoint_a season_n in_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o this_o month_n at_o even_o you_o shall_v keep_v it_o in_o his_o appoint_a season_n according_a to_o all_o the_o rite_n of_o it_o and_o according_a to_o all_o the_o ceremony_n thereof_o shall_v you_o keep_v it_o you_o shall_v not_o
neglect_v any_o one_o of_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o it_o yea_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v numb_a 9.13_o that_o he_o that_o observe_v not_o the_o just_a time_n that_o god_n have_v set_v for_o it_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o his_o people_n so_o dangerous_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o swerve_v from_o the_o direction_n god_n have_v give_v we_o in_o his_o word_n even_o in_o the_o least_o circumstance_n of_o his_o worship_n the_o reason_n and_o ground_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v principal_o two_o first_o 1_o the_o respect_n we_o owe_v to_o the_o commandment_n and_o ordinance_n of_o god_n the_o least_o thing_n in_o god_n worship_n that_o he_o have_v appoint_v must_v not_o be_v neglect_v even_o because_o he_o have_v ordain_v it_o circumcision_n be_v nothing_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 7.19_o and_o uncircumcision_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n though_o we_o can_v see_v no_o other_o reason_n for_o they_o at_o all_o nor_o have_v any_o hope_n to_o receive_v good_a by_o they_o yet_o this_o be_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o move_v we_o to_o observe_v they_o because_o god_n in_o his_o word_n have_v give_v we_o direction_n so_o to_o do_v in_o observe_v of_o they_o we_o do_v our_o homage_n to_o god_n and_o show_v our_o obedience_n unto_o he_o this_o reason_n prevail_v with_o our_o bless_a saviour_n 1._o he_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o circumcision_n in_o his_o infancy_n luke_n 2.21_o and_o afterward_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n too_o luke_n 3.21_o 2._o he_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o law_n of_o purification_n luke_n 2_o 2d_o 3._o he_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o passover_n luke_n 22.15_o 4._o he_o frequent_v the_o church_n assembly_n constant_o upon_o the_o sabbath_n luke_n 4.16_o and_o all_o upon_o this_o ground_n that_o these_o be_v god_n ordinance_n and_o he_o must_v show_v his_o obedience_n to_o god_n in_o all_o thing_n thus_o it_o become_v we_o say_v he_o to_o john_n matth._n 2.15_o to_o fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n there_o be_v other_o purification_n that_o be_v in_o use_n in_o that_o church_n and_o much_o stand_v upon_o in_o those_o day_n which_o he_o make_v no_o such_o reckon_n of_o though_o in_o themselves_o a_o man_n will_v have_v think_v they_o have_v be_v every_o whit_n as_o good_a as_o these_o that_o he_o make_v conscience_n of_o upon_o this_o ground_n that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o god_n ordain_v they_o be_v but_o the_o precept_n of_o man_n mat._n 15.9_o 2_o second_o these_o thing_n be_v ordain_v of_o god_n and_o enjoin_v we_o to_o observe_v for_o our_o own_o good_a keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o statute_n say_v moses_n deut._n 10.13_o which_o i_o command_v thou_o this_o day_n for_o thy_o good_a that_o which_o be_v say_v of_o the_o sabbath_n mark_v 2.27_o the_o sabbath_n be_v make_v for_o man_n for_o man_n great_a benefit_n and_o help_v he_o can_v not_o have_v be_v without_o it_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o every_o thing_n in_o god_n worship_n that_o he_o have_v ordain_v he_o have_v ordain_v it_o for_o our_o good_a even_o to_o further_o and_o increase_v the_o work_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o we_o may_v confident_o expect_v a_o blessing_n from_o god_n in_o observe_v the_o least_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v appoint_v we_o to_o use_v in_o his_o worship_n that_o god_n will_v give_v it_o virtue_n and_o make_v it_o effectual_a to_o do_v our_o soul_n good_a if_o we_o use_v it_o aright_o see_v in_o three_o example_n what_o virtue_n and_o force_n there_o be_v even_o in_o very_o small_a thing_n that_o be_v of_o god_n ordain_v 1._o numb_a 21.9_o the_o very_a look_v up_o to_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n cure_v all_o that_o be_v sting_v with_o fiery_a serpent_n 2_o josh._n 6.20_o at_o the_o blow_n of_o the_o trumpet_n of_o ram_n horn_n and_o shout_v of_o the_o people_n the_o wall_n of_o jericho_n fall_v down_o flat_a to_o the_o ground_n 3._o 2_o king_n 5.14_o by_o dip_v himself_o seven_o time_n in_o jordan_n naaman_n be_v perfect_o cure_v of_o his_o leprosy_n see_v what_o force_n there_o be_v in_o small_a thing_n that_o be_v of_o god_n ordain_v and_o how_o undoubted_a a_o truth_n that_o be_v which_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o cor._n 1.25_o the_o weakness_n of_o god_n be_v strong_a than_o man_n the_o ceremony_n and_o religious_a observation_n that_o be_v of_o man_n devise_v as_o crucifix_n to_o pray_v before_o cross_v of_o ourselves_o observe_v of_o popish_a fast_n and_o superstitious_a holiday_n sprinkle_v with_o popish_a holy_a water_n and_o such_o like_a though_o they_o carry_v great_a show_n of_o help_v we_o in_o devotion_n yet_o of_o they_o all_o it_o may_v be_v say_v as_o our_o saviour_n say_v of_o the_o jewish_a purifying_n matth._n 15.9_o they_o be_v a_o vain_a worship_n there_o be_v no_o force_n nor_o virtue_n in_o they_o to_o further_o the_o soul_n one_o jot_n in_o true_a piety_n and_o devotion_n yea_o those_o very_a thing_n that_o be_v once_o god_n own_o ordinance_n as_o these_o wash_n and_o sprinkle_n with_o hyssop_n that_o david_n allude_v to_o here_o and_o such_o like_a when_o they_o grow_v out_o of_o date_n and_o cease_v any_o long_a to_o be_v command_v of_o god_n even_o they_o then_o lose_v that_o virtue_n and_o strength_n that_o once_o they_o have_v and_o become_v weak_a and_o beggarly_a element_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v they_o gal._n 4.9_o the_o use_n that_o this_o doctrine_n serve_v unto_o be_v two_o principal_o 1._o for_o instruction_n 2._o for_o exhortation_n 1_o for_o the_o first_o two_o thing_n we_o be_v to_o learn_v from_o this_o doctrine_n first_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o follow_v the_o direction_n that_o god_n have_v either_o by_o precept_n or_o example_n give_v we_o in_o his_o word_n even_o in_o the_o least_o circumstance_n of_o his_o worship_n we_o may_v not_o say_v that_o in_o matter_n of_o substance_n we_o must_v follow_v precise_o the_o direction_n but_o in_o matter_n of_o circumstance_n we_o be_v not_o bind_v so_o to_o do_v the_o direction_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o in_o his_o word_n for_o the_o least_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v do_v in_o any_o part_n of_o his_o worship_n may_v not_o be_v neglect_v without_o great_a sin_n and_o danger_n admit_v it_o be_v but_o a_o matter_n of_o circumstance_n what_o day_n we_o keep_v our_o sabbath_n on_o so_o we_o keep_v one_o in_o seven_o as_o some_o have_v conceit_v it_o to_o be_v yet_o because_o god_n have_v give_v we_o express_v direction_n in_o his_o word_n by_o the_o example_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o those_o church_n that_o be_v plant_v by_o he_o act_v 20.7_o 1_o corinthian_n 16.2_o to_o keep_v it_o on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n the_o church_n may_v never_o keep_v it_o on_o any_o other_o day_n then_o that_o see_v thou_o make_v all_o thing_n say_v the_o lord_n to_o moses_n as_o you_o shall_v find_v it_o hebrew_n 8.5_o according_a to_o the_o pattern_n show_v unto_o thou_o in_o the_o mount_n the_o write_a word_n be_v unto_o we_o in_o stead_n of_o that_o pattern_n that_o be_v show_v unto_o moses_n in_o the_o mount_n in_o every_o thing_n we_o do_v about_o god_n tabernacle_n and_o worship_n we_o must_v precise_o look_v unto_o and_o follow_v that_o pattern_n observe_v what_o he_o command_v second_o this_o teach_v we_o how_o to_o judge_v of_o that_o imputation_n that_o be_v put_v upon_o many_o of_o god_n faithful_a servant_n and_o that_o make_v they_o as_o odious_a in_o the_o world_n as_o any_o other_o thing_n do_v that_o they_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v more_o precise_a than_o wise_a that_o they_o be_v too_o strict_a and_o singular_a in_o matter_n of_o small_a moment_n and_o sure_o such_o as_o be_v indeed_o more_o precise_a and_o singular_a than_o they_o ought_v to_o he_o do_v just_o deserve_v to_o be_v blame_v for_o it_o and_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o who_o they_o be_v that_o be_v so_o 1._o such_o as_o be_v strict_a and_o zealous_o superstitious_a in_o the_o observe_n of_o their_o own_o fancy_n and_o the_o custom_n and_o tradition_n of_o man_n such_o a_o one_o be_v paul_n before_o his_o conversion_n exceed_o zealous_a of_o the_o tradition_n of_o his_o father_n as_o he_o say_v galatian_n 1.14_o such_o be_v the_o jew_n that_o press_v with_o great_a heat_n and_o contention_n both_o christ_n disciple_n mark_v 7_o 2_o 3._o and_o johns_n john_n 3.25_o to_o observe_v their_o purifying_n 2._o such_o as_o seem_v to_o be_v very_o precise_a in_o small_a thing_n as_o in_o matter_n of_o ceremony_n and_o some_o outward_a observation_n which_o indeed_o god_n require_v they_o to_o make_v conscience_n of_o but_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o the_o weighty_a point_n of_o god_n law_n this_o preciseness_n our_o
saviour_n tax_v to_o be_v no_o better_o then_o gross_a hypocrisy_n matthew_n 23.23_o 24._o 3._o last_o such_o as_o out_o of_o ignorance_n and_o blind_a devotion_n deny_v unto_o themselves_o the_o liberty_n and_o comfort_n of_o this_o life_n that_o god_n have_v allow_v they_o to_o these_o solomon_n speak_v eccl._n 7.16_o be_v not_o righteous_a overmuch_o neither_o make_v thyself_o over_o wise_a why_o shall_v thou_o destroy_v thyself_o but_o so_o long_o as_o a_o man_n keep_v himself_o to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o word_n take_v heed_n how_o thou_o scorn_v he_o take_v heed_n how_o thou_o blame_v he_o for_o such_o preciseness_n for_o we_o be_v all_o command_v of_o god_n to_o be_v strict_a and_o precise_a this_o way_n what_o thing_n soever_o i_o command_v you_o be_v it_o great_a or_o small_a say_v the_o lord_n deut._n 12.32_o observe_v to_o do_v it_o thou_o shall_v not_o add_v thereto_o nor_o diminish_v from_o it_o and_o exod._n 23.13_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v say_v unto_o you_o be_v circumspect_a and_o he_o instance_v in_o a_o point_n of_o strange_a preciseness_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o name_n of_o other_o god_n neither_o let_v it_o be_v hear_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n the_o second_o use_n that_o the_o doctrine_n serve_v unto_o be_v for_o exhortation_n to_o persuade_v every_o one_o of_o we_o to_o a_o more_o reverend_a esteem_n and_o conscionable_a use_n of_o the_o whole_a outward_a worship_n of_o god_n 2._o of_o all_o those_o exercise_n of_o religion_n that_o the_o lord_n have_v in_o his_o word_n command_v or_o commend_v unto_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n hear_v the_o word_n and_o read_n of_o it_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n sing_v of_o psalm_n all_o manner_n of_o prayer_n both_o public_a and_o with_o our_o family_n and_o in_o secret_a also_o of_o never_o a_o one_o of_o these_o any_o man_n can_v doubt_v but_o they_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n and_o commend_v to_o his_o in_o his_o word_n mark_v how_o this_o exhortation_n rise_v from_o the_o doctrine_n if_o the_o ceremonial_a worship_n that_o be_v to_o endure_v for_o a_o time_n be_v so_o much_o to_o be_v regard_v how_o much_o more_o be_v the_o moral_a and_o perpetual_a worship_n of_o god_n to_o be_v account_v of_o it_o be_v the_o apostle_n reason_n 2_o corinthian_n 3.11_o if_o that_o which_o be_v do_v away_o be_v glorious_a much_o more_o that_o which_o remain_v be_v glorious_a if_o we_o may_v not_o neglect_v the_o least_o circumstance_n of_o god_n worship_n that_o he_o have_v give_v we_o direction_n for_o in_o his_o word_n how_o much_o less_o the_o substantial_a part_n of_o his_o worship_n and_o service_n if_o i_o may_v not_o neglect_v the_o gesture_n of_o kneel_v in_o prayer_n when_o i_o can_v convenient_o use_v it_o then_o much_o less_o may_v i_o neglect_v the_o duty_n of_o prayer_n itself_o if_o i_o may_v not_o neglect_v the_o benefit_n of_o my_o eye_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o i_o must_v desire_v to_o behold_v and_o look_v upon_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o break_n of_o it_o and_o pour_v of_o it_o out_o then_o much_o less_o may_v i_o neglect_v the_o benefit_n of_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n itself_o four_o motive_n i_o will_v use_v to_o enforce_v this_o exhortation_n upon_o your_o heart_n 1_o first_o these_o duty_n these_o part_n of_o god_n out_o ward_v worship_n be_v enjoin_v we_o by_o that_o commandment_n which_o our_o saviour_n matth._n 22.38_o call_v the_o first_o and_o the_o great_a commandment_n 1._o it_o be_v the_o first_o commandment_n here_o you_o must_v begin_v thou_o can_v not_o make_v conscience_n aright_o of_o any_o of_o the_o commandment_n follow_v till_o thou_o begin_v here_o and_o make_v conscience_n even_o of_o the_o outward_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o lord_n call_v they_o in_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n exod._n 20.6_o that_o make_v conscience_n of_o that_o commandment_n such_o as_o keep_v his_o commandment_n 2._o it_o be_v the_o great_a commandment_n we_o can_v in_o nothing_o better_a show_v our_o obedience_n and_o do_v our_o homage_n to_o god_n then_o by_o the_o diligent_a and_o conscionable_a use_n of_o his_o outward_a worship_n 2_o second_o the_o lord_n esteem_v of_o the_o love_n we_o bear_v he_o according_a to_o the_o conscience_n we_o make_v of_o the_o second_o commandment_n according_a to_o the_o account_n we_o make_v of_o his_o outward_a worship_n and_o our_o dependence_n upon_o his_o direction_n in_o it_o this_o be_v plain_a in_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n exod._n 20.5_o 6._o he_o call_v they_o that_o make_v conscience_n of_o this_o commandment_n such_o as_o love_v he_o and_o those_o that_o do_v not_o such_o as_o hate_v he_o 3_o three_o the_o best_a of_o we_o have_v need_n of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o adam_n even_o in_o his_o innocency_n have_v need_n of_o the_o sabbath_n gen._n 2.3_o the_o king_n say_v the_o lord_n deut._n 17.19_o must_v read_v the_o word_n daily_o and_o have_v need_v so_o to_o do_v as_o appear_z by_o the_o reason_n of_o that_o commandment_n there_o daniel_n have_v need_v to_o pray_v every_o day_n dan._n 6.10_o and_o how_o much_o more_o than_o have_v we_o 4_o four_o thou_o shall_v certain_o receive_v good_a by_o they_o if_o thou_o use_v they_o conscionable_o 1._o good_a in_o thy_o soul_n for_o which_o they_o be_v chief_o ordain_v 1_o by_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n esa._n 58.13_o 14._o 2_o by_o hear_v esa._n 55.3_o 3_o by_o read_v deut._n 17.19_o 4_o by_o receive_v 1_o cor._n 10.16_o 5_o by_o prayer_n phil._n 4.6.7_o 6_o by_o sing_v of_o psalm_n ephes._n 5.19_o 20._o 2._o good_a even_o in_o thy_o outward_a estate_n the_o ark_n bring_v a_o blessing_n upon_o the_o house_n of_o obed-edom_n 2_o sam._n 6.11_o 12._o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n use_v in_o it_o strengthen_v rehoboams_n kingdom_n 2_o chron._n 11.17_o the_o sabbath_n shall_v be_v a_o blessing_n to_o all_o that_o keep_v it_o conscionable_o and_o no_o curse_n exod._n 20.11_o see_v what_o a_o promise_n god_n make_v to_o watch_v over_o their_o family_n that_o worship_v he_o exodus_fw-la 34.24_o on_o the_o other_o side_n thou_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o expect_v his_o blessing_n but_o his_o curse_n upon_o all_o thou_o have_v if_o thou_o neglect_v his_o outward_a worship_n exod._n 5.3_o let_v we_o sacrifice_v lest_o he_o fall_v upon_o we_o with_o pestilence_n or_o with_o the_o sword_n lecture_n cxvi_o on_o psalm_n 51.7_o april_n 21._o 1629._o it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o proceed_v unto_o the_o second_o of_o those_o general_a point_n that_o i_o tell_v you_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v out_o of_o the_o whole_a verse_n nota._n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o david_n do_v understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o these_o legal_a wash_n and_o sprinkling_n that_o he_o allude_v to_o and_o mention_v here_o he_o know_v what_o be_v signify_v by_o they_o and_o know_v that_o in_o those_o ceremonial_a wash_n there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o outward_a and_o material_a element_n of_o water_n use_v but_o also_o a_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a grace_n represent_v and_o signify_v by_o it_o and_o that_o in_o those_o ceremonial_a sprinkling_n with_o hyssop_n there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o outward_a action_n and_o work_n to_o be_v do_v by_o man_n but_o a_o inward_a work_n also_o to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o lord_n himself_o he_o rest_v not_o in_o that_o which_o be_v outward_a and_o touch_v the_o body_n only_o but_o seek_v for_o that_o inward_a grace_n that_o be_v signify_v by_o it_o as_o appear_z by_o this_o that_o he_o beg_v of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v purge_v and_o wash_v he_o that_o he_o will_v do_v that_o work_n upon_o his_o soul_n which_o be_v signify_v by_o this_o ceremony_n purge_v thou_o i_o with_o hyssop_n say_v he_o and_o i_o shall_v be_v clean_o wash_v thou_o i_o and_o i_o shall_v be_v white_a than_o the_o snow_n and_o from_o this_o point_n thus_o observe_v in_o the_o text_n this_o doctrine_n arise_v for_o our_o instruction_n that_o god_n people_n must_v labour_v to_o understand_v what_o they_o do_v in_o every_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n 25_o and_o not_o rest_n in_o the_o outward_a work_n but_o strive_v to_o feel_v the_o inward_a virtue_n and_o power_n of_o it_o and_o to_o find_v god_n do_v his_o work_n upon_o they_o in_o every_o one_o of_o he_o ordinance_n two_o branch_n you_o see_v there_o be_v of_o this_o doctrine_n which_o we_o will_v handle_v distinct_o and_o in_o order_n first_o 1_o we_o must_v labour_v to_o understand_v every_o thing_n that_o we_o do_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n this_o god_n require_v of_o his_o people_n even_o under_o the_o law_n though_o that_o be_v a_o time_n of_o far_o less_o light_a than_o the_o gospel_n the_o law_n have_v but_o a_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n
to_o come_v as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v hebrew_n 10.1_o yet_o even_o then_o god_n will_v have_v his_o people_n to_o understand_v what_o they_o do_v in_o his_o service_n even_o in_o his_o ceremonial_a worship_n therefore_o he_o do_v not_o only_o command_v the_o levite_n to_o teach_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n all_o his_o statute_n and_o to_o instruct_v they_o in_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o levit._n 10.11_o but_o he_o lay_v this_o charge_n also_o upon_o every_o parent_n to_o teach_v their_o child_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o whole_a service_n of_o the_o passover_n and_o of_o all_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n use_v in_o it_o exodus_fw-la 12.26_o 27._o and_o of_o the_o law_n of_o offer_v unto_o god_n the_o first_o bear_v of_o every_o thing_n exodus_fw-la 13.14_o and_o general_o the_o meaning_n of_o all_o other_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o moral_a and_o judicial_a deut._n 6.20_o the_o child_n shall_v ask_v and_o the_o parent_n shall_v teach_v they_o the_o reason_n and_o the_o meaning_n of_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v in_o god_n service_n but_o this_o be_v much_o more_o require_v of_o god_n people_n in_o the_o moral_a worship_n that_o we_o understand_v what_o we_o do_v in_o it_o special_o now_o under_o the_o gospel_n wherein_o the_o lord_n require_v more_o knowledge_n of_o his_o people_n than_o he_o do_v under_o the_o law_n and_o of_o which_o time_n he_o do_v foretell_v esa._n 11.9_o that_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v fill_v with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n allude_v to_o the_o ceremonial_a worship_n which_o consist_v chief_o in_o sacrifice_n and_o burn_a offering_n and_o oppose_v the_o moral_a worship_n of_o god_n under_o the_o gospel_n unto_o it_o rom._n 12.1_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o only_a sacrifice_n and_o service_n that_o be_v now_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n be_v our_o reasonable_a service_n that_o be_v such_o service_n as_o be_v do_v unto_o he_o with_o reason_n and_o understanding_n see_v the_o necessity_n of_o this_o in_o six_o several_a part_n of_o god_n moral_a worship_n first_o the_o read_n of_o the_o word_n will_v do_v we_o no_o good_a though_o we_o use_v it_o never_o so_o constant_o if_o we_o do_v it_o as_o a_o stint_a task_n that_o we_o have_v set_v to_o ourselves_o unless_o we_o be_v careful_a to_o mark_v and_o understand_v what_o we_o read_v true_a it_o be_v no_o man_n must_v be_v discourage_v from_o read_v the_o scripture_n because_o he_o can_v understand_v every_o thing_n that_o he_o read_v for_o 1_o even_o little_a child_n be_v to_o be_v train_v up_o in_o the_o read_n of_o they_o as_o be_v plain_a in_o the_o example_n of_o timothy_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v 2_o tim._n 3.15_o that_o from_o a_o child_n he_o have_v know_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o 2_o that_o which_o we_o read_v though_o we_o understand_v it_o not_o for_o the_o present_a yet_o the_o very_a acquaint_v of_o ourselves_o with_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o continual_a read_n or_o hear_v of_o they_o read_v unto_o we_o may_v be_v of_o great_a use_n to_o we_o hereafter_o as_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o apostle_n put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o it_o in_o that_o place_n that_o timothy_n read_v of_o the_o word_n in_o his_o childhood_n be_v a_o great_a mean_n to_o further_o he_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o word_n afterward_o and_o to_o confirm_v he_o in_o the_o truth_n but_o yet_o this_o be_v certain_a our_o read_n of_o the_o word_n will_v do_v we_o no_o good_a unless_o we_o endeavour_v to_o mark_v and_o understand_v what_o we_o read_v even_o child_n shall_v be_v teach_v according_a as_o their_o capacity_n serve_v to_o mark_v and_o understand_v what_o they_o read_v train_n up_o a_o child_n say_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n proverb_n 22.6_o in_o his_o way_n that_o be_v in_o his_o kind_n and_o according_a to_o his_o capacity_n and_o when_o he_o be_v old_a he_o will_v not_o depart_v from_o it_o as_o if_o she_o have_v say_v he_o will_v be_v the_o better_a for_o it_o while_o he_o live_v this_o necessity_n of_o understanding_n what_o we_o read_v if_o we_o will_v please_v god_n in_o this_o duty_n of_o his_o service_n or_o do_v ourselves_o any_o good_a by_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o two_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 1._o by_o that_o which_o be_v say_v neh._n 8._o ●_o 3._o of_o they_o to_o who_o ezra_n be_v careful_a to_o read_v the_o law_n he_o bring_v the_o law_n before_o the_o congregation_n both_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n and_o all_o that_o can_v hear_v with_o understanding_n and_o read_v therein_o before_o the_o man_n and_o the_o woman_n and_o all_o that_o can_v understand_v mark_v how_o he_o repeat_v this_o twice_o he_o judge_v that_o their_o come_n together_o to_o the_o public_a read_n of_o the_o word_n will_v neither_o please_v god_n nor_o do_v themselves_o any_o good_a unless_o they_o can_v understand_v what_o be_v read_v the_o second_o place_n be_v that_o speech_n of_o philip_n to_o the_o noble_a eunuch_n act_v 8.30_o when_o he_o hear_v he_o read_v in_o private_a a_o chapter_n of_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n understand_v thou_o what_o thou_o read_v say_v he_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v to_o what_o purpose_n read_v thou_o if_o thou_o be_v not_o careful_a to_o understand_v what_o thou_o read_v second_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n preach_v though_o we_o seem_v to_o love_v it_o never_o so_o well_o though_o we_o take_v never_o so_o much_o pain_n for_o it_o will_v do_v we_o no_o good_a unless_o we_o hear_v with_o understanding_n harken_v unto_o i_o every_o one_o of_o you_o and_o understand_v say_v our_o saviour_n to_o his_o hearer_n mar._n 7.14_o and_o after_o he_o have_v preach_v his_o manner_n be_v to_o examine_v his_o disciple_n whether_o they_o understand_v that_o which_o he_o have_v teach_v matth._n 13.51_o have_v you_o understand_v all_o these_o thing_n yea_o he_o have_v so_o press_v upon_o they_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o to_o seek_v to_o understand_v whatsoever_o they_o have_v hear_v he_o teach_v that_o if_o they_o have_v hear_v anything_o that_o seem_v harsh_a unto_o they_o or_o that_o they_o can_v not_o understand_v they_o dare_v not_o murmur_v or_o take_v offence_n at_o it_o run_v away_o with_o their_o own_o sense_n and_o leave_v hear_v of_o he_o as_o a_o teacher_n of_o absurd_a thing_n as_o some_o other_o of_o his_o hearer_n do_v john_n 6.66_o and_o as_o many_o do_v now_o a_o day_n but_o hold_v themselves_o bound_n if_o they_o can_v not_o be_v resolve_v by_o conference_n among_o themselves_o to_o go_v unto_o he_o and_o desire_v he_o to_o make_v his_o meaning_n plain_a unto_o they_o and_o this_o we_o shall_v find_v they_o do_v oftentimes_o matth._n 13.36.17.10.19.10_o and_o in_o other_o place_n they_o know_v well_o as_o our_o saviour_n have_v teach_v they_o in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o sour_a matth._n 13.19_o that_o of_o all_o kind_n of_o hearer_n those_o senseless_a wretch_n that_o be_v like_a to_o the_o high_a way_n and_o understand_v not_o what_o they_o hear_v be_v most_o uncapable_a of_o receive_v good_a by_o the_o word_n and_o that_o satan_n of_o all_o other_o have_v most_o power_n over_o they_o three_o the_o sacrament_n can_v do_v we_o no_o good_a unless_o we_o come_v to_o they_o and_o use_v they_o with_o understanding_n i_o speak_v not_o now_o of_o infant_n to_o who_o the_o sacrament_n belong_v though_o void_a of_o understanding_n for_o the_o present_a but_o of_o man_n of_o ripe_a year_n therefore_o it_o be_v god_n ordinance_n that_o before_o the_o sacrament_n be_v administer_v unto_o any_o people_n they_o shall_v first_o be_v instruct_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n go_v and_o teach_v all_o nation_n say_v our_o saviour_n matth._n 28.19_o baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v first_o teach_v they_o before_o you_o do_v administer_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o they_o therefore_o also_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o john_n the_o baptist_n before_o he_o baptize_v any_o first_o preach_v unto_o they_o he_o preach_v the_o baptism_n of_o repentace_n as_o the_o evangelist_n say_v mar._n 1.4_o and_o when_o the_o disciple_n come_v together_o at_o troa●_n upon_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n the_o lord_n day_n of_o purpose_n to_o break_v bread_n to_o administer_v the_o communion_n act_v 20.7_o yet_o do_v not_o paul_n administer_v the_o communion_n till_o he_o ●e_v have_v first_o preach_v unto_o they_o four_o we_o can_v please_v god_n in_o our_o prayer_n nor_o receive_v any_o good_a by_o they_o unless_o we_o be_v first_o instruct_v how_o to_o pray_v unless_o we_o can_v pray_v with_o understanding_n as_o no_o man_n can_v receive_v good_a by_o join_v with_o i_o in_o prayer_n
sanctify_v the_o gift_n so_o may_v i_o say_v to_o these_o man_n you_o fool_n and_o blind_a whether_o be_v great_a the_o sacrament_n or_o the_o word_n that_o sanctify_v the_o sacrament_n the_o seal_n or_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n that_o be_v confirm_v by_o that_o seal_n three_o and_o last_o whereas_o they_o seem_v to_o love_v those_o other_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n well_o yet_o in_o this_o point_n they_o be_v like_a unto_o those_o the_o lord_n speak_v of_o ps._n 50.17_o they_o hate_v instruction_n not_o general_a instruction_n it_o may_v be_v but_o to_o be_v deal_v withal_o particular_o in_o this_o kind_n which_o be_v certain_o of_o all_o other_o the_o best_a way_n to_o bring_v a_o ignorant_a soul_n unto_o knowledge_n this_o be_v that_o reasonning_a which_o the_o apostle_n use_v so_o much_o in_o instruct_v such_o as_o they_o seek_v to_o bring_v unto_o knowledge_n of_o which_o you_o may_v read_v act._n 17.2.17.18_o 19.19.9_o and_o in_o other_o place_n to_o be_v instruct_v i_o say_v thus_o particular_o they_o hate_v it_o &_o can_v abide_v it_o if_o a_o master_n of_o a_o family_n shall_v constant_o use_v to_o catechise_v his_o servant_n and_o examine_v they_o particular_o concern_v their_o knowledge_n and_o what_o they_o have_v learn_v o_o how_o will_v they_o hate_v such_o a_o service_n if_o a_o minister_n shall_v examine_v they_o concern_v their_o knowledge_n before_o they_o come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o find_v they_o ignorant_a keep_v they_o from_o it_o till_o they_o be_v better_o instruct_v they_o will_v hate_v he_o for_o this_o more_o than_o for_o any_o indignity_n or_o wrong_n he_o can_v do_v unto_o they_o they_o hate_v teach_v they_o hate_v the_o best_a mean_n that_o can_v be_v use_v to_o bring_v they_o unto_o knowledge_n o_o that_o these_o man_n will_v well_o consider_v of_o two_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o do_v notable_o set_v forth_o their_o sin_n and_o danger_n the_o first_o be_v pro._n 5.12_o where_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n speak_v of_o that_o anguish_n of_o soul_n that_o many_o lewd_a man_n feel_v on_o their_o deathbed_n bring_v they_o in_o complain_v of_o this_o as_o of_o a_o chief_a cause_n of_o it_o oh_o say_v he_o how_o have_v i_o hate_a instruction_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v in_o my_o youth_n and_o health_n i_o can_v not_o abide_v to_o be_v teach_v and_o now_o this_o be_v that_o that_o of_o all_o other_o my_o sin_n lie_v most_o heavy_a upon_o my_o conscience_n certain_o all_o place_n do_v afford_v daily_a example_n of_o this_o and_o who_o know_v how_o soon_o this_o may_v be_v his_o own_o case_n the_o second_o place_n be_v that_o in_o pro._n 1.27_o 28_o 29._o when_o distress_n &_o anguish_n come_v upon_o you_o then_o shall_v they_o call_v upon_o i_o but_o i_o will_v not_o answer_v they_o shall_v seek_v i_o early_o but_o they_o shall_v not_o find_v i_o for_o that_o they_o hate_v knowledge_n observe_v four_o thing_n in_o these_o word_n 1._o distress_n and_o anguish_n will_v come_v one_o day_n upon_o the_o most_o secure_a and_o senseless_a sinner_n and_o who_o know_v how_o soon_o this_o distress_n and_o anguish_n of_o soul_n may_v come_v upon_o he_o 2._o in_o distress_n and_o anguish_n the_o most_o secure_a and_o senseless_a sinner_n &_o such_o as_o care_v least_o for_o god_n and_o goodness_n be_v wont_a to_o seek_v unto_o he_o than_o they_o will_v pray_v and_o cry_v unto_o god_n they_o will_v make_v show_n of_o much_o goodness_n they_o will_v desire_v the_o help_n of_o good_a man_n in_o prayer_n 3._o god_n use_v to_o despise_v and_o reject_v the_o prayer_n that_o such_o man_n make_v unto_o he_o in_o their_o great_a distress_n or_o that_o other_o do_v make_v for_o they_o 4._o the_o main_a sin_n that_o provoke_v the_o lord_n so_o against_o such_o man_n that_o cause_v he_o thus_o to_o reject_v their_o prayer_n be_v this_o because_o they_o hate_v knowledge_n in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o health_n and_o peace_n they_o have_v hate_v and_o despise_v the_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n and_o grace_n and_o so_o much_o shall_v serve_v for_o the_o first_o exhortation_n the_o second_o exhortation_n which_o rise_v from_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o the_o doctrine_n be_v this_o that_o see_v no_o ordinance_n of_o god_n no_o part_n of_o his_o worship_n can_v do_v we_o any_o good_a unless_o the_o lord_n work_v with_o it_o that_o his_o co-operation_n and_o blessing_n in_o the_o very_a life_n and_o soul_n of_o every_o ordinance_n of_o god_n that_o therefore_o we_o will_v not_o rest_v in_o our_o performance_n of_o any_o duty_n of_o god_n worship_n but_o make_v this_o our_o chief_a care_n to_o find_v that_o god_n be_v with_o we_o in_o it_o that_o he_o work_v with_o every_o ordinance_n of_o he_o in_o our_o heart_n and_o bless_v it_o unto_o we_o we_o that_o be_v preacher_n shall_v labour_v so_o to_o preach_v as_o we_o may_v find_v god_n work_v with_o we_o and_o blessing_n our_o labour_n this_o be_v paul_n main_a desire_n to_o see_v fruit_n of_o his_o labour_n he_o long_v to_o be_v with_o the_o roman_n as_o he_o say_v rome_n 1.13_o that_o he_o may_v have_v some_o fruit_n among_o they_o also_o as_o he_o have_v among_o the_o other_o gentile_n and_o he_o profess_v phil._n 1.22_o that_o this_o fruit_n of_o his_o labour_n which_o he_o desire_v and_o look_v to_o find_v in_o his_o ministry_n be_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o make_v he_o willing_a to_o live_v and_o you_o that_o be_v god_n people_n shall_v look_v unto_o and_o desire_v this_o chief_o in_o your_o hear_n that_o you_o may_v find_v god_n in_o this_o ordinance_n that_o you_o may_v hear_v the_o lord_n speak_v to_o your_o heart_n and_o feel_v his_o arm_n reveal_v in_o it_o i_o will_v hear_v say_v the_o psalmist_n ps._n 85.8_o what_o god_n the_o lord_n will_v speak_v and_o all_o of_o we_o shall_v strive_v to_o find_v god_n with_o we_o in_o our_o prayer_n not_o only_o by_o the_o help_n he_o yield_v we_o in_o they_o by_o quicken_a and_o assist_v we_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n jude_n 20._o call_v pray_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o also_o we_o shall_v observe_v what_o answer_v the_o lord_n return_v to_o our_o prayer_n what_o fruit_n we_o have_v of_o they_o in_o the_o day_n of_o my_o trouble_n i_o will_v call_v upon_o thou_o for_o thou_o will_v answer_v i_o say_v david_n psalm_n 86.7_o o_o he_o stand_v much_o upon_o this_o and_o can_v not_o be_v satisfy_v without_o it_o h●are_v i_o o_o lord_n say_v he_o psal._n 27.7_o when_o i_o cry_v with_o my_o voice_n have_v mercy_n also_o upon_o i_o and_o answer_v i_o certain_o so_o shall_v every_o one_o of_o we_o do_v likewise_o but_o for_o the_o better_a enforce_v of_o this_o exhortation_n 1._o i_o will_v give_v you_o some_o motive_n to_o stir_v you_o up_o to_o seek_v this_o 2._o i_o will_v direct_v you_o to_o some_o mean_n whereby_o you_o may_v obtain_v it_o 3._o last_o i_o will_v answer_v a_o objection_n that_o many_o of_o god_n people_n be_v apt_a to_o make_v against_o themselves_o in_o this_o case_n because_o they_o do_v not_o profit_v by_o god_n ordinance_n nor_o find_v his_o presence_n in_o they_o for_o motive_n therefore_o consider_v first_o 1_o that_o as_o it_o be_v a_o curse_n and_o great_a sign_n of_o god_n displeasure_n when_o a_o man_n use_v and_o enjoy_v all_o outward_a mean_n of_o health_n and_o strength_n of_o body_n or_o of_o wealth_n and_o increase_n in_o his_o worldly_a estate_n can_v find_v that_o he_o be_v ever_o a_o whit_n the_o better_a by_o they_o because_o god_n with_o hold_v his_o blessing_n from_o they_o and_o so_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o haggi_n 1.6_o when_o a_o man_n eat_v and_o drink_v that_o that_o be_v wholesome_a and_o good_a but_o it_o neither_o nourish_v nor_o satisfy_v he_o when_o a_o man_n labour_v hard_a in_o his_o call_n and_o get_v well_o by_o his_o labour_n but_o be_v never_o the_o rich_a at_o the_o year_n end_n as_o this_o i_o say_v be_v a_o sensible_a judgement_n of_o god_n and_o such_o a_o one_o as_o every_o one_o will_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o god_n displeasure_n so_o be_v it_o certain_o as_o evident_a a_o curse_n and_o sign_n of_o god_n wrath_n when_o a_o man_n enjoy_v and_o use_v all_o outward_a mean_n of_o grace_n he_o lead_v and_o hear_v the_o word_n he_o pray_v and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n ordinary_o yet_o thrive_v not_o one_o jot_n in_o grace_n by_o they_o because_o god_n work_v not_o with_o any_o of_o these_o mean_n nor_o give_v his_o blessing_n to_o they_o and_o so_o be_v this_o speak_v of_o as_o of_o a_o great_a curse_n of_o god_n matthew_n 13.14_o hear_v you_o shall_v hear_v that_o be_v you_o shall_v hear_v my_o prophet_n i_o own_o son_n for_o of_o such_o hear_n he_o speak_v
ordinary_o diligent_o and_o shall_v not_o understand_v as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v you_o shall_v be_v never_o the_o better_a for_o it_o and_o see_v you_o shall_v see_v you_o shall_v have_v all_o the_o help_v your_o eye_n can_v yield_v you_o to_o bring_v you_o to_o grace_n as_o you_o know_v that_o not_o only_o in_o the_o work_n of_o god_n but_o in_o the_o sacrament_n also_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v our_o eye_n to_o be_v a_o great_a help_n to_o our_o faith_n but_o you_o shall_v not_o perceive_v the_o like_a be_v also_o say_v of_o a_o prayer_n isaiah_n 1.15_o when_o you_o make_v many_o prayer_n i_o will_v not_o hear_v you_o second_o 2_o as_o in_o all_o other_o the_o mean_n of_o our_o comfort_n in_o this_o life_n this_o be_v the_o main_a ground_n of_o our_o joy_n to_o find_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v with_o we_o in_o they_o david_n behave_v himself_o wise_o in_o all_o his_o way_n say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_o sam._n 18.14_o and_o the_o lord_n be_v with_o he_o so_o it_o be_v say_v of_o joseph_n gen._n 39_o 20.21_o that_o he_o be_v cast_v into_o prison_n but_o the_o lord_n be_v with_o joseph_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v joseph_n be_v a_o happy_a and_o a_o comfortable_a man_n even_o in_o prison_n because_o the_o lord_n be_v with_o he_o so_o it_o be_v special_o a_o main_a ground_n of_o comfort_n to_o we_o when_o we_o can_v find_v god_n be_v with_o we_o in_o his_o worship_n prosper_v and_o bless_v that_o unto_o we_o when_o we_o can_v say_v of_o every_o service_n we_o have_v do_v unto_o god_n of_o every_o part_n of_o his_o worship_n that_o we_o have_v perform_v as_o the_o church_n do_v esa._n 26.12_o lord_n thou_o will_v ordain_v peace_n for_o we_o for_o thou_o also_o have_v wrought_v all_o our_o work_n in_o we_o 3_o three_o if_o we_o profit_v not_o by_o god_n ordinance_n we_o make_v ourselves_o guilty_a of_o a_o heinous_a sin_n even_o of_o take_v god_n name_n in_o vain_a for_o what_o be_v it_o to_o take_v god_n name_n in_o vain_a if_o this_o be_v not_o when_o we_o ordinary_o read_v and_o hear_v his_o word_n and_o receive_v his_o sacrament_n and_o use_v to_o pray_v and_o all_o in_o vain_a receive_v no_o profit_n be_v never_o the_o better_a for_o it_o and_o certain_o god_n will_v not_o hold_v they_o guiltless_a that_o take_v his_o name_n in_o vain_a exod._n 20.7_o 4_o four_o and_o last_o if_o god_n be_v not_o present_a if_o he_o work_v not_o with_o his_o ordinance_n in_o we_o in_o mercy_n he_o will_v be_v present_a and_o work_v with_o they_o in_o we_o in_o judgement_n if_o we_o be_v not_o the_o better_a for_o they_o certain_o we_o shall_v be_v the_o worse_a for_o they_o where_o god_n ordinance_n prove_v not_o a_o savour_n of_o life_n they_o will_v prove_v a_o savour_n of_o death_n 2_o cor._n 2.16_o see_v a_o experience_n of_o this_o in_o john_n 13.27_o after_o the_o sop_n and_o that_o be_v after_o he_o have_v communicate_v with_o christ_n in_o the_o passover_n satan_n enter_v into_o judas_n and_o will_v to_o god_n we_o have_v not_o daily_a example_n of_o this_o every_o where_o in_o which_o respect_n the_o apostle_n bid_v the_o corinthian_n take_v heed_n 1_o cor._n 11.34_o that_o when_o they_o come_v to_o receive_v the_o communion_n they_o come_v not_o together_o unto_o condemnation_n now_o if_o you_o will_v know_v the_o mean_n how_o we_o may_v obtain_v this_o that_o god_n may_v be_v with_o we_o and_o work_v with_o we_o in_o all_o his_o ordinance_n make_v they_o effectual_a in_o we_o to_o those_o end_n he_o have_v ordain_v they_o for_o they_o be_v four_o principal_o 1_o first_o we_o must_v perform_v every_o duty_n of_o god_n worship_n with_o fear_n lest_o we_o shall_v by_o our_o loose_a and_o careless_a performance_n of_o it_o offend_v god_n and_o loose_a that_o we_o come_v for_o miss_v of_o his_o blessing_n in_o it_o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n say_v the_o prophet_n psalm_n 2.11_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n say_v of_o one_o of_o god_n ordinance_n luke_n 8.18_o take_v heed_n how_o you_o hear_v may_v be_v say_v to_o we_o likewise_o of_o every_o other_o duty_n in_o god_n worship_n take_v heed_n how_o you_o receive_v and_o how_o you_o pray_v and_o how_o you_o read_v the_o word_n also_o you_o have_v hear_v in_o the_o motive_n just_a cause_n we_o have_v to_o do_v so_o let_v we_o have_v grace_n whereby_o we_o may_v serve_v god_n acceptable_o say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n 12.28_o 29._o and_o how_o be_v that_o with_o reverence_n and_o godly_a fear_n for_o our_o god_n be_v a_o consume_a fire_n say_v he_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v we_o can_v never_o serve_v god_n acceptable_o unless_o we_o do_v it_o in_o a_o high_a reverence_n of_o his_o glorious_a greatness_n and_o of_o his_o ordinance_n and_o with_o fear_n of_o offend_v he_o by_o our_o loose_a and_o careless_a performance_n of_o it_o 2_o second_o if_o we_o will_v have_v god_n to_o join_v with_o we_o in_o his_o ordinance_n and_o to_o do_v his_o work_n in_o our_o heart_n by_o they_o we_o must_v strive_v to_o come_v to_o they_o in_o more_o humility_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o own_o unworthiness_n the_o lord_n be_v ●igh_a to_o they_o that_o be_v of_o a_o break_a heart_n say_v david_n psalm_n 34.18_o this_o be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o main_a duty_n that_o god_n require_v of_o all_o his_o people_n micah_n 6.8_o to_o walk_v humble_o with_o thy_o god_n there_o be_v no_o hope_n that_o he_o will_v walk_v with_o we_o converse_v with_o we_o join_v and_o work_v with_o we_o in_o his_o service_n unless_o we_o walk_v humble_o with_o he_o see_v a_o example_n of_o this_o in_o paul_n he_o be_v a_o man_n that_o god_n do_v marvellous_o assist_v and_o work_v with_o in_o his_o ministry_n see_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o act._n 20.19_o he_o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o all_o humility_n of_o mind_n and_o with_o many_o tear_n 3_o three_o if_o we_o will_v have_v god_n to_o work_v with_o we_o and_o bless_v his_o ordinance_n unto_o we_o we_o must_v come_v to_o they_o in_o repentance_n cast_v of_o every_o know_a sin_n before_o we_o approach_v unto_o god_n with_o a_o full_a resolution_n never_o to_o take_v it_o up_o again_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o the_o lord_n teach_v his_o people_n under_o the_o law_n by_o this_o ceremony_n exod._n 30.20_o when_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n go_v into_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n they_o shall_v wash_v with_o water_n that_o they_o die_v not_o and_o as_o the_o lord_n intend_v by_o that_o ceremony_n to_o teach_v we_o that_o be_v his_o minister_n how_o dangerous_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o we_o to_o meddle_v with_o the_o service_n of_o god_n till_o we_o have_v sanctify_v and_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o our_o filthiness_n both_o of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n so_o have_v he_o teach_v all_o his_o people_n that_o it_o be_v no_o less_o dangerous_a for_o they_o to_o come_v before_o he_o in_o any_o part_n of_o his_o worship_n be_v yet_o in_o our_o sin_n see_v this_o in_o the_o extraordinary_a worship_n of_o god_n sanctify_v a_o fast_n sanctify_v the_o congregation_n say_v the_o prophet_n joel_n 2.15_o 16._o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v not_o fit_a to_o keep_v a_o fast_n we_o can_v expect_v that_o the_o day_n of_o our_o fast_n will_v prove_v a_o day_n of_o atonement_n between_o god_n and_o we_o unless_o we_o be_v careful_a before_o our_o fast_n to_o sanctify_v ourselves_o to_o search_v out_o and_o purge_v ourselves_o from_o all_o our_o know_a sin_n see_v this_o also_o in_o ordinary_a duty_n of_o god_n worship_n 1._o for_o the_o sacrament_n it_o be_v evident_a by_o hezechiahs_n prayer_n 2_o chron._n 30.19_o 1._o that_o god_n command_v all_o his_o people_n to_o cleanse_v themselves_o according_a to_o the_o purification_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n before_o they_o do_v presume_v to_o receive_v the_o passover_n 2._o that_o god_n be_v offend_v with_o the_o people_n there_o that_o neglect_v this_o for_o he_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v not_o lay_v that_o sin_n to_o their_o charge_n and_o upon_o his_o prayer_n god_n heal_v they_o and_o in_o obedience_n to_o that_o law_n it_o be_v say_v john_n 11_o 55._o that_o in_o christ_n time_n many_o go_v out_o of_o the_o country_n up_o to_o jerusalem_n before_o the_o passover_n to_o purify_v themselves_o and_o our_o saviour_n after_o the_o passover_n before_o he_o celebrate_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n with_o his_o disciple_n wash_v their_o foot_n as_o we_o read_v john_n 13.5_o and_o those_o bodily_a purification_n and_o wash_n do_v signify_v certain_o the_o purge_n and_o cleanse_v of_o the_o soul_n from_o sin_n by_o the_o blood_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ._n no_o man_n may_v hope_v to_o receive_v any_o good_a by_o
cause_n to_o judge_v that_o thou_o be_v still_o in_o thy_o sin_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o cor._n 15.17_o and_o consequent_o that_o thou_o be_v under_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n he_o that_o believe_v not_o the_o son_n say_v our_o saviour_n himself_o i●h_o 3.36_o that_o be_v on_o the_o son_n as_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o verse_n shall_v not_o see_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o 2_o second_o till_o thou_o know_v christ_n be_v thou_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n of_o mercy_n from_o god_n in_o any_o distress_n but_o though_o thou_o be_v jocund_a and_o jovial_a now_o in_o thy_o health_n and_o prosperity_n and_o glorye_v much_o in_o god_n and_o in_o his_o mercy_n as_o many_o a_o vile_a wretch_n have_v do_v thou_o make_v thy_o boast_n of_o god_n say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 2.17_o of_o the_o jew_n that_o have_v no_o part_n in_o christ_n but_o hate_v and_o blaspheme_v he_o and_o the_o prophet_n mic._n 3.11_o say_v of_o many_o most_o lewd_a man_n that_o they_o lean_v upon_o the_o lord_n yet_o when_o some_o sharp_a and_o bitter_a affliction_n shall_v awaken_v thy_o conscience_n thou_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n no_o comfort_n in_o god_n thou_o will_v find_v nothing_o but_o terrrour_n in_o think_v of_o he_o i_o remember_v god_n and_o be_v trouble_v say_v the_o prophet_n psal._n 77.3_o and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o with_o that_o holy_a man_n who_o christ_n have_v but_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o for_o a_o time_n and_o who_o have_v this_o help_n to_o recover_v himself_o by_o he_o can_v consider_v his_o former_a estate_n and_o call_v to_o remembrance_n his_o song_n in_o the_o night_n as_o he_o say_v ver_fw-la 5._o and_o what_o will_v thy_o case_n be_v that_o never_o have_v any_o assurance_n that_o christ_n be_v thou_o 3_o three_o till_o thou_o know_v that_o christ_n be_v thou_o and_o thou_o be_v one_o of_o they_o that_o he_o do_v undertake_v for_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n of_o any_o blessing_n from_o god_n spiritual_a or_o corporal_a for_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n they_o be_v yea_o and_o in_o he_o they_o be_v amen_o that_o be_v sure_a and_o certain_a as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2_o cor._n 1.20_o they_o that_o be_v not_o in_o christ_n have_v no_o promise_n of_o god_n for_o any_o thing_n the_o lord_n have_v make_v christ_n his_o steward_n and_o put_v all_o his_o good_n into_o his_o hand_n all_o thing_n be_v deliver_v to_o i_o of_o my_o father_n say_v he_o mat._n 11.27_o nothing_o can_v come_v to_o we_o but_o through_o he_o nay_o god_n have_v make_v he_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n 1.2_o all_o thing_n be_v his_o own_o and_o therefore_o we_o can_v have_v nothing_o but_o from_o and_o through_o he_o four_o and_o last_o 4_o till_o thou_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o one_o of_o those_o that_o he_o do_v undertake_v for_o though_o thou_o do_v possess_v any_o blessing_n of_o god_n in_o never_o so_o great_a a_o measure_n yet_o can_v thou_o not_o enjoy_v they_o nor_o have_v any_o sound_a comfort_n in_o they_o for_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n that_o they_o be_v give_v thou_o in_o mercy_n and_o in_o love_n and_o that_o be_v it_o that_o give_v the_o sweet_a relish_n to_o all_o god_n blessing_n when_o a_o man_n can_v say_v of_o they_o as_o jacob_n do_v of_o his_o child_n genesis_n 33.5_o these_o be_v the_o child_n which_o god_n have_v gracious_o give_v thy_o servant_n and_o as_o david_n do_v 2_o samuel_n 22.20_o he_o deliver_v i_o because_o he_o delight_v in_o i_o then_o be_v god_n blessing_n sweet_a to_o we_o indeed_o when_o we_o can_v relish_v god_n love_n in_o they_o when_o the_o heart_n be_v persuade_v god_n have_v give_v we_o they_o in_o love_n alas_o we_o know_v god_n have_v pour_v his_o blessing_n abundant_o upon_o many_o man_n not_o in_o love_n but_o in_o much_o wrath_n i_o give_v they_o a_o king_n in_o my_o anger_n say_v the_o lord_n hos._n 13.11_o he_o give_v they_o their_o own_o desire_n say_v the_o prophet_n of_o rhe_n rebellious_a israelite_n that_o perish_v in_o the_o wilderness_n psalm_n 78.29_o 31._o but_o while_o the_o meat_n be_v yet_o in_o their_o mouth_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n come_v upon_o they_o they_o have_v the_o blessing_n but_o they_o have_v it_o with_o god_n curse_n and_o vengeance_n and_o have_v they_o not_o better_o have_v be_v without_o it_o then_o to_o have_v have_v it_o so_o i_o will_v curse_v your_o blessing_n say_v the_o lord_n mal._n 2.2_o and_o sure_o the_o great_a hurt_n which_o many_o receive_v even_o by_o god_n blessing_n which_o they_o have_v the_o prosperity_n of_o fool_n shall_v destroy_v they_o say_v solomon_n prov._n 1.32_o prove_v evident_o that_o god_n cast_v they_o upon_o they_o in_o wrath_n rather_o than_o in_o love_n and_o a_o man_n be_v better_a to_o be_v without_o they_o then_o to_o have_v they_o without_o his_o love_n and_o no_o man_n can_v be_v assure_v god_n give_v he_o any_o thing_n in_o love_n till_o he_o be_v in_o christ._n for_o it_o be_v he_o only_o that_o have_v reconcile_v we_o to_o god_n and_o make_v he_o our_o friend_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o rom._n 5.10_o these_o point_n if_o we_o can_v right_o weigh_v they_o will_v be_v motive_n strong_a enough_o to_o every_o one_o of_o we_o to_o seek_v to_o make_v this_o sure_a to_o ourselves_o that_o christ_n be_v we_o that_o we_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o he_o do_v undertake_v for_o but_o what_o need_v all_o this_o may_v some_o say_v object_n i_o thank_v god_n i_o do_v very_o believe_v to_o be_v already_o and_o be_o confident_a in_o this_o that_o christ_n be_v my_o saviour_n he_o undertake_v for_o i_o he_o die_v for_o i_o and_o who_o but_o a_o infidel_n and_o a_o beast_n will_v doubt_v of_o this_o see_v the_o scripture_n say_v express_o he_o die_v for_o all_o mankind_n john_n baptist_n call_v he_o joh._n 1.29_o the_o lamb_n of_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o apostle_n john_n 1_o joh._n 2.2_o say_v he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o but_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n express_v this_o plain_o by_o a_o excellent_a comparison_n rom._n 5.18_o as_o by_o the_o offence_n of_o one_o judgement_n come_v upon_o all_o man_n to_o condemnation_n even_o so_o by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o one_o the_o free_a gift_n come_v upon_o all_o man_n unto_o justification_n of_o life_n but_o for_o answer_v unto_o these_o man_n answ._n i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o controversy_n which_o have_v much_o trouble_v the_o church_n whether_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o man_n or_o whether_o the_o lord_n in_o send_v his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n intend_v that_o all_o man_n shall_v have_v benefit_n by_o he_o but_o this_o i_o say_v wherein_o we_o all_o agree_v and_o of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o controversy_n and_o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o need_v be_v say_v for_o the_o purpose_n we_o have_v now_o in_o hand_n that_o certain_o all_o man_n shall_v not_o have_v benefit_n by_o he_o he_o have_v not_o make_v all_o man_n peace_n with_o god_n he_o have_v not_o undertake_v for_o all_o man_n in_o particular_a nor_o satisfy_v god_n justice_n for_o they_o his_o death_n be_v not_o effectual_a for_o all_o man_n no_o no_o belove_v be_v not_o deceive_v with_o this_o conceit_n but_o know_v first_o there_o be_v now_o and_o ever_o have_v be_v a_o world_n of_o man_n that_o shall_v have_v no_o benefit_n by_o he_o at_o all_o i_o pray_v for_o they_o say_v he_o himself_o john_n 17.9_o i_o pray_v not_o for_o the_o world_n second_o there_o be_v now_o and_o ever_o have_v be_v many_o even_a of_o those_o that_o have_v profess_v faith_n in_o christ_n that_o have_v be_v most_o confident_a in_o this_o that_o he_o be_v their_o saviour_n he_o die_v for_o they_o that_o yet_o shall_v have_v no_o benefit_n by_o he_o at_o all_o not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v unto_o i_o lord_n lord_n say_v he_o mat._n 7.21_o 23._o he_o bring_v they_o in_o double_v that_o word_n to_o express_v their_o earnestness_n of_o affection_n and_o confidence_n that_o they_o have_v in_o he_o shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n many_o will_v say_v unto_o i_o lord_n lord_n and_o then_o then_o in_o that_o dreadful_a day_n when_o they_o shall_v have_v most_o need_v of_o i_o they_o shall_v find_v they_o be_v miserable_o deceive_v then_o will_v i_o profess_v unto_o they_o i_o never_o know_v you_o depart_v from_o i_o avaunt_o you_o wretch_n fie_o upon_o you_o out_o of_o my_o sight_n i_o can_v abide_v you_o o_o belove_v let_v every_o
also_o but_o not_o else_o 3._o last_o the_o lord_n himself_o will_v judge_v thou_o at_o the_o last_o day_n by_o his_o word_n and_o by_o that_o only_a the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v say_v our_o saviour_n jo●_a 12.48_o the_o same_o shall_v judge_v he_o at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o therefore_o it_o stand_v thou_o upon_o to_o judge_v thyself_o by_o that_o too_o second_o now_o alas_o most_o man_n though_o they_o say_v they_o be_v undoubted_o assure_v of_o their_o salvation_n have_v no_o ground_n at_o all_o in_o god_n word_n for_o this_o assurance_n they_o boast_v of_o nay_o though_o the_o word_n give_v most_o express_a and_o direct_a evidence_n against_o they_o yet_o be_v they_o most_o confident_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o all_o that_o though_o god_n word_n say_v express_o psal._n 119.155_o salvation_n be_v far_o from_o the_o wicked_a for_o they_o seek_v not_o thy_o statute_n yet_o many_o a_o one_o that_o never_o seek_v after_o god_n statute_n take_v no_o pain_n for_o the_o word_n nay_o shun_v it_o all_o that_o ever_o he_o can_v and_o though_o he_o may_v enjoy_v it_o without_o any_o labour_n or_o charge_n at_o all_o will_v not_o stir_v out_o of_o his_o door_n for_o it_o nay_o that_o count_v you_o all_o arrant_a fool_n and_o hypocrite_n that_o take_v so_o much_o pain_n for_o it_o as_o many_o of_o you_o do_v yet_o be_v this_o man_n i_o say_v as_o sure_o of_o his_o own_o salvation_n as_o any_o of_o you_o can_v be_v though_o the_o scripture_n say_v express_o yea_o though_o he_o that_o must_v judge_v we_o all_o at_o the_o last_o day_n say_v express_o matth._n 5.37_o whatsoever_o be_v more_o than_o yea_o and_o nay_o the_o least_o oath_n that_o be_v in_o our_o ordinary_a communication_n come_v of_o that_o evil_a one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o devil_n and_o though_o the_o apostle_n say_v jam._n 5.12_o above_o all_o thing_n my_o brethren_n swear_v not_o by_o any_o oath_n lest_o you_o fall_v into_o condemnation_n lest_o you_o be_v damn_v yet_o have_v we_o many_o a_o one_o that_o swear_v ordinary_o not_o by_o faith_n and_o troth_n only_o but_o by_o foul_a oath_n a_o great_a deal_n that_o yet_o never_o doubt_v of_o their_o salvation_n but_o be_v confident_a christ_n die_v for_o they_o his_o blood_n have_v be_v sprinkle_v upon_o their_o heart_n though_o the_o scripture_n say_v express_o 1_o cor._n 6.9_o 10._o neither_o fornicator_n nor_o wantoness_n nor_o thief_n nor_o drunkard_n nor_o raylor_n nor_o extortioner_n shall_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n yet_o where_o have_v you_o any_o in_o god_n church_n that_o be_v more_o confident_o assure_v that_o have_v less_o doubt_n of_o their_o salvation_n than_o these_o man_n have_v but_o let_v god_n be_v true_a say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 3.4_o and_o every_o man_n a_o liar_n thou_o will_v one_o day_n find_v that_o the_o lord_n testimony_n against_o thou_o be_v very_o sure_a as_o the_o psalmist_n call_v they_o psal._n 93.5_o and_o that_o thy_o own_o heart_n have_v prophesy_v a_o lie_n unto_o thou_o that_o thou_o may_v perish_v as_o the_o lord_n say_v of_o they_o that_o prophesy_v peace_n unto_o the_o jew_n jer._n 27.10_o i_o know_v thou_o be_v apt_a to_o allege_v that_o thou_o have_v repent_v and_o that_o thou_o do_v believe_v in_o christ_n and_o therefore_o thou_o have_v the_o word_n to_o build_v thy_o assurance_n upon_o but_o because_o neither_o thy_o faith_n nor_o thy_o repentance_n be_v according_a to_o the_o pattern_n according_a to_o the_o word_n i_o may_v say_v of_o thy_o confidence_n thou_o repose_a therein_o as_o bildad_n do_v of_o the_o hope_n of_o all_o hypocrite_n job_n 8.14_o thy_o hope_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o and_o thy_o trust_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o spider_n web_n lecture_n cxxiii_o on_o psalm_n 51.7_o july_n 21._o 1629._o 3._o the_o three_o and_o last_o sign_n whereby_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o our_o assurance_n and_o discern_v whether_o god_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n have_v sprinkle_v upon_o our_o heart_n the_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n and_o certify_v we_o that_o it_o be_v shed_v for_o we_o whether_o that_o assurance_n we_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o be_v to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o effect_n that_o this_o assurance_n have_v wrought_v in_o we_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o any_o man_n that_o know_v before_o his_o own_o wretchedness_n by_o nature_n to_o be_v assure_v by_o god_n spirit_n that_o god_n have_v so_o dear_o love_v he_o as_o to_o send_v his_o own_o son_n to_o shed_v his_o blood_n for_o he_o but_o this_o must_v needs_o work_v a_o great_a change_n and_o alteration_n in_o he_o it_o must_v needs_o kindle_v in_o his_o heart_n a_o unfeigned_a love_n to_o god_n faith_n work_v by_o love_n say_v the_o apostle_n galat._n 5_o 6._o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v it_o can_v be_v idle_a but_o it_o be_v operative_a and_o full_a of_o virtue_n and_o the_o hand_n and_o instrument_n it_o work_v by_o be_v love_n it_o must_v needs_o make_v he_o that_o have_v it_o desirous_a and_o studious_a to_o express_v his_o love_n to_o god_n by_o all_o mean_v he_o can_v and_o to_o say_v with_o david_n psalm_n 116.12_o what_o shall_v i_o render_v unto_o the_o lord_n yea_o the_o deep_a sense_n a_o man_n have_v have_v of_o his_o own_o sin_n and_o wretchedness_n before_o the_o more_o will_v his_o heart_n be_v inflame_v with_o love_n to_o god_n when_o once_o he_o feel_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n sprinkle_v upon_o his_o heart_n by_o god_n spirit_n the_o more_o studious_a will_v he_o be_v to_o express_v his_o love_n by_o any_o duty_n he_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v marry_o have_v have_v many_o sin_n forgive_v unto_o she_o and_o therefore_o she_o love_v much_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v luke_n 7_o 47._o she_o think_v no_o service_n too_o base_a too_o much_o for_o she_o to_o do_v unto_o christ_n who_o have_v so_o dear_o love_v she_o she_o wash_v his_o foot_n with_o her_o tear_n and_o wipe_v they_o with_o the_o hair_n of_o her_o head_n as_o you_o may_v see_v verse_n 38._o of_o that_o chapter_n the_o papist_n blaspheme_v our_o doctrine_n touch_v this_o certainty_n a_o man_n may_v have_v of_o god_n favour_n and_o say_v it_o tend_v to_o looseness_n of_o life_n and_o liberty_n but_o they_o speak_v of_o it_o by_o hearsay_n as_o stranger_n do_v of_o a_o thing_n that_o they_o never_o know_v or_o have_v experience_n of_o in_o themselves_o for_o the_o true_a assurance_n of_o salvation_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v wrought_v in_o any_o heart_n have_v that_o force_n to_o restrain_v he_o from_o looseness_n of_o life_n and_o to_o knit_v his_o heart_n in_o love_n and_o obedience_n to_o god_n as_o nothing_o else_o have_v in_o all_o the_o world_n it_o be_v certain_o either_o the_o want_n of_o faith_n and_o assurance_n of_o god_n love_n or_o a_o false_a and_o carnal_a assurance_n of_o it_o that_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o all_o that_o licentiousness_n and_o lewdness_n that_o reign_v in_o the_o world_n but_o to_o speak_v distinct_o yet_o brief_o of_o this_o point_n you_o shall_v see_v the_o effect_n that_o true_a assurance_n will_v work_v both_o in_o the_o inward_a and_o outward_a man_n first_o true_a faith_n whereby_o we_o receive_v and_o apply_v christ_n unto_o ourselves_o will_v purify_v the_o heart_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v act_n 15.9_o it_o will_v work_v a_o thorough_a change_n and_o reformation_n even_o in_o the_o hide_a part_n this_o difference_n the_o apostle_n observe_v hebr._n 9.13_o 74._o between_o the_o sprinkle_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n upon_o the_o people_n by_o the_o priest_n under_o the_o law_n and_o the_o sprinkle_n of_o christ_n blood_n upon_o the_o heart_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o sanctify_v to_o the_o purify_n of_o the_o flesh_n say_v he_o that_o be_v that_o make_v a_o man_n legal_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n clean_o from_o all_o outward_a pollution_n but_o christ_n blood_n be_v sprinkle_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n upon_o any_o heart_n will_v purge_v the_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n that_o be_v from_o all_o sin_n which_o as_o they_o deserve_v so_o will_v they_o certain_o bring_v death_n eternal_a upon_o all_o that_o be_v not_o purge_v from_o they_o this_z say_v he_o will_v purge_v the_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n there_o be_v certain_o a_o admirable_a virtue_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n when_o it_o be_v once_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n sprinkle_v and_o apply_v to_o the_o heart_n of_o any_o man_n it_o will_v purge_v and_o heal_v it_o from_o all_o the_o corruption_n that_o be_v in_o it_o before_o unto_o you_o that_o fear_v my_o name_n say_v the_o lord_n malachi_n 4.2_o shall_v the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n arise_v with_o
heal_v in_o his_o wing_n this_o sun_n do_v never_o arise_v and_o shine_v upon_o any_o heart_n but_o it_o bring_v a_o heal_a virtue_n with_o it_o see_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o in_o four_o particular_n first_o this_o will_v soften_v the_o heart_n more_o and_o make_v it_o apt_a to_o mourn_v for_o sin_n then_o any_o other_o thing_n be_v able_a to_o do_v i_o will_v pour_v upon_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o upon_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v the_o lord_n zach._n 12.10_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o of_o supplication_n and_o they_o shall_v look_v upon_o i_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v and_o they_o shall_v mourn_v for_o he_o as_o one_o mourn_v for_o his_o only_a son_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v thus_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n have_v make_v a_o man_n able_a to_o see_v that_o his_o sin_n pierce_v christ_n that_o christ_n blood_n be_v shed_v for_o his_o sin_n this_o will_v break_v his_o heart_n and_o make_v he_o mourn_v and_o grieve_v more_o for_o his_o sin_n then_o for_o any_o other_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n second_o this_o will_v make_v a_o man_n more_o afraid_a to_o sin_n &_o to_o offend_v god_n than_o any_o other_o thing_n be_v able_a to_o do_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n shall_v return_v and_o seek_v the_o lord_n their_o god_n and_o david_n that_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o david_n their_o king_n and_o they_o shall_v fear_v the_o lord_n and_o his_o goodness_n in_o the_o latter_a day_n that_o be_v in_o the_o day_n under_o the_o gospel_n say_v the_o prophet_n hos._n 3.5_o as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v when_o god_n people_n have_v once_o by_o seek_v find_v the_o lord_n their_o god_n and_o christ_n their_o king_n know_v he_o to_o be_v their_o god_n and_o their_o king_n and_o taste_v of_o his_o marvellous_a goodness_n and_o love_n unto_o they_o this_o will_v make_v they_o ever_o after_o more_o fearful_a to_o offend_v he_o then_o any_o other_o thing_n can_v possible_o do_v three_o this_o will_v breed_v in_o a_o man_n a_o great_a delight_n in_o the_o word_n and_o mean_n of_o grace_n a_o great_a desire_n and_o appetite_n unto_o they_o than_o any_o other_o thing_n be_v able_a to_o do_v as_o new_o bear_v babe_n desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n that_o you_o may_v grow_v thereby_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o peter_n 2.2_o 3._o if_o so_o be_v that_o you_o have_v taste_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v gracious_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v the_o man_n that_o know_v the_o lord_n be_v gracious_a and_o gracious_a to_o he_o and_o that_o have_v also_o taste_v the_o sweetness_n of_o this_o assurance_n of_o god_n special_a love_n to_o himself_o must_v needs_o desire_v and_o long_o after_o god_n word_n as_o much_o as_o ever_o babe_n do_v after_o the_o mother_n breast_n four_o and_o last_o this_o will_v make_v a_o man_n more_o careful_a in_o all_o his_o way_n to_o please_v god_n than_o any_o other_o thing_n be_v able_a to_o do_v i_o have_v walk_v in_o thy_o truth_n say_v david_n psalm_n 26.3_o and_o make_v conscience_n to_o do_v and_o practice_v what_o thou_o teach_v i_o in_o thy_o word_n and_o he_o have_v give_v this_o for_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o verse_n for_o thy_o love_a kindness_n be_v before_o my_o eye_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o know_v and_o be_o full_o assure_v as_o if_o i_o see_v it_o with_o my_o eye_n of_o thy_o love_a kindness_n and_o special_a favour_n towards_o i_o and_o that_o make_v i_o walk_v in_o thy_o truth_n and_o these_o be_v the_o effect_n that_o the_o true_a assurance_n will_v work_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o inward_a man_n but_o second_o it_o will_v not_o rest_v there_o he_o that_o have_v it_o can_v content_v himself_o with_o the_o reformation_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n and_o life_n he_o can_v but_o declare_v open_o and_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v god_n servant_n he_o can_v but_o put_v forth_o himself_o to_o do_v he_o all_o the_o service_n and_o honour_n that_o he_o be_v possible_o able_a to_o do_v 1._o for_o profession_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o those_o who_o god_n spirit_n sprinkle_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n upon_o who_o he_o set_v this_o mark_n and_o seal_v upon_o he_o set_v it_o not_o upon_o their_o heart_n only_o but_o upon_o their_o forehead_n also_o as_o you_o may_v read_v ezek._n 9.4_o rev._n 7.3_o so_o as_o those_o among_o who_o they_o live_v may_v discern_v and_o take_v notice_n that_o they_o be_v god_n people_n when_o once_o god_n have_v say_v to_o any_o man_n heart_n by_o his_o spirit_n as_o he_o do_v to_o his_o people_n esa_n 43.1_o i_o have_v call_v thou_o by_o name_n thou_o be_v i_o that_o man_n can_v choose_v but_o say_v to_o he_o again_o as_o david_n do_v psal._n 116.16_o o_o lord_n true_o i_o be_o thy_o servant_n i_o be_o thy_o servant_n nay_o what_o he_o have_v hear_v in_o the_o ear_n as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v in_o another_o case_n matth_n 10.27_o he_o can_v but_o preach_v on_o the_o house_n top_n he_o can_v but_o declare_v and_o profess_v himself_o open_o to_o be_v god_n servant_n and_o one_o of_o his_o people_n thus_o the_o prophet_n esa._n 44.5_o bring_v in_o the_o faithful_a glory_v in_o this_o open_a profession_n of_o their_o homage_n one_o shall_v say_v i_o be_o the_o lord_n another_o shall_v call_v himself_o by_o the_o name_n of_o jacob_n and_o another_o shall_v subscribe_v with_o his_o hand_n unto_o the_o lord_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v every_o one_o shall_v be_v ready_a upon_o all_o occasion_n and_o by_o all_o mean_n to_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v one_o of_o god_n people_n of_o his_o church_n and_o household_n and_o 2._o for_o that_o care_n that_o all_o such_o have_v to_o do_v god_n all_o the_o honour_n that_o possible_o they_o can_v in_o the_o place_n and_o calling_n that_o god_n have_v set_v they_o in_o we_o have_v three_o notable_a example_n the_o first_o be_v of_o joshuah_n as_o he_o be_v the_o master_n of_o a_o family_n who_o as_o he_o be_v a_o man_n that_o have_v obtain_v this_o particular_a assurance_n that_o god_n be_v his_o god_n god_n have_v say_v unto_o he_o josh_fw-mi 1.15_o as_o i_o be_v with_o moses_n so_o will_v i_o be_v with_o thou_o i_o will_v not_o fail_v thou_o nor_o forsake_v thou_o so_o do_v he_o profess_v not_o only_o that_o he_o will_v be_v god_n servant_n and_o at_o his_o command_n but_o that_o his_o whole_a family_n shall_v be_v so_o too_o as_o for_o i_o and_o my_o house_n say_v he_o josh_fw-mi 24_o 15._o we_o will_v serve_v the_o lord_n the_o second_o example_n be_v of_o paul_n a_o minister_n and_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n who_o when_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o his_o marvellous_a diligence_n and_o faithfulness_n in_o his_o ministry_n give_v this_o for_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o 2_o cor._n 5.14.15_o for_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n constrain_v we_o say_v he_o because_o we_o thus_o judge_v that_o one_o die_v for_o all_o then_o be_v all_o dead_a we_o be_v all_o by_o nature_n dead_a and_o damn_a man_n and_o that_o he_o die_v for_o all_o that_o they_o which_o live_v shall_v not_o henceforth_o live_v to_o themselves_o but_o unto_o he_o which_o die_v for_o they_o and_o rose_z again_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o that_o know_v i_o be_v a_o dead_a and_o damn_a man_n and_o that_o christ_n die_v for_o i_o to_o save_v and_o deliver_v i_o out_o of_o that_o estate_n hold_v myself_o bind_v to_o do_v he_o all_o the_o honour_n and_o service_n that_o i_o can_v by_o enlarge_a his_o kingdom_n and_o know_v i_o can_v never_o do_v enough_o for_o he_o that_o have_v do_v so_o much_o for_o i_o as_o he_o have_v do_v the_o three_o and_o last_o example_n be_v of_o david_n a_o magistrate_n of_o who_o noble_a resolution_n you_o may_v read_v psal_n 1_o 18.28_o thou_o be_v my_o god_n and_o i_o will_v praise_v thou_o say_v he_o thou_o be_v my_o god_n and_o i_o will_v exalt_v thou_o as_o he_o be_v confident_o assure_v that_o god_n be_v his_o god_n out_o of_o the_o abundance_n of_o his_o heart_n his_o mouth_n speak_v thus_o once_o and_o again_o so_o be_v he_o resolute_o determine_v to_o improve_v his_o power_n and_o authority_n to_o the_o uttermost_a in_o stand_v for_o god_n and_o advance_n of_o his_o honour_n applic._n let_v we_o now_o make_v some_o application_n of_o this_o and_o examine_v ourselves_o by_o this_o three_o and_o last_o sign_n and_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o assurance_n of_o their_o salvation_n that_o most_o man_n glory_v in_o be_v vain_a and_o counterfeit_n such_o as_o satan_n or_o their_o own_o deceitful_a heart_n not_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n have_v wrought_v in_o they_o because_o they_o be_v so_o barren_a
nehemiah_n know_v that_o god_n be_v his_o god_n and_o will_v remember_v he_o in_o goodness_n as_o be_v plain_a by_o his_o prayer_n neh._n 13.22_o because_o he_o have_v show_v such_o zeal_n in_o punish_v the_o profanation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v then_o of_o such_o magistrate_n as_o have_v good_a law_n and_o authority_n to_o punish_v swear_v and_o whore_v and_o profanation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n have_v no_o zeal_n at_o all_o for_o the_o execution_n of_o such_o law_n but_o when_o any_o come_v to_o they_o for_o justice_n against_o such_o offence_n they_o be_v ready_a to_o put_v they_o off_o as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a and_o to_o extenuate_v such_o fault_n and_o to_o say_v with_o gallio_n act_v 18.15_o i_o will_v be_v no_o judge_n of_o such_o matter_n and_o verse_n 17._o gallio_n care_v for_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n certain_o these_o man_n whatsoever_o they_o say_v have_v no_o true_a assurance_n that_o christ_n blood_n be_v shed_v for_o they_o if_o they_o have_v they_o will_v show_v more_o love_n to_o god_n and_o care_n of_o his_o honour_n lecture_n cxxiiii_o on_o psalm_n 51.7_o august_n 4._o 1629._o now_o concern_v the_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v attain_v to_o a_o particular_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n we_o must_v first_o understand_v that_o this_o be_v a_o supernatural_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o that_o no_o man_n be_v able_a of_o himself_o and_o by_o his_o own_o endeavour_n in_o the_o use_n of_o any_o mean_n whatsoever_o to_o attain_v unto_o it_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o bear_v witness_v say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o joh._n 5.6_o and_o again_o the_o spirit_n itself_o say_v the_o apostle_n paul_n rom._n 8.16_o bear_v witness_n with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n yet_o do_v the_o spirit_n work_v this_o assurance_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n not_o by_o immediate_a and_o extraordinary_a inspiration_n and_o revelation_n but_o by_o ordinary_a mean_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v with_o a_o honest_a heart_n use_v these_o ordinary_a mean_n have_v no_o cause_n to_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v be_v please_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o work_v it_o in_o he_o and_o these_o mean_n we_o find_v be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o first_o be_v more_o outward_a and_o bodily_a the_o second_o more_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a 1_o the_o first_o be_v those_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o exercise_n of_o his_o holy_a religion_n which_o he_o have_v appoint_v and_o sanctify_v which_o as_o they_o be_v all_o ordain_v for_o this_o end_n principal_o to_o bring_v we_o unto_o salvation_n and_o to_o work_v in_o we_o a_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o it_o so_o he_o that_o use_v they_o diligent_o and_o conscionable_o may_v obtain_v it_o by_o they_o of_o they_o all_o in_o general_a special_o of_o all_o the_o part_n of_o god_n solemn_a and_o public_a worship_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o david_n profess_v this_o to_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o he_o be_v so_o in_o love_n with_o it_o why_o he_o desire_v the_o comfort_n and_o benefit_n of_o god_n worship_n and_o ordinance_n more_o than_o he_o do_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o why_o he_o resolve_v to_o make_v this_o his_o only_a suit_n unto_o god_n that_o he_o may_v never_o be_v deprive_v of_o they_o one_o thing_n say_v he_o ps._n 27.4_o have_v i_o desire_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o will_v i_o seecke_n after_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v i_o say_v that_o he_o profess_v this_o to_o be_v the_o chief_a cause_n why_o he_o be_v so_o high_o in_o love_n with_o god_n house_n and_o ordinance_n that_o i_o may_v behold_v say_v he_o the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o visit_v his_o temple_n and_o what_o mean_v he_o by_o behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o he_o expound_v himself_o in_o ps._n 48.9_o we_o have_v think_v of_o thy_o love_a kindness_n o_o god_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o thy_o temple_n the_o love_a kindness_n of_o god_n and_o his_o special_a mercy_n to_o his_o elect_a in_o christ_n his_o favourable_a and_o cheerful_a countenance_n upon_o his_o servant_n that_o be_v the_o lord_n beauty_n that_o be_v it_o that_o make_v he_o amiable_a to_o his_o people_n and_o that_o god_n people_n do_v behold_v they_o do_v think_v and_o meditate_v upon_o it_o far_o more_o clear_o and_o comfortable_o in_o his_o house_n and_o temple_n in_o the_o use_n of_o his_o ordinance_n than_o any_o where_o else_o or_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o this_o make_v he_o in_o his_o trouble_n and_o banishment_n thirst_n and_o long_o after_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o god_n so_o as_o he_o profess_v he_o do_v psal._n 63.1_o every_o place_n he_o live_v in_o where_o he_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o liberty_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n be_v unto_o he_o as_o a_o dry_a and_o thirsty_a land_n where_o no_o water_n be_v he_o can_v find_v nothing_o in_o it_o to_o refresh_v and_o satisfy_v the_o thirst_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o verse_n 2_o he_o give_v the_o reason_n why_o he_o do_v so_o long_o after_o the_o sanctuary_n to_o see_v thy_o power_n and_o thy_o glory_n say_v he_o so_o as_o i_o have_v see_v thou_o in_o the_o sanctuary_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o shall_v never_o see_v it_o so_o as_o i_o have_v see_v it_o there_o and_o what_o mean_v he_o by_o the_o power_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v see_v in_o the_o sanctuary_n that_o he_o express_v verse_n 3_o because_o thy_o love_a kindness_n be_v better_a than_o life_n he_o have_v see_v the_o mercy_n and_o love_a kindness_n of_o god_n towards_o he_o in_o christ_n he_o have_v obtain_v a_o more_o comforaable_a assurance_n and_o feel_n of_o it_o in_o the_o sanctuary_n in_o the_o use_n of_o god_n solemn_a worship_n and_o ordinance_n there_o then_o ever_o he_o do_v or_o can_v do_v in_o any_o place_n or_o by_o any_o mean_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o all_o other_o place_n be_v to_o he_o as_o a_o dry_a and_o thirsty_a land_n where_o no_o water_n be_v in_o comparison_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o certain_o they_o that_o believe_v this_o to_o be_v so_o as_o david_n do_v they_o that_o know_v this_o to_o be_v so_o in_o their_o own_o experience_n as_o he_o do_v and_o as_o many_o of_o you_o i_o doubt_v not_o have_v do_v will_v stand_v affect_v to_o god_n house_n and_o ordinance_n as_o he_o be_v will_v high_o prize_v and_o esteem_v of_o a_o sound_a ministry_n as_o he_o do_v will_v desire_v this_o above_o all_o thing_n as_o he_o do_v that_o they_o may_v never_o want_v the_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n of_o it_o but_o to_o speak_v of_o this_o point_n distinct_o i_o will_v instance_n in_o three_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n only_o for_o this_o and_o show_v you_o what_o force_n there_o be_v in_o they_o to_o breed_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o god_n child_n the_o assurance_n of_o his_o favour_n to_o make_v he_o able_a to_o behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n the_o first_o of_o they_o be_v diligent_a and_o conscionable_a use_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n both_o in_o the_o read_n and_o hear_v of_o it_o two_o thing_n there_o be_v which_o god_n have_v speak_v concern_v his_o word_n and_o the_o ministry_n thereof_o that_o may_v give_v a_o christian_a good_a ground_n of_o hope_n that_o by_o a_o diligent_a and_o conscionable_a attendance_n upon_o this_o ordinance_n he_o may_v be_v able_a to_o attain_v unto_o a_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o god_n favour_n in_o christ._n the_o first_o be_v this_o that_o the_o lord_n give_v his_o word_n and_o the_o ministry_n thereof_o to_o that_o end_n principal_o the_o main_a thing_n that_o the_o lord_n aim_v at_o both_o in_o write_v his_o holy_a word_n and_o in_o send_v of_o preacher_n to_o his_o church_n be_v that_o he_o may_v by_o this_o mean_n bring_v his_o people_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o himself_o and_o of_o his_o mercy_n in_o christ._n the_o second_o be_v this_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v by_o his_o spirit_n accompany_v his_o word_n and_o the_o ministry_n thereof_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n and_o make_v it_o effectual_a in_o they_o unto_o this_o end_n that_o he_o have_v ordain_v it_o for_o for_o the_o first_o of_o the_o word_n in_o general_n it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v write_v principal_o for_o that_o end_n to_o breed_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o god_n people_n sound_a comfort_n whatsoever_o thing_n be_v write_v asoretime_o say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 15.4_o be_v write_v for_o our_o learning_n that_o we_o through_o patience_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v have_v hope_n
these_o thing_n have_v i_o speak_v unto_o you_o say_v our_o saviour_n joh._n 15.11_o that_o my_o joy_n may_v remain_v in_o you_o and_o that_o your_o joy_n maybeful_a these_o thing_n write_v we_o unto_o you_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o job._n 1.4_o that_o your_o joy_n maybefull_a the_o spirit_n of_o god_n you_o see_v do_v indite_v and_o write_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o this_o end_n principal_o to_o comfort_v his_o people_n to_o work_v in_o their_o heart_n sound_a joy_n and_o comfort_n and_o consequent_o to_o work_v in_o they_o assurance_n of_o his_o favour_n for_o how_o can_v a_o man_n have_v any_o sound_a joy_n or_o comfort_n in_o he_o without_o that_o therefore_o also_o it_o be_v express_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v to_o work_v this_o assurance_n in_o we_o so_o after_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n have_v speak_v other_o thing_n in_o the_o commendation_n of_o the_o word_n pro._n 22._o he_o add_v ver_fw-la 19_o 20._o that_o thy_o trust_n may_v be_v in_o the_o lord_n i_o have_v make_v know_v unto_o thou_o this_o day_n even_o unto_o thou_o have_v not_o i_o write_v unto_o thou_o excellent_a thing_n in_o counsel_n and_o knowledge_n the_o excellent_a thing_n that_o be_v write_v and_o make_v know_v to_o we_o in_o the_o word_n be_v write_v and_o make_v know_v to_o we_o to_o this_o end_n principal_o that_o we_o may_v learn_v to_o put_v our_o trust_n and_o affiance_n in_o he_o and_o grow_v confident_a of_o his_o favour_n these_o thing_n have_v i_o write_v unto_o you_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o joh._n 5.13_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v know_v you_o have_v eternal_a life_n and_o if_o it_o be_v intend_v &_o write_v for_o that_o purpose_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n certain_o in_o it_o and_o by_o it_o this_o comfortable_a assurance_n may_v be_v find_v by_o god_n people_n if_o the_o fault_n be_v not_o in_o themselves_o so_o be_v this_o say_v to_o be_v the_o main_a end_n for_o which_o god_n ordain_v the_o preach_n and_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n even_o to_o work_v in_o god_n people_n the_o assurance_n of_o god_n favour_n thou_o child_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o prophet_n of_o the_o high_a say_v zachary_n of_o his_o son_n john_n luk._n 1.76_o 77_o to_o give_v knowledge_n of_o salvation_n unto_o his_o people_n by_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n so_o when_o god_n have_v promise_v esa._n 57.18_o that_o he_o will_v restore_v comfort_n to_o jacob_n and_o to_o his_o mourner_n that_o be_v to_o his_o people_n that_o have_v lose_v the_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o his_o favour_n he_o tell_v they_o in_o the_o next_o word_n ver_fw-la 19_o by_o what_o mean_n he_o will_v do_v it_o even_o by_o the_o ministry_n and_o preach_v of_o his_o word_n i_o create_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o lip_n peace_n peace_n to_o he_o that_o be_v far_o off_o and_o to_o he_o that_o be_v near_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o i_o will_v heal_v he_o god_n have_v promise_v you_o see_v to_o work_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n utter_v and_o apply_v by_o the_o lively_a voice_n of_o his_o servant_n which_o be_v therefore_o call_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o lip_n peace_n peace_n that_o be_v abundance_n of_o peace_n and_o comfort_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n and_o to_o heal_v all_o that_o anguish_n of_o heart_n which_o the_o doubt_n of_o his_o favour_n do_v work_v in_o they_o before_o the_o second_o thing_n which_o i_o tell_v you_o may_v give_v a_o christian_a hope_n to_o find_v comfort_n and_o assurance_n of_o god_n favour_n by_o a_o diligent_a and_o conscionable_a attendance_n upon_o this_o ordinance_n be_v this_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v promise_v that_o his_o holy_a spirit_n shall_v accompany_v his_o word_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n when_o they_o read_v his_o word_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o inspire_v and_o indict_v it_o shall_v open_v and_o apply_v it_o unto_o they_o when_o his_o servant_n do_v teach_v they_o in_o the_o ministry_n thereof_o the_o lord_n himself_o will_v by_o his_o spirit_n teach_v and_o persuade_v they_o likewise_o this_o promise_n of_o god_n you_o shall_v find_v set_v down_o esa._n 59.21_o this_o be_v my_o covenant_n with_o they_o with_o my_o people_n and_o church_n say_v he_o my_o spirit_n that_o be_v upon_o thou_o and_o my_o word_n which_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n nor_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n nor_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n seed_n say_v the_o lord_n from_o henceforth_o and_o for_o ever_o observe_v three_o thing_n in_o this_o promise_n 1._o that_o the_o lord_n promise_v and_o to_o add_v strength_n to_o the_o promise_n it_o be_v say_v this_o be_v his_o covenant_n with_o his_o people_n and_o in_o this_o one_o verse_n it_o be_v twice_o repeat_v that_o the_o lord_n say_v this_o that_o his_o word_n shall_v never_o depart_v from_o his_o church_n his_o church_n shall_v be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o 1_o tim._n 3.15_o every_o fundamental_a truth_n the_o knowledge_n whereof_o be_v necessary_a unto_o salvation_n shall_v abide_v in_o it_o for_o ever_o the_o true_a church_n shall_v never_o in_o any_o age_n of_o the_o world_n be_v without_o it_o 2._o that_o this_o word_n shall_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n people_n the_o church_n shall_v never_o utter_o want_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n it_o shall_v never_o want_v preacher_n and_o publisher_n of_o the_o word_n 3._o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o true_a church_n shall_v ever_o go_v with_o the_o word_n yea_o with_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n servant_n and_o minister_n according_a to_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n promise_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o successor_n matthew_n 28.20_o l●●_n i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n so_o that_o the_o humble_a christian_a that_o will_v fain_o be_v assure_v of_o god_n favour_n in_o christ_n and_o go_v to_o this_o ordinance_n of_o god_n to_o that_o end_n that_o he_o may_v be_v so_o may_v confident_o expect_v to_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n in_o it_o and_o that_o the_o spirit_n the_o comforter_n will_v by_o it_o sprinkle_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n upon_o his_o heart_n and_o give_v he_o a_o comfortable_a assurance_n that_o it_o be_v shed_v for_o he_o according_a to_o that_o which_o the_o spirit_n speak_v to_o the_o church_n esa._n 54.13_o all_o thy_o child_n shall_v be_v teach_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o great_a shall_v be_v the_o peace_n of_o thy_o child_n yea_o the_o lord_n have_v further_a promise_v that_o whatsoever_o any_o of_o his_o minister_n shall_v speak_v to_o his_o people_n for_o their_o comfort_n by_o warrant_n of_o his_o word_n he_o will_v ratify_v it_o in_o heaven_n and_o make_v it_o good_a to_o their_o soul_n he_o confirm_v the_o word_n of_o his_o servant_n say_v the_o prophet_n esa._n 44.26_o and_o perform_v the_o counsel_n of_o his_o messenger_n very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o say_v our_o saviour_n matthew_n 18.18_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v loose_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n whosoever_o you_o shall_v assure_v by_o the_o warrant_n of_o my_o word_n that_o their_o sin_n be_v forgive_v that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n i_o will_v from_o heaven_n assure_v their_o heart_n of_o it_o by_o my_o holy_a spirit_n applic._n now_o to_o make_v some_o application_n of_o this_o i_o know_v well_o the_o experience_n of_o these_o time_n make_v much_o against_o this_o the_o word_n read_v and_o preach_v both_o be_v unto_o most_o man_n a_o matter_n of_o mere_a ceremony_n and_o formality_n of_o no_o more_o force_n and_o virtue_n than_o the_o ceremony_n of_o moses_n be_v after_o they_o be_v antiquate_v which_o the_o apostle_n call_v galat._n 4.9_o weak_a and_o beggarly_a rudiment_n they_o can_v find_v that_o the_o spirit_n do_v accompany_v the_o word_n in_o their_o read_n or_o hear_v of_o it_o but_o it_o be_v unto_o they_o as_o a_o dead_a letter_n they_o feel_v no_o life_n or_o power_n in_o it_o at_o all_o yea_o many_o a_o good_a soul_n be_v apt_a to_o object_n i_o have_v be_v a_o constant_a reader_n and_o hearer_n of_o the_o word_n a_o long_a time_n but_o can_v get_v no_o comfort_n no_o assurance_n by_o it_o to_o both_o these_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o fault_n and_o defect_n must_v be_v impute_v not_o unto_o the_o word_n but_o unto_o our_o own_o sin_n god_n have_v promise_v that_o his_o spirit_n shall_v accompany_v his_o word_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n and_o the_o cause_n why_o we_o find_v they_o not_o go_v together_o be_v this_o that_o
our_o sin_n have_v part_v they_o these_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v join_v together_o we_o have_v put_v asunder_o our_o sin_n have_v separate_v between_o we_o and_o our_o god_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v esa._n 59.2_o there_o be_v great_a force_n in_o the_o word_n to_o work_v in_o the_o heart_n a_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o thy_o salvation_n but_o thy_o own_o corruption_n hinder_v the_o efficacy_n and_o work_n of_o it_o in_o thou_o and_o what_o corruption_n principal_o do_v this_o sure_o the_o infidelity_n that_o be_v in_o thy_o heart_n the_o word_n preach_v do_v not_o profit_v they_o say_v the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o israelite_n that_o perish_v in_o the_o wilderness_n hebrew_n 4.2_o not_o be_v mix_v with_o say_v in_o they_o that_o hear_v it_o nay_o it_o be_v say_v of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n mark_v 6.5_o 6._o that_o he_o can_v do_v but_o a_o little_a good_a in_o nazareth_n because_o of_o their_o unbelief_n thou_o do_v not_o in_o thy_o read_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o word_n believe_v and_o make_v claim_n unto_o these_o promise_n that_o god_n have_v make_v to_o this_o his_o ordinance_n thou_o do_v not_o look_v to_o receive_v this_o benefit_n by_o it_o and_o what_o marvel_n be_v it_o then_o if_o it_o do_v thou_o so_o little_a good_a learn_v in_o thy_o read_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o word_n to_o wait_v upon_o god_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o these_o promise_n with_o david_n psalm_n 85.8_o i_o will_v hearken_v what_o the_o lord_n god_n will_v speak_v for_o he_o will_v speak_v unto_o his_o people_n and_o to_o his_o saint_n if_o thou_o can_v with_o a_o honest_a and_o humble_a heart_n wait_v upon_o god_n for_o comfort_n in_o the_o use_n of_o his_o ordinance_n thou_o shall_v certain_o find_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o comfort_n by_o it_o in_o the_o end_n for_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a that_o wait_v for_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n esa._n 40.23_o the_o second_o ordinance_n of_o god_n that_o have_v great_a force_n to_o work_v and_o preserve_v in_o we_o assurance_n of_o god_n favour_n in_o christ_n and_o to_o recover_v it_o when_o it_o be_v lose_v be_v the_o conscionable_a use_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n it_o be_v say_v of_o god_n people_n that_o have_v receive_v the_o passeover_n in_o hezekiahs_n time_n with_o good_a heart_n 2_o chron._n 30._o that_o they_o find_v marvellous_a comfort_n in_o it_o verse_n 21._o they_o keep_v the_o feast_n with_o gladness_n and_o verse_n 26._o there_o be_v great_a joy_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o great_a joy_n sure_o they_o have_v prepare_v their_o heart_n to_o seek_v the_o lord_n and_o his_o favour_n in_o this_o ordinance_n as_o we_o read_v verse_n 19_o and_o in_o the_o conscionable_a use_n of_o this_o ordinance_n they_o find_v assurance_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o joy_n two_o thing_n there_o be_v that_o will_v make_v it_o evident_a to_o we_o that_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v great_a force_n in_o the_o conscionable_a use_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n to_o sprinkle_v christ_n blood_n upon_o our_o heart_n and_o to_o give_v we_o assurance_n it_o be_v shed_v for_o we_o first_o that_o in_o this_o ordinance_n christ_n and_o his_o blood_n be_v apply_v to_o we_o more_o particular_o than_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n that_o ever_o god_n ordain_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v offer_v by_o his_o minister_n in_o his_o name_n and_o by_o his_o commandment_n to_o every_o receiver_n and_o offer_v as_o meat_n and_o drink_n which_o of_o all_o thing_n that_o we_o receive_v be_v most_o near_o apply_v to_o we_o and_o make_v our_o own_o and_o offer_v with_o a_o charge_n and_o commandment_n to_o receive_v he_o and_o feed_v upon_o he_o by_o faith_n undoubted_o believe_v that_o his_o blood_n be_v shed_v for_o we_o for_o this_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n to_o every_o one_o of_o his_o people_n as_o the_o apostle_n record_v it_o 1_o cor._n 11.24_o take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o second_o christ_n and_o his_o blood_n be_v in_o this_o ordinance_n not_o only_o thus_o particular_o offer_v and_o apply_v but_o very_o and_o real_o though_o not_o corporal_o but_o spiritual_o exhibit_v and_o give_v to_o every_o worthy_a receiver_n in_o which_o respect_n every_o sacrament_n be_v say_v by_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 4.11_o to_o be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n which_o be_v by_o faith_n and_o our_o saviour_n call_v the_o bread_n his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n mat._n 26.26.28_o this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n say_v he_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v as_o very_o as_o the_o one_o be_v present_a unto_o and_o receive_v by_o the_o body_n so_o very_o be_v the_o other_o present_a unto_o and_o receive_v by_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n and_o the_o apostle_n move_v a_o question_n as_o appeal_n thereby_o to_o the_o conscience_n of_o every_o true_a believer_n 1_o cor._n 10.16_o the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n which_o we_o bless_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v it_o not_o a_o apply_v of_o christ_n blood_n to_o ourselves_o and_o make_v of_o it_o our_o own_o applic._n and_o how_o fall_v it_o out_o then_o that_o we_o that_o have_v so_o often_o receive_v this_o holy_a sacrament_n have_v get_v so_o little_a assurance_n by_o it_o that_o christ_n be_v we_o that_o there_o be_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o joy_n in_o jerusalem_n god_n people_n be_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o comfortable_a in_o themselves_o for_o be_v at_o our_o passeover_n sure_o 1_o we_o do_v not_o beforehand_o prepare_v our_o heart_n to_o seek_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n in_o this_o ordinance_n as_o they_o do_v in_o hezekiahs_n time_n 2._o we_o do_v not_o when_o we_o be_v at_o this_o ordinance_n stir_v up_o ourselves_o with_o humble_a and_o thankful_a soul_n to_o receive_v that_o mercy_n that_o be_v offer_v we_o from_o the_o lord_n but_o that_o complaint_n may_v be_v take_v up_o in_o this_o case_n which_o the_o prophet_n make_v esa_n 64.7_o there_o be_v none_o that_o stir_v up_o himself_o to_o take_v hold_n of_o thou_o christ_n come_v to_o we_o in_o this_o his_o ordinance_n and_o offer_v as_o with_o a_o bunch_n of_o hyssop_n to_o sprinkle_v his_o blood_n upon_o we_o and_o we_o will_v not_o open_v our_o heart_n to_o receive_v it_o from_o he_o the_o three_o and_o last_o ordinance_n of_o god_n that_o have_v great_a force_n in_o it_o to_o breed_v and_o preserve_v in_o our_o heart_n this_o particular_a assurance_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o to_o recover_v it_o when_o it_o be_v lose_v be_v prayer_n this_o be_v that_o that_o give_v virtue_n and_o force_n to_o all_o other_o mean_n and_o without_o which_o no_o mean_n we_o can_v use_v will_v do_v we_o any_o good_a if_o thou_o will_v attain_v to_o a_o particular_a assurance_n of_o god_n love_n to_o thou_o in_o christ_n thou_o must_v seek_v to_o god_n for_o it_o as_o david_n do_v here_o and_o cry_v unto_o he_o as_o he_o do_v likewise_o psalm_n 35.3_o o_o lord_n say_v unto_o my_o soul_n i_o be_o thy_o salvation_n great_a be_v the_o force_n of_o humble_a and_o fervent_a prayer_n as_o in_o all_o other_o case_n so_o in_o this_o especial_o two_o thing_n we_o have_v to_o assure_v we_o of_o this_o first_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n i_o will_v make_v my_o people_n joyful_a say_v the_o lord_n esa._n 56.7_o in_o my_o house_n of_o prayer_n what_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o make_v god_n people_n joyful_a and_o comfortable_a sure_o when_o the_o lord_n lift_v up_o the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n upon_o they_o and_o give_v they_o assurance_n of_o his_o favour_n as_o we_o see_v plain_o psalm_n 4.6_o 7._o how_o and_o by_o what_o mean_n will_v the_o lord_n work_v this_o joy_n and_o comfort_n in_o they_o by_o prayer_n i_o will_v make_v they_o joyful_a say_v he_o in_o my_o house_n of_o prayer_n so_o speak_v our_o saviour_n joh._n 16_o 24._o ask_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a so_o the_o lord_n promise_v unto_o his_o people_n levit._n 23.27_o that_o the_o day_n of_o their_o most_o solemn_a and_o fervent_a prayer_n wherein_o they_o shall_v humble_v themselves_o by_o fast_v and_o afflict_v their_o soul_n to_o that_o end_n that_o they_o may_v pray_v the_o more_o fervent_o shall_v be_v a_o day_n of_o atonement_n and_o reconciliation_n between_o he_o and_o they_o they_o shall_v obtain_v more_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o his_o favour_n upon_o that_o day_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n than_o by_o any_o other_o second_o the_o experience_n of_o god_n people_n may_v assure_v we_o of_o this_o two_o experiment_n only_o i_o will_v give_v you_o of_o this_o in_o david_n the_o first_o be_v
of_o it_o yet_o be_v there_o not_o any_o of_o god_n people_n among_o you_o but_o may_v have_v need_n of_o this_o comfort_n you_o know_v not_o how_o soon_o you_o may_v loose_v the_o sensible_a assurance_n you_o have_v of_o god_n favour_n in_o christ_n and_o have_v the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n hide_v from_o you_o in_o which_o respect_n i_o may_v say_v to_o you_o all_o of_o this_o use_n of_o comfort_n as_o the_o prophet_n do_v of_o another_o matter_n esa._n 42_o 23._o who_o among_o you_o will_v give_v ear_n to_o this_o who_o will_v hearken_v and_o hear_v for_o the_o ●●me_n to_o com●_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v who_o be_v there_o among_o you_o all_o that_o have_v not_o just_a cause_n to_o give_v ear_n and_o hearken_v unto_o it_o if_o not_o for_o the_o present_a need_n you_o have_v of_o it_o yet_o because_o of_o the_o need_v you_o may_v have_v of_o it_o in_o time_n to_o come_v two_o thing_n there_o be_v that_o i_o have_v to_o say_v for_o the_o comfort_n of_o such_o of_o god_n people_n as_o be_v humble_v for_o their_o sin_n and_o careful_a in_o all_o their_o way_n to_o please_v god_n can_v yet_o attain_v to_o a_o sensible_a assurance_n of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o christ._n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v sprinkle_v upon_o thou_o and_o apply_v u●to_fw-mi thou_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n though_o thou_o perceive_v it_o not_o 2._o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v certain_o sprinkle_v upon_o thou_o and_o apply_v unto_o thou_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n though_o thou_o perceive_v it_o not_o if_o thou_o have_v any_o measure_n of_o true_a faith_n in_o thou_o first_o a_o man_n may_v be_v in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n a_o justify_v man_n before_o god_n and_o yet_o want_v the_o sensible_a assurance_n of_o his_o salvation_n and_o of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o christ._n for_o this_o we_o have_v a_o evident_a example_n in_o david_n here_o so_o soon_o as_o ever_o he_o have_v humble_o confess_v his_o fou●e_a si●_n and_o repent_v he_o present_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o it_o from_o god_n and_o consequent_o he_o be_v justify_v from_o it_o in_o god_n sight_n for_o so_o nathan_n the_o prophet_n do_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n assure_v he_o 2_o sam._n 12.13_o the_o lord_n also_o have_v put_v away_o thy_o sin_n thou_o shall_v not_o die_v and_o yet_o though_o he_o be_v now_o reconcile_v unto_o god_n and_o in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n it_o appear_v plain_o by_o many_o petition_n in_o this_o psalm_n and_o special_o by_o the_o next_o word_n to_o my_o text_n that_o he_o have_v not_o now_o the_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o his_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n in_o his_o own_o heart_n it_o fall_v out_o oft_o with_o god_n servant_n as_o it_o do_v with_o the_o two_o disciple_n that_o be_v travel_v towards_o emaus_n luke_n 24.14_o 15._o christ_n draw_v near_o unto_o they_o and_o be_v with_o they_o and_o that_o in_o a_o most_o gracious_a manner_n and_o yet_o they_o perceive_v it_o not_o their_o eye_n be_v hold_v say_v the_o evangelist_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o know_v he_o and_o as_o it_o be_v with_o mary_n magdalene_n joh._n ●0_n 14_o 15._o christ_n be_v with_o she_o and_o stand_v by_o she_o and_o speak_v to_o she_o and_o she_o perceive_v it_o not_o but_o seek_v for_o he_o and_o weep_v because_o she_o can_v not_o find_v he_o many_o a_o good_a soul_n have_v christ_n dwell_v in_o their_o heart_n by_o faith_n and_o yet_o perceive_v it_o not_o their_o eye_n be_v hold_v so_o as_o they_o know_v he_o not_o to_o be_v with_o they_o they_o have_v he_o already_o yet_o they_o seek_v for_o he_o with_o mary_n and_o weep_v because_o they_o can_v find_v he_o as_o in_o the_o bodily_a sense_n it_o be_v one_o gift_n and_o blessing_n of_o god_n to_o have_v they_o and_o another_o to_o have_v ability_n to_o make_v use_n of_o they_o and_o to_o exercise_v the_o operation_n of_o they_o for_o our_o comfort_n the_o bear_a ear_n and_o the_o see_a eye_n the_o lord_n have_v make_v even_o both_o of_o they_o say_v solomon_n pro._n 20.12_o where_o god_n give_v the_o one_o he_o deny_v the_o other_o sometime_o those_o that_o be_v in_o paul_n company_n when_o christ_n strike_v he_o down_o &_o speak_v to_o he_o from_o heaven_n have_v at_o that_o time_n the_o faculty_n of_o hear_v but_o god_n suspend_v the_o exercise_n and_o operation_n of_o it_o so_o that_o though_o christ_n speak_v many_o word_n to_o paul_n in_o a_o most_o audible_a voice_n yet_o they_o can_v not_o hear_v they_o as_o you_o may_v see_v act._n 22.9_o and_o hagar_n have_v her_o eyesight_n well_o enough_o when_o the_o water_n be_v spend_v in_o her_o bottle_n and_o her_o child_n ready_a to_o perish_v with_o thirst_n she_o sit_v she_o down_o in_o the_o wilderness_n of_o beersheba_n over_o against_o the_o child_n as_o you_o may_v read_v gen._n 21.16.19_o but_o god_n with_o hold_v from_o she_o the_o use_n of_o her_o sight_n so_o at_o that_o time_n as_o though_o there_o be_v a_o well_o in_o the_o place_n and_o she_o have_v doubtless_o s●ught_v about_o every_o where_o for_o water_n yet_o she_o can_v not_o see_v it_o till_o the_o lord_n upon_o her_o own_o and_o the_o child_n vehement_a cry_n unto_o he_o have_v open_v her_o eye_n and_o even_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o sanctify_a and_o save_v grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n have_v eye_n see_v you_o not_o say_v our_o saviour_n to_o his_o own_o disciple_n mar._n 8.18_o and_o have_v ear_n hear_v you_o not_o god_n own_o people_n oftentimes_o though_o they_o have_v eye_n yet_o see_v not_o though_o they_o have_v ear_n yet_o hear_v not_o though_o they_o have_v faith_n yet_o want_v the_o comfortable_a use_n and_o operation_n of_o it_o for_o a_o time_n it_o be_v one_o grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o have_v true_a faith_n repentance_n love_n and_o the_o like_a and_o another_o to_o know_v and_o perceive_v sensible_o in_o ourselves_o that_o we_o have_v they_o so_o speak_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 2.12_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n which_o be_v of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v know_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v free_o give_v we_o of_o god_n he_o make_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v free_o give_v we_o of_o god_n under_o which_o word_n doubtless_o all_o save_a grace_n which_o god_n work_v in_o we_o be_v comprehend_v one_o thing_n one_o gracious_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o know_v and_o perceive_v that_o we_o have_v these_o thing_n free_o give_v we_o of_o god_n that_o he_o make_v another_o distinct_a work_n &_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o where_o the_o lord_n do_v give_v the_o one_o of_o these_o grace_n he_o be_v sometime_o please_v to_o deny_v the_o other_o for_o a_o time_n at_o that_o day_n mean_v after_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n say_v our_o saviour_n to_o his_o elect_a disciple_n after_o judas_n be_v go_v from_o they_o john_n 14.20_o you_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o in_o my_o father_n and_o you_o in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o christ_n be_v already_o in_o they_o &_o they_o in_o he_o as_o he_o plain_o tell_v they_o joh._n 15.5_o i_o be_o the_o vine_n you_o be_v the_o branch_n but_o they_o know_v it_o not_o yet_o they_o have_v no_o feel_n no_o comfort_n of_o it_o to_o speak_v of_o it_o be_v therefore_o evident_a you_o see_v that_o a_o man_n may_v have_v save_v grace_n in_o he_o and_o not_o perceive_v it_o himself_o a_o man_n may_v have_v true_a justify_v faith_n in_o he_o and_o not_o have_v the_o use_n and_o operation_n of_o it_o so_o far_o as_o to_o work_v in_o he_o a_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o his_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n nay_o i_o will_v say_v more_o a_o man_n may_v be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o have_v true_a justify_v faith_n in_o he_o and_o yet_o be_v so_o far_o from_o sensible_a assurance_n of_o it_o in_o himself_o as_o in_o his_o own_o sense_n and_o feeling_n he_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o contrary_n i_o will_v give_v you_o three_o most_o plain_a and_o pregnant_a example_n for_o this_o and_o so_o conclude_v this_o first_o point_n job_n be_v certain_o in_o this_o case_n when_o he_o cry_v thus_o unto_o god_n job_n 13.24_o wherefore_o hide_v thou_o thy_o face_n and_o hold_v i_o for_o thy_o enemy_n and_o 16.9_o my_o enemy_n sharpen_v his_o eye_n upon_o i_o he_o see_v not_o god_n love_a countenance_n at_o all_o he_o apprehend_v he_o as_o a_o mortal_a enemy_n and_o david_n be_v in_o this_o case_n when_o he_o cry_v unto_o god_n psal._n 22.1_o why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o and_o he_o man_n be_v in_o this_o case_n when_o he_o pray_v thus_o psalm_n 88.14_o lord_n why_o cast_v thou_o off_o my_o soul_n
john_n 16.2_o and_o whosoever_o kill_v you_o will_v think_v he_o do_v god_n service_n and_o unto_o peter_n he_o say_v john_n 21.18_o when_o thou_o shall_v be_v old_a thou_o shall_v stretch_v forth_o thy_o hand_n and_o another_o shall_v gird_v thou_o and_o carry_v thou_o whither_o thou_o will_v not_o shall_v we_o think_v his_o meaning_n be_v this_o thus_o and_o thus_o will_v god_n correct_v and_o punish_v you_o for_o your_o sin_n or_o be_v any_o sin_n that_o ever_o they_o commit_v the_o cause_n whereby_o god_n be_v move_v to_o bring_v they_o to_o these_o affliction_n no_o very_o for_o he_o tell_v they_o all_o matth._n 10._o ●2_n that_o these_o thing_n shall_v befall_v they_o not_o for_o their_o sin_n but_o for_o his_o name_n sake_n and_o in_o speak_v so_o to_o peter_n he_o signify_v to_o he_o by_o what_o d●ath_v he_o shall_v glorify_v god_n as_o the_o evangelist_n say_v john_n 21.19_o the_o cause_n why_o peter_n die_v so_o violent_a and_o shameful_a a_o death_n be_v not_o any_o sin_n of_o he_o but_o that_o he_o may_v so_o glorify_v god_n second_o neither_o be_v those_o affliction_n that_o god_n inflict_v upon_o the_o faithful_a for_o their_o sin_n proper_o to_o be_v account_v and_o call_v punishment_n but_o fatherly_a chastisement_n and_o correction_n only_o for_o all_o punishment_n to_o speak_v proper_o that_o god_n in●licteth_v upon_o any_o for_o sin_n be_v curse_n and_o fruit_n of_o his_o wrath_n wherein_o he_o seek_v not_o the_o good_a of_o the_o party_n that_o be_v punish_v but_o the_o glorify_v of_o his_o own_o justice_n upon_o he_o and_o satisfy_v his_o most_o righteous_a law_n as_o the_o judge_n do_v in_o condemn_v and_o execute_v of_o malefactor_n in_o which_o respect_n also_o all_o god_n punishment_n be_v call_v evil_a thing_n i_o make_v peace_n and_o create_v evil_a say_v the_o lord_n isaiah_n 45.7_o and_o shall_v there_o be_v evil_a in_o a_o city_n say_v the_o prophet_n amos_n 3.6_o and_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o do_v it_o but_o 1._o all_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v unto_o they_o blessing_n and_o not_o curse_n bless_a be_v the_o man_n who_o thou_o chastene_v o_o lord_n say_v the_o prophet_n psalm_n 94_o 1●_n and_o james_n 1.12_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n that_o endure_v tentation_n bless_a be_v you_o when_o man_n shall_v revile_v you_o and_o persecute_v you_o rejoice_v and_o be_v exceed_o glad_a say_v our_o saviour_n mat._n 5.11_o 12._o 2._o they_o be_v fruit_n of_o his_o special_a love_n to_o they_o and_o not_o o●_n his_o wrath_n who_o the_o lord_n love_v say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n 12.6_o he_o chasten_v and_o scourge_v every_o son_n who_o he_o receive_v as_o many_o as_o i_o love_v i_o rebuke_v &_o chasten_v say_v our_o saviour_n rev._n 3_o ●9_n 3_o he_o seek_v their_o good_a in_o it_o and_o not_o their_o destruction_n or_o the_o satisfy_n of_o his_o law_n and_o glorify_v of_o his_o justice_n upon_o they_o we_o know_v say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 8.28_o speak_v there_o special_o and_o purposely_o of_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o faithful_a that_o all_o thing_n work_v together_o for_o good_a to_o they_o that_o love_n god_n when_o we_o be_v judge_v say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o corinthian_n 11.32_o we_o be_v chastened_a of_o the_o lord_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v condemn_v with_o the_o world_n every_o father_n usual_o in_o correct_v his_o child_n seek_v nothing_o but_o his_o good_a in_o it_o thou_o shall_v beat_v he_o with_o the_o rod_n say_v solomon_n proverbes_n 23.14_o and_o shall_v deliver_v his_o soul_n from_o hell_n he_o will_v not_o beat_v he_o but_o to_o do_v he_o good_a but_o howsoever_o mortal_a parent_n fail_v oft_o in_o this_o they_o correct_v their_o child_n sometime_o in_o a_o rage_n without_o respect_n to_o their_o good_a our_o heavenly_a father_n never_o do_v the_o father_n of_o our_o flesh_n say_v the_o apostle_n hebrew_n 12.10_o chastened_a we_o after_o their_o own_o pleasure_n but_o he_o for_o our_o profit_n that_o we_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o his_o holiness_n yea_o if_o he_o can_v procure_v their_o good_a their_o repentance_n their_o holiness_n their_o keep_n of_o they_o in_o awe_n and_o so_o from_o perish_v any_o other_o way_n so_o well_o he_o will_v never_o scourge_v nor_o afflict_v they_o at_o all_o behold_v i_o will_v melt_v they_o and_o try_v they_o say_v the_o lord_n jeremy_n 9.7_o for_o how_o shall_v i_o do_v for_o the_o daughter_n of_o my_o people_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v how_o shall_v i_o else_o keep_v they_o from_o perish_v how_o shall_v i_o bring_v they_o to_o heaven_n if_o i_o shall_v not_o deal_v thus_o with_o they_o and_o many_o of_o god_n people_n have_v be_v able_a to_o say_v with_o david_n psalm_n 119.71_o from_o their_o own_o experience_n it_o be_v good_a for_o i_o that_o i_o have_v be_v afflict_v perijssem_fw-la nisi_fw-la perijssem_fw-la i_o have_v receive_v more_o good_a by_o my_o affliction_n then_o by_o any_o other_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n and_o thus_o have_v i_o answer_v this_o first_o objection_n that_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o affliction_n the_o faithful_a endure_v in_o this_o life_n yet_o the_o pardon_n that_o christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o they_o by_o his_o blood_n be_v most_o full_a and_o absolute_a they_o be_v perfect_o discharge_v by_o it_o not_o only_o from_o all_o their_o sin_n but_o also_o from_o the_o whole_a punishment_n that_o be_v due_a to_o they_o for_o sin_n 2._o but_o than_o it_o may_v be_v object_v second_o if_o so_o soon_o as_o ever_o we_o be_v purge_v with_o hyssop_n so_o soon_o as_o ever_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v apply_v to_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n we_o be_v make_v perfect_o clean_a from_o all_o our_o sin_n as_o we_o have_v be_v teach_v what_o need_v we_o and_o why_o be_v we_o command_v to_o pray_v daily_o unto_o god_n for_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o o●r_a sin_n as_o our_o saviour_n teach_v we_o to_o do_v mat._n 6.12_o have_v we_o so_o full_a and_o absolute_a a_o pardon_n and_o yet_o must_v we_o sue_v and_o seek_v for_o it_o all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n answ._n to_o this_o i_o answer_v yes_o very_o though_o christ_n have_v by_o his_o blood_n purchase_v for_o we_o a_o most_o full_a and_o general_a pardon_n yet_o must_v we_o sue_v to_o god_n for_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n every_o day_n first_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o sin_n former_o commit_v remember_v not_o the_o sin_n of_o my_o youth_n nor_o my_o transgression_n say_v david_n psalm_n 25.7_o and_o o_o remember_v not_o against_o we_o cry_v the_o church_n psalm_n 79.8_o out_o former_a iniquity_n which_o though_o the_o lord_n have_v forgive_v and_o we_o do_v in_o some_o measure_n believe_v that_o they_o be_v forgive_v yet_o our_o faith_n be_v so_o weak_a that_o we_o have_v need_v to_o pray_v daily_o for_o increase_v of_o assurance_n of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o they_o david_n upon_o his_o repentance_n obtain_v a_o full_a and_o general_a pardon_n from_o god_n of_o all_o his_o sin_n and_o he_o do_v doubtless_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v so_o for_o it_o have_v be_v strange_a infidelity_n for_o he_o not_o to_o believe_v that_o which_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o lord_n name_n do_v so_o express_o and_o direct_o pronounce_v unto_o he_o 2_o sam._n 12.13_o the_o lord_n have_v put_v away_o thy_o sin_n thou_o shall_v not_o die_v and_o yet_o because_o this_o faith_n of_o his_o concern_v his_o pardon_n be_v but_o very_o weak_a he_o pray_v oft_o in_o this_o psalm_n for_o pardon_v most_o earnest_o ver_fw-la 2_o 9_o 14._o so_o that_o in_o this_o first_o respect_n our_o daily_a prayer_n for_o forgiveness_n be_v no_o other_o in_o effect_n then_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n make_v luk._n 17.5_o lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n our_o assurance_n of_o pardon_n second_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o present_a and_o daily_a sin_n for_o the_o best_a man_n that_o be_v fall_v every_o day_n and_o oft_o every_o day_n into_o new_a sin_n and_o in_o respect_n of_o they_o yea_o even_o of_o the_o least_o of_o they_o we_o have_v need_v to_o renew_v our_o suit_n unto_o god_n for_o pardon_v every_o day_n as_o david_n do_v psal._n 19.12_o cleanse_v thou_o i_o from_o secret_a fault_n object_n what_o need_v that_o will_v you_o say_v see_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n once_o apply_v by_o faith_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o joh._n 1.7_o past_a and_o present_a and_o future_a too_o and_o when_o god_n pardon_v sin_n he_o pardon_v all_o at_o once_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v answ._n that_o though_o in_o respect_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n blood_n so_o general_a a_o pardon_n be_v purchase_v and_o give_v yet_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o benefit_n
only_a cause_n of_o all_o the_o evil_n and_o misery_n that_o can_v befall_v a_o man_n in_o they_o all_o it_o may_v be_v say_v as_o the_o church_n speak_v lamentation_n 3.39_o man_n suffer_v for_o his_o sin_n 2._o sin_n be_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o make_v all_o misery_n to_o be_v misery_n indeed_o all_o cross_n and_o affliction_n so_o intolerable_a to_o we_o as_o they_o be_v jeremy_n 8.14_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n have_v put_v we_o to_o silence_n and_o give_v we_o water_n of_o gall_n to_o drink_v because_o we_o have_v sin_v against_o the_o lord_n the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o corinthian_n 15.5_o 6._o neither_o poverty_n nor_o sickness_n nor_o death_n itself_o can_v sting_v and_o pain_n we_o as_o they_o do_v if_o our_o sin_n be_v pardon_v 3._o if_o all_o the_o cross_n and_o misery_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v fall_v upon_o we_o the_o burden_n and_o bitterness_n of_o they_o can_v not_o be_v so_o intolerable_a unto_o we_o nor_o torment_v we_o so_o much_o as_o our_o sin_n will_v do_v when_o god_n shall_v charge_v it_o upon_o we_o o_o that_o will_v bite_v like_o a_o serpent_n say_v solomon_n who_o speak_v this_o from_o experience_n too_o prov._n 23.32_o and_o sting_v like_o a_o adder_n a_o wound_a spirit_n say_v he_o proverb_n 18.14_o who_o can_v bear_v 4._o last_o sin_n and_o nothing_o but_o sin_n separate_v between_o god_n and_o we_o your_o iniquity_n say_v the_o prophet_n isaiah_n 59.2_o have_v separate_v between_o you_o and_o your_o god_n and_o your_o sin_n have_v hide_v his_o face_n from_o you_o that_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v you_o see_v then_o how_o sound_a a_o ground_n of_o true_a comfort_n this_o be_v and_o how_o just_a cause_n every_o humble_a soul_n have_v to_o rejoice_v in_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o this_o first_o benefit_n we_o receive_v by_o he_o that_o through_o he_o our_o sin_n be_v pardon_v that_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n have_v cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o joh._n 1.7_o and_o for_o the_o second_o of_o those_o benefit_n which_o every_o true_a believer_n receive_v by_o christ_n see_v also_o how_o just_a a_o cause_n of_o comfort_n it_o be_v to_o every_o afflict_a soul_n isaiah_n 61.10_o i_o will_v great_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n say_v the_o true_a beelever_n my_o soul_n shall_v be_v joyful_a in_o my_o god_n for_o he_o have_v clothe_v i_o with_o the_o garment_n of_o salvation_n he_o have_v impute_v and_o give_v unto_o i_o the_o perfect_a holiness_n and_o obedience_n of_o my_o bless_a saviour_n and_o make_v it_o i_o he_o have_v cover_v i_o all_z over_z from_o top_n to_o toe_n with_o the_o robe_n of_o righteousness_n as_o a_o bridegroom_n deck_v himself_o with_o ornament_n and_o as_o a_o bride_n adorn_v herself_o with_o her_o jewel_n great_a be_v the_o comfort_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o christian_a find_v in_o that_o inherent_a righteousness_n which_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n have_v wrought_v in_o he_o though_o it_o be_v so_o poor_a and_o unperfect_a and_o maim_v and_o slain_v as_o it_o be_v when_o he_o can_v find_v that_o he_o have_v be_v able_a to_o pray_v or_o to_o confess_v and_o mourn_v for_o his_o sin_n or_o to_o do_v any_o other_o service_n to_o god_n with_o a_o honest_a and_o upright_a heart_n o_o what_o a_o comfort_n it_o be_v unto_o he_o and_o certain_o if_o christian_n do_v think_v well_o of_o this_o it_o will_v make_v they_o look_v better_o to_o their_o heart_n when_o they_o perform_v good_a duty_n and_o take_v heed_n of_o slubber_v they_o over_o it_o will_v make_v they_o careful_a to_o perform_v spiritual_a duty_n spiritual_o the_o people_n rejoice_v say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_o chronicl_n 29.9_o for_o that_o they_o have_v offer_v towards_o the_o build_n of_o god_n house_n willing_o because_o with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n they_o have_v offer_v willing_o to_o the_o lord_n and_o our_o rejoice_v be_v this_o say_v the_o apopostle_n 2_o cor._n 1.12_o even_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n that_o in_o simplicity_n and_o godly_a sincerity_n not_o in_o fleshly_a wisdom_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o have_v have_v our_o conversation_n in_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v joy_n say_v solomon_n proverb_n 21.15_o unto_o the_o just_a man_n to_o do_v judgement_n as_o if_o he_o have_v thus_o say_v he_o joy_v not_o so_o much_o in_o all_o the_o gain_n that_o he_o get_v by_o his_o trade_n his_o buy_n and_o sell_v and_o deal_n with_o man_n as_o he_o do_v in_o this_o that_o his_o conscience_n bear_v witness_n with_o he_o that_o he_o have_v deal_v just_o with_o all_o man_n he_o have_v get_v it_o just_o whatsoever_o he_o have_v but_o if_o this_o poor_a and_o imperfect_a righteousness_n that_o be_v in_o we_o will_v yield_v we_o such_o comfort_n how_o just_a cause_n of_o comfort_n and_o rejoice_v have_v every_o true_a believer_n in_o this_o that_o he_o have_v another_o manner_n of_o righteousness_n than_o this_o be_v the_o perfect_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n jesus_n be_v he_o job_n say_v of_o his_o inherent_a righteousness_n whereby_o he_o have_v be_v so_o rich_a in_o good_a work_n so_o abundant_a in_o the_o work_n of_o mercy_n to_o all_o that_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o he_o job_n 29.14_o that_o he_o put_v on_o his_o righteousness_n and_o it_o clothe_v he_o my_o judgement_n say_v he_o this_o care_n i_o have_v to_o deal_v just_o and_o upright_o with_o all_o man_n be_v as_o a_o robe_n and_o a_o diadem_n unto_o i_o and_o a_o goodly_a garment_n and_o robe_n doubtless_o that_o be_v as_o comely_a apparel_n be_v know_v to_o set_v forth_o much_o and_o adorn_v the_o person_n of_o a_o man_n o_o that_o man_n and_o woman_n special_o know_v not_o this_o too_o well_o o_o that_o by_o their_o pride_n in_o this_o by_o their_o overmuch_o care_v to_o adorn_v and_o deck_v their_o body_n this_o way_n they_o do_v not_o make_v both_o their_o body_n and_o soul_n loathsome_a unto_o god_n as_o comely_a apparel_n i_o say_v if_o it_o be_v use_v in_o sobriety_n and_o moderation_n do_v much_o set_v forth_o and_o adorn_v the_o body_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n so_o do_v those_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o job_n speak_v of_o even_o our_o inherent_a righteousness_n much_o more_o beautify_v and_o adorn_v we_o in_o the_o eye_n both_o of_o god_n and_o man_n be_v you_o clothe_v with_o humility_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o pet._n 5.5_o to_o all_o christian_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o be_v a_o goodly_a garment_n a_o goodly_a robe_n for_o any_o christian_n to_o wear_v and_o speak_v of_o christian_a woman_n he_o say_v 1_o pet._n 3.3_o 4._o their_n adorn_v shall_v not_o be_v that_o outward_a adorn_v of_o plait_v the_o hair_n no_o nor_o of_o cut_v and_o shear_v it_o will_v he_o have_v say_v if_o he_o have_v live_v to_o see_v the_o fashion_n of_o these_o day_n nor_o in_o wear_v of_o gold_n or_o jewel_n say_v he_o nor_o in_o put_v on_o of_o any_o apparel_n why_o how_o then_o shall_v a_o christian_a woman_n dress_v and_o deck_v herself_o will_v you_o say_v sure_o with_o the_o ornament_n of_o a_o meek_a and_o quiet_a spirit_n say_v he_o which_o be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n of_o great_a price_n grace_n be_v a_o goodly_a garment_n certain_o but_o if_o this_o garment_n of_o inherent_a righteousness_n that_o have_v so_o many_o spot_n and_o rent_n in_o it_o will_v adorn_v we_o so_o much_o if_o that_o be_v so_o much_o to_o be_v joy_v in_o what_o a_o beauty_n and_o glory_n be_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n have_v put_v upon_o we_o wretched_a sinner_n in_o clothing_n we_o with_o the_o robe_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n in_o that_o he_o have_v not_o only_o take_v from_o we_o our_o own_o filthy_a garment_n as_o he_o do_v from_o jehoshua_n zachary_n 3.4_o but_o clothe_v we_o with_o change_n of_o raiment_n with_o a_o righteousness_n sufficient_a and_o more_o than_o sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o comely_a and_o beautiful_a in_o his_o eye_n in_o grant_v to_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v array_v in_o that_o fine_a linen_n clean_o and_o white_a as_o we_o hear_v the_o last_o day_n out_o of_o revelation_n 19.8_o this_o robe_n the_o lord_n have_v put_v upon_o thou_o belove_v i_o speak_v to_o the_o poor_a to_o the_o weak_a of_o all_o god_n servant_n that_o hear_v i_o this_o day_n this_o perfect_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n be_v thou_o o_o that_o thou_o have_v eye_n to_o see_v thy_o happiness_n in_o this_o o_o that_o thou_o have_v a_o heart_n to_o be_v affect_v with_o it_o and_o rejoice_v in_o it_o as_o thou_o ought_v to_o do_v great_a be_v the_o glory_n of_o man_n in_o his_o first_o creation_n and_o in_o that_o righteousness_n wherewith_o he_o be_v clothe_v
after_o nothing_o so_o much_o as_o after_o god_n favour_n in_o he_o and_o such_o he_o invit_v above_o all_o other_o to_o come_v to_o he_o and_o to_o partake_v of_o all_o his_o merit_n in_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o feast_n say_v the_o evangelist_n john_n 7.37_o jesus_n stand_v and_o cry_v say_v that_o all_o may_v hear_v he_o if_o any_o man_n thirst_n let_v he_o come_v unto_o i_o and_o drink_n in_o which_o respect_n i_o may_v say_v to_o thou_o as_o they_o say_v to_o the_o blind_a man_n mar._n 10_o 49._o be_v of_o good_a comfort_n he_o call_v thou_o 3._o if_o thou_o be_v thus_o invite_v to_o come_v go_v to_o christ_n and_o lay_v hold_v on_o he_o certain_o he_o will_v not_o reject_v thou_o he_o do_v not_o make_v show_n of_o more_o mercy_n to_o thou_o then_o he_o intend_v he_o mean_v as_o he_o say_v he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o say_v he_o joh._n 6.37_o i_o will_v in_o no_o wise_a cast_v out_o i_o say_v not_o in_o vain_a say_v the_o lord_n esa._n 45_o 19_o seek_v you_o i_o i_o the_o lord_n speak_v righteousness_n 4._o the_o lord_n have_v express_o command_v thou_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n that_o he_o die_v for_o thou_o and_o count_v it_o the_o great_a sin_n thou_o can_v commit_v if_o thou_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o this_o be_v his_o commandment_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o job_n 3.23_o that_o we_o shall_v believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ._n and_o our_o saviour_n say_v joh._n 16.9_o that_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a sin_n the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v convince_v the_o world_n of_o because_o they_o believe_v not_o on_o i_o say_v he_o the_o second_o thing_n i_o have_v to_o say_v for_o the_o comfort_n of_o this_o poor_a soul_n be_v this_o certain_o thou_o have_v true_a faith_n in_o thou_o though_o it_o be_v weak_a and_o though_o thou_o perceive_v it_o not_o else_o 1_o thou_o can_v not_o feel_v and_o bewail_v the_o want_n of_o it_o as_o thou_o do_v for_o our_o saviour_n say_v mat._n 5.3_o 4._o they_o be_v bless_v that_o be_v poor_a in_o spirit_n and_o do_v mourn_v for_o it_o which_o they_o can_v not_o be_v unless_o they_o have_v true_a faith_n 2_o else_o thou_o can_v not_o so_o unfeigned_o and_o earnest_o desire_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o christ_n as_o thou_o do_v for_o he_o say_v likewise_o mat._n 5.6_o that_o he_o that_o hunger_v and_o thirst_v after_o righteousness_n be_v a_o bless_a man_n which_o he_o can_v never_o be_v unless_o he_o have_v true_a faith_n lecture_n cxxxii_o on_o psalm_n 51.7_o novemb_n 10._o 1629._o it_o follow_v we_o proceed_v unto_o the_o second_o of_o those_o use_n that_o tend_v to_o the_o work_n upon_o our_o heart_n and_o direct_v we_o how_o we_o shall_v be_v affect_v with_o this_o doctrine_n 2._o namely_o unto_o the_o use_n of_o exhortation_n and_o this_o use_n of_o exhortation_n though_o it_o have_v great_a afinity_n with_o that_o which_o you_o have_v former_o hear_v in_o the_o use_n that_o be_v make_v of_o that_o doctrine_n i_o teach_v you_o out_o of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o verse_n touch_v the_o necessity_n of_o have_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n sprinkle_v and_o apply_v to_o our_o own_o heart_n yet_o be_v it_o so_o useful_a and_o necessary_a that_o i_o dare_v not_o omit_v it_o and_o yet_o will_v i_o not_o trouble_v you_o with_o repeat_v and_o say_v over_o again_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o you_o have_v hear_v already_o but_o i_o will_v endeavour_v through_o god_n gracious_a assistance_n so_o to_o handle_v it_o as_o that_o that_o which_o you_o shall_v now_o hear_v may_v serve_v for_o a_o necessary_a addition_n and_o supplement_n unto_o that_o which_o you_o have_v hear_v former_o and_o so_o be_v neither_o tedious_a nor_o unprofitable_a unto_o you_o and_o indeed_o what_o one_o exhortation_n can_v any_o of_o we_o that_o be_v god_n messenger_n insist_v upon_o that_o be_v of_o so_o great_a necessity_n to_o be_v press_v upon_o we_o all_o as_o this_o be_v for_o if_o they_o that_o have_v christ_n that_o true_o believe_v in_o he_o be_v so_o full_o and_o perfect_o justify_v in_o god_n sight_n if_o they_o have_v obtain_v through_o he_o such_o a_o robe_n of_o righteousness_n as_o will_v not_o only_o cover_v they_o from_o top_n to_o toe_n so_o as_o no_o jot_n of_o their_o filthy_a nakedness_n shall_v ever_o appear_v again_o to_o make_v they_o loathsome_a unto_o god_n but_o also_o adorn_v and_o deck_v they_o and_o make_v they_o more_o comely_a and_o beautiful_a in_o his_o eye_n more_o perfect_o righteous_a then_o if_o they_o have_v never_o sin_v then_o if_o they_o have_v in_o all_o point_v keep_v his_o righteous_a law_n o_o then_o why_o be_v we_o not_o all_o of_o we_o more_o in_o love_n with_o christ_n why_o long_o we_o not_o more_o after_o he_o why_o labour_v we_o not_o more_o diligent_o to_o make_v he_o and_o this_o robe_n of_o his_o righteousness_n our_o own_o i_o counsel_v thou_o say_v our_o bless_a saviour_n to_o the_o lukewarm_a laodicean_n revelation_n 3.18_o and_o the_o same_o counsel_n do_v i_o give_v to_o myself_o and_o to_o you_o all_o belove_v who_o be_v too_o like_a unto_o the_o laodicean_n in_o this_o point_n lukewarm_a and_o indifferent_a whether_o we_o have_v christ_n make_v sure_a unto_o we_o or_o no_o i_o counsel_v thou_o say_v he_o to_o buy_v of_o i_o this_o white_a raiment_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v clothe_v and_o that_o the_o shame_n of_o thy_o nakedness_n do_v not_o appear_v as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v this_o raiment_n this_o robe_n which_o thou_o can_v never_o get_v of_o any_o but_o of_o i_o only_o and_o which_o thou_o can_v never_o get_v of_o i_o unless_o thou_o buy_v it_o and_o be_v content_a to_o part_v with_o all_o that_o thou_o have_v for_o it_o be_v not_o only_o able_a to_o cover_v all_o thy_o nakedness_n the_o filthy_a nakedness_n of_o thy_o soul_n which_o be_v much_o more_o shameful_a than_o the_o nakedness_n of_o the_o body_n ever_o can_v be_v but_o it_o be_v also_o white_a and_o shine_a such_o as_o will_v make_v thou_o most_o comely_a and_o glorious_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o my_o father_n this_o be_v also_o the_o exhortation_n that_o the_o apostle_n give_v to_o the_o roman_n roman_n 13.14_o put_v you_o on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n say_v he_o he_o have_v exhort_v they_o before_o verse_n 12._o to_o put_v on_o the_o armour_n of_o light_n that_o be_v to_o clothe_v themselves_o with_o inherent_a righteousness_n as_o he_o expound_v himself_o verse_n 13._o and_o that_o be_v sure_o as_o i_o show_v you_o the_o last_o day_n a_o goodly_a garment_n and_o such_o as_o will_v great_o adorn_v and_o beautify_v a_o man_n nay_o it_o be_v not_o only_o as_o a_o garment_n to_o clothe_v to_o deck_v and_o adorn_v a_o man_n but_o it_o be_v as_o armour_n also_o that_o will_v defend_v a_o man_n from_o the_o danger_n of_o many_o a_o tentation_n that_o may_v hurt_v and_o wound_v he_o but_o in_o this_o 14._o verse_n he_o exhort_v they_o not_o to_o rest_v in_o that_o but_o labour_v to_o get_v they_o a_o better_a garment_n than_o that_o put_v you_o on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n say_v he_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v this_o garment_n will_v be_v far_o more_o useful_a unto_o you_o will_v adorn_v and_o beautify_v you_o much_o more_o than_o the_o other_o can_v do_v see_v what_o account_n the_o apostle_n himself_o make_v of_o this_o robe_n doubtless_o say_v he_o philip._n 3.8_o 9_o i_o count_v all_o thing_n but_o loss_n i_o judge_v they_o not_o worth_a the_o keep_n thing_n that_o i_o care_v not_o for_o lose_v and_o cast_v they_o away_o for_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o jesus_n christ_n my_o lord_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v o_o that_o be_v the_o excellent_a knowledge_n when_o all_o be_v do_v to_o know_v christ_n to_o be_v i_o to_o be_v my_o lord_n for_o who_o say_v he_o i_o have_v indeed_o in_o the_o resolution_n of_o my_o mind_n suffer_v the_o loss_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o do_v count_v they_o but_o dung_n in_o comparison_n that_o i_o may_v win_v christ_n and_o make_v he_o my_o own_o and_o be_v find_v in_o he_o not_o have_v my_o own_o righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o the_o law_n but_o that_o which_o be_v through_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n the_o righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o god_n by_o faith_n he_o make_v this_o you_o see_v the_o high_a pitch_n of_o his_o happiness_n and_o that_o which_o he_o do_v desire_n above_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n that_o he_o may_v be_v find_v of_o god_n when_o he_o shall_v call_v he_o to_o appear_v before_o he_o neither_o naked_a nor_o clothe_v only_o with_o the_o garment_n of_o his_o own_o inherent_a righteousness_n but_o in_o the_o pure_a and_o glorious_a robe_n of_o christ_n
righteousness_n and_o this_o be_v that_o that_o i_o desire_v to_o exhort_v and_o persuade_v both_o myself_o and_o every_o one_o of_o you_o that_o you_o will_v be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n that_o bless_a paul_n be_v of_o account_v of_o christ_n as_o he_o do_v account_n of_o he_o labour_v as_o he_o do_v to_o win_v christ_n and_o make_v he_o our_o own_o strive_v that_o we_o may_v be_v find_v in_o he_o cover_v and_o clothe_v in_o the_o robe_n of_o his_o righteousness_n and_o for_o the_o better_a enforce_v of_o this_o so_o necessary_a a_o exhortation_n i_o will_v 1._o give_v you_o some_o motive_n that_o may_v be_v forcible_a and_o effectual_a to_o provoke_v and_o quicken_v your_o appetite_n unto_o christ_n and_o to_o move_v you_o to_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o he_o and_o his_o righteousness_n 2._o because_o nothing_o do_v so_o much_o dull_a and_o deaden_a man_n appetite_n unto_o christ_n and_o keep_v they_o from_o hunger_a and_o thirst_v after_o he_o as_o do_v this_o persuasion_n that_o they_o have_v he_o already_o sure_a enough_o they_o have_v already_o feed_v sufficient_o upon_o he_o i_o will_v therefore_o show_v you_o some_o sign_n and_o note_n out_o of_o god_n word_n how_o this_o may_v be_v know_v 3._o last_o i_o will_v direct_v such_o as_o will_v fain_o win_v christ_n as_o do_v indeed_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o he_o and_o his_o righteousness_n what_o mean_v they_o shall_v use_v to_o get_v he_o and_o make_v he_o their_o own_o and_o for_o the_o motive_n i_o will_v give_v you_o they_o be_v four_o principal_o 1_o first_o consider_v how_o woeful_a thy_o case_n will_v be_v when_o extreme_a affliction_n or_o death_n shall_v seize_v upon_o thou_o if_o thou_o be_v not_o in_o christ_n if_o thou_o have_v not_o get_v this_o robe_n of_o righteousness_n before_o that_o time_n come_v consider_v i_o say_v distinct_o of_o this_o point_n first_o certain_a it_o be_v we_o shall_v not_o always_o live_v in_o health_n and_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n as_o we_o now_o do_v but_o a_o change_n will_v come_v affliction_n will_v come_v and_o can_v be_v avoid_v man_n be_v bear_v unto_o trouble_n say_v eliphaz_n job_n 5.7_o as_o the_o spark_n fly_v upward_o yea_o death_n will_v come_v certain_o and_o can_v be_v avoid_v it_o be_v appoint_v say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n 9.27_o decree_v unto_o man_n unto_o all_o man_n that_o they_o shall_v once_o die_v second_o how_o soon_o affliction_n and_o death_n will_v come_v or_o how_o sudden_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v man_n know_v not_o his_o time_n say_v solomon_n eccl._n 9.12_o as_o the_o fish_n that_o be_v take_v in_o a_o evil_a net_n and_o as_o the_o bird_n that_o be_v catch_v in_o the_o snare_n while_o they_o think_v least_o of_o it_o and_o be_v skip_a and_o eat_v their_o meat_n secure_o so_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n snare_v in_o a_o evil_a time_n when_o it_o fall_v sudden_o upon_o they_o three_o in_o what_o kind_n or_o measure_n any_o of_o we_o shall_v be_v afflict_v or_o by_o what_o kind_n of_o disease_n or_o death_n any_o of_o we_o shall_v end_v our_o day_n be_v also_o most_o uncertain_a to_o any_o of_o we_o and_o know_v only_o to_o the_o lord_n the_o cup_n of_o affliction_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v david_n psalm_n 75.8_o and_o it_o be_v he_o that_o mix_v and_o temper_v and_o pour_v it_o out_o also_o as_o seem_v good_a unto_o he_o four_o the_o natural_a and_o ordinary_a effect_n of_o extreme_a affliction_n be_v to_o awaken_v the_o conscience_n how_o sleepy_a or_o dead_a soever_o it_o have_v be_v before_o and_o it_o will_v then_o bring_v a_o man_n sin_n into_o his_o remembrance_n and_o the_o judgement_n that_o he_o be_v to_o go_v unto_o when_o man_n be_v bind_v in_o setter_n say_v elihu_n job_n 36.8_o 9_o and_o hold_v in_o the_o cord_n of_o affliction_n than_o he_o show_v they_o their_o work_n and_o their_o transgression_n that_o they_o have_v exceed_v in_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v then_o his_o manner_n be_v to_o set_v their_o sin_n in_o order_n before_o they_o and_o all_o the_o foul_a circumstance_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v aggravate_v see_v a_o example_n of_o this_o in_o god_n own_o people_n when_o josephs_n brethren_n see_v themselves_o take_v for_o spy_n in_o egypt_n and_o so_o in_o present_a danger_n of_o death_n genesis_n 42.21_o the_o sin_n that_o they_o have_v commit_v against_o their_o brother_n many_o year_n before_o come_v as_o fresh_a into_o their_o remembrance_n and_o lay_v heavy_a upon_o their_o conscience_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v but_o new_o do_v see_v also_o a_o example_n of_o this_o even_o in_o a_o heathen_a man_n when_o adonibezek_n be_v in_o extreme_a pain_n and_o misery_n and_o see_v he_o must_v die_v then_o come_v his_o sin_n into_o his_o remembrance_n judge_n 2.7_o threescore_o and_o ten_o king_n have_v their_o thumb_n and_o their_o great_a toe_n cut_v off_o say_v he_o gather_v their_o meat_n under_o my_o table_n as_o i_o have_v do_v so_o god_n have_v requite_v i_o i_o know_v well_o that_o affliction_n nor_o sickness_n nor_o the_o grisly_a visage_n of_o death_n itself_o do_v use_v to_o awaken_v the_o conscience_n of_o every_o man_n some_o through_o the_o fearful_a judgement_n of_o god_n go_v to_o hell_n in_o a_o sleep_n the_o lord_n have_v pour_v upon_o they_o as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v isaiah_n 29.10_o the_o spirit_n of_o dead_a sleep_n and_o have_v close_v their_o eye_n but_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o ordinary_a effect_n of_o extreme_a affliction_n and_o that_o that_o every_o one_o of_o we_o must_v look_v for_o when_o the_o evil_a day_n shall_v come_v upon_o we_o our_o conscience_n will_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o our_o sin_n as_o you_o see_v yea_o it_o will_v put_v we_o also_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o judgement_n we_o must_v go_v unto_o and_o ever_o be_v ring_v that_o in_o our_o ear_n that_o solomon_n speak_v ecclesi_n 11.9_o know_v thou_o that_o for_o all_o these_o thing_n god_n will_v bring_v thou_o into_o judgement_n five_o if_o a_o man_n have_v not_o get_v faith_n and_o comfort_n in_o christ_n before_o then_o he_o be_v in_o danger_n through_o extremity_n of_o anguish_n and_o fear_n to_o be_v make_v utter_o uncapable_a and_o unfit_a to_o receive_v comfort_n by_o he_o then_o though_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n use_v their_o uttermost_a skill_n and_o endeavour_v to_o offer_v christ_n and_o his_o merit_n unto_o they_o and_o to_o give_v they_o comfort_v in_o he_o when_o moses_n come_v from_o god_n to_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n with_o a_o most_o comfortable_a message_n it_o be_v say_v exodus_fw-la 6.9_o they_o can_v not_o hearken_v unto_o he_o for_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n and_o for_o cruel_a bondage_n six_o and_o last_o the_o man_n that_o be_v then_o without_o christ_n without_o any_o assurance_n that_o he_o be_v he_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o a_o most_o woeful_a estate_n for_o he_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n of_o mercy_n from_o god_n for_o christ_n be_v our_o only_a hope_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v he_o 1_o tim._n 1.1_o and_o they_o that_o be_v without_o christ_n have_v no_o hope_n say_v he_o ephes._n 2.12_o o_o then_o let_v we_o count_v it_o our_o wisdom_n to_o seek_v without_o delay_n to_o make_v christ_n our_o own_o before_o the_o evil_a day_n before_o death_n do_v seize_v upon_o we_o this_o motive_n the_o holy_a ghost_n oft_o use_v to_o rouse_v wicked_a man_n out_o of_o their_o carnal_a security_n and_o what_o will_v you_o do_v say_v he_o isaiah_n 10.3_o in_o the_o day_n of_o visitation_n to_o who_o will_v you_o fly_v for_o help_v and_o jeremy_n 13.21_o what_o will_v thou_o say_v when_o he_o shall_v punish_v thou_o shall_v not_o sorrow_n take_v thou_o as_o a_o woman_n in_o travail_n and_o so_o may_v i_o say_v to_o you_o all_o belove_a though_o you_o can_v be_v quiet_a and_o comfortable_a enough_o now_o in_o the_o day_n of_o your_o health_n and_o peace_n without_o christ_n without_o all_o assurance_n that_o he_o be_v you_o how_o will_v you_o do_v for_o comfort_n when_o affliction_n and_o death_n shall_v come_v what_o comfort_n can_v you_o have_v then_o without_o you_o have_v he_o make_v sure_a unto_o you_o psal._n 2.12_o kiss_v the_o son_n lest_o he_o be_v angry_a and_o you_o perish_v from_o the_o way_n when_o his_o wrath_n be_v kindle_v but_o a_o little_a bless_a be_v all_o they_o that_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o he_o on_o the_o other_o side_n contr●_n the_o man_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o have_v through_o he_o get_v his_o pardon_n and_o make_v his_o peace_n with_o god_n and_o that_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o robe_n of_o his_o righteousness_n may_v be_v comfortable_a in_o the_o great_a affliction_n and_o even_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n the_o rain_n descend_v say_v our_o saviour_n matth_n
to_o everlasting_a confusion_n cain_n have_v a_o great_a portion_n of_o they_o then_o seth_n and_o esau_n then_o jacob_n and_o what_o comfort_n can_v a_o man_n have_v in_o such_o fruit_n of_o god_n love_n as_o these_o be_v what_o comfort_n can_v the_o traitor_n take_v in_o that_o goodness_n of_o the_o king_n that_o be_v apprehend_v he_o give_v order_n that_o he_o may_v have_v a_o fair_a and_o good_a lodging_n in_o the_o tower_n and_o a_o good_a diet_n too_o till_o matter_n be_v ripe_a and_o ready_a for_o his_o arraignment_n and_o execution_n no_o no_o he_o take_v small_a comfort_n in_o all_o this_o nothing_o will_v assure_v he_o of_o the_o king_n mercy_n and_o love_n till_o his_o pardon_n be_v bring_v he_o so_o may_v i_o say_v of_o all_o these_o outward_a blessing_n thou_o can_v have_v no_o sound_a comfort_n in_o they_o till_o thou_o have_v christ_n and_o have_v through_o he_o get_v the_o pardon_n of_o thy_o sin_n these_o be_v indeed_o fruit_n of_o god_n common_a love_n but_o these_o be_v no_o fruit_n or_o sign_n of_o god_n special_a or_o everlasting_a love_n of_o that_o love_n that_o he_o bear_v to_o they_o who_o he_o mean_v to_o save_v eternal_o no_o man_n know_v either_o love_n or_o hatred_n by_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v before_o he_o say_v solomon_n eccl._n ●_o 1_o a_o man_n can_v argue_v god_n love_v he_o with_o his_o special_a love_n because_o he_o enjoy_v these_o thing_n nor_o that_o god_n hate_v he_o because_o he_o want_v they_o and_o it_o be_v not_o that_o common_a but_o this_o special_a and_o everlasting_a love_n of_o god_n only_o that_o we_o be_v to_o make_v reckon_v of_o and_o to_o take_v comfort_n in_o in_o this_o be_v manifest_v the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o joh._n 4.9_o 10._o because_o that_o god_n send_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n into_o the_o world_n that_o we_o may_v live_v through_o he_o herein_o be_v love_n not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n but_o that_o he_o love_v we_o and_o send_v his_o son_n to_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n if_o thou_o can_v say_v god_n have_v give_v christ_n unto_o thou_o and_o to_o thou_o a_o heart_n to_o receive_v he_o than_o thou_o may_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v god_n love_v thou_o indeed_o but_o thou_o can_v never_o say_v god_n love_v thou_o indeed_o till_o thou_o be_v in_o christ._n he_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o his_o love_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d col._n 1.13_o he_o have_v make_v we_o accept_v in_o the_o belove_a say_v the_o apostle_n eph._n 1.6_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v he_o love_v we_o for_o his_o sake_n and_o he_o love_v none_o but_o for_o his_o sake_n and_o with_o respect_n unto_o he_o only_o and_o what_o good_a will_v it_o do_v thou_o to_o have_v all_o the_o world_n if_o thou_o have_v not_o god_n love_n what_o comfort_n can_v thou_o take_v in_o any_o thing_n thou_o have_v if_o god_n have_v not_o give_v it_o thou_o in_o his_o love_n now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o this_o motive_n may_v have_v the_o more_o force_n in_o thy_o heart_n consider_v what_o a_o happiness_n it_o be_v for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v in_o christ_n even_o in_o respect_n of_o these_o outward_a thing_n the_o true_a believer_n and_o he_o that_o know_v christ_n be_v he_o may_v take_v great_a comfort_n even_o in_o these_o outward_a and_o common_a blessing_n of_o god_n god_n give_v to_o he_o say_v solomon_n speak_v of_o these_o thing_n eccles._n 2.26_o that_o be_v good_a in_o his_o sight_n reconcile_v to_o he_o in_o christ_n and_o justify_v before_o he_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n and_o joy_n he_o joy_v even_o in_o these_o outward_a blessing_n he_o use_v they_o with_o joy_n and_o comfort_n in_o which_o respect_n it_o be_v say_v by_o david_n psal._n 37.16_o that_o a_o little_a that_o a_o righteous_a man_n have_v be_v better_a than_o the_o riches_n of_o many_o wicked_a man_n have_v he_o little_a or_o have_v he_o much_o he_o have_v more_o comfort_n in_o that_o he_o have_v than_o any_o wicked_a man_n in_o the_o world_n can_v possible_o have_v for_o first_o that_o that_o he_o have_v be_v his_o own_o he_o have_v the_o high_a title_n unto_o it_o all_o thing_n be_v you_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 3.21_o 23._o and_o you_o be_v christ_n in_o give_v christ_n unto_o we_o how_o shall_v he_o not_o with_o he_o also_o free_o give_v we_o all_o thing_n say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 8.32_o second_o he_o shall_v have_v good_a of_o that_o he_o have_v it_o shall_v do_v he_o good_a and_o no_o hurt_n it_o shall_v not_o hinder_v his_o happiness_n it_o be_v sanctify_v unto_o he_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o make_v rich_a say_v solomon_n proverb_n 10.22_o and_o he_o add_v no_o sorrow_n with_o it_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v he_o that_o have_v wealth_n with_o god_n blessing_n shall_v have_v no_o cause_n to_o repent_v he_o another_o day_n that_o he_o live_v so_o prosperous_o thus_o god_n promise_v his_o people_n that_o be_v in_o covenant_n with_o he_o deut._n 30.9_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n will_v make_v thou_o plenteous_a in_o every_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n in_o the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o body_n and_o in_o the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o cattle_n and_o in_o the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o land_n for_o good_a for_o the_o lord_n will_v rejoice_v over_o thou_o for_o good_a as_o he_o rejoice_v over_o thy_o father_n mark_v how_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o only_o promise_v unto_o his_o people_n these_o outward_a thing_n that_o he_o will_v increase_v they_o in_o their_o child_n and_o in_o their_o estate_n but_o that_o he_o promise_v they_o also_o and_o repeat_v this_o promise_n twice_o in_o this_o one_o verse_n that_o he_o will_v give_v they_o these_o thing_n for_o their_o good_a they_o shall_v have_v good_a of_o they_o they_o shall_v receive_v good_a and_o no_o hurt_n by_o they_o to_o have_v the_o thing_n be_v nothing_o unless_o we_o have_v they_o with_o the_o blessing_n unless_o god_n give_v we_o good_a of_o they_o when_o the_o apostle_n have_v say_v 1_o tim._n 4.3_o 5._o that_o god_n have_v create_v all_o meat_n to_o be_v receive_v with_o thanksgiving_n of_o they_o that_o believe_v and_o know_v the_o truth_n he_o add_v in_o the_o next_o word_n that_o every_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v good_a as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v to_o the_o believer_n all_o god_n creature_n be_v good_a and_o to_o none_o but_o he_o and_o he_o give_v this_o reason_n for_o it_o be_v sanctify_v say_v he_o by_o the_o word_n and_o prayer_n as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v when_o god_n creature_n be_v sanctify_v unto_o we_o when_o we_o have_v a_o holy_a use_n of_o they_o and_o be_v make_v the_o better_a by_o they_o then_o be_v they_o good_a to_o we_o and_o not_o else_o and_o to_o the_o true_a believer_n they_o be_v sanctify_v and_o to_o none_o but_o he_o three_o and_o last_o whatsoever_o the_o true_a believer_n he_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n have_v in_o these_o outward_a thing_n he_o have_v it_o in_o god_n love_n and_o therefore_o he_o may_v well_o take_v comfort_n in_o it_o we_o be_v wont_n to_o say_v that_o a_o hearty_a welcome_n be_v the_o best_a cheer_n that_o any_o friend_n can_v make_v we_o though_o our_o fare_n be_v but_o mean_a yet_o if_o we_o can_v find_v we_o have_v it_o with_o a_o good_a will_n and_o that_o our_o friend_n be_v glad_a of_o we_o and_o thereby_o we_o discern_v that_o he_o do_v unfeigned_o love_v we_o this_o we_o esteem_v of_o more_o worth_n than_o the_o best_a cheer_n in_o the_o world_n this_o make_v the_o homely_a fare_n most_o sweet_a and_o acceptable_a unto_o we_o and_o certain_o it_o be_v much_o more_o so_o in_o this_o case_n when_o a_o man_n once_o know_v he_o have_v god_n love_n and_o that_o that_o which_o god_n have_v give_v he_o be_v it_o little_a or_o much_o be_v give_v to_o he_o in_o love_n o_o this_o give_v a_o most_o sweet_a and_o pleasant_a relish_n to_o all_o god_n blessing_n that_o we_o do_v enjoy_v this_o make_v a_o man_n to_o take_v true_a and_o solid_a comfort_n in_o they_o thus_o jacob_n speak_v of_o his_o child_n genesis_n 33.5_o these_o be_v the_o child_n that_o god_n of_o his_o grace_n have_v give_v unto_o thy_o servant_n and_o verse_n 11._o of_o his_o cattle_n because_o god_n have_v deal_v gracious_o with_o i_o and_o because_o i_o have_v enough_o he_o taste_v god_n special_a love_n unto_o he_o even_o in_o these_o thing_n i_o tell_v you_o even_o now_o that_o no_o unbeliever_n can_v take_v any_o sound_a comfort_n in_o any_o of_o god_n outward_a blessing_n because_o he_o can_v conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o god_n love_v he_o with_o a_o special_a love_n but_o though_o he_o can_v he_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n may_v these_o common_a
thing_n be_v to_o he_o pledge_n of_o god_n special_a and_o eternal_a love_n and_o therefore_o be_v they_o sweet_a unto_o he_o than_o they_o can_v be_v unto_o any_o other_o man_n by_o this_o i_o know_v thou_o favour_v i_o say_v david_n psal._n 41_o 1●_n because_o my_o enemy_n do_v not_o triumph_n over_o i_o be_v this_o such_o a_o token_n of_o god_n special_a favour_n towards_o he_o why_o god_n have_v do_v thus_o much_o for_o many_o a_o wicked_a man_n he_o have_v grant_v temporal_a deliverance_n from_o their_o enemy_n to_o many_o a_o one_o who_o he_o do_v never_o bear_v any_o special_a favour_n unto_o well_o though_o this_o be_v so_o yet_o to_o david_n this_o be_v a_o strong_a argument_n of_o god_n special_a favour_n he_o relish_v god_n love_n in_o it_o and_o that_o make_v this_o temporal_a blessing_n so_o sweet_a unto_o he_o that_o make_v he_o take_v such_o joy_n and_o comfort_n in_o it_o as_o we_o may_v see_v he_o do_v by_o his_o break_n forth_o into_o so_o hearty_a and_o pathetical_a a_o thanksgiving_n for_o it_o verse_n 13._o bless_a be_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n from_o everlasting_a to_o everlasting_a amen_o and_o amen_n he_o respect_v the_o mind_n and_o aff●●tion_n of_o the_o giver_n towards_o he_o more_o than_o of_o the_o gift_n itself_o a_o great_a deal_n and_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o true_a believer_n can_v rejoice_v more_o in_o and_o give_v god_n thank_v more_o hearty_o for_o his_o meat_n and_o drink_n and_o for_o all_o other_o of_o god_n common_a mercy_n than_o any_o other_o man_n can_v do_v o_o that_o we_o can_v believe_v that_o that_o have_v be_v say_v for_o this_o second_o motive_n applic._n and_o lay_v it_o to_o our_o heart_n it_o be_v a_o lamentable_a thing_n to_o see_v how_o all_o man_n dote_v upon_o these_o outward_a and_o common_a blessing_n of_o god_n how_o light_a account_n they_o make_v of_o christ_n in_o comparison_n of_o they_o they_o think_v they_o can_v never_o spend_v time_n enough_o in_o seek_v after_o they_o the_o six_o day_n that_o god_n have_v allow_v they_o to_o spend_v for_o the_o most_o part_n that_o way_n save_v only_o a_o small_a portion_n of_o every_o day_n for_o a_o morning_n and_o evening_n sacrifice_v to_o be_v offer_v unto_o he_o be_v not_o sufficient_a but_o they_o must_v also_o rob_v the_o lord_n of_o his_o day_n and_o spend_v part_n of_o that_o that_o way_n too_o o_o the_o toil_n and_o labour_v that_o man_n willing_o and_o glad_o take_v for_o the_o get_n of_o these_o thing_n for_o this_o man_n will_v rise_v up_o early_o and_o sit_v up_o late_o and_o eat_v the_o bread_n of_o sorrow_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v psalm_n 127.3_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n alas_o how_o little_a time_n be_v man_n willing_a to_o spend_v how_o little_a labour_n and_o diligence_n do_v man_n use_v to_o get_v christ._n nay_o the_o main_a cause_n why_o christ_n be_v so_o light_o esteem_v of_o why_o he_o be_v so_o little_o seek_v after_o be_v the_o high_a esteem_n man_n make_v of_o these_o common_a blessing_n if_o they_o have_v they_o they_o think_v themselves_o happy_a though_o they_o want_v christ_n and_o miserable_a if_o they_o want_v they_o though_o they_o shall_v have_v never_o so_o good_a a_o portion_n in_o christ_n and_o his_o merit_n if_o thou_o mark_v well_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o guest_n that_o be_v invite_v unto_o the_o great_a supper_n luke_n 14.18_o thou_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o only_a thing_n that_o make_v they_o set_v light_n by_o that_o great_a mercy_n that_o be_v offer_v they_o be_v the_o respect_n they_o have_v to_o their_o worldly_a profit_n and_o pleasure_n they_o have_v somewhat_o else_o to_o do_v then_o to_o come_v to_o that_o feast_n they_o have_v other_o matter_n matter_n of_o their_o profit_n and_o matter_n of_o their_o pleasure_n which_o it_o more_o concern_v they_o to_o look_v after_o then_o after_o christ._n o_o that_o man_n will_v see_v their_o folly_n and_o madness_n in_o this_o 1._o these_o thing_n can_v stand_v thou_o in_o no_o stead_n in_o the_o evil_a day_n nor_o yield_v thou_o any_o comfort_n then_o when_o thou_o shall_v stand_v in_o most_o need_n of_o comfort_n that_o which_o solomon_n say_v of_o riches_n proverbes_n 11.4_o that_o they_o avail_v not_o in_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n may_v be_v say_v also_o of_o all_o other_o outward_a blessing_n nothing_o but_o christ_n will_v yield_v thou_o comfort_v then_o 2._o for_o the_o present_a thou_o can_v take_v no_o sound_a comfort_n in_o they_o as_o thou_o have_v hear_v now_o 3._o thy_o prefer_v of_o these_o base_a thing_n in_o thy_o mind_n and_o affection_n before_o christ_n and_o prise_v they_o above_o he_o be_v a_o high_a contempt_n do_v unto_o he_o a_o goodly_a price_n may_v i_o say_v of_o you_o as_o he_o do_v of_o the_o jew_n zachary_n 11.13_o that_o i_o be_v prise_v at_o of_o they_o 4._o remember_v the_o fearful_a sentence_n that_o be_v give_v of_o they_o that_o do_v as_o thou_o do_v that_o out_o of_o respect_n to_o their_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n neglect_v to_o come_v to_o the_o supper_n when_o they_o be_v invite_v luke_n 14.24_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o say_v the_o lord_n that_o none_o of_o those_o that_o be_v bid_v shall_v taste_v of_o my_o supper_n it_o seem_v they_o neglect_v the_o time_n and_o offer_v of_o grace_n that_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o feast_n have_v make_v unto_o they_o out_o of_o this_o conceit_n that_o the_o lord_n that_o by_o his_o servant_n invite_v they_o now_o to_o that_o supper_n be_v so_o bountiful_a and_o keep_v so_o good_a a_o house_n that_o though_o they_o do_v not_o come_v then_o they_o may_v come_v soon_o enough_o on_o the_o morrow_n or_o some_o other_o day_n when_o they_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o do_v and_o find_v good_a cheer_n enough_o leave_v to_o serve_v their_o turn_n as_o no_o doubt_n most_o man_n conceit_n god_n be_v so_o merciful_a and_o christ_n be_v so_o easy_a to_o be_v have_v as_o that_o any_o time_n will_v serve_v if_o it_o be_v but_o half_a a_o hour_n before_o they_o die_v when_o they_o can_v follow_v their_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n no_o long_o to_o seek_v after_o christ._n but_o mark_v how_o these_o guest_n be_v deceive_v because_o they_o come_v not_o then_o when_o the_o lord_n invite_v they_o and_o special_o because_o they_o neglect_v to_o come_v upon_o this_o ground_n that_o they_o think_v their_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n be_v more_o worth_a more_o to_o be_v regard_v then_o any_o of_o the_o dainties_n that_o they_o may_v feed_v upon_o at_o that_o feast_n therefore_o the_o lord_n vow_v that_o none_o of_o they_o shall_v ever_o taste_v of_o his_o supper_n and_o sure_o it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v fear_v that_o as_o many_o of_o you_o special_o of_o you_o of_o this_o town_n do_v match_v these_o guest_n in_o their_o sin_n so_o you_o do_v also_o match_v they_o in_o their_o punishment_n and_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v already_o pass_v this_o dreadful_a sentence_n upon_o you_o none_o of_o these_o who_o i_o have_v so_o often_o and_o so_o long_o invite_v to_o come_v to_o my_o supper_n to_o receive_v christ_n and_o all_o his_o merit_n in_o those_o mean_n of_o grace_n that_o i_o have_v offer_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o have_v all_o this_o while_n neglect_v and_o despise_v this_o mercy_n of_o i_o shall_v ever_o taste_v of_o my_o supper_n shall_v ever_o feed_v upon_o christ_n or_o receive_v true_a comfort_n by_o he_o while_o they_o live_v lecture_n cxxxiii_o on_o psalm_n 51.7_o novemb_n 24._o 1629._o the_o three_o motive_n that_o may_v persuade_v we_o to_o seek_v without_o delay_n and_o labour_n to_o find_v that_o we_o be_v in_o christ_n motive_n that_o we_o be_v full_o and_o perfect_o justify_v in_o god_n sight_n through_o he_o be_v this_o that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o true_a comfort_n in_o any_o goodness_n that_o seem_v to_o be_v in_o we_o till_o we_o know_v ourselves_o to_o be_v in_o christ._n this_o motive_n be_v in_o this_o respect_n necessary_a to_o be_v insist_v upon_o because_o nothing_o have_v more_o force_n to_o dull_v our_o appetite_n unto_o christ_n and_o keep_v we_o from_o seek_v comfort_n in_o he_o than_o that_o contentment_n and_o comfort_n we_o find_v in_o some_o goodness_n that_o we_o think_v be_v in_o ourselves_o great_a be_v the_o contentment_n that_o man_n find_v in_o the_o outward_a and_o common_a blessing_n of_o god_n and_o great_a force_n there_o be_v even_o in_o that_o as_o we_o hear_v the_o last_o day_n to_o keep_v man_n from_o hunger_a and_o thirst_v after_o christ._n but_o the_o comfort_n and_o content_v a_o man_n take_v in_o the_o least_o goodness_n that_o he_o find_v in_o himself_o be_v far_o great_a and_o he_o be_v apt_a to_o bless_v himself_o more_o in_o that_o then_o in_o any_o outward_a blessing_n
after_o sermon_n these_o holy_a brethren_n that_o stand_v so_o much_o upon_o sincerity_n and_o can_v abide_v nothing_o that_o savour_v of_o popery_n these_o precise_a fool_n that_o must_v be_v singular_a forsooth_o that_o dare_v not_o swear_v by_o small_a oath_n be_v all_o well_o tax_v to_o day_n we_o see_v they_o be_v no_o better_a than_o hypocrite_n all_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v find_v in_o hypocrite_n we_o hear_v let_v no_o man_n i_o say_v say_v so_o for_o though_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v find_v in_o some_o hypocrite_n yet_o be_v they_o no_o sign_n to_o know_v a_o hypocrite_n by_o neither_o be_v they_o all_o hypocrite_n that_o do_v thus_o neither_o be_v a_o hypocrite_n that_o do_v thus_o a_o hypocrite_n for_o that_o cause_n because_o he_o do_v thus_o but_o thou_o in_o scorn_v any_o man_n for_o this_o very_a thing_n because_o he_o make_v profession_n of_o religion_n because_o he_o go_v to_o sermon_n because_o he_o use_v prayer_n and_o so_o seem_v more_o holy_a than_o his_o neighbour_n because_o he_o be_v scrupulous_a in_o the_o small_a thing_n that_o he_o think_v to_o be_v a_o sin_n bewraye_v the_o profaneness_n of_o thy_o own_o heart_n and_o open_v thy_o mouth_n against_o heaven_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v psal._n 73.9_o all_o these_o five_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v instance_a in_o be_v such_o thing_n as_o god_n be_v high_o please_v with_o and_o have_v promise_v great_a reward_n unto_o as_o i_o will_v show_v you_o particular_o first_o it_o be_v a_o singular_a good_a thing_n to_o love_n and_o delight_n in_o the_o sound_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o a_o christian_a may_v take_v much_o comfort_n in_o great_a peace_n have_v they_o say_v david_n psal._n 119.165_o that_o love_v thy_o law_n and_o by_o the_o law_n and_o word_n of_o god_n the_o same_o thing_n be_v mean_v throughout_o that_o psalm_n and_o nothing_o shall_v offend_v they_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o man_n can_v have_v no_o true_a goodness_n in_o he_o that_o have_v no_o love_n to_o the_o word_n that_o care_v not_o for_o it_o for_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v of_o the_o word_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 10.17_o yea_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o a_o most_o woeful_a estate_n though_o he_o feel_v it_o not_o for_o he_o that_o turn_v away_o his_o ear_n from_o hear_v the_o law_n say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n prov._n 28.9_o even_o his_o prayer_n shall_v be_v abomination_n and_o what_o shall_v other_o his_o action_n be_v if_o his_o prayer_n be_v so_o second_o it_o be_v a_o singular_a good_a thing_n also_o to_o use_v prayer_n constant_o the_o holy_a ghost_n praise_v cornelius_n for_o this_o act_n 10.2_o that_o he_o pray_v unto_o god_n always_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v he_o keep_v a_o constant_a course_n in_o prayer_n he_o that_o use_v it_o must_v needs_o receive_v a_o blessing_n from_o god_n by_o it_o this_o be_v so_o ordinary_a a_o thing_n with_o god_n to_o bless_v they_o much_o that_o pray_v much_o that_o our_o saviour_n say_v matth._n 7.8_o every_o one_o that_o ask_v receive_v it_o be_v say_v of_o obed-edom_n 2_o sam._n 6.11_o that_o while_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n continue_v in_o his_o house_n the_o lord_n bless_v he_o and_o all_o his_o household_n and_o the_o blessing_n that_o he_o receive_v by_o it_o be_v so_o sensible_a and_o apparent_a that_o other_o be_v able_a to_o take_v notice_n and_o to_o tell_v david_n of_o it_o it_o be_v tell_v to_o david_n say_v the_o holy_a story_n 2_o sam._n 6.12_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v bless_v the_o house_n of_o obed-edom_n and_o all_o that_o pertain_v unto_o he_o because_o of_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n and_o certain_o there_o be_v no_o family_n where_o prayer_n and_o god_n worship_n be_v constant_o use_v morning_n and_o evening_n but_o the_o whole_a family_n use_v to_o receive_v a_o blessing_n by_o it_o yea_o god_n have_v be_v wont_a to_o show_v such_o respect_n unto_o this_o duty_n that_o he_o have_v oft_o reward_v it_o and_o give_v a_o blessing_n unto_o it_o a_o temporal_a blessing_n i_o mean_v not_o only_a when_o it_o have_v be_v perform_v by_o his_o own_o faithful_a servant_n with_o a_o good_a heart_n but_o even_o when_o it_o have_v be_v use_v also_o by_o such_o as_o have_v have_v no_o truth_n of_o grace_n in_o they_o at_o all_o as_o appear_v in_o the_o example_n both_o of_o jehoabaz_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n 2_o king_n 13.4_o 5_o and_o of_o the_o mariner_n jon._n 1.14_o 15._o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n as_o they_o can_v have_v no_o true_a goodness_n in_o they_o but_o be_v atheist_n in_o heart_n that_o use_v not_o to_o pray_v psal._n 14.14_o the_o fool_n have_v say_v in_o his_o heart_n there_o be_v no_o god_n he_o call_v not_o upon_o god_n so_o the_o many_o house_n where_o no_o prayer_n be_v use_v seem_v to_o prosper_v as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o do_v yet_o certain_o god_n have_v give_v sentence_n already_o against_o they_o in_o that_o prophetical_a prayer_n which_o we_o read_v jer._n 10.25_o pour_v out_o thy_o fury_n upon_o the_o heathen_a that_o know_v thou_o not_o and_o upon_o the_o family_n that_o call_v not_o on_o thy_o name_n there_o want_v nothing_o but_o that_o god_n give_v order_n for_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o sentence_n which_o he_o have_v already_o give_v against_o they_o which_o how_o soon_o and_o in_o what_o manner_n he_o will_v do_v it_o be_v know_v only_o to_o himself_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v lecture_n cxxxv_o on_o psalm_n 51.7_o decemb._n 22._o 1629._o it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o confirm_v the_o same_o unto_o you_o in_o the_o other_o three_o particular_n and_o for_o the_o three_o although_o there_o be_v as_o i_o show_v you_o some_o hypocrite_n that_o seem_v to_o be_v strict_a observer_n of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n yet_o be_v that_o no_o sign_n of_o a_o hypocrite_n neither_o be_v the_o conscionable_a and_o precise_a observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n to_o be_v mislike_v ever_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o for_o that_o for_o it_o be_v a_o singular_a good_a thing_n to_o be_v strict_a in_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n and_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o god_n be_v high_o please_v with_o and_o have_v be_v wont_a to_o reward_v wheresoever_o he_o find_v it_o i_o will_v give_v you_o a_o full_a proof_n of_o this_o in_o one_o particular_a to_o keep_v a_o bodily_a rest_n upon_o that_o day_n from_o all_o our_o own_o work_n be_v but_o one_o particular_a that_o be_v require_v of_o we_o in_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n nay_o that_o be_v as_o i_o may_v say_v but_o the_o outside_n of_o the_o commandment_n and_o concern_v only_o the_o outward_a man_n the_o outward_a and_o bodily_a observation_n of_o it_o of_o the_o four_o commandment_n as_o well_o as_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o may_v true_o be_v say_v which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v rom._n 7.14_o of_o the_o whole_a law_n we_o know_v say_v he_o that_o the_o law_n be_v spiritual_a the_o spiritual_a observation_n of_o it_o by_o the_o inward_a man_n when_o we_o call_v the_o sabbath_n a_o delight_n the_o holy_a of_o the_o lord_n honourable_a as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v esa_n 58.13_o that_o be_v when_o we_o can_v joy_v in_o that_o day_n as_o in_o the_o lord_n own_o holy_a day_n and_o esteem_v it_o in_o our_o heart_n a_o far_o great_a and_o more_o honourable_a day_n than_o any_o other_o day_n keep_v the_o rest_n and_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o day_n cheerful_o reverent_o conscionable_o spiritual_o this_o spiritual_a observation_n of_o it_o i_o say_v by_o the_o inward_a man_n be_v the_o chief_a thing_n that_o god_n require_v of_o we_o in_o the_o four_o commandment_n the_o outward_a and_o bodily_a observation_n of_o it_o which_o may_v be_v perform_v by_o a_o man_n that_o have_v no_o truth_n of_o grace_n in_o he_o at_o all_o be_v nothing_o in_o god_n account_n in_o comparison_n of_o this_o and_o yet_o of_o this_o bodily_a observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n by_o the_o outward_a man_n the_o rest_a from_o our_o own_o work_n be_v but_o the_o least_o part_n the_o exercise_v of_o ourselves_o upon_o that_o day_n in_o do_v of_o the_o lord_n work_v the_o spend_v of_o it_o in_o such_o holy_a duty_n both_o public_a and_o private_a as_o may_v breed_v and_o increase_v grace_n and_o sanctification_n in_o we_o be_v a_o great_a matter_n and_o more_o please_v to_o god_n a_o great_a deal_n than_o that_o be_v no_o man_n may_v think_v he_o have_v keep_v the_o sabbath_n well_o because_o he_o rest_v from_o all_o the_o labour_n of_o his_o call_n upon_o that_o day_n so_o far_o forth_o the_o bruit_n beast_n thy_o ox_n and_o thy_o horse_n keep_v the_o sabbath_n as_o well_o as_o thou_o for_o so_o be_v the_o express_a commandment_n deuteronomie_n 5.14_o neither_o thy_o
ox_n nor_o thy_o ass_n nor_o any_o of_o thy_o cattle_n shall_v do_v any_o work_n upon_o that_o day_n of_o thou_o that_o be_v a_o man_n and_o a_o christian_a man_n god_n require_v more_o than_o so_o he_o will_v have_v thou_o not_o only_o to_o rest_v from_o thy_o own_o labour_n but_o to_o spend_v the_o day_n so_o far_o as_o thy_o bodily_a necessity_n will_v permit_v in_o such_o religious_a duty_n as_o may_v make_v thou_o a_o more_o holy_a and_o a_o better_a man_n the_o hebrew_n word_n sabbat_n from_o whence_o the_o sabbath_n day_n receive_v the_o name_n signify_v not_o such_o a_o rest_n as_o wherein_o one_o sit_v still_o and_o do_v nothing_o as_o the_o word_n noach_n do_v but_o only_o a_o rest_a and_o cease_v from_o that_o which_o he_o do_v before_o so_o god_n be_v say_v genesis_n 2.2_o to_o have_v rest_v the_o seven_o day_n not_o that_o he_o rest_v from_o all_o work_n for_o my_o father_n work_v hitherto_o and_o i_o work_v say_v our_o saviour_n john_n 5.17_o but_o because_o he_o rest_v from_o all_o the_o work_n that_o he_o have_v make_v as_o moses_n say_v there_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v he_o rest_v from_o create_v any_o thing_n more_o and_o so_o we_o likewise_o be_v express_o command_v to_o rest_v upon_o the_o sabbath_n not_o from_o all_o work_n but_o from_o such_o work_n as_o we_o do_v and_o may_v do_v upon_o the_o six_o day_n god_n never_o allow_v we_o any_o day_n to_o spend_v in_o idleness_n and_o do_v of_o nothing_o special_o not_o that_o day_n but_o he_o have_v appoint_v we_o work_n and_o duty_n for_o that_o day_n which_o he_o will_v have_v we_o as_o careful_a to_o go_v about_o they_o as_o we_o be_v upon_o any_o other_o day_n to_o go_v about_o the_o work_n of_o our_o call_n and_o when_o we_o be_v at_o they_o to_o perform_v they_o with_o every_o whit_n as_o much_o diligence_n and_o care_n to_o do_v they_o well_o as_o we_o do_v any_o work_n we_o take_v in_o hand_n upon_o the_o six_o day_n let_v no_o man_n say_v what_o will_v you_o have_v we_o to_o do_v if_o we_o may_v do_v no_o business_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n will_v you_o have_v we_o spend_v the_o time_n in_o sleep_v or_o talk_v or_o sit_v at_o our_o door_n or_o walk_v abroad_o how_o will_v you_o have_v we_o pass_v the_o time_n for_o the_o whole_a day_n to_o such_o a_o one_o i_o answer_v thou_o have_v so_o much_o work_v to_o do_v as_o if_o thou_o be_v as_o thou_o shall_v be_v thou_o will_v complain_v that_o thou_o want_v time_n to_o do_v it_o and_o yet_o this_o work_n that_o god_n have_v enjoin_v we_o to_o spend_v this_o day_n in_o have_v such_o interchange_n and_o variety_n in_o it_o as_o no_o good_a hearth_n have_v cause_n with_o those_o carnal_a professor_n malachy_n 1.13_o to_o snuff_v at_o it_o and_o to_o cry_v behold_v what_o a_o weariness_n it_o be_v how_o ●edious_a and_o toilsome_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n as_o these_o man_n will_v have_v we_o to_o do_v but_o the_o true_a christian_a find_v just_a cause_n to_o call_v the_o sabbath_n a_o delight_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v esa_n 58.13_o for_o all_o this_o work_n and_o labour_n that_o god_n have_v enjoin_v we_o in_o it_o we_o have_v public_a duty_n to_o perform_v on_o that_o day_n in_o god_n house_n and_o both_o the_o family-duty_n and_o secret_a duty_n which_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o perform_v every_o day_n be_v by_o the_o equity_n of_o that_o law_n number_n 28.9_o 10._o to_o be_v double_v upon_o the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o lord_n have_v for_o that_o very_a cause_n chief_o command_v we_o to_o rest_v from_o all_o our_o own_o work_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n day_n that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o attend_v upon_o and_o profit_n by_o these_o holy_a work_n these_o duty_n of_o piety_n and_o religion_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a work_n of_o that_o day_n for_o that_o be_v the_o chief_a end_n that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v ordain_v for_o remember_v the_o sabbath_n day_n to_o keep_v it_o holy_a say_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o four_o commandment_n exodus_fw-la 20.8_o and_o deutero●omie_n 5.12_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n day_n to_o sanctify_v it_o and_o i_o give_v they_o my_o sabbaths_n say_v the_o lord_n ezekiel_n 20.12_o to_o be_v a_o sign_n betwixt_o i_o and_o they_o that_o they_o may_v know_v that_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n that_o sanctify_v they_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v he_o remember_v not_o nor_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n he_o regard_v it_o not_o nor_o care_v for_o it_o how_o strict_a soever_o he_o be_v in_o rest_v from_o his_o own_o labour_n that_o keep_v it_o not_o holy_a that_o spend_v in_o not_o in_o such_o religious_a duty_n as_o wherein_o we_o may_v know_v and_o feel_v by_o experience_n that_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n who_o by_o his_o ordinance_n do_v sanctify_v he_o who_o do_v both_o begin_v and_o increase_v grace_n in_o his_o soul_n and_o yet_o though_o this_o be_v so_o though_o the_o bodily_a observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n and_o that_o that_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o outward_a man_n only_o be_v nothing_o in_o god_n account_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o spiritual_a observation_n of_o it_o with_o the_o heart_n and_o inward_a man_n and_o though_o our_o rest_v from_o our_o own_o labour_n in_o that_o day_n be_v the_o least_o part_n even_o of_o the_o outward_a and_o bodily_a observation_n of_o it_o yet_o see_v what_o account_n the_o lord_n make_v even_o of_o that_o and_o how_o high_o he_o be_v please_v with_o it_o this_o will_v sufficient_o appear_v unto_o you_o in_o that_o promise_n the_o lord_n have_v make_v unto_o it_o jer._n 17.24_o 26._o wherein_o he_o plain_o declare_v that_o the_o flourish_a estate_n both_o of_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n depend_v great_o even_o upon_o this_o even_o upon_o the_o strict_a observe_v of_o the_o bodily_a rest_n from_o our_o own_o work_n upon_o the_o lord_n holy_a day_n two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o this_o promise_n 1._o the_o duty_n unto_o which_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v ver_fw-la 24._o if_o you_o diligent_o hearken_v unto_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n to_o bring_v in_o no_o burden_n through_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o city_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n but_o hallow_v the_o sabbath_n day_n to_o do_v no_o work_n therein_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o you_o careful_o look_v to_o this_o that_o no_o burden_n no_o carriage_n go_v in_o and_o out_o at_o the_o gate_n of_o jerusalem_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n that_o the_o sabbath_n may_v be_v but_o so_o far_o hallow_v that_o no_o work_n be_v suffer_v to_o be_v do_v upon_o that_o day_n you_o see_v the_o promise_n be_v make_v even_o unto_o the_o bodily_a rest_n even_o unto_o so_o much_o as_o a_o hypocrite_n and_o carnal_a man_n may_v perform_v and_o which_o every_o magistrate_n and_o master_n and_o father_n have_v power_n to_o compel_v such_o unto_o as_o be_v under_o their_o government_n even_o to_o this_o i_o say_v the_o promise_n be_v make_v then_o second_o observe_v the_o blessing_n and_o reward_n that_o be_v promise_v even_o unto_o this_o and_o that_o be_v twofold_a the_o first_o concern_v the_o commonwealth_n and_o civil_a state_n verse_n 25._o then_o shall_v there_o enter_v into_o the_o gate_n of_o this_o city_n king_n and_o prince_n sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o david_n ride_v in_o chariot_n and_o upon_o horse_n they_o and_o their_o prince_n the_o man_n of_o judah_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o this_o city_n shall_v remain_v for_o ever_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o will_v maintain_v the_o honour_n and_o dignity_n the_o wealth_n and_o strength_n the_o peace_n and_o safety_n of_o this_o state_n and_o kingdom_n the_o second_o blessing_n that_o be_v promise_v concern_v the_o church_n and_o state_n of_o religion_n verse_n 26._o and_o they_o shall_v come_v from_o the_o city_n of_o juda_n and_o from_o the_o place_n about_o jerusalem_n etc._n etc._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v my_o solemn_a assembly_n shall_v be_v due_o frequent_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o sect_n and_o heresy_n no_o schism_n or_o separation_n i_o will_v continue_v my_o own_o worship_n and_o the_o purity_n of_o my_o holy_a religion_n among_o you_o you_o see_v belove_v by_o this_o one_o place_n how_o much_o god_n be_v please_v even_o with_o the_o outward_a rest_n from_o our_o own_o work_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o what_o a_o happiness_n it_o will_v bring_v both_o to_o the_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n if_o even_o that_o be_v observe_v on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n how_o all_o public_a judgement_n and_o common_a calamity_n that_o ever_o befall_v god_n people_n be_v impute_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o no_o one_o sin_n more_o than_o to_o the_o profanation_n of_o
by_o promise_n to_o they_o that_o keep_v his_o sabbath_n not_o only_o to_o work_v sanctification_n increase_n of_o holiness_n and_o power_n over_o their_o corruption_n which_o he_o profess_v in_o that_o former_a place_n of_o ezekiel_n be_v the_o very_a end_n he_o give_v his_o sabbath_n for_o but_o also_o by_o his_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n to_o increase_v in_o their_o heart_n a_o lively_a sense_n of_o his_o favour_n assurance_n that_o he_o hear_v and_o accept_v their_o prayer_n peace_n of_o conscience_n joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v blessing_n the_o christian_a soul_n prize_v above_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n why_o may_v you_o say_v may_v not_o a_o man_n receive_v increase_v of_o grace_n and_o spiritual_a comfort_n in_o the_o use_n of_o god_n ordinance_n on_o any_o other_o day_n object_n but_o only_o on_o the_o sabbath_n i_o answer_v answ._n yes_o very_o but_o these_o promise_n may_v give_v he_o assurance_n to_o receive_v they_o more_o rich_o and_o plentiful_o upon_o the_o sabbath_n then_o on_o any_o other_o day_n the_o second_o sort_n of_o blessing_n that_o the_o conscionable_a observer_n of_o the_o sabbath_n receive_v by_o it_o be_v temporal_a for_o concern_v they_o also_o we_o have_v a_o promise_n esa._n 58.14_o that_o he_o that_o hearty_o and_o spiritual_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n god_n will_v cause_v he_o to_o ride_v upon_o the_o high_a place_n of_o the_o earth_n he_o shall_v have_v honour_n and_o esteem_v in_o the_o world_n so_o far_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v good_a for_o he_o and_o he_o will_v feed_v he_o with_o the_o heritage_n of_o jacob_n that_o be_v he_o shall_v continue_v and_o abide_v safe_o in_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n which_o god_n promise_v to_o jacob_n for_o his_o inheritance_n gen._n 28.13.48.4_o yea_o the_o lord_n will_v nourish_v and_o feed_v they_o he_o shall_v eat_v the_o good_a thing_n of_o the_o land_n as_o the_o lord_n promise_v esa._n 1.19_o to_o all_o that_o yield_v willing_a obedience_n unto_o he_o lecture_n cxxxvi_o on_o psalm_n 51.7_o december_n 29._o 1629._o it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o make_v some_o application_n of_o that_o which_o we_o have_v hear_v touch_v the_o sabbath_n applic._n and_o so_o proceed_v unto_o the_o two_o last_o particular_n of_o those_o five_o which_o i_o have_v prove_v to_o be_v in_o many_o a_o man_n that_o be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o hypocrite_n and_o that_o which_o i_o have_v to_o say_v by_o way_n of_o application_n be_v first_o of_o all_o more_o general_a and_o concern_v all_o other_o person_n and_o place_n as_o well_o as_o this_o second_o more_o special_a and_o concern_v this_o place_n principal_o of_o all_o i_o may_v say_v o_o that_o god_n will_v give_v we_o heart_n to_o believe_v that_o which_o we_o have_v hear_v teach_v we_o concern_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o which_o we_o must_v be_v all_o judge_v at_o the_o great_a and_o dreadful_a day_n as_o our_o saviour_n assure_v we_o john_n 12.48_o o_o that_o we_o can_v believe_v that_o the_o sure_a way_n to_o make_v our_o church_n and_o state_n to_o flourish_v to_o secure_v we_o from_o enemy_n abroad_o and_o papist_n at_o home_n to_o maintain_v god_n gospel_n and_o the_o purity_n of_o his_o religion_n among_o we_o that_o the_o sure_a way_n to_o make_v our_o town_n and_o family_n and_o person_n to_o prosper_v and_o do_v well_o be_v to_o keep_v the_o lord_n rest_n upon_o his_o holy_a day_n if_o we_o can_v believe_v this_o than_o will_v we_o be_v the_o more_o careful_a to_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n better_v ourselves_o and_o then_o will_v we_o do_v what_o lie_v in_o we_o that_o it_o may_v be_v better_o keep_v by_o other_o also_o i_o know_v our_o corrupt_a heart_n be_v apt_a to_o have_v in_o they_o many_o reason_n against_o the_o strict_a observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o these_o imagination_n and_o reason_n that_o we_o have_v in_o we_o against_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 10.4_o 5._o call_v strong_a hold_n and_o high_a thing_n that_o exalt_v themselves_o against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n but_o of_o all_o these_o strong_a hold_n and_o high_a thing_n i_o may_v say_v as_o our_o saviour_n say_v in_o another_o case_n and_o another_o sense_n speak_v of_o the_o faith_n of_o miracle_n matth._n 17.20_o if_o we_o have_v but_o as_o much_o faith_n as_o a_o grain_n of_o muster_v seed_n but_o a_o little_a faith_n to_o believe_v the_o promise_n and_o threaten_n that_o we_o have_v hear_v concern_v the_o observation_n or_o neglect_n of_o the_o sabbath_n we_o may_v easy_o remove_v all_o these_o mountain_n out_o of_o our_o way_n diverse_a notable_a good_a law_n we_o have_v have_v make_v of_o late_a year_n for_o the_o better_a observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n some_o to_o restrain_v man_n from_o do_v their_o own_o work_n some_o other_o to_o compel_v man_n to_o do_v the_o lord_n work_v by_o frequent_v diligent_o the_o church_n assembly_n upon_o that_o day_n and_o bless_v be_v god_n that_o have_v give_v that_o heart_n to_o our_o king_n and_o state_n to_o make_v such_o law_n in_o respect_n whereof_o it_o may_v be_v fit_o say_v of_o they_o as_o deborah_n speak_v in_o another_o case_n judg._n ●_o 9_o my_o heart_n be_v towards_o the_o governor_n of_o israel_n that_o offer_v themselves_o willing_o among_o the_o people_n bless_v you_o the_o lord_n the_o heart_n of_o all_o god_n people_n shall_v be_v towards_o the_o governor_n of_o israel_n for_o show_v themselves_o so_o willing_a to_o provide_v for_o the_o sanctify_a of_o the_o lord_n sabbath_n we_o shall_v all_o bless_v the_o lord_n for_o they_o the_o whole_a land_n i_o nothing_o doubt_v fare_v the_o better_a and_o have_v have_v the_o tranquillity_n thereof_o lengthen_v the_o rather_o even_o by_o the_o zeal_n that_o our_o governor_n have_v show_v in_o this_o point_n towards_o god_n and_o towards_o his_o house_n but_o that_o which_o be_v say_v of_o the_o day_n of_o king_n jehos●phat_n 2_o chron._n 20.32_o 33._o may_v fit_o be_v apply_v to_o our_o time_n jehosaphat_n do_v that_o which_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n howbeit_o the_o high_a place_n be_v not_o take_v away_o for_o as_o yet_o the_o people_n do_v not_o prepare_v their_o heart_n unto_o the_o god_n of_o their_o father_n our_o gracious_a king_n in_o parliament_n have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o make_v these_o good_a law_n howbeit_o the_o sabbath_n be_v still_o in_o most_o place_n shameful_o profane_v these_o good_a law_n be_v not_o execute_v for_o the_o people_n do_v not_o prepare_v their_o heart_n unto_o god_n they_o have_v no_o heart_n to_o his_o honour_n or_o service_n at_o all_o and_o indeed_o in_o nothing_o do_v it_o better_o appear_v that_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n general_o be_v not_o prepare_v unto_o god_n but_o utter_o alienate_v and_o estrange_v from_o he_o then_o in_o this_o that_o when_o they_o have_v but_o the_o least_o colour_n and_o semblance_n of_o law_n to_o justify_v any_o of_o their_o unwarantable_a practice_n whereby_o they_o may_v trouble_v any_o of_o their_o brethren_n and_o devise_v deceitful_a matter_n against_o they_o that_o be_v quiet_a in_o the_o land_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v psal._n 35.20_o there_o they_o will_v seem_v wondrous_a zealous_a for_o the_o law_n and_o press_v they_o hot_o they_o frame_v their_o mischief_n by_o a_o law_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v psal._n 94.20_o they_o pretend_v nothing_o so_o much_o for_o their_o deadly_a hatred_n against_o other_o that_o be_v innocent_a as_o that_o they_o do_v not_o obey_v the_o law_n this_o be_v hamans_n outcry_n against_o god_n people_n in_o his_o time_n est._n 3.8_o these_o keep_v not_o the_o king_n law_n and_o of_o daniel_n adversary_n against_o he_o dan._n 6.13_o he_o regard_v not_o thou_o o_o king_n nor_o the_o decree_n that_o thou_o have_v sign_v and_o of_o those_o lewd_a fellow_n of_o the_o base_a sort_n which_o we_o read_v of_o act_v 17.5_o 7._o against_o paul_n and_o the_o brethren_n with_o he_o these_o all_o say_v they_o do_v contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o caesar._n whereas_o i_o say_v to_o colour_v their_o malice_n against_o god_n and_o his_o people_n they_o seem_v zealous_a for_o the_o law_n &_o for_o the_o magistrate_n let_v the_o magistrate_n make_v law_n that_o tend_v most_o direct_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n that_o concern_v the_o weighty_a matter_n of_o god_n law_n as_o our_o gracious_a jehosaphat_n have_v do_v for_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n for_o the_o punishment_n of_o swear_v for_o the_o suppress_n of_o the_o multitude_n and_o disorder_n of_o alehouse_n the_o very_a chief_a nursery_n of_o all_o profaneness_n and_o impiety_n these_o law_n you_o shall_v find_v they_o have_v no_o zeal_n
for_o at_o all_o they_o will_v never_o count_v a_o man_n the_o worse_a subject_n for_o break_v of_o they_o they_o count_v it_o a_o most_o odions_a thing_n for_o any_o man_n yea_o though_o he_o be_v a_o officer_n that_o be_v bind_v by_o his_o oath_n to_o do_v it_o to_o seek_v or_o urge_v the_o execution_n of_o these_o law_n against_o any_o offender_n and_o so_o much_o may_v serve_v for_o that_o part_n of_o my_o application_n which_o be_v more_o general_a the_o other_o part_n i_o must_v direct_v to_o you_o of_o this_o town_n and_o congregation_n more_o special_o and_o yet_o not_o so_o to_o they_o of_o this_o town_n as_o if_o i_o think_v none_o of_o you_o that_o hear_v i_o be_v to_o be_v blame_v for_o these_o fault_n that_o i_o shall_v now_o reprove_v but_o only_o they_o of_o this_o town_n but_o because_o myself_o have_v discern_v they_o and_o be_v grieve_v and_o trouble_v in_o my_o soul_n for_o they_o in_o this_o place_n more_o than_o in_o any_o other_o but_o before_o i_o begin_v this_o part_n of_o my_o application_n let_v i_o by_o way_n of_o preface_n use_v a_o word_n or_o two_o that_o it_o may_v do_v you_o the_o more_o good_a i_o know_v well_o to_o some_o hearer_n all_o that_o we_o use_v to_o say_v in_o reproof_n of_o sin_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v very_o unsavoury_a and_o harsh_a special_o if_o it_o be_v any_o whit_n particular_a and_o sharp_a but_o i_o may_v not_o forbear_v it_o because_o of_o that_o remember_v i_o pray_v you_o what_o a_o necessity_n be_v lay_v upon_o we_o that_o be_v god_n minister_n to_o reprove_v the_o sin_n that_o we_o discern_v to_o be_v in_o any_o of_o you_o there_o be_v nothing_o we_o be_v more_o strait_o charge_v with_o by_o the_o lord_n then_o to_o reprove_v sin_n plain_o and_o particular_o and_o vehement_o too_o and_o i_o much_o fear_v that_o we_o be_v all_o to_o blame_v in_o neglect_v this_o part_n of_o our_o duty_n so_o much_o as_o we_o do_v i_o will_v give_v you_o but_o two_o place_n for_o this_o one_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o another_o in_o the_o new_a the_o first_o be_v esa._n 58.1_o observe_v four_o point_n in_o that_o charge_n 1._o cry_v aloud_o it_o must_v be_v do_v feel_o and_o with_o affection_n 2._o spare_v not_o it_o must_v be_v do_v without_o partiality_n 3._o lift_v up_o thy_o voice_n like_o a_o trumpet_n it_o must_v be_v do_v zealous_o and_o vehement_o 4._o show_v my_o people_n their_o transgression_n and_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n their_o sin_n it_o must_v be_v do_v plain_o and_o particular_o the_o other_o place_n be_v 2_o tim._n 4.1_o 2._o i_o charge_v thou_o before_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o shall_v judge_v the_o quick_a and_o dead_a at_o his_o appear_v and_o in_o his_o kingdom_n preach_v the_o word_n be_v instant_a in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n reprove_v rebuke_n exhort_v with_o all_o long_a suffering_n and_o doctrine_n observe_v three_o thing_n in_o this_o place_n 1._o that_o this_o duty_n of_o our_o ministry_n be_v twice_o press_v upon_o we_o reprove_v rebuke_n 2._o that_o we_o be_v charge_v to_o be_v instant_a in_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d stand_v much_o upon_o it_o 3._o with_o what_o a_o charge_n this_o be_v press_v upon_o we_o verse_n 1_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v thou_o can_v never_o answer_v it_o unto_o god_n and_o unto_o jesus_n christ_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n if_o thou_o do_v it_o not_o you_o see_v what_o a_o commission_n and_o charge_n we_o have_v and_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o pertinent_a to_o our_o ministry_n then_o plain_o and_o round_o to_o reprove_v sin_n if_o we_o see_v any_o sin_n among_o you_o and_o discover_v it_o not_o reprove_v it_o not_o the_o lord_n tell_v we_o plain_o ezek._n 3.18_o that_o he_o will_v require_v your_o blood_n at_o our_o hand_n but_o if_o we_o discharge_v our_o duty_n this_o way_n though_o you_o will_v not_o be_v reclaim_v and_o leave_v your_o sin_n as_o i_o fear_v many_o of_o you_o who_o sin_n i_o shall_v now_o reprove_v will_v not_o yet_o we_o have_v deliver_v our_o own_o soul_n as_o the_o lord_n tell_v we_o verse_n 19_o yea_o the_o lord_n observe_v this_o in_o the_o false_a prophet_n as_o a_o chief_a note_n of_o a_o unfaithful_a minister_n lam._n 2.14_o they_o have_v not_o discover_v thy_o iniquity_n unto_o thou_o say_v he_o howsoever_o therefore_o you_o take_v it_o you_o see_v we_o must_v do_v our_o duty_n and_o of_o sundry_a of_o you_o i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o you_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o say_v of_o that_o which_o i_o shall_v deliver_v unto_o you_o out_o of_o god_n word_n against_o any_o of_o your_o sin_n as_o good_a hezekiah_n do_v in_o the_o like_a case_n 2_o king_n 20.19_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v good_a whatsoever_o be_v teach_v i_o by_o good_a warrant_n of_o god_n word_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o much_o to_o my_o reproach_n and_o shame_n be_v good_a and_o i_o will_v receive_v it_o and_o yield_v unto_o it_o and_o indeed_o if_o you_o yield_v to_o god_n word_n and_o reform_v yourselves_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o shall_v be_v reprove_v by_o it_o the_o reproof_n that_o shall_v be_v give_v will_v be_v nothing_o to_o your_o reproach_n but_o to_o your_o credit_n and_o honour_n rather_o for_o so_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n pro._n 25.12_o as_o a_o ear_n of_o gold_n and_o a_o ornament_n of_o fine_a gold_n so_o be_v a_o wise_a reprover_n upon_o a_o obedient_a ear_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v no_o jewel_n can_v so_o much_o adorn_v and_o beautify_v a_o christian_n as_o this_o will_v do_v when_o he_o can_v receive_v and_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o word_n of_o reproof_n that_o be_v wise_o give_v and_o by_o good_a warrant_n of_o god_n word_n and_o upon_o this_o ground_n i_o will_v now_o proceed_v of_o this_o town_n myself_o can_v say_v that_o i_o have_v know_v the_o time_n when_o it_o do_v shine_v as_o a_o light_n to_o all_o the_o country_n and_o be_v famous_a among_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o religious_a observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o to_o this_o day_n bless_a be_v god_n for_o the_o mean_n of_o sanctify_v the_o sabbath_n by_o the_o public_a ministry_n in_o our_o church_n assembly_n i_o dare_v say_v it_o be_v little_a or_o nothing_o behind_o any_o other_o church_n in_o the_o country_n and_o of_o many_o of_o the_o people_n also_o i_o may_v say_v that_o they_o do_v as_o diligent_o frequent_v they_o and_o our_o congregation_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n both_o in_o the_o forenoon_n and_o afternoon_n too_o be_v as_o full_a and_o populous_a as_o can_v light_o be_v find_v in_o any_o other_o place_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o by_o many_o among_o we_o the_o sabbath_n be_v as_o much_o profane_v in_o all_o the_o three_o branch_n of_o the_o commandment_n touch_v the_o right_a observation_n of_o it_o which_o i_o tell_v you_o of_o the_o last_o day_n as_o it_o be_v i_o think_v in_o any_o part_n of_o all_o the_o country_n beside_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a thing_n that_o god_n require_v in_o the_o observation_n of_o his_o sabbath_n be_v this_o that_o we_o keep_v his_o rest_n and_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o his_o worship_n that_o day_n cheerful_o and_o reverent_o and_o spiritual_o the_o true_a worshipper_n say_v our_o saviour_n joh._n 4.23_o shall_v worship_n the_o father_n in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n for_o the_o father_n seek_v such_o to_o worship_v he_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o tell_v we_o matth._n 15.8_o 9_o that_o they_o who_o when_o they_o seem_v to_o worship_n god_n have_v their_o heart_n far_o from_o he_o worship_v he_o in_o vain_a it_o be_v but_o a_o mock_n worship_n when_o man_n will_v seem_v to_o serve_v he_o and_o have_v no_o heart_n to_o it_o at_o all_o and_o against_o this_o first_o branch_n we_o have_v many_o among_o we_o that_o do_v transgress_v notorious_o many_o that_o frequent_a our_o church-assembly_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n ordinary_o and_o constant_o seem_v to_o be_v hearer_n of_o the_o word_n upon_o that_o day_n yet_o make_v open_a profession_n when_o they_o be_v here_o that_o they_o have_v no_o delight_n in_o it_o as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o they_o in_o his_o time_n jeremy_n 6.10_o they_o have_v no_o heart_n to_o it_o at_o all_o you_o shall_v hardly_o come_v into_o any_o church_n upon_o a_o sabbath_n day_n where_o you_o shall_v see_v so_o many_o sleeper_n old_a and_o young_a yea_o such_o as_o will_v be_v think_v to_o be_v of_o chief_a credit_n among_o their_o neighbour_n not_o for_o moral_a honesty_n only_o but_o even_o for_o religion_n too_o and_o this_o i_o have_v to_o my_o grief_n hear_v many_o stranger_n observe_v and_o wonder_v at_o object_n i_o know_v many_o of_o
you_o will_v be_v apt_a to_o say_v be_v that_o such_o a_o matter_n for_o a_o man_n a_o ancient_a man_n especial_o to_o be_v a_o little_a sleepy_a and_o drowsy_a some_o time_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o well_o do_v of_o i_o thus_o open_o to_o disgrace_v man_n for_o their_o weakness_n and_o infirmity_n answ._n but_o to_o such_o i_o answer_v first_o i_o do_v not_o publish_v or_o lay_v open_a any_o man_n secret_a or_o private_a fault_n i_o speak_v of_o a_o sin_n that_o be_v public_a and_o open_a to_o the_o congregation_n of_o a_o sin_n of_o which_o it_o may_v be_v say_v as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v esa._n 3.9_o they_o declare_v their_o sin_n as_o sodom_n they_o hide_v it_o not_o and_o it_o be_v the_o apostle_n rule_v 1_o tim._n 5.20_o they_o that_o sin_n thus_o rebuke_v open_o second_o i_o speak_v of_o a_o sin_n that_o be_v so_o grow_v into_o fashion_n here_o in_o so_o common_a and_o general_a use_n that_o no_o man_n seem_v to_o count_v it_o any_o shame_n at_o all_o to_o he_o to_o do_v it_o be_v they_o ashamed_a say_v the_o prophet_n jer._n 8.12_o nay_o they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o ashamed_a neither_o can_v they_o blush_v three_o i_o speak_v of_o a_o sin_n that_o together_o with_o the_o profaneness_n of_o the_o child_n in_o laugh_v out_o and_o sport_v and_o fight_v in_o the_o church_n ordinary_o every_o sabbath_n day_n be_v a_o great_a blemish_n to_o our_o church_n assembly_n and_o such_o as_o may_v provoke_v the_o lord_n to_o say_v of_o they_o as_o he_o do_v of_o those_o esa._n 1.13_o the_o sabbath_n the_o call_n of_o assembly_n i_o can_v away_o with_o it_o be_v iniquity_n even_o the_o solemn_a meeting_n 4._o to_o be_v overtake_v with_o drowsiness_n and_o sleepiness_n sometime_o even_o in_o the_o church_n even_o at_o a_o sermon_n may_v well_o be_v a_o infirmity_n special_o in_o a_o age_a man_n and_o i_o be_v much_o to_o blame_v if_o i_o shall_v censure_v any_o man_n for_o this_o rigorous_o i_o know_v well_o the_o apostle_n rule_v gal._n 6.1_o if_o any_o man_n be_v overtake_v with_o a_o fault_n a_o frailty_n and_o infirmity_n he_o mean_v you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a restore_v such_o a_o one_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n consider_v thyself_o lest_o thou_o also_o be_v tempt_v and_o what_o man_n be_v there_o that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o natural_a infirmity_n but_o if_o thy_o sleep_n be_v only_o a_o infirmity_n thou_o will_v not_o be_v so_o please_v with_o thyself_o in_o it_o it_o will_v trouble_v thou_o more_o thou_o will_v by_v stand_v up_o and_o rowze_a thyself_o strive_v against_o it_o thou_o will_v count_v it_o a_o kindness_n in_o thy_o neighbour_n that_o sit_v next_o thou_o to_o jog_v thou_o and_o waken_v thou_o yea_o thou_o will_v pray_v to_o god_n for_o help_n and_o strength_n against_o it_o i_o know_v it_o be_v the_o ordinary_a plea_n that_o be_v make_v for_o many_o foul_a sin_n the_o drunkard_n will_v say_v so_o too_o it_o be_v but_o my_o infirmity_n call_v thou_o these_o infirmity_n i_o tell_v thou_o there_o be_v a_o damnable_a weakness_n and_o infirmity_n the_o lord_n speak_v to_o jerusalem_n who_o be_v now_o become_v a_o imperious_a whorish_a woman_n say_v ezek._n 16.30_o how_o weak_a be_v thy_o heart_n it_o be_v a_o damnable_a weakness_n there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a spirit_n of_o infirmity_n luke_n 13.11_o the_o devil_n have_v make_v thou_o so_o weak_a that_o thou_o can_v resist_v no_o temptation_n that_o thou_o be_v as_o unable_a to_o stand_v against_o temptation_n as_o the_o chaff_n be_v to_o withstand_v the_o power_n of_o the_o wind_n psal._n 14._o it_o be_v a_o curse_a infirmity_n when_o thou_o be_v so_o weak_a as_o that_o thou_o can_v not_o cease_v from_o sin_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2_o pet._n 2.14_o but_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o frailty_n and_o infirmity_n that_o be_v in_o himself_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o faithful_a rom._n 7._o and_o 8._o give_v we_o four_o note_n whereby_o a_o sin_n of_o infirmity_n may_v be_v know_v from_o a_o reign_a sin_n the_o first_o be_v in_o the_o fifteen_o verse_n of_o the_o seven_o chapter_n what_o i_o hate_v say_v he_o that_o do_v i._o he_o be_v be_v convince_v in_o his_o judgement_n that_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n and_o therefore_o hate_v it_o so_o can_v not_o thou_o say_v of_o thy_o sin_n the_o second_o be_v verse_n 19_o the_o evil_n which_o i_o will_v not_o that_o i_o do_v his_o will_n the_o purpose_n and_o resolution_n of_o his_o heart_n be_v against_o it_o know_v his_o weakness_n he_o arm_v himself_o aforehand_o against_o it_o by_o purpose_v with_o himself_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o himself_o that_o he_o may_v not_o fall_v into_o it_o as_o david_n do_v psal._n 39.1_o i_o say_v i_o will_v take_v heed_n to_o my_o way_n that_o i_o sin_v not_o with_o my_o tongue_n i_o will_v keep_v my_o mouth_n as_o with_o a_o bridle_n he_o strive_v against_o it_o by_o prayer_n and_o all_o other_o good_a mean_n so_o can_v not_o thou_o say_v of_o thy_o sin_n the_o three_o be_v verse_n 24._o o_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n he_o be_v much_o trouble_v and_o grieve_v when_o he_o be_v overtake_v with_o it_o it_o be_v a_o great_a burden_n to_o his_o soul_n so_o can_v not_o thou_o say_v of_o thy_o sin_n the_o four_o and_o last_o be_v rom._n 8.1_o they_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n it_o be_v not_o their_o custom_n and_o ordinary_a practice_n to_o do_v so_o so_o can_v not_o thou_o say_v of_o thy_o sin_n no_o no_o i_o assure_v thou_o to_o sleep_v ordinary_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o sermon_n while_o as_o many_o of_o you_o use_v to_o do_v nay_o to_o sleep_n at_o all_o in_o the_o church_n without_o shame_n without_o fear_n without_o stir_v up_o yourselves_o and_o strive_v against_o it_o be_v more_o than_o a_o infirmity_n it_o be_v certain_o a_o gross_a sin_n and_o god_n will_v judge_v thou_o a_o profaner_n of_o his_o sabbath_n that_o do_v so_o though_o thou_o come_v to_o church_n never_o so_o diligent_o you_o shall_v keep_v my_o sabbath_n and_o reverence_v my_o sanctuary_n say_v the_o lord_n twice_o to_o his_o people_n levit._n 19.30.26.2_o god_n will_v never_o account_v thou_o a_o keeper_n of_o his_o sabbath_n that_o show_v no_o more_o reverend_a respect_n unto_o his_o sanctuary_n i_o tell_v thou_o there_o be_v a_o reverence_n due_a from_o the_o great_a man_n in_o the_o world_n unto_o the_o lord_n sanctuary_n in_o three_o respect_n 1._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o people_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n that_o be_v meet_v there_o to_o worship_v he_o despise_v you_o the_o church_n of_o god_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 11.22_o 2._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n who_o be_v then_o chief_o present_a with_o god_n people_n and_o have_v a_o charge_n to_o attend_v they_o when_o they_o be_v assemble_v together_o to_o worship_n god_n both_o to_o be_v as_o a_o guard_n unto_o they_o as_o also_o to_o be_v witness_n and_o observer_n of_o their_o behaviour_n then_o this_o be_v tipify_v by_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o cherubin_n that_o be_v carve_v round_o about_o upon_o the_o wall_n of_o salomon_n temple_n as_o we_o read_v 1_o king_n 6.29_o and_o more_o plain_o teach_v we_o by_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 11.10_o for_o this_o cause_n say_v he_o in_o the_o congregation_n ought_v the_o woman_n to_o have_v power_n on_o her_o head_n that_o be_v her_o veil_n which_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o her_o husband_n power_n and_o superiority_n over_o she_o because_o of_o the_o angel_n 3._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o lord_n himself_o who_o be_v in_o a_o special_a sort_n present_a there_o where_o his_o people_n be_v assemble_v to_o worship_v he_o where_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n say_v our_o saviour_n matth._n 18.20_o there_o be_o i_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o can_v thou_o then_o call_v it_o thy_o infirmity_n to_o show_v no_o more_o reverence_n in_o such_o a_o presence_n to_o sleep_v at_o a_o sermon_n ordinary_o without_o fear_n without_o shame_n when_o thou_o know_v that_o all_o these_o eye_n be_v upon_o thou_o when_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a angel_n of_o god_n yea_o the_o lord_n himself_o do_v all_o look_v upon_o thou_o and_o behold_v thou_o and_o so_o much_o shall_v serve_v to_o be_v say_v in_o reproof_n of_o that_o fault_n which_o be_v commit_v against_o the_o first_o branch_n of_o the_o commandment_n the_o second_o branch_n of_o the_o four_o commandment_n require_v we_o to_o spend_v the_o day_n so_o far_o as_o our_o bodily_a necessity_n will_v permit_v in_o holy_a and_o religious_a duty_n both_o public_a and_o private_a but_o
special_o in_o such_o as_o be_v public_a therefore_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o lord_n call_v the_o sabbath_n levit._n 23.2_o a_o holy_a convocation_n as_o if_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o as_o if_o the_o whole_a day_n be_v to_o be_v spend_v at_o church_n and_o in_o keep_v of_o holy_a assembly_n and_o indeed_o that_o place_n prove_v well_o that_o as_o much_o time_n shall_v be_v spend_v on_o that_o day_n in_o god_n public_a worship_n as_o the_o conveniency_n and_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n will_v well_o permit_v and_o for_o this_o we_o have_v the_o example_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n who_o though_o he_o be_v able_a to_o spend_v the_o day_n in_o private_a duty_n of_o piety_n a_o thousand_o time_n better_o than_o ever_o any_o other_o man_n be_v and_o though_o also_o the_o church_n assembly_n that_o he_o have_v then_o to_o go_v to_o be_v never_o a_o whit_n better_a but_o worse_a a_o great_a deal_n then_o we_o be_v yet_o it_o be_v say_v luk._n 4_o 16._o his_o custom_n be_v to_o go_v to_o the_o synagogue_n to_o the_o church_n every_o sabbath_n day_n and_o yet_o though_o as_o i_o say_v before_o our_o church_n assembly_n be_v as_o well_o frequent_v in_o this_o town_n by_o many_o as_o in_o any_o other_o place_n and_o though_o there_o be_v never_o a_o popish_a recusant_n among_o we_o yet_o shall_v you_o hardly_o find_v in_o any_o place_n more_o atheist_n recusant_n more_o that_o do_v seldom_o or_o never_o come_v to_o church_n that_o do_v so_o ordinary_o and_o constant_o serve_v the_o devil_n in_o the_o alehouse_n when_o we_o be_v serve_v god_n here_o in_o his_o house_n then_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o this_o town_n and_o for_o the_o three_o and_o last_o branch_n of_o the_o commandment_n that_o enjoin_v we_o to_o rest_v from_o all_o our_o own_o work_n upon_o the_o lord_n day_n you_o shall_v hardly_o find_v i_o believe_v such_o open_a profession_n of_o profaneness_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o sabbath_n in_o child_n and_o youth_n in_o all_o the_o country_n as_o in_o this_o town_n you_o teach_v they_o to_o keep_v the_o lord_n holy_a day_n just_a as_o yourselves_o use_v to_o keep_v these_o holy_a day_n with_o more_o misrule_n and_o riot_n than_o you_o use_v at_o any_o time_n of_o the_o year_n beside_o and_o as_o all_o the_o israelite_n do_v keep_v holy_a day_n to_o the_o golden_a calf_n of_o they_o it_o be_v say_v exod._n 32.6_o that_o they_o sit_v down_o to_o eat_v and_o to_o drink_v and_o rose_n up_o to_o play_v and_o verse_n 17._o it_o be_v say_v that_o in_o their_o sport_v and_o play_v they_o keep_v such_o a_o shout_a and_o noise_n as_o moses_n when_o he_o hear_v it_o wonder_v what_o it_o shall_v mean_v and_o sure_o among_o our_o youth_n such_o a_o shout_a and_o hollow_v may_v be_v hear_v as_o a_o man_n will_v think_v there_o be_v some_o bull_n or_o bear_n bait_v in_o our_o street_n every_o sabbath_n day_n have_v god_n threaten_v to_o burn_v that_o town_n with_o unquenchable_a fire_n where_o man_n be_v allow_v to_o do_v the_o work_n of_o their_o calling_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n day_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v out_o of_o jer._n 17.27_o and_o do_v you_o think_v he_o can_v endure_v to_o see_v his_o sabbath_n or_o any_o part_n of_o his_o sabbath_n spend_v in_o riot_v and_o disorder_n special_o so_o open_o and_o with_o so_o high_a a_o hand_n no_o no_o be_v not_o deceive_v god_n will_v not_o be_v mock_v he_o hate_v riot_v on_o the_o sabbath_n much_o more_o than_o he_o do_v work_v on_o the_o sabbath_n as_o be_v plain_a by_o esa._n 58.13_o where_o in_o one_o verse_n he_o name_v and_o forbid_v twice_o the_o follow_v of_o our_o pleasure_n as_o the_o chief_a profanation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n i_o know_v some_o of_o you_o will_v think_v this_o to_o be_v great_a indiscretion_n in_o i_o to_o preach_v thus_o against_o child_n fault_n but_o to_o these_o i_o have_v two_o thing_n to_o answer_v first_o that_o god_n make_v not_o so_o light_a account_n of_o child_n fault_n special_o not_o of_o their_o profaneness_n and_o contempt_n of_o religion_n as_o you_o do_v and_o if_o you_o do_v believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o be_v not_o atheist_n in_o heart_n when_o you_o read_v in_o 2_o king_n 2.23_o 24._o what_o befall_v the_o child_n of_o bethel_n you_o will_v be_v of_o my_o mind_n second_o in_o speak_v of_o these_o fault_n in_o the_o youth_n i_o do_v not_o so_o much_o reproove_v they_o as_o the_o profaneness_n of_o their_o parent_n and_o governor_n that_n keep_v they_o not_o in_o but_o suffer_v they_o to_o do_v so_o yea_o of_o the_o officer_n also_o that_o have_v power_n and_o authority_n to_o redress_v these_o thing_n and_o do_v nothing_o in_o it_o if_o the_o name_n of_o these_o child_n and_o servant_n be_v take_v as_o it_o be_v fit_a they_o shall_v be_v many_o of_o they_o will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o such_o parent_n servant_n of_o such_o master_n as_o will_v be_v think_v to_o be_v very_o honest_a man_n and_o good_a christian_n too_o it_o be_v the_o hypocrisy_n and_o profaneness_n of_o these_o parent_n and_o master_n that_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o their_o child_n and_o servant_n do_v so_o the_o four_o commandment_n though_o it_o do_v concern_v and_o bind_v all_o man_n yet_o be_v it_o give_v in_o charge_n chief_o to_o parent_n and_o master_n of_o family_n as_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o word_n of_o it_o exodus_fw-la 20.10_o i_o tell_v thou_o thou_o be_v to_o answer_v for_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o sabbath_n that_o be_v commit_v by_o any_o stranger_n thou_o receive_v into_o thy_o house_n and_o much_o more_o than_o for_o that_o that_o be_v do_v by_o thy_o own_o child_n and_o servant_n when_o nehemiah_n see_v how_o the_o sabbath_n be_v profane_v in_o jerusalem_n by_o buy_v and_o sell_v of_o victual_n it_o be_v say_v nehemiah_n 13.17_o he_o contend_v with_o the_o noble_n and_o governor_n of_o judah_n and_o blame_v they_o for_o it_o and_o be_v you_o sure_a god_n will_v one_o day_n contend_v with_o you_o whosoever_o you_o be_v that_o have_v authority_n and_o power_n to_o redress_v these_o thing_n and_o do_v it_o not_o he_o will_v charge_v you_o with_o all_o this_o we_o have_v hear_v of_o a_o ruler_n of_o the_o synagogue_n luke_n 13.14_o that_o can_v not_o see_v the_o people_n do_v that_o which_o he_o think_v to_o be_v a_o profanation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n without_o great_a indignation_n o_o that_o our_o magistrate_n and_o inferior_a officer_n that_o our_o parent_n and_o master_n of_o family_n have_v but_o some_o of_o his_o zeal_n for_o the_o lord_n sabbath_n that_o they_o can_v not_o without_o indignation_n see_v or_o hear_v of_o the_o profanation_n of_o it_o then_o shall_v we_o doubtless_o have_v no_o such_o buy_n and_o sell_v such_o load_n and_o travel_v no_o such_o disorder_n and_o hoot_v in_o our_o street_n no_o such_o ordinary_a absent_v from_o the_o church-assembly_n no_o such_o sleep_a and_o snort_v in_o our_o church_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n as_o we_o ordinary_o have_v lecture_n cxxxvii_o on_o psalm_n 51.7_o jan._n 5._o 1629._o it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o proceed_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o two_o last_o point_n of_o goodness_n that_o i_o tell_v you_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o some_o hypocrite_n be_v likewise_o in_o themselves_o very_o good_a thing_n and_o never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o to_o be_v mislike_v because_o they_o be_v find_v in_o some_o such_o man_n and_o for_o the_o four_o of_o they_o to_o love_v the_o sincerity_n and_o purity_n of_o god_n holy_a religion_n and_o worship_n and_o to_o hate_v idolatry_n with_o all_o false_a worship_n be_v certain_o a_o good_a thing_n and_o high_o please_v unto_o god_n for_o the_o first_o of_o these_o no_o man_n be_v to_o be_v blame_v for_o desire_v to_o see_v warrant_n in_o the_o word_n for_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v as_o a_o worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n especial_o or_o for_o be_v afraid_a to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o can_v see_v no_o warrant_n for_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o nothing_o be_v we_o so_o precise_o tie_v to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o word_n as_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n the_o charge_n that_o be_v give_v we_o deut._n 12.32_o what_o thing_n soever_o i_o command_v you_o observe_v to_o do_v it_o thou_o shall_v not_o add_v thereto_o nor_o diminish_v from_o it_o that_o be_v neither_o do_v more_o nor_o less_o than_o i_o have_v command_v that_o charge_n i_o say_v concern_v the_o matter_n of_o god_n worship_n principal_o and_o how_o high_o this_o please_v god_n when_o we_o do_v nothing_o to_o worship_v he_o by_o but_o that_o only_a that_o he_o have_v give_v we_o direction_n for_o in_o his_o word_n be_v evident_a by_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o
and_o confer_v together_o not_o against_o he_o as_o some_o translation_n read_v it_o but_o of_o he_o and_o of_o his_o doctrine_n as_o the_o most_o and_o best_a interpreter_n read_v it_o and_o the_o context_n plain_o show_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v read_v so_o 6._o last_o they_o like_v his_o ministry_n so_o well_o that_o every_o one_o call_v upon_o and_o do_v what_o he_o can_v to_o draw_v his_o friend_n and_o kinsfolk_n to_o go_v with_o he_o to_o it_o be_v it_o possible_a will_n you_o say_v that_o these_o can_v be_v hypocrite_n that_o go_v thus_o far_o yes_o very_o they_o be_v no_o better_a than_o hypocrite_n for_o all_o this_o how_o may_v that_o appear_v will_v you_o say_v by_o what_o note_n do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n discover_v they_o to_o be_v so_o sure_o by_o this_o that_o he_o say_v twice_o of_o they_o they_o hear_v thy_o word_n say_v he_o verse_n 31._o but_o they_o will_v not_o do_v they_o and_o again_o verse_n 32._o they_o hear_v thy_o word_n but_o they_o do_v they_o not_o they_o will_v not_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o word_n they_o will_v not_o obey_v nor_o practise_v what_o they_o hear_v they_o will_v not_o reform_v their_o heart_n and_o life_n by_o it_o and_o the_o lord_n instance_v in_o one_o particular_a corruption_n that_o they_o will_v not_o leave_v their_o heart_n go_v after_o their_o covetousness_n still_o say_v he_o he_o charge_v they_o not_o with_o any_o gross_a act_n or_o work_v wherein_o they_o show_v their_o covetousness_n neither_o usury_n nor_o bribery_n nor_o oppression_n nor_o extortion_n but_o with_o mental_a covetousness_n only_o because_o they_o do_v not_o practice_v what_o they_o hear_v nor_o reform_v their_o life_n according_a to_o it_o because_o the_o word_n that_o be_v so_o faithful_o preach_v unto_o they_o and_o which_o they_o do_v hear_v so_o constant_o and_o with_o such_o delight_n have_v not_o power_n to_o bridle_v and_o mortify_v the_o very_a lust_n and_o affection_n of_o their_o heart_n therefore_o they_o be_v hypocrite_n mark_v this_o belove_v and_o take_v it_o to_o heart_n every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o those_o six_o good_a thing_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v note_v in_o ezekiels_n hearer_n none_o of_o you_o go_v beyond_o they_o most_o of_o you_o come_v far_o short_a of_o they_o 1._o you_o frequent_v not_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n so_o constant_o as_o they_o do_v many_o of_o you_o that_o do_v constant_o frequent_v our_o ministry_n at_o the_o first_o while_o it_o be_v somewhat_o new_a and_o fresh_a and_o strange_a unto_o you_o like_o those_o athenian_n act_n 17.21_o be_v grow_v weary_a of_o your_o diligence_n that_o way_n your_o goodness_n as_o the_o lord_n say_v of_o ephraim_n hos._n 6.4_o be_v as_o a_o morning_n cloud_n and_o as_o the_o early_a dew_n it_o be_v go_v away_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o such_o who_o distance_n of_o place_n or_o shortness_n of_o day_n or_o foulness_n of_o weather_n and_o way_n or_o infirmity_n of_o their_o body_n do_v keep_v away_o but_o of_o such_o only_a who_o nothing_o but_o their_o decay_n of_o affection_n and_o love_n to_o the_o word_n have_v make_v so_o slack_a in_o come_v to_o it_o 2._o you_o can_v so_o well_o brook_v a_o faithful_a ministry_n that_o will_v plain_o reprove_v your_o sin_n as_o they_o will_v 3._o you_o hear_v we_o not_o with_o that_o delight_n and_o alacrity_n but_o more_o heavy_o than_o they_o do_v 4._o you_o show_v not_o that_o love_n to_o our_o person_n as_o they_o do_v to_o his_o 5._o you_o use_v not_o to_o confer_v together_o of_o that_o you_o have_v hear_v as_o they_o do_v 6._o you_o labour_v not_o to_o draw_v and_o win_v other_o to_o the_o love_n of_o the_o word_n as_o they_o do_v but_o in_o that_o brand_n and_o character_n of_o a_o hypocrite_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n set_v upon_o they_o the_o most_o of_o you_o do_v match_v they_o full_o you_o hear_v our_o word_n but_o you_o will_v not_o do_v they_o our_o ministry_n be_v of_o no_o power_n at_o all_o with_o you_o to_o reform_v either_o your_o heart_n or_o life_n many_o of_o you_o have_v by_o hear_v of_o we_o get_v store_n of_o that_o knowledge_n that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o 1_o cor._n 8.1_o of_o that_o knowledge_n that_o puff_v you_o up_o and_o make_v you_o proud_a censurer_n and_o contemner_n of_o other_o man_n and_o even_o of_o your_o teacher_n too_o you_o come_v still_o to_o our_o ministry_n not_o as_o disciple_n to_o learn_v and_o be_v guide_v by_o we_o but_o only_o as_o judge_n to_o hear_v what_o we_o can_v say_v and_o pass_v your_o censure_n upon_o we_o and_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o another_o sense_n james_n 4.11_o may_v fit_o be_v apply_v to_o sundry_a of_o our_o hearer_n thou_o be_v not_o a_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n but_o a_o judge_n none_o of_o we_o be_v good_a enough_o to_o teach_v you_o but_o you_o will_v hold_v opinion_n and_o do_v thing_n in_o your_o practice_n which_o no_o minister_n of_o god_n that_o ever_o you_o hear_v do_v approve_v of_o even_o such_o of_o you_o as_o hear_v we_o constant_o and_o praise_v our_o preach_n and_o seem_v both_o to_o love_v we_o well_o and_o to_o admire_v and_o magnify_v our_o ministry_n as_o ezekiels_n hearer_n do_v yet_o will_v you_o not_o practice_v or_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o we_o teach_v you_o i_o will_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o unreformed_a life_n of_o ordinary_a hearer_n but_o be_v it_o not_o strange_a that_o some_o of_o our_o hearer_n of_o best_a note_n shall_v be_v implacable_a and_o irreconciliable_a a_o property_n whereby_o the_o apostle_n describe_v they_o roman_n 1.31_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v up_o unto_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n and_o implacable_a towards_o who_o even_o towards_o their_o brethren_n that_o be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n and_o profession_n with_o themselves_o i_o can_v stand_v upon_o this_o or_o any_o other_o particular_a wherein_o our_o hearer_n declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v like_o ezekiels_n hearer_n they_o hear_v our_o word_n but_o they_o will_v not_o do_v they_o but_o this_o i_o affirm_v confident_o unto_o you_o all_o that_o you_o can_v never_o get_v assurance_n that_o you_o have_v upright_a heart_n that_o you_o be_v any_o better_a than_o hypocrite_n till_o you_o can_v find_v that_o every_o truth_n that_o you_o hear_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n have_v a_o divine_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o your_o heart_n and_o though_o you_o be_v not_o able_a in_o all_o thing_n to_o do_v as_o you_o be_v teach_v but_o notwithstanding_o you_o have_v be_v constant_a hearer_n of_o the_o word_n a_o long_a time_n yet_o there_o remain_v a_o deal_n of_o corruption_n still_o in_o you_o that_o you_o can_v mortify_v and_o subdue_v yet_o you_o dare_v not_o resist_v any_o truth_n that_o you_o hear_v but_o you_o yield_v unto_o it_o make_v conscience_n of_o it_o desire_n and_o endeavour_v to_o obey_v it_o and_o put_v it_o in_o practice_n david_n comfort_v himself_o in_o this_o testimony_n of_o his_o uprightness_n psalm_n 119.161_o his_o heart_n stand_v in_o awe_n of_o god_n word_n he_o dare_v not_o do_v any_o thing_n against_o it_o and_o paul_n commend_v the_o thessalonian_n for_o this_o 1_o thessalonian_n 1.5_o that_o his_o gospel_n and_o ministry_n come_v unto_o they_o not_o in_o word_n only_o but_o in_o power_n and_o 1_o thessalonian_n 2.13_o that_o it_o wrought_v effectual_o in_o they_o and_o he_o say_v of_o they_o 2_o thessalonian_n 3.4_o that_o he_o be_v confident_a in_o the_o lord_n concern_v they_o that_o they_o both_o do_v and_o will_v do_v the_o thing_n that_o he_o command_v they_o nay_o he_o say_v express_o two_o corinthian_n 2.9_o that_o herein_o stand_v the_o trial_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a and_o sound-hearted_n hearer_n to_o this_o end_n also_o say_v he_o do_v i_o write_v as_o i_o do_v and_o reprooved_a you_o so_o sharp_o for_o your_o connivance_n towards_o the_o incestuous_a person_n that_o i_o may_v know_v the_o proof_n of_o you_o whether_o you_o be_v obedient_a in_o all_o thing_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v he_o be_v no_o true-hearted_a hearer_n nor_o sound_n christian_n that_o will_v not_o be_v obedient_a to_o his_o teacher_n in_o all_o thing_n true_o will_v you_o say_v they_o who_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n do_v teach_v be_v bind_v to_o obey_v they_o in_o all_o thing_n object_n because_o they_o can_v not_o err_v in_o their_o ministry_n but_o must_v we_o therefore_o obey_v you_o in_o all_o thing_n who_o we_o know_v may_v be_v miscarry_v in_o your_o ministry_n sometime_o through_o want_n of_o judgement_n sometime_o through_o passion_n i_o answer_v answ._n no_o very_o thou_o must_v not_o obey_v we_o any_o further_a than_o we_o bring_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o every_o thing_n that_o we_o teach_v you_o to_o do_v or_o to_o leave_v
in_o sing_v of_o psalm_n we_o must_v look_v to_o this_o we_o must_v sing_v unto_o the_o lord_n ephesian_n 5.19_o we_o must_v make_v a_o melody_n in_o our_o heart_n to_o the_o lord_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v we_o seek_v in_o that_o duty_n not_o to_o please_v ourselves_o or_o other_o but_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o of_o preach_v and_o of_o sing_v of_o psalm_n must_v be_v understand_v likewise_o of_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o of_o prayer_n and_o of_o every_o other_o good_a duty_n we_o perform_v either_o of_o the_o first_o or_o second_o table_n if_o our_o heart_n be_v upright_o we_o must_v do_v it_o as_o unto_o the_o lord_n the_o main_a intent_n and_o purpose_n of_o our_o heart_n in_o do_v of_o it_o must_v be_v to_o please_v the_o lord_n and_o approve_v ourselves_o unto_o he_o so_o the_o apostle_n tell_v servant_n that_o in_o do_v their_o service_n unto_o their_o master_n ephesian_n 6.5_o 7._o they_o must_v do_v it_o as_o to_o christ_n as_o unto_o the_o lord_n and_o verse_n 9_o he_o tell_v master_n they_o must_v do_v the_o same_o thing_n unto_o their_o servant_n a_o strange_a speech_n but_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o they_o also_o in_o their_o carriage_n towards_o their_o servant_n in_o do_v the_o duty_n of_o master_n must_v do_v it_o as_o unto_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v both_o the_o servant_n and_o master_n care_v in_o their_o mutual_a duty_n one_o to_o another_o must_v chief_o be_v this_o to_o please_v and_o approve_v themselves_o unto_o god_n in_o a_o word_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o himself_o and_o of_o all_o the_o faithful_a 2_o corinthian_n 5.9_o wherefore_o we_o labour_v say_v he_o that_o whether_o present_a or_o absent_a we_o may_v be_v accept_v of_o he_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v this_o be_v our_o main_a study_n and_o endeavour_v that_o while_n we_o live_v and_o when_o we_o die_v we_o may_v please_v and_o be_v accept_v of_o he_o he_o that_o can_v find_v this_o in_o himself_o may_v be_v certain_a that_o he_o be_v no_o hypocrite_n that_o his_o heart_n be_v upright_o within_o he_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n the_o apostle_n give_v roman_n 14.6_o why_o the_o faithful_a shall_v not_o judge_v one_o another_o for_o indifferent_a thing_n he_o that_o regard_v a_o day_n regard_v it_o unto_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o that_o regard_v not_o a_o day_n to_o the_o lord_n he_o do_v not_o regard_v it_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v both_o he_o that_o observe_v the_o ceremonial_a law_n in_o that_o point_n and_o he_o that_o observe_v it_o not_o do_v it_o not_o out_o of_o any_o carnal_a or_o worldly_a respect_n but_o out_o of_o a_o care_n he_o have_v to_o please_v god_n and_o fear_n to_o offend_v he_o therefore_o you_o may_v not_o judge_v he_o to_o be_v a_o hypocrite_n therefore_o he_o have_v a_o upright_a heart_n he_o that_o find_v this_o in_o himself_o may_v have_v comfort_n in_o his_o own_o estate_n and_o none_o but_o he_o neither_o can_v any_o man_n find_v this_o in_o himself_o that_o the_o main_a end_n he_o aim_v at_o in_o every_o good_a thing_n he_o do_v be_v to_o please_v god_n unless_o he_o do_v that_o which_o he_o do_v out_o of_o love_n unto_o god_n if_o any_o man_n love_n god_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o corinthian_n 8.3_o the_o same_o be_v know_v of_o he_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v the_o lord_n approve_v and_o high_o esteem_v of_o that_o man_n no_o good_a thing_n that_o we_o do_v can_v please_v god_n unless_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o love_n we_o do_v bear_v in_o our_o heart_n unto_o he_o he_o keep_v covenant_n and_o mercy_n say_v moses_n deut._n 7.9_o with_o they_o that_o love_v he_o and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n first_o we_o must_v love_v he_o before_o we_o can_v keep_v any_o of_o his_o commandment_n so_o as_o we_o may_v please_v he_o therein_o neither_o can_v any_o man_n true_o love_v the_o lord_n nor_o do_v any_o good_a thing_n out_o of_o love_n to_o he_o till_o he_o first_o know_v that_o god_n love_v he_o in_o christ._n herein_o be_v love_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o john_n 4.10_o not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n but_o that_o he_o love_v we_o and_o send_v his_o son_n to_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o thus_o you_o have_v hear_v it_o sufficient_o confirm_v unto_o you_o that_o though_o there_o be_v many_o good_a thing_n in_o some_o hypocrite_n yet_o because_o they_o be_v not_o in_o christ_n they_o have_v no_o assurance_n of_o their_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n through_o his_o blood_n therefore_o they_o can_v have_v no_o true_a comfort_n in_o they_o let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o three_o part_n i_o instance_a in_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o regenerate_a themselves_o in_o every_o regenerate_a man_n there_o be_v true_a goodness_n indeed_o and_o that_o that_o far_o surpass_v any_o goodness_n that_o ever_o be_v find_v in_o any_o moral_a man_n or_o in_o a_o hypocrite_n three_o notable_a difference_n you_o may_v observe_v between_o they_o first_o though_o they_o may_v do_v many_o good_a thing_n in_o themselves_o yet_o of_o they_o it_o can_v never_o be_v say_v that_o they_o be_v good_a man_n but_o of_o the_o regenerate_v though_o they_o themselves_o be_v apt_a to_o think_v they_o be_v no_o better_a than_o hypocrite_n and_o mere_a natural_a man_n nor_o so_o good_a neither_o as_o some_o of_o they_o yet_o the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v testimony_n of_o they_o that_o they_o be_v good_a man_n of_o barnabas_n it_o be_v say_v act._n 11.24_o that_o he_o be_v a_o good_a man_n do_v good_a say_v david_n ps._n 125.4_o o_o lord_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v good_a and_o to_o they_o that_o be_v upright_o in_o their_o heart_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v every_o upright_a heart_a man_n be_v a_o good_a man_n second_o though_o the_o other_o two_o may_v do_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v good_a in_o themselves_o and_o such_o as_o god_n be_v please_v with_o and_o oft_o reward_v they_o for_o yet_o be_v he_o never_o a_o whit_n the_o better_o please_v with_o they_o for_o they_o but_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o only_o well_o please_v with_o the_o goodness_n that_o be_v in_o the_o regenerate_a but_o he_o be_v please_v with_o they_o and_o love_v they_o the_o better_a for_o it_o the_o lord_n take_v pleasure_n in_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o psal._n 147.11_o such_o as_o be_v upright_o in_o their_o way_n be_v his_o delight_n say_v solomon_n pro._n 11.20_o three_o whereas_o the_o other_o two_o though_o they_o may_v do_v many_o good_a thing_n yet_o can_v take_v no_o sound_a comfort_n in_o any_o of_o they_o as_o we_o have_v hear_v the_o regenerate_a may_v take_v much_o comfort_n in_o that_o goodness_n that_o truth_n of_o grace_n that_o they_o find_v in_o themselves_o so_o do_v paul_n in_o his_o great_a affliction_n our_o rejoice_v be_v this_o say_v he_o 2_o cor._n 1.12_o even_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n so_o do_v hezekiah_n even_o then_o when_o he_o think_v he_o shall_v die_v esa._n 38.3_o remember_v now_o o_o lord_n god_n i_o beseech_v thou_o say_v he_o how_o i_o have_v walk_v before_o thou_o in_o truth_n and_o with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n and_o have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v good_a in_o thy_o sight_n but_o though_o all_o this_o be_v so_o yet_o can_v not_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n take_v any_o comfort_n at_o all_o in_o any_o goodness_n that_o be_v in_o they_o be_v it_o not_o for_o this_o that_o they_o know_v themselves_o to_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o reconcile_v unto_o god_n by_o his_o blood_n god_n forbid_v say_v the_o apostle_n gal._n 6.14_o that_o i_o shall_v glory_n save_v in_o the_o cross_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n make_v this_o sure_a to_o thyself_o belove_v that_o christ_n be_v thou_o and_o then_o may_v thou_o find_v sound_a comfort_n in_o that_o goodness_n that_o god_n have_v wrought_v in_o thou_o but_o it_o be_v but_o cold_a comfort_n thou_o can_v have_v in_o any_o good_a thing_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o or_o do_v by_o thou_o till_o thou_o know_v thyself_o to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n by_o christ_n rest_v not_o in_o it_o trust_v not_o to_o it_o for_o alas_o all_o our_o righteousness_n be_v as_o filthy_a rag_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v esa._n 64.6_o and_o if_o our_o highpriest_n do_v not_o bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o our_o holy_a thing_n as_o aaron_n do_v exodus_fw-la 28.38_o our_o holy_a duty_n can_v never_o be_v accept_v of_o god_n but_o will_v be_v most_o loathsome_a unto_o he_o all_o our_o most_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o pet._n 2.5_o and_o through_o he_o alone_o lecture_n cxl_o on_o psalm_n 51.7_o february_n 16._o 1629._o 4_o it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o
speech_n of_o the_o apostle_n unto_o christ_n luk._n 17.5_o where_o when_o they_o have_v hear_v our_o saviour_n teach_v if_o a_o brother_n trespass_n against_o we_o seven_o time_n in_o one_o day_n and_o what_o hope_n will_v you_o say_v can_v a_o man_n have_v of_o such_o a_o one_o yet_o upon_o profession_n of_o his_o repentance_n we_o must_v forgive_v he_o and_o when_o they_o hear_v he_o press_v this_o with_o such_o earnestness_n as_o verse_n 3._o he_o do_v take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o know_v well_o how_o hear_v and_o difficult_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n that_o i_o shall_v now_o require_v of_o you_o but_o take_v heed_n you_o do_v so_o your_o case_n be_v woeful_a if_o you_o do_v not_o this_o the_o apostle_n all_o of_o they_o with_o one_o voice_n cry_v unto_o christ_n lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n as_o if_o they_o have_v say_v he_o have_v need_n have_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o faith_n that_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o do_v this_o and_o yet_o lord_n if_o thou_o will_v be_v please_v to_o increase_v our_o faith_n we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o why_o how_o can_v a_o man_n faith_n help_v he_o in_o this_o case_n sure_o two_o way_n first_o if_o a_o man_n will_v stir_v up_o and_o exercise_v his_o faith_n by_o consider_v what_o the_o lord_n for_o christ_n sake_n have_v do_v for_o he_o how_o he_o have_v forgive_v he_o a_o debt_n of_o ten_o thousand_o talent_n and_o how_o apt_a he_o be_v still_o upon_o his_o repentance_n to_o forgive_v he_o though_o he_o trespass_n against_o he_o more_o than_o seven_o time_n every_o day_n this_o will_v make_v a_o man_n able_a and_o willing_a to_o forgive_v his_o brother_n upon_o his_o repentance_n any_o wrong_n whatsoever_o which_o be_v but_o as_o a_o debt_n of_o a_o hundred_o penny_n in_o comparison_n of_o that_o which_o god_n have_v forgive_v he_o and_o make_v he_o say_v to_o his_o own_o heart_n as_o we_o read_v matth._n 18.33_o the_o wicked_a servant_n shall_v have_v say_v shall_v not_o i_o have_v compassion_n of_o my_o fellow_n servant_n even_o as_o the_o lord_n have_v have_v pity_n on_o i_o therefore_o the_o consideration_n of_o that_o which_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n have_v do_v for_o we_o be_v also_o use_v by_o the_o apostle_n col._n 3.13_o as_o the_o strong_a motive_n to_o make_v we_o willing_a to_o forgive_v wrong_n second_o if_o a_o man_n will_v make_v claim_n to_o that_o promise_n that_o he_o be_v in_o christ_n have_v just_a title_n to_o which_o we_o find_v make_v esa._n 11.6_o 9_o to_o all_o the_o subject_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n the_o wolf_n shall_v dwell_v with_o the_o lamb_n etc._n etc._n they_o shall_v not_o hurt_v nor_o destroy_v in_o all_o my_o holy_a mountain_n the_o effect_n of_o which_o promise_n be_v this_o that_o all_o that_o belong_v to_o christ_n kingdom_n shall_v have_v the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n give_v unto_o they_o and_o though_o they_o be_v by_o nature_n like_o wolf_n and_o leopard_n and_o lion_n and_o bear_n and_o asp_n and_o cockatrice_n that_o be_v fierce_a and_o cruel_a apt_a to_o do_v hurt_v and_o mischief_n when_o once_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n their_o nature_n shall_v be_v quite_o change_v all_o bitterness_n of_o spirit_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o they_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o desire_n to_o hurt_v to_o be_v revenge_v of_o any_o that_o have_v do_v they_o wrong_n if_o i_o say_v a_o christian_n that_o find_v himself_o trouble_v with_o maliciousness_n and_o bitterness_n of_o spirit_n will_v in_o humble_a and_o faithful_a prayer_n make_v claim_n to_o this_o promise_n and_o challenge_v it_o at_o god_n hand_n doubtless_o he_o may_v have_v more_o power_n over_o that_o corruption_n than_o he_o have_v a_o three_o corruption_n that_o trouble_v much_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v slavish_a fear_n which_o be_v indeed_o one_o of_o the_o great_a torment_n of_o the_o heart_n that_o can_v be_v fear_n have_v torment_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o john_n 4.18_o and_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o one_o corruption_n that_o the_o dear_a of_o god_n servant_n be_v more_o subject_a to_o then_o to_o this_o slavish_a and_o distrustful_a fear_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o lord_n esa._n 35.4_o call_v they_o such_o as_o be_v of_o a_o fearful_a heart_n and_o upbraid_v they_o with_o this_o as_o with_o a_o great_a sin_n esa._n 51.13_o thou_o have_v fear_v continual_o every_o day_n because_o of_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o oppressor_n as_o if_o he_o be_v even_o ready_a to_o destroy_v if_o they_o hear_v of_o any_o trouble_n approach_v of_o any_o practice_n of_o the_o enemy_n either_o at_o home_n or_o abroad_o their_o heart_n be_v surprise_v with_o strange_a fear_n continual_o every_o day_n as_o if_o the_o enemy_n be_v already_o enter_v into_o their_o house_n and_o ready_a to_o cut_v their_o throat_n alas_o my_o weakness_n be_v such_o say_v this_o poor_a soul_n as_o i_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o abide_v such_o a_o trial_n i_o shall_v be_v apt_a to_o deny_v god_n or_o do_v any_o thing_n when_o such_o a_o day_n come_v this_o be_v too_o true_a and_o this_o be_v my_o very_a case_n will_v many_o a_o one_o of_o you_o say_v and_o i_o know_v it_o be_v my_o great_a sin_n to_o be_v so_o fearful_a as_o i_o be_o but_o how_o shall_v i_o help_v it_o how_o may_v i_o be_v able_a to_o mortify_v and_o subdue_v this_o corruption_n i_o answer_v get_v assurance_n by_o faith_n that_o thou_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n in_o christ_n that_o thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o and_o that_o will_v free_v thou_o from_o thy_o fear_n and_o make_v thou_o strong_a against_o they_o see_v a_o experiment_n of_o this_o in_o they_o that_o endure_v as_o great_a trial_n as_o thou_o shall_v ever_o endure_v and_o feel_v themselves_o before_o their_o trial_n as_o fearful_a and_o weak_a every_o whit_n as_o thou_o be_v i_o mean_v they_o that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o hebr._n 11.33_o 37._o observe_v these_o four_o thing_n distinct_o in_o that_o example_n first_o how_o great_a their_o trial_n be_v verse_n 37._o they_o be_v stone_v saw_v asunder_o tempt_v they_o be_v slay_v with_o the_o sword_n they_o wander_v about_o in_o sheepskin_n and_o goatskin_n be_v destitute_a afflict_a torment_v be_v it_o possible_a that_o thou_o can_v ever_o be_v bring_v to_o great_a trial_n than_o they_o be_v second_o how_o strong_a and_o resolute_a how_o void_a of_o fear_n they_o be_v even_o in_o this_o fiery_a trial_n vers._n 35._o not_o accept_v deliverance_n they_o have_v deliverance_n and_o peace_n and_o freedom_n from_o all_o these_o misery_n offer_v they_o upon_o condition_n that_o they_o will_v yield_v a_o little_a and_o forsake_v their_o religion_n but_o they_o will_v not_o accept_v of_o it_o three_o consider_v how_o weak_a and_o fearful_a they_o have_v be_v before_o the_o very_a time_n that_o they_o come_v to_o this_o trial_n vers._n 34._o out_o of_o weakness_n they_o be_v make_v strong_a four_o last_o what_o it_o be_v that_o make_v they_o thus_o strong_a vers._n 33._o through_o faith_n they_o attain_v to_o this_o strength_n the_o assurance_n they_o have_v of_o their_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n be_v that_o that_o make_v they_o overcome_v their_o fearfulness_n and_o become_v so_o strong_a and_o no_o marvel_n for_o all_o the_o faithful_a in_o this_o case_n have_v these_o promise_n of_o god_n to_o rest_v upon_o 1._o that_o god_n will_v certain_o have_v a_o eye_n to_o they_o and_o a_o care_n of_o they_o in_o the_o worst_a time_n that_o can_v come_v when_o he_o make_v inquisition_n for_o blood_n say_v david_n psal._n 9.12_o when_o he_o come_v to_o visit_v a_o land_n for_o the_o murder_n and_o other_o horrible_a sin_n commit_v in_o it_o he_o remember_v they_o and_o 116.15_o precious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o death_n of_o his_o saint_n he_o make_v precious_a account_n of_o they_o the_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n be_v number_v as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v matth._n 10.30_o and_o therefore_o much_o more_o their_o life_n they_o shall_v not_o lose_v their_o life_n unless_o god_n shall_v see_v that_o will_v be_v most_o for_o his_o glory_n and_o their_o good_a 2._o the_o lord_n will_v certain_o proportion_v their_o trial_n to_o their_o strength_n and_o as_o their_o trial_n shall_v increase_v so_o shall_v their_o strength_n increase_v to_o bear_v and_o get_v through_o with_o they_o the_o lord_n will_v give_v strength_n unto_o his_o people_n say_v the_o prophet_n psal._n 29.11_o fear_v thou_o not_o for_o i_o be_o with_o thou_o say_v the_o lord_n esa._n 41.10_o be_v not_o dismay_v for_o i_o be_o thy_o god_n i_o will_v strengthen_v thou_o yea_o i_o will_v help_v thou_o yea_o i_o will_v uphold_v thou_o with_o the_o
he_o have_v offend_v he_o as_o the_o thing_n that_o make_v the_o servant_n of_o benhadad_n seek_v unto_o ahab_n 1_o king_n 20.31_o with_o sackcloth_n upon_o their_o loin_n and_o rope_n about_o their_o neck_n whereby_o they_o profess_v their_o sorrow_n for_o offend_v he_o and_o that_o they_o be_v worthy_a to_o die_v for_o it_o be_v this_o only_a thing_n that_o they_o have_v hear_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n be_v merciful_a king_n this_o be_v the_o motive_n that_o good_a hezekiah_n use_v to_o persuade_v israel_n unto_o repentance_n 2_o chron._n 30.6_o turn_v again_o unto_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o israel_n he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o covenant_n god_n have_v make_v with_o their_o father_n and_o he_o will_v return_v unto_o you_o and_o that_o also_o which_o the_o prophet_n use_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n esa._n 55.7_o let_v the_o wicked_a forsake_v his_o way_n and_o the_o unrighteous_a man_n the_o man_n of_o iniquity_n the_o worst_a man_n that_o be_v his_o thought_n and_o return_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n upon_o he_o and_o to_o our_o god_n for_o he_o will_v abundant_o pardon_v thus_o do_v the_o apostle_n likewise_o james_n 4.8_o persuade_v unto_o repentance_n draw_v nigh_o to_o god_n and_o he_o will_v draw_v nigh_o unto_o you_o and_o to_o conclude_v this_o be_v the_o main_a thing_n that_o draw_v the_o prodigal_a unto_o repentance_n even_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o fatherly_a affection_n that_o he_o know_v remain_v in_o his_o father_n towards_o he_o though_o he_o have_v so_o heinous_o offend_v he_o as_o we_o may_v perceive_v by_o his_o word_n luke_o 15.18_o i_o will_v arise_v say_v he_o and_o go_v to_o my_o father_n and_o say_v to_o he_o father_n i_o have_v sin_v against_o heaven_n and_o before_o thou_o and_o be_o no_o more_o worthy_a to_o be_v call_v thy_o son_n and_o certain_o if_o the_o vile_a sinner_n among_o you_o all_o can_v thus_o be_v persuade_v of_o god_n merciful_a disposition_n and_o readiness_n to_o forgive_v you_o upon_o your_o repentance_n you_o will_v come_v in_o and_o not_o stand_v out_o in_o rebellion_n against_o he_o as_o you_o do_v the_o second_o grace_n wherein_o the_o force_n of_o faith_n appear_v be_v the_o true_a fear_n of_o god_n what_o be_v it_o that_o have_v most_o force_n to_o make_v god_n child_n when_o he_o be_v once_o reconcile_v to_o god_n afraid_a to_o offend_v he_o again_o i_o know_v well_o that_o the_o consideration_n of_o god_n severity_n and_o power_n have_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v great_a force_n and_o power_n in_o the_o heart_n to_o restrain_v a_o man_n from_o sin_n for_o so_o our_o saviour_n teach_v luk._n 12.5_o fe●re_v he_o which_o after_o he_o have_v kill_v have_v power_n to_o cast_v into_o hell_n yea_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o fear_v he_o but_o the_o apprehension_n and_o persuasion_n a_o man_n have_v of_o god_n mercy_n and_o goodness_n towards_o he_o in_o christ_n be_v much_o more_o effectual_a to_o make_v a_o man_n afraid_a to_o offend_v god_n and_o all_o fear_n that_o be_v wrought_v without_o this_o be_v but_o a_o slavish_a torment_a fear_n fear_n have_v torment_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o joh._n 4.18_o it_o be_v not_o a_o childlike_a and_o save_a fear_n there_o be_v forgiveness_n with_o thou_o say_v david_n ps._n 130.4_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v fear_v and_o hos._n 3.5_o they_o shall_v fear_v the_o lord_n and_o his_o goodness_n in_o the_o latter_a day_n and_o certain_o belove_v if_o you_o be_v any_o of_o you_o by_o a_o lively_a faith_n assure_v of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o your_o sin_n and_o of_o god_n marvellous_a goodness_n towards_o you_o in_o christ_n you_o will_v be_v much_o more_o fearful_a to_o offend_v he_o than_o the_o most_o of_o you_o be_v three_o the_o three_o grace_n wherein_o this_o power_n of_o faith_n appear_v be_v obedience_n nothing_o be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o man_n willing_a and_o ready_a to_o be_v rule_v by_o god_n in_o all_o thing_n to_o yield_v hearty_a and_o constant_a obedience_n unto_o he_o till_o he_o by_o faith_n be_v assure_v of_o god_n love_n to_o he_o in_o christ._n the_o terror_n of_o the_o law_n may_v like_o that_o hedge_n of_o thorn_n that_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o hos._n 2.6_o be_v able_a to_o stop_v a_o man_n from_o go_v on_o in_o a_o evil_a way_n but_o a_o willing_a obedience_n shall_v a_o man_n never_o be_v able_a to_o yield_v unto_o god_n till_o he_o have_v faith_n when_o david_n psal._n 26.1_o 2._o make_v profession_n of_o his_o integrity_n even_o unto_o god_n and_o comfort_v himself_o against_o the_o malice_n of_o his_o enemy_n by_o that_o testimony_n that_o his_o conscience_n give_v he_o that_o he_o have_v walk_v in_o his_o integrity_n he_o have_v walk_v in_o god_n truth_n his_o honest_a and_o good_a meaning_n he_o know_v will_v have_v yield_v he_o small_a comfort_n 〈◊〉_d have_v not_o guide_v his_o say_v by_o the_o direction_n of_o god_n word_n nay_o he_o 〈◊〉_d god_n to_o examine_v and_o try_v he_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o so_o he_o give_v verse_n 3._o this_o for_o the_o reason_n and_o cause_n of_o this_o care_n he_o have_v to_o walk_v upright_o and_o to_o follow_v the_o direction_n of_o the_o word_n in_o all_o thing_n for_o thy_o love_a kindness_n say_v he_o be_v before_o my_o eye_n nothing_o have_v that_o force_n to_o make_v a_o man_n upright_o and_o constant_a in_o a_o christian_a course_n as_o the_o knowledge_n and_o consideration_n of_o the_o mercy_n and_o love_a kindness_n of_o god_n towards_o he_o in_o jesus_n christ._n i_o delight_v to_o do_v thy_o will_n o_o my_o god_n say_v david_n psalm_n 40.8_o and_o thy_o law_n be_v within_o my_o heart_n till_o a_o man_n know_v god_n to_o be_v his_o god_n reconcile_v unto_o he_o in_o christ_n he_o will_v never_o delight_v to_o do_v his_o will_n his_o law_n will_v not_o be_v in_o his_o heart_n he_o will_v never_o hearty_o affect_v it_o it_o be_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n that_o constrain_a paul_n to_o do_v he_o so_o diligent_a and_o faithful_a service_n in_o his_o ministry_n as_o he_o do_v 2_o corinthinas_fw-la 5.14_o the_o assurance_n he_o have_v of_o christ_n marvellous_a love_n to_o he_o in_o die_v for_o he_o make_v he_o force_v himself_o to_o do_v he_o the_o uttermost_a service_n he_o be_v able_a and_o to_o think_v he_o can_v never_o do_v he_o service_n enough_o and_o where_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o marvellous_a obedience_n of_o abraham_n to_o every_o thing_n that_o god_n command_v when_o god_n bid_v he_o get_v he_o out_o of_o his_o own_o country_n and_o from_o his_o kindred_n and_o come_v into_o a_o land_n which_o he_o will_v show_v he_o he_o leave_v all_o present_o when_o god_n ●ad_v he_o circumcise_v himself_o and_o every_o male_a that_o be_v in_o his_o family_n he_o do_v present_o upon_o the_o selfsame_o day_n though_o himself_o be_v then_o ninety_o nine_o year_n old_a gen._n 17.23_o 24._o and_o he_o have_v in_o his_o house_n three_o hundred_o and_o eighteen_o valiant_a man_n at_o that_o time_n gen._n 14.14_o when_o god_n bid_v he_o cast_v out_o he_o son_n ishmael_n out_o of_o his_o house_n though_o he_o love_v he_o dear_o yet_o he_o do_v immediate_o gen._n 21.14_o nay_o when_o god_n bid_v he_o sacrifice_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n his_o son_n isaac_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v in_o isaac_n shall_v thy_o seed_n be_v call_v as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v hebrew_n 11.18_o yet_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o do_v it_o and_o that_o present_o too_o as_o you_o may_v see_v gen_n 22.3_o but_o what_o be_v it_o that_o make_v abraham_n so_o obedient_a to_o god_n in_o all_o thing_n even_o in_o such_o hard_a commandment_n as_o these_o be_v sure_o say_v the_o apostle_n hebrew_n 11.8_o 17._o he_o do_v all_o these_o by_o faith_n he_o know_v god_n be_v his_o god_n and_o his_o exceed_a great_a reward_n as_o he_o promise_v to_o be_v gen._n 15.1_o he_o be_v strong_a in_o faith_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v roman_n 4.20_o and_o therefore_o be_v so_o ready_a and_o cheerful_a in_o his_o obedience_n unto_o god_n certain_o it_o be_v our_o want_n of_o faith_n belove_v that_o make_v every_o commandment_n of_o god_n so_o grievous_a unto_o we_o if_o we_o have_v more_o faith_n and_o assurance_n of_o god_n favour_n in_o christ_n we_o can_v not_o be_v so_o slack_a and_o backward_o in_o our_o obedience_n as_o we_o be_v the_o four_o and_o last_o grace_n that_o i_o will_v instance_n in_o be_v our_o love_n unto_o god_n no_o man_n can_v true_o love_v the_o lord_n till_o he_o be_v first_o by_o faith_n assure_v of_o god_n love_n to_o he_o in_o christ._n we_o love_v he_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o john_n 4.19_o because_o he_o first_o love_v we_o and_o when_o once_o a_o man_n be_v assure_v by_o
see_v what_o for_o all_o man_n may_v we_o pray_v for_o profess_a idolater_n and_o enemy_n to_o the_o religion_n of_o god_n yes_o even_o for_o idolater_n and_o enemy_n to_o the_o gospel_n and_o for_o worse_a than_o they_o too_o if_o worse_a can_v be_v we_o may_v pray_v for_o any_o wicked_a man_n except_v he_o only_o that_o have_v commit_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n there_o be_v a_o sin_n unto_o death_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o joh._n 5.16_o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o any_o man_n shall_v pray_v for_o it_o that_o be_v for_o the_o pardon_n of_o that_o sin_n but_o that_o sin_n no_o blind_a idolater_n certain_o special_o none_o that_o have_v be_v bear_v and_o breed_v in_o idolatry_n can_v possible_o have_v commit_v moses_n be_v require_v so_o to_o do_v pray_v even_o for_o pharaoh_n yea_o he_o pray_v oft_o for_o he_o as_o we_o may_v read_v exodus_fw-la 8.12.30_o &_o 9.33_o &_o 10.18_o so_o do_v the_o man_n of_o god_n also_o for_o jeroboam_fw-la a_o gross_a idolater_n 1_o king_n 13.6_o and_o stephen_n of_o his_o own_o accord_n though_o he_o be_v not_o require_v to_o do_v it_o pray_v for_o they_o that_o stone_v he_o act_v 7.60_o say_v i_o we_o may_v pray_v for_o idolater_n nay_o we_o must_v pray_v for_o they_o special_o if_o they_o be_v such_o as_o god_n have_v place_v in_o any_o degree_n of_o pre-eminence_n over_o we_o we_o sin_n if_o we_o do_v it_o not_o see_v two_o express_a commandment_n of_o god_n for_o this_o one_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n another_o in_o the_o new_a what_o more_o gross_a idolater_n be_v there_o ever_o in_o the_o world_n both_o for_o prince_n and_o subject_n than_o the_o babylonian_n be_v at_o that_o time_n when_o god_n people_n live_v in_o captivity_n under_o they_o yet_o be_v they_o express_o command_v to_o pray_v even_o for_o they_o jer._n 29.7_o seek_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o city_n say_v the_o lord_n whither_o i_o have_v cause_v you_o to_o be_v carry_v away_o captive_n and_o pray_v unto_o the_o lord_n for_o it_o and_o be_v there_o ever_o more_o foul_a idolater_n than_o the_o roman_a emperor_n be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o yet_o god_n give_v a_o express_a commandment_n 1_o timothy_n 2.1_o that_o in_o all_o churchmeeting_n there_o shall_v be_v first_o and_o principal_a care_n take_v for_o this_o that_o supplication_n prayer_n intercession_n and_o give_v of_o thanks_n may_v be_v make_v as_o for_o all_o other_o man_n so_o special_o for_o king_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n three_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o this_o commandment_n first_o that_o whereas_o the_o former_a commandment_n seem_v to_o reach_v no_o further_o than_o unto_o temporal_a blessing_n that_o god_n people_n be_v to_o beg_v of_o god_n for_o babylon_n as_o do_v also_o moses_n his_o prayer_n for_o pharaoh_n and_o that_o of_o the_o man_n of_o god_n for_o jeroboam_fw-la in_o this_o we_o be_v charge_v to_o pray_v for_o the_o conversion_n of_o idolatrous_a prince_n and_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o they_o second_o that_o this_o be_v give_v for_o a_o reason_n why_o we_o shall_v pray_v for_o they_o that_o we_o may_v live_v a_o quiet_a and_o a_o peaceable_a life_n in_o all_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v if_o god_n people_n can_v by_o their_o prayer_n prevail_v for_o the_o conversion_n of_o such_o as_o be_v in_o authority_n these_o three_o benefit_n will_v be_v obtain_v by_o it_o first_o the_o church_n shall_v enjoy_v more_o peace_n by_o this_o mean_n second_o honesty_n that_o be_v justice_n and_o equity_n and_o fidelity_n in_o the_o civil_a conversation_n of_o man_n will_v be_v the_o better_o preserve_v three_o godliness_n true_a piety_n and_o religion_n will_v prosper_v the_o better_a by_o this_o mean_n when_o king_n and_o queen_n be_v convert_v they_o will_v become_v nurse_v father_n and_o nurse_n mother_n to_o the_o church_n as_o the_o lord_n promise_v esa._n 49.23_o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v bind_v first_o of_o all_o and_o above_o all_o other_o to_o pray_v hearty_o to_o god_n for_o their_o conversion_n three_o last_o another_o reason_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v which_o the_o apostle_n give_v for_o this_o vers._n 3_o 4._o for_o this_o be_v good_a and_o acceptable_a say_v he_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n who_o will_v have_v all_o man_n that_o be_v of_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n gentile_n as_o well_o as_o jew_n king_n and_o prince_n as_o well_o as_o man_n of_o mean_a condition_n though_o this_o may_v seem_v never_o so_o unlikely_a a_o thing_n unto_o you_o because_o you_o see_v none_o such_o convert_v hitherto_o yet_o be_v not_o out_o of_o hope_n of_o it_o god_n will_v have_v of_o they_o also_o some_o to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v these_o prince_n as_o bad_a as_o they_o be_v now_o may_v belong_v to_o god_n election_n for_o aught_o you_o know_v and_o certain_o some_o such_o as_o they_o be_v heathen_a and_o idolatrous_a prince_n be_v in_o god_n eternal_a counsel_n ordain_v to_o salvation_n and_o who_o know_v whether_o you_o prayer_n be_v not_o also_o ordain_v to_o be_v the_o mean_n whereby_o it_o shall_v be_v procure_v therefore_o pray_v for_o they_o say_v he_o and_o out_o of_o doubt_n there_o be_v great_a cause_n to_o hope_v that_o our_o superior_n who_o be_v yet_o in_o error_n may_v be_v soon_o reclaim_v and_o such_o of_o they_o also_o that_o do_v profess_v the_o truth_n may_v become_v more_o religious_a and_o zealous_a than_o they_o be_v if_o god_n people_n can_v according_a to_o their_o bind_a duty_n pray_v more_o fervent_o unto_o god_n for_o they_o than_o they_o do_v and_o thus_o must_v we_o try_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o charity_n by_o the_o love_n we_o bear_v unto_o all_o man_n if_o we_o bear_v not_o such_o a_o love_n as_o this_o be_v unto_o all_o man_n certain_o our_o charity_n be_v not_o such_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v second_o we_o must_v make_v trial_n of_o our_o charity_n by_o the_o love_n we_o bear_v unto_o they_o that_o have_v wrong_v we_o and_o be_v our_o enemy_n know_v this_o therefore_o belove_v that_o thou_o be_v bind_v to_o love_v thy_o enemy_n yea_o every_o enemy_n of_o thi●e_n how_o much_o soever_o or_o in_o what_o kind_n soever_o he_o have_v wrong_v thou_o thou_o be_v bind_v to_o love_v he_o and_o if_o thou_o can_v not_o do_v this_o thou_o have_v no_o true_a charity_n and_o consequent_o thou_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o thou_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o say_v our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o and_o describe_v true_a love_n mat._n 5.44_o 45._o love_v your_o enemy_n that_o you_o may_v be_v that_o be_v that_o you_o may_v know_v yourselves_o to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v you_o can_v never_o be_v assure_v that_o you_o be_v god_n child_n till_o you_o can_v do_v this_o now_o that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o understand_v and_o be_v affect_v with_o this_o point_n i_o will_v show_v you_o more_o particular_o what_o a_o manner_n of_o love_n god_n require_v of_o we_o towards_o our_o enemy_n in_o these_o eight_o degree_n first_o we_o may_v not_o revenge_v nor_o so_o much_o as_o purpose_n with_o ourselves_o or_o desire_v to_o be_v revenge_v of_o any_o enemy_n we_o have_v for_o any_o wrong_n that_o he_o have_v do_v unto_o we_o dear_o belove_v say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 12.19_o avenge_v not_o yourselves_o but_o rather_o give_v place_n unto_o wrath_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v let_v god_n alone_o with_o that_o for_o it_o be_v write_v vengeance_n be_v i_o i_o will_v repay_v say_v the_o lord_n say_v not_o say_v solomon_n prov._n 24.29_o that_o be_v purpose_v not_o nor_o resolve_v with_o thyself_o thus_o i_o will_v do_v so_o to_o he_o as_o he_o have_v do_v unto_o i_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o will_v do_v he_o no_o wrong_n and_o so_o long_o as_o i_o do_v he_o no_o wrong_a i_o hope_v i_o can_v be_v blame_v i_o will_v render_v to_o the_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n why_o what_o wrong_a be_v there_o in_o that_o be_v not_o this_o a_o most_o just_a and_o equal_a thing_n to_o render_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n i_o answer_v that_o in_o the_o lord_n himself_o it_o be_v indeed_o so_o and_o in_o the_o magistrate_n which_o be_v god_n deputy_n it_o be_v so_o too_o but_o in_o a_o private_a man_n it_o be_v not_o so_o it_o be_v a_o wrong_n it_o be_v wickedness_n for_o he_o to_o do_v it_o because_o he_o usurp_v god_n office_n nay_o it_o be_v unjustice_n even_o in_o a_o magistrate_n to_o revenge_v his_o own_o private_a wrong_n fear_v not_o say_v joseph_n to_o his_o brethren_n genes_n
our_o faith_n 5._o last_o thou_o will_v now_o when_o thou_o renewe_v thy_o covenant_n with_o god_n at_o his_o table_n vow_n and_o bind_v thyself_o by_o promise_n unto_o god_n that_o though_o thou_o have_v be_v heretofore_o malicious_a and_o give_v to_o revenge_n thou_o will_v be_v so_o no_o more_o but_o thou_o will_v through_o his_o grace_n strive_v thus_o to_o forgive_v and_o love_v all_o man_n even_o they_o that_o have_v do_v thou_o most_o wrong_a we_o read_v 2_o cron._n 34.31_o 32._o compare_v with_o 35.1_o that_o josiah_n and_o his_o people_n before_o they_o celebrate_v the_o passover_n bind_v themselves_o unto_o the_o lord_n by_o solemn_a covenant_n that_o they_o will_v keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o his_o testimony_n and_o his_o statute_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o it_o be_v say_v chap_n 35.18_o that_o that_o be_v such_o a_o passeover_n as_o be_v never_o keep_v in_o israel_n from_o the_o day_n of_o samuel_n to_o that_o time_n and_o certain_o if_o we_o will_v also_o thus_o prepare_v ourselves_o to_o the_o sacrament_n afer_fw-la our_o examination_n of_o ourselves_o by_o bind_v ourselves_o to_o god_n in_o solemn_a vow_n and_o promise_n to_o forsake_v our_o special_a corruption_n and_o walk_v more_o circumspect_o we_o may_v find_v much_o more_o comfort_n in_o the_o sacrament_n than_o we_o be_v wont_n to_o do_v and_o thus_o much_o shall_v serve_v for_o the_o trial_n of_o our_o charity_n by_o that_o love_n we_o bear_v to_o our_o enemy_n the_o three_o and_o last_o way_n to_o try_v it_o be_v by_o the_o love_n we_o bear_v to_o they_o that_o fear_v god_n especial_o to_o they_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o bear_v special_a love_n above_o all_o other_o man_n above_o all_o thing_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o pet._n 4.8_o have_v fervent_a charity_n among_o yourselves_o no_o love_n that_o we_o bear_v to_o any_o man_n will_v give_v we_o that_o assurance_n that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o as_o when_o we_o can_v find_v that_o we_o love_v a_o godly_a man_n more_o for_o the_o image_n of_o god_n we_o discern_v in_o he_o then_o either_o a_o worldly_a friend_n for_o our_o commodity_n sake_n or_o a_o kinsman_n for_o the_o nearness_n of_o blood_n that_o be_v between_o we_o for_o this_o we_o have_v christ_n own_o example_n matth._n 12.50_o whosoever_o shall_v do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n the_o same_o be_v my_o brother_n and_o sister_n and_o mother_n he_o that_o receive_v a_o righteous_a man_n in_o the_o name_n of_o a_o righteous_a man_n and_o for_o no_o other_o respect_n say_v he_o matth._n 10.41_o shall_v receive_v a_o righteous_a man_n reward_n that_o be_v shall_v be_v undoubted_o save_v we_o know_v that_o we_o have_v pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o joh._n 3.14_o because_o we_o love_v the_o brethren_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n there_o be_v no_o more_o certain_a sign_n of_o a_o man_n that_o be_v void_a of_o all_o grace_n and_o abide_v in_o the_o state_n of_o death_n and_o damnation_n than_o this_o be_v when_o he_o can_v love_v such_o as_o fear_v god_n he_o that_o love_v not_o his_o brother_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o joh._n 3.14_o abide_v in_o death_n for_o their_o can_v be_v no_o love_n of_o god_n in_o that_o man_n that_o love_v not_o such_o as_o fear_v god_n every_o one_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o joh._n 5.1_o that_o love_v he_o that_o beget_v love_v he_o also_o that_o be_v beget_v of_o he_o but_o how_o may_v we_o that_o have_v so_o false_a and_o deceitful_a heart_n in_o we_o know_v that_o we_o do_v indeed_o love_v a_o christian_a in_o the_o name_n of_o a_o christian_a i_o answer_v that_o the_o sure_a proof_n of_o that_o be_v this_o when_o we_o can_v find_v that_o though_o we_o love_v they_o most_o in_o who_o we_o see_v most_o grace_n yet_o we_o do_v unfeigned_o love_v all_o in_o who_o we_o see_v the_o true_a fear_n of_o god_n howsoever_o they_o differ_v in_o judgement_n from_o we_o in_o some_o thing_n yea_o what_o weakness_n soever_o we_o discern_v in_o they_o other_o way_n by_o this_o note_n the_o apostle_n oft_o describe_v that_o love_n to_o the_o brethren_n which_o be_v true_a and_o unfeigned_a eph._n 1.15_o col._n 1.4_o philem_n 5._o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o extend_v itself_o to_o all_o the_o saint_n to_o all_o the_o brethren_n and_o rom._n 14.1_o 6._o he_o give_v a_o particular_a example_n for_o this_o by_o direct_v the_o faithful_a how_o they_o shall_v stand_v affect_v towards_o those_o brethren_n that_o be_v weak_a in_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o judgement_n and_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n it_o be_v certain_o a_o weakness_n in_o judgement_n that_o make_v any_o christian_n to_o think_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v unlawful_a that_o be_v indeed_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n indifferent_a and_o lawful_a as_o those_o which_o he_o instance_v in_o verse_n 2._o and_o so_o it_o be_v a_o weakness_n in_o judgement_n on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o make_v any_o to_o think_v those_o thing_n necessary_a and_o fit_a to_o be_v observe_v which_o indeed_o be_v not_o so_o as_o those_o he_o instance_v in_o verse_n 5._o but_o how_o shall_v the_o faithful_a stand_v affect_v towards_o they_o that_o be_v thus_o weak_a in_o faith_n and_o do_v so_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o judgement_n about_o these_o thing_n first_o he_o tell_v they_o verse_n 3,4_o they_o shall_v not_o judge_v nor_o despise_v one_o another_o for_o this_o they_o shall_v not_o esteem_v one_o another_o to_o be_v void_a of_o true_a and_o save_a grace_n because_o of_o this_o second_o verse_n 1_o they_o shall_v receive_v he_o that_o be_v thus_o weak_a in_o faith_n that_o be_v esteem_v well_o of_o he_o love_v he_o be_v not_o strange_a to_o he_o keep_v he_o company_n for_o all_o this_o for_o god_n have_v receive_v he_o say_v he_o verse_n 3_o and_o how_o dare_v thou_o despise_v or_o judge_n or_o think_v hardly_o of_o or_o be_v strange_a unto_o he_o who_o god_n have_v receive_v let_v i_o make_v some_o application_n of_o this_o belove_v unto_o you_o all_o aplic_n and_o i_o be_o sorry_a that_o the_o time_n enforce_v i_o to_o be_v so_o brief_a as_o i_o must_v be_v in_o apply_v of_o it_o it_o be_v utter_o a_o fault_n among_o you_o that_o the_o difference_n in_o judgement_n and_o practice_n about_o the_o ceremony_n of_o our_o church_n have_v cause_v such_o strangeness_n and_o allienation_n of_o mind_n and_o affection_n between_o such_o as_o do_v true_o fear_v god_n both_o minister_n and_o people_n we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o receive_v esteem_v love_a and_o maintain_v society_n one_o with_o another_o nevertheless_o for_o this_o difference_n in_o judgement_n about_o these_o thing_n that_o we_o be_v apt_a to_o despise_v and_o judge_v one_o another_o for_o it_o and_o to_o doubt_v whither_o there_o be_v any_o truth_n of_o grace_n in_o they_o that_o differ_v from_o we_o in_o these_o thing_n sure_o say_v the_o one_o side_n the_o difference_n and_o lawfulness_n of_o these_o thing_n be_v now_o so_o clear_o manifest_v as_o these_o man_n must_v needs_o be_v wilful_o blind_a that_o do_v not_o see_v it_o nay_o certain_o they_o can_v choose_v but_o see_v it_o well_o enough_o and_o be_v it_o not_o for_o a_o carnal_a respect_n to_o their_o credit_n with_o the_o people_n among_o who_o they_o have_v get_v a_o great_a name_n and_o applause_n for_o their_o stand_v out_o so_o long_o they_o will_v doubtless_o conform_v themselves_o and_o sure_o say_v the_o other_o side_n the_o utter_a unlawfulnesse_n of_o these_o ceremony_n be_v now_o so_o clear_o reveil_v that_o these_o man_n must_v needs_o be_v wilful_o blind_a that_o see_v it_o not_o nay_o they_o do_v see_v it_o well_o enough_o and_o be_v it_o not_o for_o a_o carnal_a respect_n they_o have_v unto_o their_o worldly_a peace_n and_o estate_n they_o will_v neve_fw-la use_v they_o certain_o they_o sin_n against_o their_o conscience_n in_o observe_v of_o they_o and_o what_o truth_n of_o grace_n can_v there_o be_v in_o they_o that_o be_v wilful_o blind_a and_o for_o carnal_a respect_n do_v thus_o sin_v against_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o thus_o do_v both_o side_n gross_o and_o dangerous_o err_v and_o sin_n against_o their_o brethren_n and_o when_o you_o sin_v so_o against_o the_o brethren_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 8.12_o yea_o sin_n against_o christ._n for_o the_o experience_n of_o all_o time_n and_o of_o this_o present_a age_n prove_v evident_o that_o there_o be_v of_o both_o side_n that_o fear_v god_n unfeigned_o and_o in_o the_o whole_a tenor_n and_o course_n of_o who_o conversation_n the_o life_n and_o power_n of_o true_a godliness_n do_v manifest_o appear_v and_o if_o thou_o do_v not_o see_v this_o whosoever_o
build_v thy_o faith_n and_o religion_n upon_o this_o foundation_n thou_o be_v sure_a enough_o but_o yet_o there_o be_v another_o doubt_n apt_a to_o rise_v in_o your_o mind_n 3._o and_o you_o will_v ask_v i_o this_o three_o and_o last_o question_n how_o can_v i_o be_v certain_a that_o that_o which_o i_o hold_v in_o religion_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o holy_a scripture_n right_o understand_v the_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a and_o hard_o to_o be_v understand_v and_o all_o religion_n papist_n and_o pelagian_n and_o anabaptist_n answ._n all_z do_v allege_v scripture_n for_o that_o that_o they_o hold_v to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o there_o be_v indeed_o some_o thing_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n hard_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 2_o pet._n 3.16_o there_o be_v in_o that_o epistle_n that_o paul_n write_v unto_o the_o hebrew_n second_o there_o be_v nothing_o no_o one_o article_n of_o faith_n so_o plain_o set_v down_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o wrangle_v and_o profane_a wit_n have_v be_v apt_a to_o pervert_v and_o wrest_v the_o word_n to_o a_o quite_o contrary_a sense_n unto_o that_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n intend_v you_o shall_v see_v the_o prophet_n jeremy_n 23.36_o charge_v the_o prophet_n and_o priest_n of_o his_o time_n with_o this_o and_o i_o pray_v you_o mark_v how_o emphatical_o he_o express_v the_o heinousnesse_n of_o this_o their_o sin_n you_o have_v pervert_v say_v he_o the_o word_n of_o the_o live_a god_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n our_o god_n but_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o every_o point_n of_o religion_n the_o knowledge_n whereof_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o god_n people_n be_v so_o plain_o express_v and_o teach_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o one_o place_n or_o other_o that_o not_o only_o learned_a man_n but_o the_o simply_a christian_a may_v clear_o understand_v it_o and_o be_v undoubted_o certain_a that_o it_o be_v indeed_o the_o infallible_a truth_n of_o god_n i_o pray_v you_o mark_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o point_n in_o five_o dgree_n first_o in_o all_o these_o necessary_a point_n of_o religion_n the_o scripture_n be_v in_o itself_o most_o clear_a and_o lightsome_a the_o commandment_n be_v a_o lamp_n say_v solomon_n prov._n 6.23_o and_o the_o law_n be_v light_a yea_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o very_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o yet_o be_v much_o dark_a than_o the_o new_a be_v 2_o pet._n 1.19_o a_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n second_o it_o be_v not_o only_o lightsome_a in_o itself_o as_o you_o know_v the_o sun_n be_v though_o they_o that_o be_v blind_a have_v no_o benefit_n by_o it_o but_o it_o do_v also_o give_v light_n unto_o we_o and_o make_v we_o who_o be_v all_o of_o we_o blind_a by_o nature_n able_a to_o see_v clear_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o it_o this_o be_v therefore_o note_v to_o express_v the_o divine_a excellency_n of_o it_o psal._n 19.8_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v pure_a enlighten_v the_o eye_n it_o give_v light_a and_o sight_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n people_n that_o be_v dim_a and_o blind_a before_o three_o it_o be_v not_o only_o lightsome_a and_o clear_a in_o all_o these_o necessary_a point_n of_o religion_n to_o scholar_n and_o learned_a man_n but_o even_o to_o the_o simply_a christian_a that_o bring_v a_o good_a heart_n to_o the_o read_n and_o hear_v of_o it_o psal._n 119.130_o the_o entrance_n into_o the_o word_n give_v light_a mark_v it_o be_v not_o only_a light_n but_o it_o give_v light_a yea_o so_o soon_o as_o a_o man_n with_o a_o good_a heart_n be_v enter_v into_o it_o he_o shall_v receive_v that_o light_n by_o it_o but_o to_o who_o give_v it_o this_o light_n it_o give_v understanding_n to_o the_o simple_a four_o what_o kind_n and_o measure_n of_o understanding_n will_v the_o scripture_n give_v to_o they_o that_o with_o honest_a heart_n will_v exercise_v themselves_o in_o it_o sure_o a_o clear_a a_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a knowledge_n my_o people_n they_o that_o belong_v to_o i_o my_o elect_a say_v the_o lord_n esa._n 52.6_o shall_v know_v my_o name_n my_o word_n and_o will_v they_o shall_v know_v in_o that_o day_n that_o i_o be_o he_o that_o do_v speak_v behold_v it_o be_v i._o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n know_v his_o voice_n joh._n 10.4_o they_o understand_v his_o language_n well_o and_o understand_v his_o meaning_n too_o you_o know_v the_o truth_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o joh._n 2.21_o not_o to_o the_o clergy_n but_o even_o to_o the_o mean_a christian_n such_o as_o verse_n 18._o he_o have_v call_v little_a child_n you_o know_v the_o truth_n say_v he_o and_o that_o no_o lie_n be_v of_o the_o truth_n the_o mean_a christian_n be_v one_o of_o god_n elect_v and_o have_v a_o good_a heart_n may_v clear_o understand_v the_o scripture_n in_o those_o point_n that_o be_v necessary_a unto_o salvation_n and_o attain_v to_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o they_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v of_o the_o thessalonian_n 1_o thes._n 1.5_o that_o the_o word_n come_v unto_o they_o and_o be_v receive_v by_o they_o in_o much_o assurance_n five_o and_o last_o the_o lord_n have_v so_o reveal_v his_o will_n in_o his_o holy_a word_n that_o a_o unlearned_a man_n that_o fear_v god_n and_o have_v a_o good_a heart_n may_v in_o these_o necessary_a point_n understand_v the_o scripture_n better_o more_o feel_o and_o effectual_o and_o attain_v to_o more_o certainty_n of_o knowledge_n in_o they_o than_o the_o great_a scholar_n in_o the_o world_n with_o all_o the_o help_n of_o art_n and_o learning_n and_o interpreter_n that_o he_o have_v shall_v do_v if_o he_o want_v grace_n for_o so_o stand_v the_o promise_n psal._n 25.12_o what_o man_n be_v he_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n he_o shall_v he_o teach_v in_o the_o way_n that_o he_o shall_v choose_v if_o any_o man_n will_v do_v his_o will_n and_o resolve_v to_o practise_v what_o he_o know_v say_v our_o saviour_n joh._n 7.17_o he_o shall_v know_v of_o the_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o doctrine_n which_o i_o teach_v whether_o it_o be_v of_o god_n or_o whether_o i_o speak_v of_o myself_o so_o that_o to_o conclude_v my_o answer_n to_o this_o three_o and_o last_o question_n let_v no_o man_n pretend_v for_o his_o profane_a ignorance_n and_o unsettledness_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n the_o obscurity_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o say_v thus_o in_o his_o heart_n i_o mean_v well_o and_o i_o will_v do_v well_o and_o i_o will_v hope_v well_o but_o i_o will_v never_o trouble_v my_o brain_n with_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n to_o that_o side_n that_o i_o see_v to_o be_v strong_a and_o that_o the_o time_n shall_v favour_v most_o i_o will_v most_o incline_v but_o to_o attain_v to_o any_o settle_a judgement_n in_o these_o matter_n i_o need_v not_o i_o can_v our_o preacher_n and_o learned_a man_n can_v agree_v about_o point_n of_o religion_n and_o i_o be_o glad_a with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o it_o be_v so_o for_o that_o will_v be_v a_o good_a excuse_n for_o i_o i_o hope_v let_v no_o man_n i_o say_v please_v himself_o in_o these_o conceit_n for_o thou_o have_v hear_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o so_o obscure_a in_o these_o necessary_a point_n as_o thou_o will_v fain_o have_v it_o to_o be_v but_o if_o thou_o have_v any_o true_a fear_n of_o god_n in_o thou_o if_o thou_o do_v belong_v to_o god_n thou_o may_v clear_o and_o certain_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o it_o be_v a_o more_o fearful_a sign_n against_o thou_o than_o thou_o be_v aware_a of_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v so_o obscure_a to_o thou_o that_o thou_o can_v attain_v to_o no_o certainty_n of_o knowledge_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n by_o it_o to_o they_o that_o be_v without_o that_o belong_v not_o to_o god_n kingdom_n say_v our_o saviour_n mar._n 4.11_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o parable_n all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n word_n be_v parable_n and_o hide_a mystery_n to_o they_o that_o be_v without_o and_o shall_v never_o go_v to_o heaven_n and_o now_o have_v remove_v these_o doubt_n and_o take_v away_o these_o stumble_a block_n out_o of_o your_o way_n i_o will_v come_v to_o the_o proof_n and_o confirmation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n that_o i_o propound_v that_o he_o that_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n will_v be_v constant_a in_o the_o religion_n of_o christ_n he_o will_v firm_o cleave_v to_o the_o truth_n that_o he_o have_v learn_v out_o of_o god_n word_n two_o evident_a proof_n i_o will_v give_v you_o for_o this_o and_o then_o i_o will_v show_v the_o reason_n and_o ground_n of_o it_o for_o so_o must_v i_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o that_o application_n and_o use_v that_o we_o must_v make_v of_o this_o so_o necessary_a a_o truth_n to_o be_v insist_v
upon_o my_o first_o proof_n be_v the_o testimony_n that_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v unto_o they_o that_o cleave_v constant_o to_o his_o truth_n the_o second_o be_v the_o comfort_n that_o god_n people_n themselves_o have_v find_v 1_o and_o the_o confidence_n they_o have_v repose_v in_o that_o of_o the_o first_o sort_n of_o proof_n i_o will_v give_v you_o but_o three_o the_o first_o be_v that_o which_o you_o shall_v find_v esa._n 26.2_o open_v you_o the_o gate_n that_o the_o righteous_a nation_n which_o keep_v the_o truth_n may_v enter_v in_o mark_v three_o thing_n in_o this_o first_o proof_n 1._o god_n make_v it_o the_o character_n of_o the_o righteous_a nation_n the_o true_a church_n the_o whole_a company_n of_o true_a believer_n that_o be_v make_v righteous_a by_o the_o imputation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n unto_o they_o that_o they_o be_v such_o as_o keep_v the_o truth_n yea_o that_o he_o say_v they_o be_v such_o as_o 2_o keep_v the_o truth_n all_o truth_n every_o truth_n that_o god_n have_v in_o his_o word_n reveal_v unto_o they_o 3._o mark_v what_o be_v say_v vers._n 1._o of_o this_o nation_n that_o keep_v the_o truth_n and_o what_o security_n they_o may_v have_v that_o be_v of_o that_o nation_n we_o have_v a_o strong_a city_n salvation_n will_v god_n appoint_v for_o wall_n and_o bulwark_n the_o nation_n that_o keep_v the_o truth_n yea_o every_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v as_o a_o strong_a city_n god_n salvation_n and_o protection_n shall_v be_v in_o stead_n of_o all_o wall_n and_o bulwark_n unto_o that_o nation_n my_o second_o proof_n of_o the_o first_o sort_n be_v that_o speech_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n joh._n 8.31_o if_o you_o continue_v in_o my_o word_n then_o be_v you_o my_o disciple_n indeed_o and_o not_o in_o name_n and_o profession_n only_o he_o that_o be_v christ_n disciple_n indeed_o teach_v of_o god_n a_o true_a believer_n will_v continue_v in_o christ_n word_n in_o the_o truth_n he_o have_v learn_v of_o he_o and_o not_o be_v draw_v away_o from_o it_o and_o the_o three_o be_v like_a unto_o this_o 2_o john_n 9_o whosoever_o transgress_v he_o mean_v not_o in_o action_n and_o practice_n for_o all_o man_n be_v apt_a to_o transgress_v so_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o sin_v not_o 1_o king_n 8.46_o and_o every_o one_o that_o sin_v transgress_v the_o law_n 1_o joh._n 3.4_o but_o he_o speak_v here_o of_o such_o as_o transgress_v in_o judgement_n forsake_v the_o right_a way_n as_o they_o do_v 2_o peter_n 2.15_o and_o fall_v from_o the_o truth_n whosoever_o say_v he_o transgress_v and_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o god_n have_v no_o part_n in_o god_n no_o save_a knowledge_n of_o god_n no_o comfort_n in_o he_o he_o that_o abide_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n have_v both_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o his_o saviour_n and_o this_o be_v my_o first_o sort_n of_o proof_n the_o testimony_n that_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v of_o they_o that_o cleave_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o be_v constant_a in_o his_o holy_a religion_n you_o see_v what_o account_n the_o lord_n make_v of_o such_o 2_o my_o second_o proof_n be_v the_o testimony_n that_o god_n people_n themselves_o from_o their_o own_o experience_n have_v give_v unto_o this_o even_o of_o the_o comfort_n that_o they_o have_v find_v in_o this_o in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o great_a trial_n and_o affliction_n that_o they_o have_v be_v constant_a in_o their_o religion_n and_o faithful_o persist_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o for_o this_o kind_n of_o proof_n i_o will_v give_v you_o three_o particular_a example_n of_o most_o holy_a man_n and_o one_o more_o general_a of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o first_o of_o my_o three_o example_n be_v holy_a job_n who_o when_o he_o be_v overwhelm_v almost_o with_o tentation_n of_o all_o sort_n find_v not_o more_o comfort_n and_o strength_n against_o they_o all_o in_o any_o one_o thing_n than_o he_o do_v in_o this_o job_n 23.11_o 12._o my_o foot_n have_v hold_v his_o step_n his_o way_n have_v i_o keep_v and_o not_o decline_v neither_o have_v i_o go_v back_o from_o the_o commandment_n of_o his_o lip_n i_o have_v esteem_v the_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n more_o than_o my_o necessary_a food_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v how_o many_o and_o how_o great_a soever_o my_o frailty_n and_o corruption_n have_v be_v whereby_o i_o have_v just_o deserve_v the_o lord_n shall_v thus_o afflict_v i_o yet_o i_o tha●ke_v god_n this_o my_o conscience_n can_v witness_v with_o i_o and_o this_o be_v my_o comfort_n that_o i_o have_v never_o be_v variable_a in_o my_o religion_n i_o have_v be_v constant_a in_o that_o my_o second_o example_n be_v david_n who_o when_o his_o soul_n cleave_v to_o the_o dust_n psal._n 119.25_o and_o melt_v for_o heaviness_n as_o he_o say_v vers._n 28._o when_o he_o be_v bring_v very_o low_a by_o outward_a and_o inward_a affliction_n raise_v up_o himself_o with_o this_o testimony_n that_o his_o conscience_n give_v he_o as_o with_o a_o principal_a comfort_n vers._n 30_o 31._o i_o have_v choose_v the_o way_n of_o truth_n thy_o judgement_n thy_o word_n for_o so_o be_v that_o word_n take_v most_o common_o in_o that_o psalm_n have_v i_o lay_v before_o i_o i_o have_v stick_v unto_o thy_o testimony_n o_o lord_n put_v i_o not_o to_o shame_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v i_o have_v deliberate_o advise_o and_o upon_o good_a ground_n i_o find_v for_o it_o in_o thy_o word_n not_o out_o of_o any_o carnal_a respect_n because_o it_o be_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o time_n and_o state_n i_o live_v in_o make_v choice_n of_o this_o religion_n which_o i_o do_v profess_v and_o i_o have_v stick_v to_o it_o and_o will_v never_o be_v draw_v from_o it_o therefore_o o_o lord_n put_v i_o not_o to_o shame_v forsake_v i_o not_o nor_o leave_v i_o not_o without_o comfort_n my_o three_o example_n be_v that_o of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n 2_o tim_n 4.6_o 7._o i_o be_o now_o ready_a to_o be_v offer_v as_o a_o sacrifice_n in_o martyrdom_n and_o the_o time_n of_o my_o departure_n be_v at_o hand_n that_o be_v a_o time_n certain_o wherein_o he_o shall_v need_v to_o bethink_v himself_o of_o the_o best_a ground_n of_o comfort_n he_o have_v and_o what_o be_v the_o chief_a thing_n that_o he_o ground_n his_o comfort_n and_o confidence_n upon_o at_o that_o time_n sure_o this_o which_o he_o express_v in_o the_o next_o word_n i_o have_v fight_v a_o good_a fight_n i_o have_v finish_v my_o course_n i_o have_v keep_v the_o faith_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v though_o by_o many_o opposition_n of_o false_a teacher_n and_o bitter_a persecution_n i_o have_v be_v strong_o assault_v to_o forsake_v it_o yet_o i_o have_v i_o praise_v god_n and_o this_o be_v my_o comfort_n even_o to_o the_o finish_n of_o my_o course_n and_o end_n of_o my_o day_n keep_v the_o faith_n that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o word_n be_v take_v act_n 6.7_o rom._n 1.5_o gal._n 1.23_o and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n and_o mark_v how_o confident_o he_o infer_v even_o upon_o this_o ground_n in_o the_o next_o word_n vers._n 8._o henceforth_o there_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_a judge_n shall_v give_v i_o at_o that_o day_n my_o four_o and_o last_o example_n be_v more_o general_a even_o of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n that_o god_n have_v then_o upon_o earth_n psal._n 44.17_o 18_o 19_o all_o this_o be_v come_v upon_o we_o yet_o have_v we_o not_o forget_v thou_o neither_o have_v we_o deal_v false_o in_o thy_o covenant_n our_o heart_n be_v not_o turn_v back_o neither_o have_v our_o step_n decline_v from_o thy_o way_n though_o thou_o have_v sore_o break_v we_o in_o the_o place_n of_o dragon_n and_o cover_v we_o with_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n as_o if_o they_o have_v say_v no_o reproach_n or_o persecution_n that_o ever_o we_o endure_v all_o which_o we_o may_v easy_o have_v escape_v if_o we_o will_v have_v deal_v false_o in_o thy_o covenant_n and_o forsake_v thy_o truth_n can_v make_v we_o so_o much_o as_o in_o heart_n to_o turn_v back_o from_o thy_o way_n as_o our_o forefather_n do_v in_o the_o wilderness_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v act_n 7.39_o that_o in_o their_o heart_n they_o turn_v back_o into_o egypt_n they_o can_v have_v find_v in_o their_o heart_n to_o be_v there_o again_o but_o so_o can_v not_o we_o and_o this_o testimony_n of_o our_o uprightness_n we_o have_v to_o comfort_v ourselves_o with_o in_o all_o the_o misery_n that_o have_v befall_v we_o and_o thus_o have_v i_o give_v you_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o point_n that_o a_o man_n constancy_n in_o the_o
and_o every_o man_n be_v a_o liar_n say_v he_o rom._n 3.4_o the_o best_a man_n be_v subject_a to_o err_v and_o to_o be_v deceive_v in_o some_o thing_n we_o shall_v never_o all_o come_v to_o unity_n of_o faith_n unity_n of_o judgement_n in_o all_o truth_n that_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v till_o we_o come_v to_o be_v perfect_a man_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o eph._n 4.13_o while_o we_o live_v here_o there_o will_v be_v difference_n of_o judgement_n in_o some_o thing_n between_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n and_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v jam._n 3.1_o 2._o my_o brethren_n be_v not_o many_o master_n let_v not_o every_o one_o be_v so_o apt_a to_o censure_v and_o judge_v his_o brother_n for_o every_o fail_a and_o slip_n in_o their_o practice_n and_o conversation_n for_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o offend_v all_o the_o same_o may_v fit_o and_o true_o be_v speak_v in_o this_o case_n also_o my_o brethren_n be_v not_o many_o master_n let_v not_o every_o one_o be_v so_o apt_a to_o censure_v and_o judge_v his_o brother_n for_o every_o error_n that_o he_o hold_v in_o his_o judgement_n for_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o err_v all_o yea_o i_o say_v second_o that_o a_o man_n that_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n may_v possible_o hold_v for_o a_o time_n even_o such_o error_n in_o religion_n as_o do_v trench_n upon_o the_o foundation_n also_o very_o near_o for_o all_o the_o elect_a apostle_n do_v believe_v that_o christ_n shall_v be_v a_o worldly_a king_n mar._n 10.37.41_o yea_o they_o hold_v this_o error_n even_o after_o they_o have_v be_v eye-witness_n both_o of_o his_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n too_o as_o be_v plain_a by_o their_o question_n act_v 1.6_o and_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o galatian_n do_v for_o a_o time_n hold_v a_o error_n in_o that_o main_a fundamental_a article_n of_o our_o religion_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o justification_n for_o they_o hold_v that_o a_o man_n can_v not_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n only_o without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o that_o pain_n the_o apostle_n take_v to_o convince_v they_o of_o that_o error_n gal._n 3_o &_o 4_o &_o 5_o chapter_n though_o we_o may_v therefore_o judge_v of_o such_o error_n as_o these_o that_o they_o be_v most_o odious_a and_o damnable_a and_o can_v never_o speak_v nor_o think_v too_o hardly_o of_o they_o yet_o may_v we_o not_o judge_v every_o one_o that_o hold_v they_o to_o be_v in_o a_o damnable_a estate_n neither_o must_v their_o person_n be_v odious_a unto_o we_o so_o long_o as_o they_o do_v not_o trouble_v the_o church_n nor_o seek_v to_o corrupt_v other_o by_o broach_v of_o they_o for_o of_o such_o the_o apostle_n have_v a_o bitter_a speech_n yet_o not_o more_o bitter_a than_o holy_a and_o wholesome_a gal._n 5.12_o i_o will_v they_o be_v even_o cut_v off_o which_o trouble_n you_o three_o these_o error_n that_o be_v so_o gross_a and_o dangerous_a that_o tend_v direct_o to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o foundation_n no_o man_n that_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n can_v obstinate_o hold_v and_o continue_v in_o there_o be_v some_o error_n in_o religion_n of_o which_o it_o may_v be_v say_v as_o david_n speak_v psal._n 119.21_o curse_a be_v they_o that_o do_v err_v from_o thy_o commandment_n none_o but_o they_o that_o be_v accurse_v of_o god_n and_o ordain_v to_o damnation_n can_v fall_v into_o they_o and_o persist_v in_o they_o if_o ever_o thou_o that_o have_v know_v and_o profess_v the_o truth_n shall_v turn_v papist_n or_o pelagian_n or_o libertine_n or_o antinomian_n certain_o thou_o never_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n there_o be_v never_o any_o true_a goodness_n or_o grace_n in_o thy_o heart_n they_o that_o worship_v the_o beast_n that_o turn_v papist_n be_v many_o indeed_o they_o may_v well_o brag_v of_o universality_n and_o multitude_n the_o pope_n can_v not_o be_v antichrist_n he_o can_v not_o be_v that_o beast_n speak_v on_o in_o the_o apocalypse_n if_o he_o can_v not_o plead_v this_o universality_n for_o all_o that_o dwell_v upon_o the_o earth_n in_o a_o manner_n shall_v worship_v he_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n rev._n 13.8_o but_o who_o be_v they_o none_o but_o they_o who_o name_n be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n say_v the_o text_n four_o and_o last_o a_o waver_a mind_n in_o religion_n a_o aptness_n to_o forsake_v the_o truth_n and_o to_o receive_v new_a opinion_n and_o error_n be_v a_o dangerous_a sign_n of_o a_o heart_n that_o never_o have_v truth_n of_o grace_n in_o it_o the_o ungodly_a say_v the_o prophet_n psal._n 1.4_o be_v like_o the_o chaff_n which_o the_o wind_n drive_v away_o to_o be_v so_o light_a of_o belief_n that_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n will_v carry_v we_o away_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o a_o ungodly_a man_n of_o a_o naughty_a and_o unsound_a heart_n they_o that_o at_o such_o a_o time_n as_o there_o be_v many_o antichrist_n and_o false_a teacher_n in_o the_o church_n do_v receive_v their_o error_n and_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o truth_n do_v thereby_o make_v it_o manifest_a as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o joh._n 2.18_o 19_o that_o they_o be_v never_o any_o of_o god_n elect_v if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o we_o say_v he_o vers._n 19_o if_o they_o have_v ever_o be_v any_o of_o god_n elect_v they_o will_v no_o doubt_n have_v continue_v with_o we_o but_o they_o go_v out_o that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v manifest_a that_o all_o that_o once_o join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o of_o we_o but_o that_o we_o have_v some_o hypocrite_n among_o we_o and_o so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o that_o in_o such_o a_o time_n when_o there_o be_v many_o heresy_n and_o false_a doctrine_n broach_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o with_o great_a show_n of_o reason_n and_o truth_n and_o holiness_n too_o shall_v yet_o cleave_v constant_o unto_o the_o truth_n be_v even_o by_o this_o make_v manifest_a to_o have_v upright_a heart_n to_o be_v the_o elect_a of_o god_n and_o precious_a in_o his_o sight_n thus_o our_o saviour_n describe_v his_o sheep_n his_o elect_a john_n 10.5_o a_o stranger_n one_o that_o teach_v strange_a and_o false_a doctrine_n they_o will_v not_o follow_v but_o will_v flee_v from_o he_o shun_v and_o avoid_v he_o as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v for_o they_o know_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o stranger_n they_o approve_v not_o of_o they_o like_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o false_a teacher_n yea_o the_o lord_n do_v for_o this_o very_a cause_n permit_v so_o many_o spirit_n of_o error_n to_o swarm_v in_o his_o church_n as_o there_o do_v at_o this_o day_n that_o by_o this_o mean_n of_o trial_n ●e_n may_v make_v it_o manifest_a which_o among_o all_o they_o that_o have_v profess_v his_o religion_n be_v his_o elect_a one_o and_o approve_v of_o he_o and_o which_o be_v not_o there_o must_v be_v heresy_n among_o you_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 11.19_o that_o they_o which_o be_v approve_v a●●_n allow_v of_o god_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a among_o you_o consider_v well_o of_o these_o motive_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v there_o be_v great_a force_n in_o they_o to_o persuade_v you_o to_o cleave_v resolute_o and_o constant_o to_o the_o truth_n you_o have_v receive_v and_o to_o make_v you_o fearful_a to_o decline_v and_o fall_v from_o it_o lecture_n cxlvii_o on_o psalm_n 51.7_o sept._n 13._o 1631._o mean_n it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o proceed_v unto_o the_o mean_n that_o they_o who_o desire_v to_o be_v constant_a in_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o keep_v themselves_o from_o be_v corrupt_v in_o their_o judgement_n by_o any_o of_o those_o erroneous_a spirit_n that_o the_o church_n at_o this_o day_n be_v so_o pester_v with_o must_v use_v our_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o faith_n depend_v chief_o indeed_o not_o upon_o ourselves_o or_o upon_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o we_o or_o upon_o any_o thing_n we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v but_o upon_o the_o lord_n only_o and_o upon_o these_o two_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o he_o first_o upon_o that_o grace_n and_o free_a love_n of_o god_n that_o move_v he_o in_o his_o eternal_a counsel_n to_o elect_v and_o ordain_v we_o unto_o life_n and_o second_o upon_o that_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o he_o whereby_o only_o we_o be_v preserve_v from_o fall_v away_o there_o shall_v arise_v say_v our_o saviour_n matthew_n 24.24_o false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n and_o shall_v show_v great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n the_o priest_n and_o jesuit_n boast_v much_o of_o miracle_n you_o know_v their_o miracle_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v palpable_o detect_v to_o the_o world_n to_o be_v but_o trick_n of_o legier_n de-main_a and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o so_o if_o they_o be_v indeed_o great_a sign_n
psal._n 119.127_o i_o love_v thy_o commandment_n say_v he_o above_o gold_n yea_o above_o fine_a gold_n add_v present_o ver._n 128._o therefore_o i_o esteem_v all_o thy_o precept_n concern_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v right_a and_o i_o hate_v every_o false_a way_n he_o that_o do_v not_o esteem_v high_o of_o that_o that_o god_n have_v teach_v we_o in_o his_o word_n concern_v all_o thing_n concern_v the_o small_a matter_n as_o well_o as_o concern_v the_o great_a he_o that_o do_v not_o hate_v every_o false_a way_n every_o error_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n error_n about_o the_o small_a thing_n as_o well_o as_o error_n about_o the_o great_a certain_o he_o do_v not_o love_n and_o esteem_v of_o god_n word_n as_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v second_o as_o a_o man_n may_v make_v himself_o abominable_a unto_o god_n by_o transgress_v witting_o the_o least_o of_o his_o commandment_n you_o shall_v not_o make_v yourselves_o abominable_a say_v the_o lord_n lev_n 11.43_o with_o any_o creep_a thing_n by_o eat_v of_o it_o he_o mean_v and_o what_o commandment_n do_v ever_o god_n give_v that_o be_v less_o than_o those_o concrn_a meat_n and_o drink_n so_o may_v a_o man_n do_v by_o receive_v witting_o the_o least_o know_a error_n or_o forsake_v witting_o the_o least_o know_a truth_n see_v how_o earnest_a the_o apostle_n be_v 2_o thes._n 2_o 13_a in_o dissuade_v they_o from_o receive_v a_o error_n which_o of_o all_o error_n that_o they_o can_v receive_v may_v seem_v the_o least_o dangerous_a yea_o a_o most_o wholesome_a error_n that_o be_v that_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n be_v then_o at_o hand_n yet_o see_v i_o pray_v you_o and_o mark_v how_o earnest_a he_o be_v in_o this_o matter_n now_o i_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n by_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o by_o our_o gather_v together_o unto_o he_o that_o you_o be_v not_o soon_o shake_v in_o mind_n or_o be_v trouble_v neither_o by_o spirit_n nor_o by_o word_n nor_o by_o letter_n as_o from_o we_o as_o that_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n be_v at_o hand_n let_v no_o man_n deceive_v you_o by_o any_o mean_n to_o receive_v any_o thing_n as_o a_o divine_a truth_n which_o god_n have_v not_o teach_v we_o in_o his_o word_n though_o it_o carry_v never_o so_o good_a a_o show_n of_o piety_n and_o devotion_n be_v certain_o a_o very_a dangerous_a thing_n else_o will_v not_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v so_o earnest_a in_o this_o case_n as_o he_o be_v three_o and_o last_o the_o sure_a way_n to_o keep_v our_o heart_n from_o forsake_v and_o fall_v from_o the_o truth_n in_o main_a and_o fundamental_a matter_n be_v to_o make_v conscience_n of_o hold_v fast_o the_o truth_n even_o in_o the_o least_o matter_n of_o cle●ving_v constant_o to_o the_o least_o truth_n that_o god_n have_v reveal_v unto_o we_o and_o convince_v our_o conscience_n in_o the_o sure_a way_n to_o keep_v ourselves_o from_o gross_a and_o enormous_a sin_n be_v to_o make_v conscience_n of_o the_o least_o thing_n we_o know_v to_o be_v a_o sin_n this_o job_n know_v well_o and_o therefore_o to_o preserve_v himself_o from_o the_o odious_a sin_n of_o adultery_n or_o fornication_n he_o dare_v not_o give_v himself_o liberty_n to_o look_v or_o think_v of_o that_o that_o may_v provoke_v he_o to_o lust_n i_o make_v a_o covenant_n with_o my_o eye_n say_v he_o job_n 31.1_o why_o then_o shall_v i_o think_v upon_o a_o maid_n david_n also_o know_v this_o well_o and_o therefore_o that_o he_o may_v keep_v himself_o innocent_a from_o the_o great_a transgression_n he_o be_v afraid_a to_o commit_v any_o presumptuous_a sin_n any_o sin_n against_o his_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n yea_o he_o be_v afraid_a even_o of_o his_o secret_a fault_n of_o such_o sin_n as_o he_o know_v he_o be_v many_o way_n guilty_a of_o in_o thought_n word_n and_o deed_n though_o he_o know_v they_o not_o in_o particular_a nor_o discern_v they_o to_o be_v sin_n this_o be_v evident_a by_o that_o earnest_a prayer_n he_o make_v psal._n 19.12_o 13._o who_o can_v understand_v his_o error_n cleanse_v thou_o i_o from_o secret_a fault_n keep_v back_o thy_o servant_n also_o from_o presumptuous_a sin_n let_v they_o not_o have_v dominion_n over_o i_o then_o shall_v i_o be_v upright_o and_o i_o shall_v be_v innocent_a from_o the_o great_a transgression_n and_o even_o so_o it_o be_v in_o this_o case_n the_o sure_a way_n to_o keep_v our_o judgement_n uncorrupted_a in_o the_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n be_v to_o keep_v they_o sound_v in_o those_o matter_n that_o be_v of_o least_o weight_n he_o that_o will_v give_v liberty_n to_o himself_o to_o reject_v and_o forsake_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o small_a matter_n will_v be_v in_o danger_n to_o forsake_v it_o and_o fall_v from_o it_o in_o the_o great_a matter_n if_o he_o be_v press_v to_o it_o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o that_o marvellous_a blindness_n of_o mind_n that_o by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n be_v come_v upon_o the_o jew_n matthew_n 13.14_o hear_v they_o shall_v hear_v but_o shall_v not_o understand_v and_o see_v they_o shall_v see_v but_o they_o shall_v not_o perceive_v he_o give_v this_o for_o one_o reason_n of_o it_o that_o they_o have_v close_v their_o own_o eye_n first_o if_o a_o man_n do_v wilful_o refuse_v to_o see_v any_o truth_n that_o god_n will_v reveal_v unto_o he_o it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n to_o blind_v he_o so_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o see_v or_o to_o have_v any_o comfortable_a certainty_n in_o any_o truth_n of_o god_n when_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o his_o zeal_n and_o resolution_n against_o such_o false_a brethren_n as_o teach_v circumcision_n to_o be_v still_o necessary_a even_o after_o the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n have_v be_v sufficient_o publish_v for_o it_o be_v above_o fourteen_o year_n after_o paul_n conversion_n as_o you_o may_v see_v gal._n 2.1_o we_o give_v no_o place_n by_o subjection_n to_o they_o say_v he_o ver._n 5._o no_o not_o for_o one_o hour_n if_o some_o politician_n have_v be_v then_o to_o confer_v with_o he_o they_o will_v have_v say_v to_o he_o alas_o paul_n why_o be_v thou_o so_o obstinate_a and_o peevish_a in_o such_o a_o trifle_n circumcision_n be_v nothing_o and_o uncircumcision_n be_v nothing_o as_o thyself_o have_v teach_v 1_o cor._n 7.19_o but_o he_o give_v this_o reason_n why_o he_o be_v so_o resolute_a in_o oppose_v a_o error_n even_o of_o that_o nature_n that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n say_v he_o may_v continue_v with_o you_o these_o error_n in_o small_a matter_n be_v receive_v will_v by_o little_a and_o little_o deprive_v we_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o sincerity_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o usher_v in_o such_o error_n as_o be_v more_o gross_a and_o fundamental_a let_v no_o man_n say_v what_o unlawfulnesse_n be_v there_o in_o bow_v before_o a_o crucifix_n in_o a_o decent_a manner_n for_o if_o we_o shall_v comply_v with_o papist_n in_o such_o thing_n it_o may_v be_v just_a with_o god_n to_o give_v we_o over_o to_o great_a delusion_n and_o to_o apostate_n quite_o with_o they_o when_o joshuah_n a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n exhort_v israel_n to_o cleave_v constant_o to_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o be_v draw_v by_o the_o canaanite_n that_o live_v among_o they_o unto_o their_o idolatry_n he_o enforce_v his_o exhortation_n thus_o josh._n 23.12_o 13._o else_o say_v he_o if_o you_o do_v in_o any_o wise_a go_v back_o and_o cleave_v unto_o the_o remnant_n of_o these_o nation_n know_v for_o a_o certainty_n that_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n will_v no_o more_o drive_v out_o any_o of_o these_o nation_n from_o before_o you_o but_o they_o shall_v be_v snare_n and_o trap_n unto_o you_o and_o scourge_n in_o your_o side_n and_o thorn_n in_o your_o eye_n until_o you_o perish_v from_o the_o good_a land_n which_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n have_v give_v you_o if_o we_o shall_v in_o any_o wise_a go_v back_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v it_o in_o great_a matter_n or_o in_o small_a if_o we_o shall_v in_o any_o wise_a go_v back_o and_o decline_v to_o gratify_v the_o papist_n and_o to_o conform_v unto_o they_o we_o may_v know_v for_o a_o certainty_n that_o god_n will_v forsake_v we_o and_o popery_n will_v prevail_v against_o we_o so_o that_o to_o conclude_v this_o three_o direction_n we_o must_v every_o one_o do_v that_o for_o ourselves_o which_o epaphras_n do_v for_o the_o colossian_n colossian_n 4.12_o we_o must_v labour_v fervent_o in_o our_o prayer_n with_o god_n that_o we_o may_v stand_v perfect_a and_o complete_a in_o all_o the_o will_n of_o god_n if_o we_o be_v desirous_a to_o hold_v fast_o our_o profession_n we_o must_v labour_v to_o stand_v perfect_a and_o complete_a in_o all_o the_o will_n of_o god_n stand_v steadfast_o in_o
into_o the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o yet_o call_v to_o the_o knowledge_n and_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n they_o also_o i_o must_v bring_v they_o must_v needs_o be_v bring_v into_o this_o fold_n they_o must_v needs_o be_v make_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o bring_v into_o the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o profess_v the_o truth_n and_o how_o must_v that_o be_v do_v and_o they_o shall_v hear_v my_o voice_n say_v he_o if_o christ_n intend_v to_o bring_v they_o into_o his_o fold_n to_o save_v they_o they_o shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n and_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 10.14_o so_o that_o when_o god_n withhold_v from_o a_o people_n the_o preach_v of_o his_o word_n though_o we_o may_v not_o presume_v to_o judge_v of_o his_o secret_a counsel_n and_o decree_n concern_v any_o man_n or_o to_o limit_v his_o power_n yet_o may_v we_o bold_o say_v that_o this_o be_v a_o fearful_a sign_n that_o christ_n have_v no_o sheep_n there_o who_o he_o mean_v to_o bring_v unto_o his_o fold_n no_o elect_a people_n there_o who_o he_o mean_v to_o save_v and_o when_o god_n restrain_v preach_v and_o take_v it_o away_o from_o a_o people_n for_o whosoever_o be_v the_o instrument_n this_o be_v his_o do_v certain_o be_v there_o any_o evil_n in_o a_o city_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o do_v it_o amos_n 3.6_o we_o may_v take_v it_o for_o a_o sign_n that_o the_o lord_n have_v no_o more_o sheep_n there_o who_o he_o mean_v to_o bring_v into_o his_o fold_n if_o god_n shall_v send_v upon_o a_o land_n such_o weather_n either_o in_o seedtime_n as_o shall_v rot_v all_o the_o seed_n in_o the_o ground_n and_o make_v it_o unfruitful_a or_o in_o the_o harvest_n as_o shall_v rot_v all_o the_o corn_n when_o it_o be_v come_v even_o unto_o ripeness_n or_o if_o send_v a_o plentiful_a and_o seasonable_a harvest_n he_o shall_v send_v such_o a_o general_a mortality_n and_o sickness_n among_o man_n as_o none_o can_v be_v get_v to_o reap_v and_o gather_v it_o all_o man_n will_v take_v this_o for_o a_o sign_n that_o god_n mean_v to_o bring_v a_o famine_n upon_o that_o land_n and_o destroy_v both_o man_n and_o beast_n by_o it_o yea_o they_o will_v be_v much_o affect_v and_o mourn_v extreme_o for_o such_o a_o judgement_n it_o will_v be_v a_o day_n of_o grief_n and_o of_o desperate_a sorrow_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v esa._n 17.11_o and_o yet_o man_n know_v well_o enough_o that_o god_n can_v keep_v man_n from_o famine_n and_o feed_v they_o sufficient_o though_o they_o have_v no_o corn_n at_o all_o as_o he_o do_v all_o israel_n for_o forty_o year_n together_o in_o the_o wilderness_n even_o so_o it_o be_v in_o this_o case_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o state_n that_o the_o athenian_n and_o all_o other_o gentile_n have_v be_v in_o before_o christ_n ascension_n into_o heaven_n say_v act_n 17.30_o that_o the_o time_n of_o that_o ignorance_n while_o god_n withhold_v from_o the_o gentile_n the_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n god_n regard_v not_o as_o the_o old_a translation_n well_o render_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o do_v look_v over_o it_o he_o do_v not_o vouchsafe_v to_o look_v or_o set_v his_o eye_n upon_o it_o that_o be_v regard_v they_o not_o care_v not_o what_o become_v of_o man_n that_o live_v in_o those_o day_n for_o that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o phrase_n appear_v by_o the_o contrary_a psal._n 34_o 5._o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o the_o righteous_a that_o be_v he_o respect_v they_o and_o have_v a_o care_n of_o they_o in_o a_o special_a manner_n the_o people_n that_o god_n deny_v his_o word_n unto_o it_o be_v a_o fearful_a sign_n that_o they_o be_v such_o as_o god_n regard_v not_o care_v not_o what_o become_v of_o they_o and_o have_v not_o we_o just_a cause_n then_o to_o mourn_v when_o we_o see_v preach_v restrain_v sure_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v not_o think_v so_o his_o bowel_n will_v not_o so_o have_v yern_v in_o he_o to_o see_v so_o few_o preacher_n to_o see_v the_o people_n like_o sheep_n scatter_v upon_o the_o mountain_n without_o pastor_n to_o look_v to_o they_o and_o feed_v they_o to_o see_v the_o lord_n harvest_n like_a to_o be_v lose_v for_o want_v of_o labourer_n as_o we_o see_v he_o do_v matth._n 9_o 36._o but_o you_o will_v object_v again_o object_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n sure_a you_o shall_v so_o plead_v for_o preach_v we_o have_v preach_v enough_o in_o these_o day_n if_o that_o be_v good_a be_v all_o save_v that_o have_v preach_v where_o have_v you_o worse_a people_n than_o where_o be_v most_o preach_v i_o answer_v answ._n that_o though_o all_o be_v not_o save_v that_o have_v preach_v but_o preach_v be_v send_v to_o some_o obstinate_a people_n and_o continue_v to_o they_o only_o to_o be_v a_o witness_n against_o they_o and_o to_o increase_v their_o condemnation_n as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v mat._n 24.14_o yet_o be_v it_o a_o just_a cause_n of_o comfort_n and_o rejoice_v to_o all_o god_n people_n to_o see_v sound_a preach_n abound_v to_o see_v store_n of_o good_a preacher_n raise_v up_o by_o god_n preacher_n of_o god_n send_v for_o how_o can_v they_o preach_v say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 10.15_o that_o be_v preach_v profitable_o and_o effectual_o except_o they_o be_v send_v of_o god_n yea_o will_v you_o say_v it_o be_v indeed_o a_o just_a cause_n of_o joy_n to_o see_v store_n of_o those_o preacher_n in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v of_o god_n send_v for_o those_o sure_o be_v not_o only_o good_a preacher_n but_o good_a man_n too_o i_o answer_v none_o be_v preacher_n of_o god_n send_v so_o qualify_v in_o all_o point_n as_o he_o require_v but_o such_o as_o be_v orderly_o approve_v to_o be_v 1_o man_n able_a to_o teach_v profitable_o 2_o man_n of_o unblameable_a life_n but_o a_o man_n may_v be_v a_o preacher_n of_o god_n send_v though_o he_o be_v a_o hypocrite_n and_o have_v no_o truth_n of_o grace_n in_o his_o heart_n as_o those_o be_v i_o tell_v you_o of_o the_o last_o day_n out_o of_o phil._n 1.18_o and_o as_o judas_n be_v he_o be_v send_v of_o god_n to_o preach_v matth._n 10.4_o 7._o yea_o and_o god_n wrought_v with_o he_o ●oo_o as_o be_v plain_a by_o that_o we_o read_v luk._n 9.6_o and_o yet_o he_o be_v but_o a_o hypocrite_n in_o heart_n he_o never_o have_v truth_n of_o grace_n in_o he_o when_o he_o be_v at_o the_o best_a when_o therefore_o we_o see_v store_n of_o such_o preacher_n as_o be_v man_n able_a to_o teach_v profitable_o and_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a such_o be_v of_o god_n send_v and_o we_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o rejoice_v in_o it_o for_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a sign_n not_o only_o that_o god_n have_v a_o true_a church_n among_o we_o a_o company_n of_o elect_a one_o but_o also_o that_o he_o have_v among_o we_o more_o people_n to_o be_v gather_v and_o bring_v into_o his_o fold_n that_o he_o mean_v not_o yet_o to_o remove_v our_o candlestick_n but_o to_o continue_v and_o enlarge_v the_o bound_n of_o his_o church_n among_o we_o for_o god_n do_v never_o send_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n to_o such_o as_o be_v all_o reprobate_n or_o for_o the_o reprobate_n sake_n only_o or_o principal_o to_o harden_v they_o and_o increase_v their_o condemnation_n but_o for_o his_o elect_v sake_n principal_o he_o send_v his_o word_n to_o any_o people_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n say_v the_o apostle_n eph._n 4.12_o why_o god_n give_v preacher_n for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n and_o for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n so_o the_o apostle_n be_v send_v mat._n 6.10_o to_o the_o lose_a sheep_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n to_o bring_v the_o lord_n sheep_n his_o elect_a that_o be_v in_o israel_n into_o his_o fold_n so_o when_o god_n send_v paul_n to_o corinth_n and_o maintain_v his_o liberty_n there_o a_o year_n and_o a_o half_a he_o give_v this_o for_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o act_n 18.10_o for_o i_o have_v much_o people_n in_o this_o city_n say_v he_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n god_n have_v much_o people_n there_o where_o he_o place_v able_a and_o good_a preacher_n and_o maintain_v they_o in_o peace_n and_o liberty_n for_o any_o time_n so_o you_o see_v to_o conclude_v this_o first_o reason_n of_o the_o point_n that_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o love_n we_o owe_v to_o all_o man_n and_o the_o desire_n we_o shall_v have_v of_o their_o salvation_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o grieve_v to_o see_v it_o hinder_v and_o interrupt_v any_o way_n 2_o the_o second_o reason_n be_v the_o respect_n we_o owe_v unto_o ourselves_o and_o to_o the_o church_n and_o
send_v as_o we_o read_v verse_n 8_o 9_o levite_n and_o priest_n throughout_o all_o the_o city_n and_o town_n of_o judah_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n and_o as_o it_o appear_v verse_n 7._o he_o send_v of_o his_o chief_a prince_n and_o noble_n with_o they_o to_o countenance_v they_o in_o their_o work_n when_o he_o have_v do_v this_o i_o say_v it_o be_v say_v ver_n 12._o that_o jehosaphat_n wax_v great_a exceed_o he_o and_o his_o kingdom_n prosper_v wonderful_o by_o this_o mean_n consider_v now_o from_o this_o day_n say_v the_o lord_n hag._n 2.18_o 19_o he_o have_v speak_v before_o verse_n 16_o 17._o of_o a_o strange_a curse_n have_v be_v upon_o they_o while_o his_o house_n and_o worship_n have_v be_v neglect_v consider_v now_o from_o this_o day_n even_o from_o the_o day_n that_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o lord_n temple_n be_v lay_v consider_v it_o say_v he_o again_o from_o this_o day_n i_o will_v bless_v you_o with_o outward_a blessing_n he_o mean_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o former_a verse_n certain_o the_o place_n where_o god_n house_n and_o worship_n be_v erect_v and_o maintain_v shall_v be_v bless_v of_o god_n with_o blessing_n of_o all_o sort_n it_o be_v say_v of_o vzziah_n the_o king_n of_o judah_n ●_o chro._n 26.5_o that_o he_o seek_v god_n that_o be_v profess_v and_o maintain_v the_o true_a religion_n of_o god_n in_o the_o day_n of_o zechariah_n who_o have_v understanding_n in_o the_o vision_n of_o god_n and_o as_o long_o as_o he_o seek_v the_o lord_n god_n make_v he_o to_o prosper_v and_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n of_o heart_n in_o he_o at_o all_o for_o it_o be_v say_v verse_n 4._o that_o he_o do_v that_o which_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n according_a to_o all_o that_o his_o father_n amaziah_n do_v and_o of_o his_o father_n it_o be_v say_v 2_o chron._n 25.2_o that_o he_o do_v that_o which_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v he_o profess_v and_o maintain_v the_o true_a religion_n of_o god_n but_o not_o with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n let_v the_o true_a religion_n of_o god_n be_v profess_v and_o maintain_v in_o any_o kingdom_n though_o many_o that_o profess_v it_o have_v no_o power_n of_o religion_n in_o their_o heart_n yet_o will_v god_n make_v that_o kingdom_n to_o prosper_v even_o for_o that_o believe_v it_o belove_v believe_v it_o true_a religion_n never_o find_v entertainment_n any_o where_o in_o any_o family_n town_n or_o kingdom_n but_o it_o bring_v a_o blessing_n with_o it_o to_o the_o place_n while_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n be_v in_o the_o house_n of_o obed-edom_a 2_o sam_n 6.12_o god_n bless_v the_o house_n of_o obed-edom_a and_o all_o that_o pertain_v unto_o he_o because_o of_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n but_o what_o speak_v i_o of_o obed-edom_a that_o be_v a_o good_a man_n and_o entertain_v it_o with_o a_o good_a heart_n i_o will_v say_v more_o than_o so_o it_o will_v bring_v temporal_a blessing_n upon_o they_o that_o give_v entertainment_n unto_o it_o though_o themselves_o be_v such_o as_o regard_v it_o not_o nor_o make_v any_o reckon_n of_o it_o the_o religion_n and_o piety_n of_o jacob_n bring_v a_o blessing_n even_o into_o laban_n house_n so_o sensible_o that_o he_o can_v say_v gen._n 30.27_o tarry_v with_o i_o i_o pray_v thou_o for_o i_o have_v learn_v by_o experience_n that_o the_o lord_n have_v bless_v i_o for_o thy_o sake_n and_o the_o religion_n and_o piety_n of_o joseph_n bring_v a_o blessing_n into_o potiphars_n family_n for_o so_o we_o read_v gen._n 39_o 5._o the_o lord_n bless_v the_o egyptian_n house_n for_o josephs_n sake_n and_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o all_o that_o he_o have_v both_o in_o the_o house_n and_o in_o the_o field_n on_o the_o other_o side_n no_o sin_n that_o a_o land_n can_v be_v guilty_a of_o will_n soon_o deprive_v it_o of_o all_o god_n blessing_n nor_o bring_v all_o manner_n of_o calamity_n upon_o it_o than_o this_o neglect_n of_o religion_n will_v do_v see_v a_o plain_a proof_n of_o this_o 2_o chron._n 29.6_o 9_o where_o hezekiah_n impute_v all_o the_o misery_n that_o have_v come_v upon_o the_o state_n and_o kingdom_n of_o judah_n unto_o this_o though_o doubtless_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o many_o other_o grievous_a sin_n beside_o this_o that_o they_o have_v turn_v away_o their_o face_n from_o the_o habitation_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o have_v turn_v their_o back_n they_o have_v show_v no_o respect_n nor_o zeal_n towards_o the_o house_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n they_o have_v shut_v up_o the_o door_n of_o the_o porch_n and_o put_v out_o the_o lamp_n and_o have_v not_o burn_v incense_n nor_o offer_v burn_v offering_n in_o the_o holy_a place_n unto_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n therefore_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v upon_o judah_n and_o jerusalem_n say_v he_o he_o say_v nothing_o there_o of_o the_o idolatry_n and_o false_a worship_n they_o have_v set_v up_o which_o doubtless_o be_v a_o high_a degree_n of_o sin_n but_o he_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o neglect_n of_o the_o true_a worship_n and_o want_v of_o respect_n and_o love_n unto_o it_o even_o to_o this_o sin_n he_o impute_v all_o the_o calamity_n which_o that_o state_n and_o church_n have_v endure_v and_o so_o do_v the_o lord_n by_o the_o prophet_n hag._n 1.9_o and_o 2.15_o 17._o impute_v many_o strange_a curse_n that_o he_o have_v bring_v upon_o that_o people_n after_o their_o return_n from_o the_o captivity_n even_o to_o the_o neglect_n of_o build_v his_o house_n and_o set_v up_o of_o his_o true_a worship_n among_o they_o and_o if_o the_o neglect_n of_o religion_n will_v make_v a_o land_n so_o liable_a to_o god_n curse_n what_o will_v the_o set_n up_o of_o a_o false_a religion_n or_o the_o hinder_v and_o stop_v of_o the_o course_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v sure_o this_o must_v needs_o provoke_v god_n much_o more_o forbid_v we_o to_o preach_v to_o the_o gentile_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o thess._n 2.16_o to_o fill_v up_o their_o sin_n always_o this_o do_v fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o sin_n it_o be_v the_o height_n and_o perfection_n of_o sin_n in_o any_o person_n in_o any_o nation_n to_o do_v so_o so_o that_o to_o conclude_v this_o second_o reason_n he_o that_o desire_v the_o prosperity_n and_o wealth_n of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o it_o may_v be_v keep_v free_a from_o famine_n and_o pestilence_n and_o all_o other_o calamity_n will_v joy_v to_o see_v the_o pure_a religion_n of_o god_n to_o be_v maintain_v and_o countenance_v in_o it_o to_o see_v the_o sound_n preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n to_o abound_v and_o become_v fruitful_a and_o he_o will_v grieve_v to_o see_v it_o otherwise_o the_o three_o 3._o and_o last_o reason_n of_o the_o point_n respect_v the_o lord_n himself_o no_o man_n can_v have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n that_o do_v not_o desire_v unfeigned_o and_o rejoice_v to_o see_v god_n honour_n and_o glory_n advance_v among_o man_n to_o see_v his_o kingdom_n enlarge_v to_o see_v man_n live_v in_o dutiful_a obedience_n unto_o he_o this_o our_o saviour_n teach_v we_o in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n to_o make_v our_o chief_a suit_n to_o god_n whensoever_o we_o pray_v to_o he_o our_o three_o first_o and_o principal_a petition_n matth._n 6.9_o 10._o hallow_a be_v thy_o name_n thy_o kingdom_n come_v thy_o will_n be_v do_v in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o he_o that_o can_v hearty_o desire_v this_o yea_o desire_v it_o more_o than_o any_o thing_n else_o never_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o pray_v aright_o never_o make_v any_o prayer_n that_o be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n in_o all_o his_o life_n and_o he_o that_o desire_v this_o can_v but_o rejoice_v to_o see_v the_o gospel_n sound_o and_o free_o and_o plentiful_o preach_v to_o see_v god_n pure_a religion_n profess_v and_o practise_v for_o 1_o nothing_o advance_v god_n glory_n so_o much_o as_o the_o faithful_a preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v it_o be_v call_v therefore_o 2_o cor._n 4.2_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 1_o tim._n 1.11_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o bless_a god_n and_o the_o faithful_a minister_n be_v call_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n 2_o cor._n 8.23_o christ_n receive_v not_o so_o much_o glory_n by_o any_o as_o by_o they_o the_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n be_v the_o sceptre_n of_o god_n kingdom_n and_o the_o mean_n whereby_o he_o subdue_v man_n and_o bring_v they_o under_o his_o obedience_n this_o be_v that_o rod_n of_o god_n strength_n which_o he_o send_v out_o of_o zion_n speak_v of_o psal._n 110.2_o whereby_o he_o rule_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o it_o be_v therefore_o call_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n mat._n
be_v with_o he_o and_o that_o he_o may_v send_v they_o forth_o to_o preach_v christ_n send_v i_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 1.17_o not_o to_o baptize_v that_o be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o baptize_v but_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n for_o this_o work_n chief_o be_v our_o maintenance_n due_a unto_o we_o not_o by_o the_o law_n of_o man_n only_o but_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n too_o the_o lord_n have_v ordain_v say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 9.14_o that_o they_o that_o preach_v the_o gospel_n shall_v live_v of_o the_o gospel_n the_o elder_n that_o labour_v in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n special_o above_o all_o other_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o timothy_n 5.17_o be_v worthy_a of_o double_a honour_n by_o which_o he_o mean_v maintenance_n as_o appear_v verse_n 18._o it_o shall_v be_v such_o maintenance_n so_o free_a so_o liberal_a as_o may_v testify_v that_o you_o honour_v he_o in_o your_o heart_n such_o as_o may_v keep_v he_o from_o contempt_n it_o may_v not_o be_v so_o base_a and_o niggardly_a as_o that_o the_o very_a meanness_n of_o his_o estate_n may_v make_v he_o vile_a and_o contemptible_a yea_o this_o double_a honour_n this_o liberal_a maintenance_n he_o be_v worthy_a of_o it_o it_o be_v no_o alm_n or_o mere_a gratuity_n he_o be_v worthy_a of_o it_o he_o deserve_v it_o well_o and_o as_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a work_n that_o we_o be_v call_v of_o god_n to_o exercise_v ourselves_o in_o and_o for_o which_o our_o maintenance_n be_v due_a to_o we_o from_o the_o people_n so_o be_v this_o the_o chief_a work_n we_o shall_v exercise_v ourselves_o in_o glad_o take_v all_o opportunity_n for_o do_v this_o work_n you_o hear_v afore_o christ_n do_v so_o and_o we_o shall_v find_v act._n 5.42_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v so_o daily_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o in_o every_o house_n they_o cease_v not_o to_o teach_v and_o preach_v jesus_n christ._n i_o know_v well_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v by_o these_o example_n to_o preach_v every_o day_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v for_o they_o can_v preach_v without_o study_n and_o so_o can_v the_o best_a of_o we_o do_v if_o we_o desire_v to_o preach_v well_o but_o if_o we_o be_v as_o able_a as_o they_o be_v certain_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v as_o they_o do_v and_o certain_o we_o be_v bind_v by_o their_o example_n to_o preach_v as_o oft_o and_o as_o diligent_o as_o the_o ability_n of_o our_o body_n and_o of_o our_o mind_n will_v enable_v we_o to_o do_v have_v always_o respect_v to_o our_o people_n and_o their_o necessity_n and_o to_o conclude_v my_o first_o answer_n to_o this_o first_o objection_n make_v against_o the_o necessity_n of_o preach_v i_o pray_v you_o observe_v that_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o holy_a apostle_n ever_o be_v wont_a to_o take_v the_o opportunity_n of_o the_o church_n assembly_n on_o the_o sabbath_n to_o preach_v then_o of_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v plain_a mark_v 1.21.39_o and_o 6.2_o luke_n 4.31_o and_o 6.6_o and_o 13.18_o and_o it_o be_v as_o plain_a that_o the_o apostle_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v so_o act_v 13_o 14_o 16_o 44_o and_o 17.2_o 3_o and_o 18.4_o and_o 20.7_o though_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o church_n meet_v at_o treas_z upon_o the_o lord_n day_n be_v principal_o for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n yet_o because_o he_o know_v that_o there_o be_v no_o better_a way_n either_o to_o sanctify_v the_o sabbath_n or_o to_o prepare_v man_n heart_n to_o the_o sacrament_n then_o preach_v it_o be_v say_v he_o spend_v the_o whole_a day_n in_o preach_v and_o so_o much_o shall_v serve_v for_o my_o first_o answer_n to_o this_o first_o objection_n 2._o second_o i_o answer_v that_o no_o man_n can_v pray_v aright_o till_o he_o be_v first_o by_o preach_v make_v able_a and_o fit_a to_o pray_v this_o be_v evident_a by_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 10.14_o how_o shall_v they_o call_v upon_o he_o in_o who_o they_o have_v not_o believe_v and_o how_o shall_v they_o believe_v on_o he_o of_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v and_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v save_o he_o mean_v without_o a_o preacher_n a_o people_n may_v be_v accustom_v long_o enough_o to_o hear_v prayer_n read_v unto_o they_o and_o good_a prayer_n too_o but_o they_o shall_v be_v little_a or_o nothing_o the_o better_a for_o they_o till_o first_o their_o heart_n be_v wrought_v upon_o by_o preach_v and_o make_v able_a to_o pray_v all_o our_o prayer_n and_o what_o other_o service_n soever_o we_o do_v unto_o god_n will_v breed_v we_o small_a comfort_n till_o we_o have_v be_v hearer_n first_o and_o believer_n till_o we_o have_v profit_v by_o our_o hear_n till_o we_o have_v be_v ready_a to_o hear_v till_o we_o have_v hear_v the_o word_n with_o desire_n delight_n and_o comfort_n 3._o three_o and_o last_o as_o preach_v be_v the_o mean_n to_o convey_v into_o our_o heart_n the_o spirit_n of_o prayer_n at_o the_o first_o so_o it_o be_v also_o the_o best_a mean_n to_o stir_v it_o up_o and_o quicken_v it_o to_o set_v it_o on_o work_n in_o they_o that_o have_v receive_v it_o and_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o god_n people_n at_o their_o solemn_a fast_n the_o chief_a use_n whereof_o be_v to_o make_v our_o prayer_n more_o fervent_a to_o make_v we_o cry_v mighty_o unto_o god_n as_o it_o be_v say_v jon._n 3.8_o do_v use_v preach_v so_o much_o two_o notable_a example_n we_o have_v for_o this_o the_o first_o be_v nehe._n 9.3_o the_o levite_n stand_v up_o in_o their_o place_n and_o read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n one_o four_o part_n of_o the_o day_n and_o how_o do_v they_o read_v their_o manner_n of_o read_v you_o shall_v find_v neh._n 8.8_o they_o give_v the_o sense_n also_o and_o cause_v they_o to_o understand_v the_o read_n yea_o they_o apply_v it_o also_o so_o effectual_o that_o it_o wrought_v marvellous_o upon_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n as_o appear_v verse_n 9_o the_o other_o example_n be_v that_o in_o jer._n 36.5_o 6._o jeremy_n will_v fain_o have_v go_v into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o have_v preach_v there_o at_o the_o public_a fast_o and_o because_o he_o be_v shut_v up_o and_o can_v not_o do_v it_o he_o send_v baruch_n to_o read_v his_o sermon_n there_o as_o he_o take_v it_o from_o his_o mouth_n but_o why_o do_v they_o use_v preach_v thus_o at_o fast_n see_v prayer_n be_v doubtless_o the_o chief_a duty_n that_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v at_o a_o fast_a sure_o as_o a_o help_n to_o prayer_n to_o stir_v up_o man_n affection_n and_o make_v they_o able_a to_o pray_v more_o fervent_o and_o this_o reason_n jeremy_n give_v why_o he_o will_v have_v preach_v at_o that_o fast_o and_o when_o he_o can_v not_o will_v needs_o have_v baruch_n go_v and_o read_v his_o sermon_n unto_o they_o jer._n 36.7_o it_o may_v be_v say_v he_o they_o will_v present_v their_o supplication_n before_o the_o lord_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v it_o may_v be_v this_o sermon_n will_v stir_v they_o up_o to_o pray_v more_o fervent_o and_o this_o may_v serve_v for_o a_o full_a answer_n to_o the_o first_o objection_n 2_o but_o then_o they_o object_v second_o that_o though_o preach_v be_v grant_v to_o be_v never_o so_o necessary_a for_o the_o first_o plant_n of_o a_o church_n and_o bring_v of_o man_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n yet_o in_o such_o a_o church_n as_o we_o be_v that_o have_v so_o long_o enjoy_v it_o and_o wherein_o knowledge_n do_v so_o much_o abound_v it_o may_v well_o be_v spare_v and_o instead_o thereof_o more_o time_n spend_v in_o prayer_n answ._n to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o plentiful_a and_o profitable_a preach_n be_v still_o as_o necessary_a in_o our_o church_n as_o ever_o it_o be_v for_o first_o there_o be_v no_o congregation_n wherein_o there_o be_v not_o still_o many_o that_o be_v ignorant_a and_o unconvert_v yea_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v the_o great_a part_n by_o far_o in_o our_o best_a congregation_n be_v such_o and_o of_o they_o no_o question_n can_v be_v make_v but_o they_o have_v still_o need_v of_o preach_v those_o sheep_n that_o be_v not_o yet_o of_o christ_n fold_n not_o yet_o convert_v and_o of_o the_o number_n of_o true_a believer_n christ_n must_v bring_v and_o they_o must_v bear_v his_o voice_n as_o our_o saviour_n himself_o speak_v joh._n 10.16_o or_o they_o will_v never_o come_v into_o christ_n fold_n and_o be_v convert_v and_o how_o shall_v they_o bear_v without_o a_o preacher_n say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 10.14_o second_o even_o those_o that_o have_v profit_v most_o in_o grace_n and_o knowledge_n have_v need_n of_o preach_v still_o even_o of_o the_o continual_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n three_o evident_a reason_n there_o
be_v for_o this_o first_o the_o best_a be_v much_o want_v in_o knowledge_n and_o grace_n and_o will_v be_v while_o they_o live_v and_o he_o have_v no_o truth_n of_o grace_n in_o he_o that_o do_v not_o find_v and_o feel_v it_o to_o be_v so_o with_o himself_o our_o saviour_n call_v his_o best_a disciple_n little_a child_n joh._n 13.33_o and_o so_o do_v the_o apostle_n all_o the_o faithful_a that_o he_o write_v unto_o 1_o john_n 5.21_o and_o preach_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n eph._n 4.12_o it_o be_v able_a to_o build_v man_n up_o in_o grace_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v act_n 20.32_o therefore_o though_o he_o have_v opportunity_n to_o write_v to_o the_o thessalonian_n and_o do_v so_o twice_o yet_o he_o pray_v exceed_o as_o he_o say_v 1_o thes._n 3.10_o that_o he_o may_v see_v their_o face_n and_o may_v perfect_v that_o that_o be_v lack_v in_o their_o faith_n there_o be_v no_o such_o mean_n to_o make_v man_n grow_v in_o faith_n and_o every_o other_o save_v grace_n to_o perfect_a that_o that_o be_v lack_v in_o it_o as_o sound_z preach_v be_v second_o they_o that_o have_v grace_n in_o the_o great_a measure_n be_v apt_a to_o decay_v and_o cool_v and_o go_v backward_o if_o they_o have_v not_o continual_a mean_n to_o strengthen_v and_o nourish_v the_o grace_n that_o they_o have_v receive_v as_o the_o most_o healthful_a and_o strong_a man_n will_v do_v if_o he_o have_v not_o daily_a food_n and_o the_o most_o fertile_a soil_n if_o the_o rain_n fall_v not_o oft_o upon_o it_o which_o be_v the_o very_a comparison_n whereby_o the_o apostle_n express_v this_o point_n heb._n 6.7_o the_o man_n that_o have_v feed_v most_o liberal_o yesterday_o will_v find_v as_o much_o need_n of_o food_n again_o to_o day_n as_o if_o he_o have_v eat_v nothing_o then_o and_o our_o soul_n be_v apt_a to_o decay_v in_o strength_n as_o well_o as_o our_o body_n be_v and_o have_v need_n of_o ordinary_a and_o continual_a food_n as_o they_o this_o the_o lord_n have_v respect_n unto_o in_o enjoin_v we_o to_o spend_v one_o whole_a day_n every_o week_n in_o his_o service_n exod._n 20_o 8_o he_o know_v well_o our_o soul_n will_v be_v in_o danger_n to_o decay_v unless_o they_o may_v have_v a_o feast_a day_n once_o a_o week_n i_o be_o like_o a_o green_a olive_n tree_n say_v david_n psal._n 52.8_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n no_o man_n can_v hope_v to_o continue_v as_o the_o green_a olive_n tree_n to_o flourish_v or_o keep_v in_o himself_o the_o vigour_n of_o grace_n if_o he_o grow_v or_o dwell_v any_o where_o but_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n where_o he_o may_v enjoy_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n ordinary_o they_o that_o have_v have_v the_o best_a mean_n of_o grace_n and_o have_v profit_v most_o by_o they_o let_v they_o but_o want_v those_o mean_v a_o while_n and_o the_o decay_n will_v be_v sensible_a even_o unto_o man_n israel_n have_v enjoy_v excellent_a mean_n in_o the_o day_n of_o joshua_n and_o eleazar_n and_o phineas_n and_o have_v profit_v great_o by_o they_o also_o as_o appear_v by_o that_o protestation_n and_o vow_v they_o make_v josh._n 24.16_o 18.24_o but_o when_o they_o have_v want_v those_o mean_n but_o a_o while_o they_o turn_v quick_o out_o of_o the_o way_n judg._n 2.17_o and_o fall_v into_o gross_a idolatry_n now_o sound_v preach_v be_v not_o only_o the_o seed_n whereby_o we_o be_v first_o beget_v unto_o god_n but_o it_o be_v also_o the_o food_n whereby_o our_o soul_n be_v nourish_v and_o strengthen_v both_o milk_n for_o babe_n and_o strong_a meat_n for_o such_o as_o be_v of_o more_o growth_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o heb._n 5.12_o they_o that_o have_v more_o profit_v by_o it_o have_v great_a need_n of_o it_o as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o have_v i_o will_v not_o be_v negligent_a say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o pet._n 1.12_o to_o put_v you_o always_o in_o remembrance_n of_o these_o thing_n though_o you_o know_v they_o and_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o present_a truth_n three_o and_o last_o the_o long_a that_o any_o people_n have_v enjoy_v a_o good_a ministry_n and_o the_o more_o they_o have_v profit_v by_o it_o the_o more_o pity_n it_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v want_v it_o for_o as_o they_o be_v dear_a unto_o god_n so_o their_o decay_n will_v more_o dishonour_n god_n than_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o man_n i_o have_v not_o write_v unto_o you_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o job._n 12.21_o because_o you_o know_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o because_o you_o know_v it_o and_o that_o no_o lie_n be_v of_o the_o truth_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v therefore_o have_v i_o have_v more_o care_n of_o you_o than_o otherwise_o i_o will_v have_v have_v see_v this_o also_o in_o the_o example_n of_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n antioch_n be_v the_o place_n that_o of_o all_o the_o city_n of_o the_o gentile_n have_v enjoy_v the_o best_a ministry_n and_o have_v profit_v most_o by_o it_o and_o the_o disciple_n be_v call_v christian_n first_o in_o antioch_n act_v 11.26_o and_o there_o be_v no_o place_n in_o the_o world_n that_o the_o apostle_n show_v so_o much_o care_n of_o nor_o spend_v so_o much_o time_n in_o as_o they_o do_v there_o when_o barnabas_n come_v and_o see_v how_o the_o gospel_n prosper_v there_o he_o do_v not_o only_o rejoice_v in_o it_o and_o take_v great_a pain_n there_o himself_o but_o seek_v out_o paul_n and_o bring_v he_o thither_o too_o and_o they_o both_o take_v pain_n there_o a_o whole_a year_n together_o act._n 11.23_o 26._o and_o act._n 14.28_o they_o come_v thither_o again_o and_o abode_n there_o a_o long_a time_n with_o the_o disciple_n and_o so_o do_v they_o again_o and_o with_o they_o silas_n also_o act._n 15.34_o 35._o and_o spend_v a_o good_a time_n there_o two_o objection_n more_o there_o be_v that_o be_v make_v against_o the_o necessity_n of_o preach_v which_o i_o will_v pass_v over_o very_o brief_o 3_o admit_v say_v they_o three_o that_o preach_v be_v the_o best_a mean_n to_o feed_v the_o soul_n yet_o as_o the_o stomach_n special_o of_o a_o child_n may_v be_v overcharge_v and_o glut_v with_o the_o best_a food_n that_o be_v and_o so_o take_v much_o hurt_n by_o it_o so_o it_o be_v with_o the_o word_n the_o people_n be_v in_o these_o day_n even_o glut_v and_o cloy_v with_o it_o and_o grow_v thereby_o to_o a_o loathe_n of_o it_o if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o common_a it_o will_v be_v more_o precious_a than_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o samuel_n 1_o sam._n 3.1_o answ._n to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o it_o have_v ever_o be_v so_o with_o some_o that_o they_o have_v loathe_v the_o word_n but_o much_o preach_n have_v not_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o for_o many_o that_o be_v not_o trouble_v with_o much_o preach_n loathe_v it_o as_o much_o as_o any_o and_o feel_v no_o sweetness_n in_o it_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o reproach_n unto_o they_o they_o have_v no_o delight_n in_o it_o as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v jer._n 6.10_o and_o many_o that_o be_v the_o most_o constant_a hearer_n of_o it_o be_v far_a from_o be_v glutt_v with_o it_o hear_v it_o with_o the_o best_a appetite_n and_o delight_n the_o more_o they_o hear_v the_o more_o they_o may_v the_o bless_a man_n that_o david_n speak_v of_o ps._n 1.2_o though_o he_o meditate_v in_o god_n law_n day_n and_o night_n delight_v in_o it_o nevertheless_o for_o that_o he_o find_v no_o satiety_n in_o it_o he_o be_v not_o glut_v nor_o cloy_v with_o it_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o this_o loathe_n of_o the_o word_n be_v give_v by_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 8.5_o they_o that_o be_v after_o the_o flesh_n do_v savour_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o they_o that_o be_v after_o the_o spirit_n the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n a_o carnal_a man_n find_v no_o savour_n in_o any_o thing_n save_v only_o in_o carnal_a and_o worldly_a thing_n no_o man_n can_v find_v sweetness_n in_o the_o word_n till_o he_o be_v a_o regenerate_a and_o new_a man_n second_o much_o preach_v if_o it_o be_v sound_a and_o substantial_a be_v not_o food_n only_o but_o physic_n to_o the_o soul_n it_o be_v the_o best_a mean_n to_o cure_v this_o nausea_n this_o disease_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o make_v it_o so_o apt_a for_o to_o loathe_v the_o word_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n speak_v to_o timothy_n 2_o tim._n 4.2_o 3._o of_o such_o as_o can_v not_o endure_v ●ound_v doctrine_n wholesome_a food_n prescribe_v he_o this_o for_o the_o remedy_n against_o it_o therefore_o preach_v the_o more_o say_v he_o and_o the_o more_o profitable_o be_v instant_a in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n reprove_v rebuke_n exhort_v with_o all_o long_a
of_o this_o exhortation_n will_v appear_v to_o we_o in_o three_o thing_n first_o there_o be_v never_o a_o one_o of_o we_o can_v assure_v ourselves_o for_o any_o one_o day_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v exempt_v from_o cross_n and_o affliction_n in_o one_o kind_a or_o other_o in_o one_o degree_n or_o other_o god_n judge_v the_o righteous_a say_v the_o prophet_n psal._n 7.11_o and_o be_v angry_a with_o the_o wicked_a every_o day_n and_o our_o saviour_n mat._n 6.34_o sufficient_a for_o the_o day_n be_v the_o evil_a thereof_o every_o day_n for_o the_o most_o part_n bring_v with_o it_o some_o evil_n and_o affliction_n some_o cross_n and_o occasion_n of_o grief_n or_o other_o special_o this_o fall_v out_o to_o be_v so_o with_o they_o that_o live_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o profess_v his_o truth_n the_o just_a god_n say_v the_o prophet_n zeph._n 3.5_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n thereof_o every_o morning_n do_v he_o bring_v his_o judgement_n to_o light_n he_o fail_v not_o yea_o the_o better_a proceed_n that_o any_o of_o we_o have_v make_v in_o christ_n school_n the_o more_o grace_n be_v in_o we_o the_o more_o sure_a shall_v we_o be_v to_o meet_v with_o cross_n every_o day_n all_o the_o day_n long_o say_v david_n psal._n 73.14_o have_v i_o be_v plague_v and_o chastened_a every_o morning_n so_o that_o in_o this_o respect_n you_o see_v this_o exhortation_n unto_o patience_n and_o submit_v ourselves_o humble_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o all_o his_o correction_n be_v of_o daily_a use_n for_o every_o one_o of_o we_o second_o admit_v we_o be_v for_o the_o present_a never_o so_o free_a from_o trouble_n and_o cross_n yet_o have_v we_o all_o cause_n to_o look_v for_o troublesome_a and_o evil_a time_n we_o i_o say_v even_o we_o in_o this_o land_n if_o ever_o people_n in_o the_o world_n have_v cause_n so_o to_o do_v we_o have_v enjoy_v a_o long_a summer_n day_n of_o light_n of_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v our_o great_a sin_n to_o we_o may_v now_o be_v apply_v that_o speech_n of_o the_o prophet_n jer._n 6.4_o wo_n unto_o we_o for_o the_o day_n go_v away_o for_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o evening_n be_v stretch_v out_o many_o sign_n there_o be_v that_o our_o day_n will_v not_o last_v long_o that_o our_o night_n approach_v apace_o in_o the_o morning_n say_v our_o saviour_n mat._n 16.3_o you_o say_v it_o will_v be_v soul_n weather_n for_o the_o sky_n be_v red_a and_o lour_a o_o you_o hypocrite_n you_o can_v discern_v the_o face_n of_o the_o sky_n but_o can_v you_o not_o discern_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o time_n certain_o our_o sky_n be_v now_o red_a and_o lour_a and_o he_o be_v a_o senseless_a and_o secure_a hypocrite_n that_o do_v not_o expect_v some_o great_a storm_n and_o tempest_n in_o this_o respect_n therefore_o we_o have_v also_o need_v of_o this_o exhortation_n every_o one_o of_o we_o it_o be_v wisdom_n in_o summer_n to_o provide_v for_o winter_n as_o the_o lord_n teach_v we_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o pismire_n pro._n 6.8_o she_o provide_v her_o meat_n in_o the_o summer_n and_o gather_v her_o food_n in_o the_o harvest_n and_o to_o get_v our_o weapon_n in_o a_o readiness_n and_o skill_n also_o to_o use_v they_o well_o before_o the_o time_n of_o war_n do_v come_v as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v ephes._n 6.13_o take_v unto_o you_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v be_v able_a to_o withstand_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n three_o and_o last_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o exhortation_n will_v appear_v if_o we_o consider_v well_o how_o hard_o a_o lesson_n this_o be_v to_o learn_v how_o prone_a the_o best_a of_o we_o all_o be_v to_o impatiency_n and_o murmur_a against_o the_o correction_n of_o god_n affliction_n be_v in_o its_o own_o nature_n as_o bitter_a as_o any_o gall_n to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n our_o nature_n abhor_v nothing_o more_o no_o chasten_n say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n 12.1_o for_o the_o present_n seem_v to_o be_v joyous_a but_o grievous_a it_o be_v no_o easy_a thing_n when_o we_o shall_v feel_v god_n stripe_n to_o smart_v indeed_o to_o keep_v down_o our_o unruly_a passion_n and_o to_o bear_v they_o without_o some_o repine_a and_o murmur_v against_o god_n our_o affliction_n be_v call_v our_o infirmity_n 2_o cor._n 11.30_o the_o best_a be_v apt_a to_o bewray_v weakness_n in_o they_o even_o where_o the_o spirit_n be_v most_o ready_a the_o flesh_n will_v show_v it_o ●elfe_n to_o be_v weak_a as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v mat._n 26.41_o special_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a for_o such_o as_o we_o be_v that_o have_v enjoy_v so_o long_a peace_n and_o ease_n and_o prosperity_n to_o endure_v any_o sharp_a affliction_n such_o as_o our_o poor_a brethren_n in_o the_o palatinate_n bohemia_n germany_n and_o france_n have_v do_v this_o make_v the_o cross_a a_o great_a deal_n heavy_a to_o the_o church_n then_o otherwise_o it_o will_v have_v be_v as_o she_o complain_v unto_o god_n psal._n 102.10_o thou_o have_v lift_v i_o up_o and_o cast_v i_o down_o as_o if_o she_o have_v say_v if_o thou_o have_v not_o lift_v i_o up_o so_o high_a with_o many_o favour_n and_o blessing_n of_o thou_o that_o i_o do_v enjoy_v my_o fall_n will_v not_o have_v be_v half_o so_o painful_a unto_o i_o as_o now_o it_o be_v we_o have_v therefore_o all_o need_n of_o this_o exhortation_n to_o patience_n under_o god_n correction_n of_o what_o kind_n soever_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o these_o three_o respect_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v yea_o we_o have_v need_v to_o have_v it_o press_v upon_o we_o in_o the_o most_o forcible_a and_o effectual_a manner_n that_o may_v be_v and_o to_o this_o end_n i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o force_v it_o upon_o myself_o and_o you_o all_o 1._o by_o show_v the_o note_n and_o property_n of_o true_a patience_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v discern_v from_o that_o that_o be_v counterfeit_a 2._o by_o give_v you_o certain_a motive_n that_o may_v stir_v we_o up_o and_o persuade_v we_o to_o seek_v for_o this_o grace_n 3._o by_o direct_v you_o to_o the_o mean_n that_o be_v to_o be_v use_v for_o the_o attain_n to_o it_o for_o the_o first_o then_o i_o must_v give_v you_o seven_o note_n whereby_o we_o may_v know_v what_o true_a patience_n be_v and_o whether_o we_o have_v yet_o obtain_v this_o grace_n first_o true_a patience_n be_v a_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o repentance_n and_o humiliation_n for_o sin_n so_o it_o be_v here_o in_o david_n if_o then_o their_o uncircumcised_a heart_n be_v humble_v say_v the_o lord_n levit._n 26.41_o and_o they_o then_o accept_v of_o the_o punishment_n of_o their_o iniquity_n it_o be_v not_o a_o sign_n of_o true_a patience_n to_o be_v unsensible_a under_o god_n judgement_n though_o many_o please_v themselves_o great_o in_o this_o they_o have_v have_v such_o and_o such_o cross_n and_o they_o never_o murmur_v they_o thank_v god_n nor_o be_v disquiet_v with_o they_o this_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n not_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o god_n judgement_n when_o they_o light_v upon_o we_o esa._n 42.25_o he_o have_v pour_v upon_o jacob_n the_o fury_n of_o his_o anger_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o battle_n and_o it_o set_v he_o on_o fire_n round_o about_o yet_o he_o know_v it_o not_o and_o it_o burn_v he_o yet_o he_o lay_v it_o not_o to_o heart_n when_o god_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v angry_a with_o we_o by_o smite_v and_o correct_v we_o shall_v we_o think_v this_o a_o virtue_n in_o we_o not_o to_o be_v affect_v with_o it_o oh_o no_o this_o be_v a_o grievous_a sin_n jer._n 5.3_o thou_o have_v strike_v they_o but_o they_o have_v not_o grieve_v if_o our_o mortal_a parent_n shall_v show_v themselves_o displease_v and_o angry_a with_o we_o will_v it_o not_o trouble_v and_o humble_v we_o num._n 12.14_o how_o much_o more_o when_o god_n show_v himself_o so_o this_o be_v a_o extreme_a height_n of_o rebellion_n to_o despise_v god_n judgement_n esa._n 22.12_o 14._o the_o man_n that_o be_v true_o patient_a be_v very_o sensible_a of_o god_n stroke_n and_o of_o his_o sin_n that_o make_v god_n to_o strike_v he_o and_o yet_o he_o bear_v they_o patient_o and_o therefore_o he_o bear_v they_o patient_o because_o he_o know_v his_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o they_o see_v a_o example_n of_o this_o in_o the_o mirror_n of_o true_a patience_n bless_a job_n even_o when_o he_o show_v his_o patience_n most_o and_o can_v say_v job_n 1.21_o naked_a come_v i_o out_o of_o my_o mother_n womb_n and_o naked_a shall_v i_o return_v thither_o the_o lord_n give_v and_o the_o lord_n have_v take_v away_o bless_a be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o be_v he_o deep_o humble_v with_o the_o strange_a judgement_n of_o god_n verse_n 20._o he_o rend_v his_o mantle_n and_o shave_v his_o head_n
honour_n to_o god_n themselves_o the_o lord_n upbraid_v the_o jew_n with_o this_o as_o with_o a_o great_a sin_n zach._n 7.6_o when_o you_o do_v eat_v and_o when_o you_o do_v drink_v do_v you_o not_o eat_v for_o yourselves_o and_o drink_v for_o yourselves_o why_o what_o fault_n be_v that_o may_v you_o say_v who_o shall_v they_o eat_v and_o drink_v for_o else_o but_o for_o themselves_o yes_o the_o apostle_n tell_v you_o 1_o cor._n 10.31_o that_o whether_o we_o eat_v or_o drink_v or_o whatsoever_o we_o do_v we_o shall_v do_v all_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n that_o be_v eat_v and_o drink_v and_o sleep_v and_o recreate_v ourselves_o that_o we_o may_v become_v the_o fit_a to_o do_v god_n some_o honour_n in_o our_o place_n if_o we_o seek_v ourselves_o only_o in_o all_o that_o we_o do_v if_o we_o live_v to_o ourselves_o and_o die_v to_o ourselves_o certain_o we_o can_v never_o say_v that_o we_o be_v the_o lord_n i_o may_v show_v you_o hear_v how_o every_o christian_a even_o the_o mean_a and_o poor_a may_v in_o this_o place_n gain_v honour_n to_o god_n but_o i_o will_v tie_v myself_o to_o the_o method_n i_o have_v already_o follow_v and_o instance_n only_o in_o those_o three_o calling_n which_o i_o have_v give_v you_o example_n of_o 1_o the_o master_n of_o the_o family_n 2_o the_o minister_n 3_o the_o magistrate_n and_o governor_n in_o the_o commonwealth_n first_o such_o as_o be_v master_n of_o family_n have_v a_o great_a opportunity_n to_o honour_n god_n by_o reform_v their_o family_n and_o plant_v religion_n in_o they_o thus_o david_n vow_v he_o will_v honour_v god_n and_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v his_o servant_n psal._n 101.6_o 7._o my_o eye_n shall_v be_v upon_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o land_n that_o they_o may_v dwell_v with_o i_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o will_v get_v i_o such_o servant_n as_o fear_n god_n if_o they_o be_v to_o be_v have_v in_o the_o whole_a land_n he_o that_o walk_v in_o a_o perfect_a way_n he_o shall_v serve_v i_o he_o that_o work_v deceit_n and_o bear_v a_o false_a heart_n and_o secret_a hatred_n to_o religion_n though_o he_o be_v not_o open_o profane_a when_o i_o once_o know_v it_o shall_v not_o dwell_v in_o my_o house_n of_o this_o also_o hezekiah_n speak_v esa._n 38.19_o the_o live_n the_o live_n he_o shall_v praise_v thou_o as_o i_o do_v this_o day_n and_o who_o among_o the_o live_n have_v best_a opportunity_n to_o praise_n &_o honour_n god_n the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n shall_v make_v know_v thy_o truth_n as_o though_o he_o have_v say_v parent_n by_o derive_v religion_n unto_o their_o posterity_n may_v great_o honour_n god_n above_o other_o and_o therefore_o also_o we_o shall_v find_v this_o oft_o note_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o so_o soon_o as_o any_o become_v god_n people_n themselves_o they_o show_v themselves_o careful_a that_o their_o whole_a family_n may_v be_v so_o too_o see_v a_o example_n of_o this_o in_o a_o mean_a man_n the_o jailor_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v act_v 16.34_o he_o rejoice_v that_o he_o with_o all_o his_o household_n believe_v in_o god_n yea_o see_v a_o example_n of_o it_o in_o a_o weak_a woman_n act_n 16.15_o lydia_n be_v baptize_v and_o her_o household_n too_o yea_o see_v a_o example_n of_o it_o in_o a_o soldier_n and_o great_a captain_n act_n 10.2_o cornelius_n fear_v god_n with_o all_o his_o house_n yea_o see_v a_o example_n of_o it_o in_o a_o magistrate_n and_o one_o that_o be_v in_o commission_n act_v 18.8_o crispus_n the_o chief_a ruler_n of_o the_o synagogue_n believe_v on_o the_o lord_n with_o all_o his_o house_n last_o see_v a_o example_n of_o it_o in_o a_o nobleman_n joh._n 4.53_o the_o nobleman_n of_o capernaum_n himself_o believe_v and_o his_o whole_a house_n and_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v then_o of_o those_o man_n that_o profess_v confident_o god_n be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o be_v his_o people_n and_o yet_o show_v no_o care_n at_o all_o to_o honour_n god_n this_o way_n by_o reform_v their_o family_n nay_o it_o be_v hold_v a_o great_a disgrace_n to_o a_o man_n to_o show_v any_o care_n at_o all_o or_o endeavour_v this_o way_n if_o joshuah_n shall_v have_v live_v now_o and_o hold_v that_o resolution_n which_o he_o profess_v josh._n 24.15_o certain_o he_o will_v have_v be_v count_v a_o rank_n puritan_n among_o our_o gallant_n for_o a_o man_n of_o his_o place_n a_o master_n of_o so_o great_a a_o family_n to_o be_v so_o precise_a that_o he_o will_v keep_v never_o a_o blasphemer_n never_o a_o whoremaster_n never_o a_o drunkard_n in_o his_o house_n what_o a_o base_a and_o unworthy_a speech_n will_v this_o be_v account_v in_o these_o day_n many_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v god_n servant_n but_o whether_o they_o of_o their_o family_n serve_v god_n or_o the_o devil_n it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o they_o so_o they_o serve_v their_o turn_n they_o like_v never_o the_o worse_o of_o a_o servant_n for_o be_v a_o common_a drunkard_n or_o whoremaster_n or_o blasphemer_n though_o he_o dishonour_v god_n never_o so_o much_o so_o he_o have_v any_o one_o quality_n whereby_o he_o may_v be_v useful_a unto_o they_o that_o it_o may_v be_v say_v now_o of_o the_o family_n of_o many_o a_o one_o that_o challenge_v as_o great_a interest_n in_o christ_n as_o any_o of_o his_o people_n do_v as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v of_o babylon_n revel_v 18.2_o though_o in_o another_o sense_n they_o be_v become_v cage_n of_o every_o unclean_a and_o basefull_a bird_n second_o we_o that_o be_v minister_n may_v in_o our_o place_n great_o honour_n god_n above_o other_o and_o express_v our_o love_n to_o he_o i_o be_o glorify_v in_o they_o say_v our_o saviour_n joh._n 17.10_o in_o which_o respect_n paul_n call_v the_o messenger_n of_o the_o church_n 2_o cor._n 8.23_o who_o be_v preacher_n as_o appear_v verse_n 18_o the_o glory_n of_o christ._n and_o our_o saviour_n bid_v peter_n thrice_o job._n 21.15_o 17._o show_v his_o love_n to_o he_o that_o way_n even_o by_o ●eeding_v his_o lamb_n and_o sheep_n we_o can_v no_o way_n glorify_v god_n so_o much_o as_o in_o win_a soul_n unto_o he_o we_o can_v no_o way_n express_v our_o love_n to_o christ_n so_o much_o as_o by_o feed_v his_o people_n with_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n if_o it_o be_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n that_o constrain_v we_o to_o preach_v so_o diligent_o so_o painful_o if_o we_o show_v ourselves_o in_o our_o ministry_n to_o be_v the_o friend_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n as_o john_n speak_v joh._n 3.29_o we_o woo_v for_o he_o only_o and_o not_o for_o ourselves_o we_o seek_v his_o honour_n only_o and_o not_o ourselves_o we_o preach_v as_o we_o do_v not_o because_o we_o think_v this_o kind_n of_o preach_v will_v gain_v we_o more_o applause_n with_o the_o people_n but_o because_o we_o be_v persuade_v this_o kind_n of_o preach_v will_v feed_v they_o best_a and_o be_v most_o effectual_a to_o save_v their_o soul_n then_o may_v we_o by_o every_o sermon_n we_o preach_v get_v further_a assurance_n to_o ourselves_o that_o we_o be_v the_o lord_n otherwise_o if_o 1_o either_o we_o preach_v not_o 2_o or_o we_o preach_v so_o unprofitable_o as_o we_o gain_v god_n no_o honour_n by_o our_o preach_n feed_v neither_o his_o sheep_n nor_o his_o lamb_n by_o our_o preach_n or_o 3_o if_o we_o do_v preach_v profitable_o yet_o we_o do_v it_o out_o of_o self-love_n we_o seek_v ourselves_o in_o it_o not_o the_o lord_n certain_o we_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n that_o christ_n be_v we_o how_o well_o so_o ever_o we_o can_v speak_v of_o christ_n but_o when_o we_o have_v preach_v unto_o other_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o cor._n 9.27_o ourselves_o shall_v become_v cast_v away_o three_o and_o last_o such_o as_o be_v magistrate_n may_v in_o their_o place_n great_o honour_n god_n and_o that_o in_o some_o respect_n more_o than_o any_o other_o man_n when_o a_o number_n of_o foul_a sin_n whereby_o god_n be_v great_o dishonour_v be_v mention_v the_o cause_n be_v oft_o assign_v judg._n 17.6_o and_o elsewhere_o to_o be_v this_o that_o there_o be_v in_o those_o day_n no_o king_n in_o israel_n but_o every_o man_n do_v that_o which_o be_v right_a in_o his_o own_o eye_n and_o a_o magistrate_n may_v by_o this_o show_n himself_o to_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o one_o that_o have_v true_a assurance_n of_o his_o favour_n if_o he_o show_v most_o zeal_n in_o execute_v justice_n upon_o such_o offence_n whereby_o god_n be_v most_o dishonour_v god_n give_v to_o phinehas_n his_o covenant_n of_o peace_n that_o be_v a_o increase_n of_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o his_o special_a favour_n as_o we_o read_v num._n 25.11_o 12._o because_o he_o have_v show_v himself_o zealous_a for_o the_o lord_n in_o punish_v of_o filthy_a whoredom_n and_o